The Two Republics
The Two Republics
PREFACE.
ROME, in its different phases, occupies the largest place of any national
name in history. Rome, considered with reference to government, is
interesting and important. Considered with reference to religion, it is yet
more interesting and more important. But when considered with reference
to the interrelationship of government and religion, it is most interesting and
most important. It is Rome in this last phase that is the principal subject of
study in this book. As in this particular Rome occupies on extreme and the
United State of America the other, the latter is considered also, though the
plan and limit of the book has made it necessary to give less space to this
than the subject deserves.
The principle of Rome in all its phases is that religion and government are
inseparable. The principle of the government of the United States is that
religion is essentially distinct and totally separate from civil government,
and entirely exempt from its cognizance.
The principle of Rome is the abject slavery of the mind ; the principle of the
United States of America is the absolute freedom of the mind.
As it Christianity that first and always antagonized this governmental
principle of Rome, and established the governmental principle of the United
States of America, the fundamental idea, the one thread-thought of the
whole book, is to develop the principles of Christianity with reference to
civil government, and to portray the mischievous results of the least
departure form those principles.
iv
CONTENTS.
CHAPTER I.
THE LAST DAYS OF THE REPUBLIC. ...................................... p. 13
Capital and labor - Electoral corruption - Anti-monopoly legislation - The
distribution of the land - Senatorial corruption and State charity - Caius
Gracchus is killed - The consulship of Marius - More State charity and the
social war - Revolt in the East - Bloody strifes in the city - Dictatorship of
Sulla - Sulla, Pompey, and Caesar - Pompey and Crassus, consuls - Land
monopoly and anti-poverty reform
CHAPTER II.
THE TWO TRIUMVIRATES........................................................ p. 35
The Senate offends Caesar - Pompey, Crassus, and Caesar - The consulate
of Caesar - Reform by law - The triumvirate dissolved - Legal government
at an end - Caesar crosses the Rubicon - Caesar dictator, demi-god, and
deity - Caesar's government - The murder of Caesar - Octavius presents
himself - Plot, counterplot, and war - Octavius becomes consul - The
triumvirs enter Rome - "The saviors of their country" - Antony and
Cleopatra
CHAPTER III.
THE ROMAN MONARCHY......................................................... p. 61
The father of the people - The accession of Tiberius - The enemy of public
liberty - A furious and crushing despotism - Accession of Caligula - Caligua
imitates the goods - Caligula's prodigality - The delirium of power -
Claudius and his wives - Messalina's depravity - Agrippina the tigress -
Roman society in general - Ultimate paganism.
CHAPTER IV.
THE "TEN PERSECUTIONS." ..................................................... p. 82
Roman law and the Jews - The persecution by Nero - Government of
Domitian - Pliny and the Christians - Government of Trajan - Riotous
attacks upon the Christians - Government of Commodus - Government of
Septimius Severus - Government of Caracalla - Persecution by Maximum -
v
CHAPTER V.
CHRISTIANITY AND THE ROMAN EMPIRE............................ p. 104
Freedom in Jesus Christ - Pagan idea of the State - Rights of individual
conscience - Christians subject to civil authority - The limits of State
jurisdiction - The Roman religion - The Roman laws - Sources of
persecution - Superstition and selfishness - The governors of provinces -
State self-preservation - State religion means persecution - Christianity
victorious - Christianity means rights of conscience.
CHAPTER VI.
THE RISE OF CONSTANTINE. ................................................... p. 127
The persecution under Diocletian - The attack is begun - Afflictions of the
persecutors -Rome surrenders - Six emperors at once - Roman embassies to
Constantine - The Edict of Milan
CHAPTER VII.
ANCIENT SUN WORSHIP........................................................... p. 139
The secret of sun worship - The rites of sun - worship in the mysteries -
Jehovah condemns sun worship - Sun worship in Judah - Sun worship
destroys the kingdom - Sun worship of Augustus and Elagabalus -
Aurelian's temple to the sun - Constantine a worshiper of the sun.
CHAPTER VIII.
THE FALLING AWAY - THE GREAT APOSTASY.................... p. 153
The root of the apostasy - Heathen rites adopted - The mysteries - The
forms of sun worship adopted - Rome exalts Sunday - Heathen philosophy
adopted - Clement's philosophic mysticism - Origen's philosophic
mysticism - Imperial aims at religious unity - Paganism and the apostasy
alike - The two streams unite in Constantine
vi
CHAPTER IX.
THE EXALTATION OF THE BISHOPRIC. ................................. p. 171
ATJ TTR PREFACE. CONTENTS page 9 paragraph 2"All ye are brethren"
- A clerical aristocracy created - Bishopric of Rome asserts pre-eminence -
Contentions in Rome and Carthage - The bishops usurp the place of Christ -
An episcopal Punic War - the bishopric of Antioch - Disgraceful character
of the bishopric
CHAPTER X.
THE RELIGION OF CONSTANTINE. ......................................... p. 185
His low utilitarianism - Pagan and apostate Christian - His perjury and
cruelty - Many times a murderer - The true cross and Constantine - Is this
paganism or Christianity? - A murderer even in death - Little better than a
pagan.
CHAPTER XI.
CONSTANTINE AND THE BISHOPS. ........................................ p. 199
The new theocracy - The new Israel delivered - Final war with Licinius -
Original State chaplaincies - The bishops and the emperor - Constantine
sent to heaven - The mystery of iniquity.
CHAPTER XII.
THE UNION OF CHURCH AND STATE..................................... p. 213
A false unity - The Catholic Church established - Which is the Catholic
Church? - Councils to decide the question - The Donatists appeal to the
emperor - The State becomes partisan - Clergy exempt from public offices -
Fruits of the exemption - The church of the masses - The church a mass of
hypocrites.
CHAPTER XIII.
THE ORIGINAL SUNDAY LEGISLATION. ............................... p. 230
Israel rejects the Lord as king - The Lord would not forsake the people -
The kingdom not of this world - The new and false theocracy -
Constantine's Sunday law - Sunday legislation is religious only - The
vii
CHAPTER XIV.
ESTABLISHMENT OF THE CATHOLIC FAITH. ....................... p. 251
The Trinitarian Controversy - Homoousion or Homoiousion - The secret of
the controversy - Constantine's design - Constantine's task - The Council of
Nice - Character of the bishops - Constantine's place in the council - The
framing of the creed - The creed and its adoption - Their own estimate of
the creed - The true estimate of the council.
CHAPTER XV.
ARIANISM BECOMES ORTHODOX. ......................................... p. 272
Arius returned; Athanasius banished - Athanasius is returned and again
banished - Macedonius made bishop of Constantinople - General Council of
Sardica - Athanasius again returned - General councils of Arles and Milan -
The bishop of Rome is banished - Hosius forced to become Arian -
Athanasius again removed - Liberius becomes Arian and is recalled -
Double council; Rimini and Seleucia - The emperor's creed declared
heretical - The world becomes Arian.
CHAPTER XVI.
THE CATHOLIC FAITH RE-ESTABLISHED. ............................ p. 293
Jovian, Valentinian, and Valens - The contentions begin again - The order
of the hierarchy - Gregory, bishop of Constantinople - The Meletian schism
- The Council of Constantinople - Council of Aquileia - Penalties upon
heretics - The empire is "converted."
CHAPTER XVII.
MARY IS MADE THE MOTHER OF GOD.................................. p. 308
Chrysostom deposed and banished - Chrysostom recalled and again
banished - A general council demanded - Cyril of Alexandria - Nestorius of
Constantinople - Cyril and Nestorious at war - The bishop of Rome joins
viii
CHAPTER XVIII.
THE EUTYCHIAN CONTROVERSY. ......................................... p. 327
The controversy begins - Eusebius in a dilemma - Forecast of the
Inquisition - A general council is demanded - The second general Council
of Ephesus - Eutyches is declared orthodox - The unity of the council -
Peace is declared restored.
CHAPTER XIX.
THE POPE MADE AUTHOR OF THE FAITH............................. p. 341
Pretensions of the bishops of Rome - "Irrevocable" and "universal" - Leo
demands another council - The general Council of Chalcedon - "A frightful
storm" - Condemnation of Dioscorus - Leo's - letter the test - Leo's letter
approved - Leo's letter "the true faith" - Unity of the council is created -
Leo's doctrine seals the creed - The creed of Leo and Chalcedon - Royalty
ratifies the creed - The council to Leo - Imperial edicts enforce the creed -
Leo "confirms" the creed - The work of the four councils.
CHAPTER XX.
THE CHURCH USURPS THE CIVIL AUTHORITY.................... p. 370
Events that favored the papacy - The bishops censors of magistrates The
Bible is made the code - The bishopric a political office - The worst
characters become bishops - the episcopal dictatorship - Civil government
vanished.
CHAPTER XXI.
THE RUIN OF THE ROMAN EMPIRE. ....................................... p. 382
The bishopric of Rome - Pride of the bishops and clergy - Vices of clergy
and people - Abominations of sun worship continued - Heathen practices in
the church - Monkish virtue made prevalent - Hypocrisy and fraud made
habitual - Pure, unmingled naturalism - Destruction and devastation - No
remedy, and final ruin.
ix
CHAPTER XXII.
THE SUPREMACY OF THE PAPACY. ....................................... p. 399
The papacy and the barbarians - The "conversion" of Clovis - The "holy"
wars of Clovis - Such conversion was worse corruption - She destroys those
she cannot corrupt - Destruction of the Herulian kingdom - Theodoric's rule
of Italy - Papal proceedings in Rome - The pope put above the State -
Conspiracies against the Ostrogoths - The accession of Justinian - The
Trisagion controversy - Justinian joins in the controversy - The Vandal
kingdom uprooted - The Ostrogothic kingdom destroyed - Temporal
authority of the papacy - The Lombards invade Italy - The pope appeals to
France - The pope anoints Pepin king - Pepin's gift to the papacy - The pope
makes Charlemagne emperor - The papacy made supreme - The germ of the
entire papacy
CHAPTER XXIII.
PROTESTANTISM - TRUE AND FALSE.................................... p. 435
The papal power and Luther's protection - The principles of Protestantism -
Protestantism is Christianity - Zwingle as a Reformer - Henry VIII against
Luther - Luther against the papacy - Henry divorces the pope - Religious
rights in England - The Calvinistic theocracy - Calvin's Despotism -
Religious despotism in Scotland - The rise of the Puritans - Puritan designs
upon England - Elizabeth persecutes the Puritans - Origin of the
Congregationalists - Puritan government of New England - New England
Puritan principles - roger Williams against Puritanism - Banishment of
Roger Williams - John Wheelright and his preaching - Wheelright is
banished - The Puritan inquisition - Puritan covenant of grace - Mrs.
Hutchinson is condemned - the inquisition continues - Planting of
Connecticut and New Haven - The theocracy is completed - Laws against
the Baptists - The Baptist principles - The whipping of Elder Holmes - The
persecutors justify themselves - Thomas Gould and his brethren - Another
remonstrance from England - First treatment of Quakers - First law against
Quakers - Rhode Island's glorious appeal - Horrible laws against the
Quakers - Horrible tortures of Quakers - The people effect a rescue -
Children sold as slaves - The death penalty is defeated - "A humaner
policy" - The people rescue the sufferers - Laws of New Haven and
Connecticut - John Wesley prosecuted - Martin Luther and Roger Williams.
x
CHAPTER XXIV.
THE NEW REPUBLIC.................................................................. p. 510
Civil government wholly impersonal - It is the scriptural idea - How are the
powers that be, ordained - The American doctrine is scriptural - The
Declaration asserts the truth - Government and religion rightly separate -
Governmental authority not religious - Daniel and the government - It is
intentionally so - The Presbytery of Hanover - Their second memorial -
Madison's Memorial and Remonstrance - Christianity does not need it - It
undermines public authority - Virginia delivered - Ratification of the
Constitution - The Christian idea
CHAPTER XXV.
THE GREAT CONSPIRACY. ....................................................... p. 541
The Constitution denounced - A religious amendment proposed - The
National Reform Association - Proposed national hypocrisy - The new
hierarchy - Moral and civil government distinct - Morality and religion
inseparable - This work committed to the church alone - The two "spheres"
- The National Reform theocracy - The new kingdom of God - What they
propose to do - National Reform toleration - They propose union with the
papacy - Religious worship in public schools - Their principles and aims are
alike - The W. C. T. U. in bad company - Principles of the National W. C.
T. U. - History repeats itself - Wrong ideas of the gospel - Prohibition joins
the procession - Principles of national Prohibition party - Origin of the
American Sabbath Union - Church and State to be united - The whole
scheme is theocratical - Anti American and anti-Christian.
CHAPTER XXVI.
THE BOND OF UNION. ............................................................... p. 585
The Catholic Church accepts - What Rome means by it - What the
Protestants mean by it - Compulsory religious observance - What is the
church for? - Sunday practice of church members - They invade the realm
of conscience - The basis of Sunday observance - The authority for Sunday
observance - No obligation upon a free conscience - The people must all go
to church - More, more, more, more! - Sunday work is to be treason - The
modern Puritan ideal - The true National Reform religion - The rumble of
the coming train - Whom Sunday laws affect - How Sunday laws are
xi
CHAPTER XXVII.
WILL IT SUCCEED? .................................................................... p. 623
Chaplaincies unconstitutional - Government chaplaincies anti-Christian -
An imposition upon the people - Liquor-drinking chaplains - National
Religious Proclamations - Appropriations to churches - A fallacious protest
- The church raid upon the treasury - The Constitution forgotten - Church
power strangles free discussion - The amendment proposed - A new
Council of Nice - The proposed national theology - The Constitution
disregarded - The national Sunday law - Religious legislation only - What
they covet - Congress and the world to come - The State dictates to
conscience - Enforced religious observance - No disturbance of worship -
The Constitution protects them - The meaning of exemption - "Every-body's
attention" called - An invasion of rights - We plead for the rights of all -
Why they propose exemption - "Embarrassing legislation" - They will
"scoop all in" - Inalienable right.
CHAPTER XXVIII.
CONCLUSION.............................................................................. p. 673
What more is needed? - International Sunday-law movement - The pope
exalts himself and Sunday - The arch-mistress of sorceries - Shall papal or
Christian principles rule? - The lesson of the history
APPENDIX.................................................................................... p. 684
FOOTNOTES ................................................................................ p. 707
xii
CHAPTER 1.
THE LAST DAYS OF THE REPUBLIC.
WITH the exception of Britain, all the permanent conquests of Rome were
made by the arms of the republic, which, though "sometimes vanquished in
battle," were "always victorious in war." But as Roman power increased,
Roman virtue declined; and of all forms of government, the stability of the
republican depends most upon the integrity of the individual. The immortal
Lincoln's definition of a republic is the best that can ever be given: "A
government of the people, by the people, and for the people." A republic is
a government of the people" - the people compose the government. The
people are governed by "the people" - by themselves. They are governed by
the people, "for the people" - they are governed by themselves, for
themselves. Such a government is but self-government; each citizen
governs himself, by himself, - by his own powers of self-restraint, - and he
does this for himself, for his own good, for his own best interests. In
proportion as this conception is not fulfilled, in proportion as the people
lose the power of governing themselves, in the same proportion the true
idea of a republic will fail of realization.
It is said of the early Romans that "they possessed the faculty of self-
government beyond any people of whom we have historical knowledge,"
with the sole exception of the Anglo-Saxons. And by virtue of this, in the
very nature of the case they became the most powerful nation of all ancient
times.
But their extensive conquests filled Rome with gold. With wealth came
luxury; as said Juvenal, -
"Luxury came on more cruel than our arms,
And avenged the vanquished world with her charms."
In the train of luxury came vice; self-restraint was broken down; the power
of self-government was lost; and the Roman republic failed, as every other
republic will fail, when that fails by virtue of which alone a republic is
possible. The Romans ceased to govern themselves, and they had to be
14
governed. They lost the faculty of self-government, and with that vanished
the republic, and its place was supplied by an imperial tyranny supported by
a military despotism.
In the second Punic War, Rome's victories had reduced the mighty
Carthage, B. C. 201, to the condition of a mere mercantile town; and within
a few years afterward she had spread her conquests round the whole coasts
of the Mediterranean Sea, and had made herself "the supreme tribunal in the
last resort between kings and nations." "The southeast of Spain, the coast of
France from the Pyrenees to Nice, the north of Italy, Illyria and Greece,
Sardinia, Sicily, and the Greek islands, the southern and western shores of
Asia Minor, were Roman provinces, governed directly under Roman
magistrates. On the African side, Mauritania (Morocco) was still free.
Numidia (the modern Algeria) retained its native dynasty, but was a Roman
dependency. The Carthaginian dominions, Tunis and Tripoli, had been
annexed to the empire. The interior of Asia Minor up to the Euphrates, with
Syria and Egypt, was under sovereigns called allies, but, like the native
princes in India, subject to a Roman protectorate. Over this enormous
territory, rich with the accumulated treasures of centuries, and inhabited by
thriving, industrious races, the energetic Roman men of business had spread
and settled themselves, gathering into their hands the trade, the financial
administration, the entire commercial control, of the Mediterranean basin.
They had been trained in thrift and economy, in abhorrence of debt, in
strictest habits of close and careful management. Their frugal education,
their early lessons in the value of money, good and excellent as those
lessons were, led them as a matter of course, to turn to account their
extraordinary opportunities. Governors with their staffs, permanent
officials, contractors for the revenue, negotiators, bill-brokers, bankers,
merchants, were scattered everywhere in thousands. Money poured in upon
them in rolling streams of gold.: - Froade.*1
The actual administrative powers of the government were held by the body
of the senators, who held office for life. The Senate had control of the
public treasury, and into its hands went not only the regular public revenue
from all sources, but also the immense spoil of plundered cities and
conquered provinces. With the Senate lay also the appointment, and from its
own ranks, too, of all the governors of provinces; and a governorship was
the goal of wealth. A governor could go out from Rome poor, perhaps a
bankrupt, hold his province for one, two, or three years, and return with
millions. The inevitable result was that the senatorial families and leading
commoners built up themselves into an aristocracy of wealth ever
15
For, to get money by any means lawful or unlawful, had become the
universal passion. "Money was the one thought from the highest senator to
the poorest wretch who sold his vote in the Comitia. For money judges gave
unjust decrees, and juries gave corrupt verdicts." - Froude.*2 It has been
well said that, "With all his wealth, there were but two things which the
Roman noble could buy - political power and luxury." - Froude.*3 And the
poor Roman had but one thing that he could sell - his vote. Consequently
with the rich, able only to buy political power, and with the poor, able only
to sell his vote, the elections once pure, became matters of annual bargain
and sale between the candidates and the voters. "To obtain a province was
the first ambition of a Roman noble. The road to it lay through the
praetorship and the consulship; these offices, therefore, became the prizes of
the State; and being in the gift of the people, they were sought after by
means which demoralized alike the givers and the receivers. The elections
were managed by clubs and coteries; and, except on occasions of national
danger or political excitement, those who spent most freely were most
certain of success. Under these conditions the chief powers in the
commonwealth necessarily centered in the rich. There was no longer an
aristocracy of birth, still less of virtue. . . . But the door of promotion was
open to all who had the golden key. The great commoners bought their way
into the magistracies. From the magistracies they passed into the Senate." -
Froude. *4 And from the Senate they passed to the governorship of a
province.
To obtain the first office in the line of promotion to the governorship, men
would exhaust every resource, and plunge into what would otherwise have
been hopeless indebtedness. Yet having obtained the governorship, when
they returned, they were fully able to pay all their debts, and still be
millionaires. "The highest offices of State were open in theory to the
meanest citizen; they were confined, in fact, to those who had the longest
purses, or the most ready use of the tongue on popular platforms.
Distinctions of birth had been exchanged for distinctions of wealth. The
struggle between plebeians and patricians for equality of privilege was over,
and a new division had been formed between the party of property and a
party who desired a change in the structure of society." - Froude.*5
Such was the condition of things, B. C. 146, when the ruin of Carthage left
Rome with no fear of a rival to her supremacy. Senatorial power was the
sure road to wealth. The way to this was through the praetorship and the
consulship. These offices were the gift of the populace through election by
popular vote. The votes of the great body of the populace were for sale; and
17
as only those who could control sufficient wealth were able to buy enough
votes to elect, the sure result was, of course, that all the real powers of the
government were held by the aristocracy of wealth. Then as these used their
power to increase their own wealth and that of their favorites, and only used
their wealth to perpetuate their power, another sure result was the growth of
jealousy on the part of the populace, and a demand constantly growing
louder and more urgent, that there should be a more equable division of the
good things of life which were monopolized by the favored few. "All orders
in a society may be wise and virtuous, but all cannot be rich. Wealth which
is used only for idle luxury is always envied, and envy soon curdles into
hate. It is easy to persuade the masses that the good things of this world are
unjustly divided, especially when it happens to be the exact truth." -
Froude.*6
And as these two classes were constantly growing farther apart, - the rich
growing richer and the poor, poorer, - there ceased to be any middle class to
maintain order in government and society by holding the balance of power.
There remained only the two classes, the rich and the poor, and of these the
rich despised the poor and the poor envied the rich. And there were always
plenty of men to stir up the discontent of the masses, and present schemes
for the reorganization of society and government. Some of these were well
meaning men, men who really had in view the good of their fellow-men, but
the far greater number were mere demagogues, - ambitious schemers who
used the discontent of the populace only to lift themselves into the places of
wealth and power which they envied others, and which, when they had
secured, they used as selfishly and as oppressively as did any of those
against whom they clamored. But whether they were well meaning men or
demagogues, in order to hold the populace against the persuasions and
bribes of the wealthy, they were compelled to make promises and
concessions, which were only in the nature of larger bribes and which in the
end were as destructive of free government as the worst acts of the Senate
itself.
In the long contest between the people and the Senate, which ended in the
establishment of an imperial form of government, the first decisive step was
taken by Tiberius Gracchus, who was elected tribune of the people in the
year 133 B. C. On his way home from Spain shortly before, as he passed
through Tuscany, he saw in full operation the 'large estate system carried on
by the wealthy senators or their favorites, - the public lands unlawfully
leased in great tracts, "the fields cultivated by the slave gangs, the free
citizens of the republic thrust away into the towns, aliens and outcasts in
18
their own country, without a foot of soil which they could call their own."
He at once determined that the public lands should be restored to the
people; and as soon as he was elected tribune, he set to work to put his
views into law. As the government was of the people, if the people were
only united they could carry any measure they pleased, in spite of the
Senate. As the senators and their wealthy favorites were the offenders, it
was evident that if any such law should be secured, it would have to be
wholly by the people's overriding the Senate; and to the people Tiberius
Gracchus directly appealed. He declared that the public land belonged to the
people, demanded that the monopolists should be removed, and that the
public lands should be re-distributed among the citizens of Rome. The
monopolists argued that they had leased the land from the Senate, and had
made their investments on the faith that the law was no longer of force.
Besides this they declared that as they were then occupying the lands, and
as the lands had been so occupied for ages before, with the sanction of the
government, to call in question their titles now, was to strike at the very
foundations of society. Tiberius and his party replied only by pointing to the
statute which stood unrepealed, and showing that however long the present
system had been worked, it was illegal and void from the beginning.
Yet Tiberius did not presume to be arbitrary. He proposed to pay the
holders for their improvements; but as for the public land itself, it belonged
to the people, and to the people it should go. The majority of the citizens
stood by Tiberius. But another of the tribunes, Octavius Caecina by name,
himself having large interests in the land question, went over to the side of
the Senate; and, in the exercise of his constitutional right, forbade the taking
of the vote. From the beginning, the functions of the tribunes were that they
should be the defenders of the people and the guardians of the rights of the
people, against the encroachment of the Consulate and the Senate. And now
when one of their own constitutional defenders deserted them and went over
to the enemy, even though in doing it he exercised only his constitutional
prerogative, this the people would not bear. It was to support an unlawful
system that it was done; the people were all-powerful, and they determined
to carry their measure, constitution or no constitution.*7 Tiberius called
upon them to declare Caecina deposed from the Tribunate; they at once
complied. Then they took the vote which Caecina had forbidden, and the
land law of Tiberius Gracchus was secured.
Three commissioners were appointed to carry into effect the provisions of
the law. But from whatever cause, the choosing of the commissioners was
unfortunate - they were Tiberius himself, his younger brother, and his father
19
in law. Being thus apparently a family affair, the aristocrats made the most
of it, and bided their time; for the tribunes were elected for only a year, and
they hoped so to shape the elections when the year should expire, as to
regain their power. But when the year expired, Tiberius unconstitutionally
presented himself for re-election, and the prospect was that he would secure
it. When the election day came, the aristocrats, with their servants and hired
voters, went armed to the polls; and as soon as they saw that Tiberius would
surely be chosen, they raised a prior. The people being unarmed, were
driven off. Tiberius Gracchus and three hundred of his friends were killed
and pitched into the Tiber. Yet though they had killed Tiberius, they did not
dare to attempt at once the repeal of the law which he had secured, nor
openly to interfere with the work of the commissioners in executing the law.
Within two years the commissioners had settled forty thousand families
upon public lands which the monopolists had been obliged to surrender.
The commissioners soon became unpopular. Those who were compelled to
resign their lands were exasperated, of course. On the other hand, those to
whom the land was given were not in all cases satisfied. It was certain that
some would be given better pieces pieces of land than others, and that of
itself created jealousy and discontent. But the greatest trouble was, that in
the great majority of cases it was not land that they wanted, in fact. It was
money that they wanted first of all; and although the land was virtually
given to them and well improved at that, they could not get money out of it
without work. It had to be personal work, too, because to hire slaves was
against the very law by virtue of which they had received the land; and to
hire freemen was impossible, (1) because no freeman would work for a
slave's wages - that in his estimate would be to count himself no better than
a slave - and, (2) the new landed proprietor could not afford to pay the
wages demanded by free labor, because he had to meet the competition of
the wealthy land owners who worked their own land with slave labor. The
only alternative was for the new land-holders to work their land themselves,
and do the best they could at it. But as the money did not come as fast as
they wished, and as what did come was only by hard work and economical
living, many of them heartily wished themselves back amid the stir and
bustle of the busy towns, working for daily wages, though the wages might
be small. The discontented cries soon grow loud enough to give the Senate
its desired excuse to suspend the commissioners and then quietly to repeal
the law, and resume its old supremacy.
Just nine years after the death of Tiberius Gracchus his brother Caius was
elected a tribune, and took up the work in behalf of which Tiberius had lost
20
his life. The Senate had been jealous of him for some time, and attacked
him with petty prosecutions and false accusations; and when he was elected
tribune, the Senate knew that this meant no good to it. Caius revived the
land law that had been secured by his brother ten years before, but he did
not stop there; he attacked the Senate itself. All important State cases,
whether civil or criminal, were tried before a court composed of senators -
about sixty or seventy. This privilege also the senators had turned to their
own profit by selling their verdicts. It was no secret that the average
senatorial juryman was approachable with money; if not in the form of a
direct bribe, there were many other ways in which a wealthy senator could
make his influence felt. Governors could plunder their provinces, rob
temples, sell their authority, and carry away everything they could lay hands
on; yet, although in the eyes of the law these were the gravest offenses,
when they returned to Rome, they could admit their fellow-senators to a
share in their stealings, and rest perfectly secure. If the plundered
provincials came up to Rome with charges against a governor, the charges
had to be passed upon by a board of senators who had either been governors
themselves or else were only waiting for the first chance to become
governors, and a case had to be one of special hardship and notorious at
that, before any notice would be taken of it in any effective way. The
general course was only to show that the law was a mockery where the rich
and influential were concerned. At this system of corruption, Caius
Gracchus aimed a successful blow. He carried a law disqualifying forever
any senator from sitting on a jury of any kind, and transferring these judicial
functions to the equites, or knights, an order of men below the dignity of
mouators, but yet who had to be possessed of a certain amount of wealth to
be eligible to the order. By this measure, Caius bound to himself the whole
body of the knights.
But these attacks upon the Senate successful though they were, and these
favors to the knights, were of no direct benefit to the people; therefore to
maintain his position with them, Caius was obliged to do something that
would be so directly in their favor that there could be no mistaking it. It was
not enough that he should restore the land law that had been secured by his
brother. That law, even while it was being worked at its best, was
satisfactory to but few of its beneficiaries. The law was restored, it is true,
but the prospect of leaving Rome and going perhaps to some distant part of
Italy to engage in hard work, was not much of a temptation to men who had
spent any length of time in Rome, involved in its political strifes, and whose
principal desire was to obtain money and the means of subsistence with as
21
be borne. The course of the Senate might have been one of misrule, but this
of Caius Gracchus was fast developing into unbearable despotism. The
election day came, riots were raised, and Caius Gracchus and three
thousand of his friends were killed, as had been his brother and his friends
ten years before.
The mob having now no leader, the Senate resumed its sway as before, and
went on in the same old way, except that the laws actually passed by Caius
had to stand. It was not long, however, before the Senate was put to a test
which effectually exposed its utter incompetency to rule the Roman State.
West of the Carthaginian province of Rome, lay the kingdom of Numidia,
over which the Roman power extended its protectorate. Miscipsa was king.
He had two sons, Hiempsal and Adheabal, and an illegitimate nephew,
Jugurtha. Miscipsa died B. C. 118, and left his kingdom jointly to the three
young men. Jugurtha at once murdered Hiempsal, and attacked Adherbal.
Adherbal appealed to Rome, but Jugurtha had already made himself safe
with the Senate. The Senate sent out commissioner, Jugurtha bribed them,
and they went home again. Jugurtha pushed the war, Adherbal was taken,
and was killed after having been tortured almost to death. After the capture
of Adherbal and his forces, some Roman citizens had also been taken, and
after their surrender, they too were killed. This raised such a cry at Rome
that the Senate was compelled at least to promise an investigation; but as no
results were to be seen, one of the tribunes openly told the people that there
were men in the Senate who were bribed. At this the popular indignation
began to show itself so strongly that the Senate dared no longer to brave it,
and declared war on Jugurtha. An army was sent to Africa in command of a
consel. Jugurtha bribed the consul, and secured a peace on the payment of a
small fine. Memmius, the same tribune who before had the courage openly
to charge the Senate with taking bribes, again openly exposed in the Forum
this last piece of rascality. The Senate saw the storm gathering, and once
more bestirred itself to the extent of calling Jugurtha to Rome. This was
only to increase the opportunities of both Jugurtha and themselves. Jugurtha
came laden with gold, and in addition to the Senate which he already
owned, he bribed every one of the tribunes, except Memmius, who was
proof against all his blandishments. Jugurtha had been called to Rome under
a safe-conduct, and he was at last ordered back home, but the cause was not
yet settled. The Senate sent over another army. But Rome had as yet no
standing army, and there had now been peace so long that the old military
discipline of the citizens had completely run down. The men who were
enlisted were wholly ignorant of military duty, and the officers, appointed
23
mostly from among the rich young nobles, were more illy prepared for war
than were the men. The army went to Africa, and in about two months the
half of it was destroyed, and the other half captured, by Jugurtha. About the
same time, two armies were destroyed by the Gauls up on the Rhone.
("While the great men at Rome were building palaces, inventing new
dishes, and hiring cooks at unheard-of salaries, the barbarians were at the
gates of Italy." - Froude.*9
This combination of disgraces and dangers gave such force to the popular
complaints against the Senate, that it was at last aroused to a determination
really to do something, and the best man that could be found - Caecilius
Metellus - was appointed to lead a new expedition against Jugurtha.
Metellus having it in mind to put an end to the Jugurtha. War, chose as his
second in command the ablest general that he could find, Caius Marius.
Arrived in Numidia, the Roman army was successful in several battles, and
Jugurtha asked for peace; but as Metellus demanded unconditional
surrender, and could not be bribed, Jugurtha drew his forces into the desert,
and caused the war to drag along. As the time for the election of a consel for
the next drew on, Marius's name was mentioned as the candidate of the
people. It was the law that the candidate must be present at the election, and
Marius obtained the consent of Metellus to go to Rome. Election day came,
B. C. 107, and although the aristocracy did all they could to defeat him,
Marius was elected - the first instance in a hundred years in which a consul
had been chosen from the people. Metellus was recalled, and Marius was
given sole command in the war with Jugurtha. He first set on foot a
thorough reorganization of the military power of Rome. Up to this time, the
Roman armies had been but a militia - citizens called from their various
occupations for service upon emergency, and returning to their occupations
as soon as the occasion was past which made their services necessary.
Marius enlisted men to become professional soldiers. These he thoroughly
drilled, and reduced to the strictest discipline. Thus originated the standing
army of Rome, which out of the corruptions of the times at last arose to a
military despotism. With such an army of well trained and well disciplined
troops, Marius, before the next year was ended, had brought the Jugurthine
War to a triumphant close, and Jugurtha himself was brought in chains to
Rome.
Marius had barely ended the trouble in Numidia, before all his skill and all
the valor of his well trained legions, were urgently demanded to turn back
the tide of barbarians, - Cimbri and Teutons, - which in two mighty streams
of hundreds of thousands each, was pouring into Italy. While Marius was in
24
Africa, the largest army that Rome had ever sent against an enemy, was by
these savages swept out of existence, B. C. 107. But although the
generalship of Marius was now urgently needed - B. C. 104 - his consulship
had expired, and there was no precedent for electing the same person consul
a second time. In times of imminent danger it was in the province of the
Senate to suspend the constitution, declare the State in danger, and appoint
a dictator. But as Marius was the favorite of the populace, it was known by
all that should the Senate exercise its prerogative, it would never appoint
him as the dictator; and it was also known by all that Marius was the only
man who could save the State. Therefore, the people took the power into
their own hands again, and virtually suspended the constitution by electing
Marius consul the second time, B. C. 104.
The barbarians, however, did not come at once into Italy. By some cause
their erratic course was turned aside, and they swept through southern Gaul,
across the Pyrenees into Spain, over northern Spain to the Atlantic, up the
coast into Gaul again, across Gaul to the Seine and even to the Rhine; and
then gathering fresh force from their brethren from the wilds of Germany,
the torrent rolled once more toward Italy. In this wild raid two years were
consumed. In Rome the people still held sway, and Marius was elected
consul a third time, and even a fourth time. He put the two years to good
use in perfecting the efficiency of his legions, and drawing them up to the
borders of Italy. He met the Teutons even beyond the Alps, and annihilated
the whole host, July 20, B. C. 102. The Cimbri by another route passed the
Alps and forced back as far as the Po, the legions under Catulus. Marius, in
his absence, was elected consul the fifth time, and continued in command.
He came to the rescue of Catulus. The Cimbri were utterly destroyed (B. C.
101, summer), and Italy was saved. Marius was the idol of the people; they
prided themselves upon saving the country by him, and they elected him
consel the sixth time, B. C. 100.
But Rome was no sooner free once more from the danger of a foreign foe,
than by civil strife and political violence she began to prey again upon her
own vitals. Besides Marius, the two favorites of the people just at this time
were Saturninus, a tribune, and Glaucia, a praetor. With these Marius allied
himself. They were all powerful, and passed, (1) another land law dividing
up portions of the public domain among the veterans of Marius; (2) a law
establishing colonies in Sicily, Achaia, and Macedonia; (3) a law reducing
as low as two cents a peck, the price of wheat from the public granaries;
and, (4) to cap it all, they passed a vote that all the senators should take an
oath to execute these laws under penalty of fine and expulsion from the
25
Senate. All this was done in the midst of riot, tumult, and bloodshed.
Metellus alone, of all the senators, refused to take the oath to execute these
laws. Saturninus had him dragged out of the Senate house and expelled
from the city. Yet there was not entire harmony in the popular party. There
were rival candidates and consequent jealousies. Saturninus and Glaucia
were in the full tide of success, and would brook no rivals. Memmius stood
for the consulship at the same time that Glaucia was a candidate for that
office. As it appeared that Memmius would be elected, he was murdered. At
this, both Saturninus and Glaucia were declared public enemies. They took
refuge in the capitol, and barricaded it. The aristocrats laid siege to them;
Marius interceded, and they surrendered to him. They were confined in an
apartment of the Senate house to be held for trial. The aristocrats tore off
the roof, and pelted them to death with stones and tiles.
It will be remembered that in the tribunate of Caius Gracchus - B. C. 123 -
the corruption of justice by the senators had made it necessary to deprive
them of the right to sit on juries, and that this privilege was bestowed upon
the knights. Yet within about thirty years the same evil bad grown to such a
height among the knights as to call loudly for a reform. Accordingly, in B.
C. 91 Marcus Divius Drusus, a tribune, brought forward a proposal to
reform the law courts, and thereby incurred the deadly enmity of the whole
Equestrian order. With this he proposed both new land laws and new corn
laws, which increased the hatred of the senatorial order toward the
populace. These laws were passed, but the Senate declared them null and
void. Drusus had also entered into negotiations with the Italians to secure
for them Roman citizenship. He was denounced in the Senate house as a
traitor, and on his way home was assassinated.
The Italians seeing their last hope was gone, rose in rebellion, and set about
to form a new State of their own to be called Italia. They had long borne an
equal share in the burdens of the State; they had helped to subdue Jugurtha,
and had borne an important part in the defeat of the barbarian host. They
were now determined that if they were to bear an equal share in the burdens
of the State, they would have a voice, too, in the affairs of the State; and if
they could not have it in the Roman State, they would have it in one of their
own. Rome was determined not to allow this if she could avoid it. But in the
war which followed, the first campaigns were disastrous to the Roman
arms, and although some successes were afterwards gained, they were not
decisive; she soon found her treasury empty, and found disaffection
springing up in districts that had not revolted. Drusus had been murdered in
91; the war for the franchise immediately followed, and Rome's dangers and
26
distresses became so threatening that in the latter part of the year 90, a law
was passed granting th the franchise to all the Italian communities which
should within sixty days hand in their names to the praetor in Rome; and a
third law was passed shortly afterward empowering the Roman magistrates
in the field to bestow the franchise upon all who would receive it. In this
way the forces of the insurgents were so weakened that the war was soon
closed.
The close of war in the field was only the signal for the renewal of strife in
the political arena of the city. All the old quarrels were renewed with
increased bitterness, and the lately enfranchised Italians were a new element
in the strife. Their voting power was incorporated with that of tribes already
existing, which was only to rob them of a large share of the value of their
votes. This made them discontented from the very beginning. Added to all
the bitterness of factions, and the rivalries of all classes who had any
political power at all, there was now wide-spread distress and ruin that
affected all classes. And besides all this, Mithradates, king of Pontus, taking
advantage of the social war in Italy, had set out to reduce all the East in
subjection to himself. The Roman governors had made such a tyrannical use
of their power that all the provinces of the East were ready to revolt at the
first fair opportunity that offered. The fleets of Mithradates, coming out
over the Black Sea, poured through the Hellespond and the Dardanelles into
the Grecian Archipelago. All the islands, and the provinces of Ionia, Caria,
and Lydia, taking advantage of this, rose at once in determined revolt, and
put to death many thousands of the Roman residents. Not only the
governors, but the merchants, the bankers, and the farmers of the taxes, with
their families, were promiscuously murdered.
Mithradates himself, with a powerful army, followed close upon the success
of his fleet, crossed the Bosphorus, and penetrated into Greece, which
received him as a deliverer. All this compelled Rome to declare war upon
Mithradates; but this was only to deepen her own local contests; because
there was bitter rivalry and contention as to who should command the
armies to be sent against Mithradates. Marius was still a great favorite, but
there was now a strong rival to his popularity in the person of Lucius
Cornelius Sulla. Sulla had been one of Marius's best assistants in putting an
end to the Jugurthine War, and also in defeating the Teutons and the
Cimbri. He made himself the favorite of the soldiers by allowing them to
indulge "in plundering and in all kinds of license." Before the social war he
had already made one journey into the East with an army, had defeated one
of the generals of Mithradates, had restored, for a time, order in the Eastern
27
provinces, and had received an embassy from the Parthians, which was sent
to solicit an alliance with Rome, B. C. 92. He returned to Rome in 91, and
both he and Marius were given command in the war with the Italians.
Sulla's success was more marked than that of Marius, and there were not
those lacking who would stir up jealousy between the two commanders by
claiming that Marius's success against Jugurtha and the barbarians was
more owing to the abilities of Sulla than to his own. Sulla was one of the
aristocracy, - "a patrician of the purest blood," - but he had made an
immense bid for the favor of the populace by exhibiting in the arena a
hundred African lions.
Everybody in Rome, and, for that matter, in all Italy, knew that the contest
for the command of the troops in the Mithradatic War, lay between Marius
and Sulla; and every one knew that the contest stood, Sulla and the
Senatorial party against Marius and the people. The contest deepened, and it
was more and more evident that, in the existing state of things, it could not
be decided without a crisis. A tribune - Sulpicius Rufus - proposed for
adoption a series of laws: (1) that Marius should be given command in the
Mithradatic War; (2) that more power should be given to the newly-made
citizens and more value to their votes, by increasing the number of tribes,
and distributing the new citizens through all the tribes; (3) that any senator
who was in debt more than 2000 denarii (about $300), should lose his seat;
(4) and that those who had been banished on suspicion of having
encouraged the Italian revolt should be recalled.
These proposals only made the confusion of parties worse confounded. The
proposal to give Marius the command pleased the great majority of the
people; that in favor of the new citizens, secured the influence of all these,
but the proposal to increase the power of their votes was bitterly opposed by
the old voters, because it would lessen the value of their own votes. The
proposal to unseat such of the senators as should come within the provisions
of the law, was only to raise the whole Senate to war by attempting to
curtail its power; and again, the proposal in favor of Marius only aroused
both the Senate and Sulla to the most determined opposition. But through it
all it soon became evident that Rufus would carry his whole scheme. The
consuls, - Sulla was one of them, - to prevent the legislation, proclaimed the
day a public holiday. Rufus armed his party and drove the consuls from the
Forum, compelled them to withdraw the proclamation of a holiday, and
carried his laws. But Sulla put himself at the head of his soldiers and
marched them into the city, and "for the first time a Roman consul entered
the city of Rome at the head of the legions of the republic." There was
28
resistance, but it was utterly vain. Marius escaped to Africa, Rufus was
taken and killed, and twelve others of the popular leaders put to death
without a trial. Sulla, at the head of his troops and supported by the Senate,
settled affairs to suit himself, and with his legions departed for the East in
the beginning of the year 87 B. C.
Sulla was no sooner well out of Italy than one of the consuls - Cinna - put
himself at the head of the people, and proposed to carry out the laws of
Rufus. The new citizens had assembled in crowds to exercise their right of
voting. The other consul, standing for Sulla and the Senate, brought out an
armed force, and commanded the assembled voters to disperse; and because
they refused, they were hewn down where they stood, and "the Forum was
heaped high with the bodies of the slain." "Such a scene of slaughter had
never been witnessed in Rome since the first stone of the city was laid." -
Froude.*10 Cinna and the tribunes fled, but it was to gather together the
soldiers as Sulla had done before them. Marius, too, returned with a
thousand cavalry from Numidia, and he had no sooner stepped ashore in
Italy than he was joined by five thousand of his veterans, and with his six
thousand men he united with Cinna at the gates of Rome. The Senate had
made preparations for a vigorous defense, and, in order to prevent the
threatened attack, issued proclamations, making every concession, and
granting every privilege that had been demanded. But all was to no purpose.
They could not be trusted. Marius and Cinna pressed forward, and after a
brief resistance, the city was surrendered, and the two generals entered with
their troops. A fearful massacre followed. Fifty senators and a thousand
knights were slain, besides great numbers of their partisans, and for many
days the city was given up to a reign of terror. These were the last days of
the year 87 B. C. Marius died January 13, 86. Cinna, supported by his
troops, became virtually dictator, and ruled Rome for three years.
Sulla was everywhere successful against Mithradates, and in the year 84 a
peace was concluded, in which Mithradates was reduced to the position of a
vassal of Rome. In 83 Sulla determined to return to Italy, which under
Cinna's rule had been almost entirely turned against him. The Italians
dreaded to have Sulla return, and Cinna started to go into Greece with his
forces to meet Sulla there, but his troops mutinied and killed him, and Sulla
was in a short time landed in Italy with 40,000 veteran troops, who had not
yet known defeat. Sulla was joined by Pompey with a legion which he had
raised. The defeat of Cinna had dissolved the unity of the parties in Italy,
yet it took Sulla about a year to bring all the country into subjection. As
soon as he had made his position secure, he entered upon a course of
29
continuous and systematic murder of all who had in any way given support
to Cinna or Marius. He had the Senate to appoint him dictator, which made
him master of everything and everybody in Italy.
"He at once outlawed every magistrate, every public servant of any kind,
civil or municipal, who had held office under the rule of Cinna. Lists were
drawn for him of the persons of wealth and consequence all over Italy who
belonged to the liberal party. He selected agents whom he could trust, or
supposed he could trust, to enter the names for each district. He selected, for
instance, Oppiancicus of Larino, who inscribed individuals whom he had
already murdered, and their relations whose prosecution he feared. It
mattered little to Sylla *11 who were included, if none escaped who were
really dangerous to him; and an order was issued for the slaughter of the
entire number, the confiscation of their property, and the division of it
between the informers and Sylla's friends and soldiers. Private interest was
thus called in to assist political animosity; and to stimulate the zeal for
assassination, a reward of 5001 was offered for the head of any person
whose name was in the schedule. . . . Four thousand seven hundred persons
fell in the proscription of Sylla, all men of education and fortune. The real
crime of many of them was the possession of an estate or a wife which a
relative or a neighbor coveted. The crime alleged against all was the opinion
that the people of Rome and Italy had rights which deserved consideration
as well as the senators and nobles. The liberal party were extinguished in
their own blood. Their estates were partitioned into a hundred and twenty
thousand allotments, which were distributed among Sylla's friends, or
soldiers, or freedmen. The land reform of the Gracchi was mockingly
adopted to create a permanent aristocratic garrison. There were no trials,
there were no pardons. Common report or private information was at once
indictment and evidence, and accusation was in itself condemnation." -
Froude.*12
Reform was popular, and Sulla must needs be a reformer; but his was a
reformation which aimed to make the Senate both supreme and absolute. He
had already, while consul in 88, crippled the power of both the tribunes and
the people, by passing a law that no proposal should be made to the
assembly without the sanction of the Senate; and now the value of the office
of tribune was lowered by the provision that any one who should become a
tribune should never afterward be chosen to any other office. In another
form, also, he lessened the power of the people; he enacted a law that no
man should be elected consul who was not forty-three years old, and who
had not already been a praetor or a quaestor, and that no one should be
30
made consul a second time within ten years. He also took entirely away
from the knights the right of sitting as the court of justice, and restored to
the Senate this privilege. As in the matter of the election of tribunes and
consuls he had so far deprived the people of the exercise of their power, he
now went farther, and enacted a law that the assembly of the people should
not even be called together without the Senate's sanction. But the heaviest
stroke of all that he made against the populace was to abolish entirely the
grants of grain, and to shut up the public granaries.
Thus the power of the Senate was made absolute, and to render it secure,
ten thousand slaves were enfranchised and formed into a senatorial guard.
But in the existing order of things, it was impossible that such power could
be respected, or that it could long be exercised. The only means by which
Sulla was enabled to create such a power at all, was the army which was so
entirely devoted to himself.
From this time forth, in the very nature of things, it became more and more
certain that the army would be the real source of power; that whosoever
should have the support of the strongest body of troops would possess the
power; and that just as soon as that power should be turned against the
Senate instead of for it, all this system which had been so carefully built up
would be scarcely more tangible than the stuff that dreams are made of.
Sulla himself had set the example in 88, it had been readily followed by
Cinna in 87, it was repeated here by Sulla in 81, and he himself saw in
Pompey a readiness to follow it this same year.
Pompey had been sent to Sicily and Africa to reduce things to order there,
and he was eminently successful. When he had completed his task, he was
ordered by the Senate to disband his troops. He refused, and Sulla had to
smooth the matter over by granting him a triumph, and allowing him to
assume the title of "the Great," although he was only about twenty-five
years of age. By this act of Pompey's Sulla saw that it would be the best
thing to do, to bind Pompey securely to himself. Pompey was already
married to Antistia, a lady whose father had been murdered for standing up
for Sulla, and whose mother had been driven mad, and to destroy herself, by
her husband's terrible fate. But Sulla had a stepdaughter, Emilia, whom he
proposed that Pompey should marry. Emilia was already married, and was
pregnant at the time, yet at Sulla's invitation Pompey divorced Antistia, and
married Emilia. There was just then another youth in Rome whom it was to
Sulla's interest to gain also, and he proposed to secure his allegiance in
31
much the same way that he had gained Pompey's. That youth was Julius
Caesar.
Caesar was the nephew of the great Marius, and had married Cornelia, the
daughter of Cinna, by whom he had a daughter named Julia. He was at this
time about twenty years of age. Sulla proposed to him that he should
divorce Cornelia, and marry some woman whom Sulla should choose.
Caesar flatly refused. Sulla tried to compel him to it: he deprived him of his
office of the priesthood,he took his wife's dowry from him, and confiscated
his estate. But Caesar would not yield an inch. Next Sulla hired assassins to
kill him, and he escaped only by bribing the assassins. Caesar's friends
interceded, and finally obtained his pardon; but he, not willing to trust
himself within Sulla's reach, left Italy, and joined the army in Asia. In 79
Sulla resigned his dictatorship, and died the following year.
The power which Sulla had given to the Senate was only used to build up
itself. As no election could be had without the appointment of the Senate,
the elections soon fell under the control of senatorial rings and committees,
and no candidate could hope to succeed who had not the favor of the
Senate; and the surest means of securing the favor of the senatorial party
was the possession of wealth, and a willingness to spend it to secure an
office.
The distribution of the land by Sulla had worked no better than had that by
the Gracchi, nor in fact hardly as well; because since that there had been
forty years of degeneracy and political violence, and a part of the time
almost anarchy. Extravagance in living had increased at a rapid rate among
all classes: among the really wealthy, in an ostentatious display, or the
exhaustion of pleasure; among those of moderate fortunes in an effort to ape
the ways of the wealthy; and even among the poor, owing to the virtually
free distribution of wheat. For so long as they could get the main part of
their living for nothing, they were not likely to cultivate habits of economy.
It was easy enough to distribute land to those who had neither land nor
money. The difficulty was to keep it so distributed. Those to whom Sulla
had distributed land, especially his soldiers, lived far beyond their means;
their lands were soon mortgaged, and at last forfeited, falling once more
into the hands of the wealthy land owners, to be worked by slaves, while the
free citizens were again crowded into the cities. Besides the vast numbers of
slaves who were put to use on farms and in shops all over Italy, there were
many who were kept and trained to fight one another in the amphitheater,
solely for the amusement of the populace. Nothing made a person so
32
popular as to set forth a few pairs of gladiators in the circus to murder one
another. At Capua, about seventy-five miles south of Rome, was the most
famous training-school for gladiators. In the year 73 B. C., two hundred of
these gladiators, led by Spartacus, broke away from their "stables" in
Capua, and were soon joined by escaped slaves from all the surrounding
country, in such numbers that in a little while Spartacus found himself at the
head of 70,000 men ready for any sort of desperate action. For two years
they spread terror from one end of Italy to the other, till Pompey and
Crassus led forth an army, and annihilated the whole host, B. C. 71.
Spartacus was killed, sword in hand, and 6,000 captives were crucified all
along the highway from Capua to Rome.
Pompey and Crassus were made consuls for the year 70, Sulla's legislation
was undone, and everything set back as it was before, except that the
prerogative of sitting as a court of law was not restored entirely to the
knights. This privilege the senators had again prostituted to their old
purposes, and as the knights could not be fully trusted either, the court was
now to be composed of two-thirds knights and one-third senators. The
power of the tribunes was fully restored, also the right of the populace to
assemble at their own wish. The public granaries were once more opened.
The mob was happy, the Senate was embittered, and the way was again
opened for the full tide of political violence which immediately followed.
Caesar was now fast becoming popular. He and Bibulus had been elected
aediles for the year 65, the office of which was to take charge of the public
buildings and the games and theaters. "They were expected to decorate the
city with new ornaments, and to entertain the people with magnificent
spectacles." Caesar acquitted himself so well in this as to make himself the
favorite of the whole multitude of the people. Then as he felt his influence
becoming more firmly established, he set on foot an inquiry into the
proscription that had been carried on by Sulla. A committee of investigation
was appointed, of which Caesar himself was made chairman. At the time
when the roof of the Senate house had been torn off, and Saturninus and
Glaucia were pelted to death with tiles, in Saturninus, the father of Titus
Labienus had been killed. One of those engaged in the massacre at the time
was Rabirius, and although he was now a very old man, Labienus
prosecuted him before Caesar's committee for the murder of his father.
Rabirius was convicted, but he appealed to the people, who could not see
their way clear to convict him of a guilt that was common to the whole
aristocracy; and although he was acquitted, they chose to show to the
senatorial party that it was out of no respect to them. The people decided to
33
make Caesar the head of religion by electing him to the office of Pontifex
Maximus, which became vacant just at this time. This was the greatest
honor that could come to a Roman citizen. The office was for life, and until
now had always been held by members of the aristocracy, and Sulla had
sought to confine it exclusively to these by giving to the sacred college the
privilege of electing its own chief. Labienus being tribune, had succeeded in
carrying a vote in the assembly by which this privilege was resumed by the
people. To fill the vacancy which now occurred, two of the aristocracy were
presented by the senatorial party, and Caesar was nominated by the people.
Immense sums of money were spend by the senatorial party to buy
sufficient votes to elect one or the other of their two candidates. Caesar
likewise spent money freely, although deeply in debt already. When he left
home for the Forum on the morning of the election day, and his mother
kissed him good-by, he told her he would either come home Pontifex
Maximus or would not come home at all. Such an extreme alternative,
however, was not necessary, because he was elected by a vote larger than
that of both the other candidates put together. This was in the year 63, and
soon afterward Caesar was elected praetor for the next year.
The land monopoly had again become as notorious as at any time before.
The small proprietors had sold, out and large holdings had increased, until
the land had fallen into a few hands, and Rome was crowded with a rabble
of poor citizens largely fed at public expense. Against the will of the Senate,
and by the unanimous voice of the people, Pompey had been sent, B. C. 72,
to the East against Mithradates, who had again strongly asserted his power.
Pompey was victorious everywhere, and his conquests in the East had
brought to the State large quantities of land, and his honest conduct in these
affairs had filled the treasury with money. Here was a grand opportunity for
reform. Rullus, a tribune, brought forward a proposition that part of the
territory acquired by Pompey should be sold, and the money used to buy
land in Italy upon which to settle poor citizens from Rome. Cicero, as
consul, opposed it strenuously. He railed on Rullus with all the bitterness
his abusive tongue could utter. Rullus had stated that the populace of Rome
was become so powerful as to be dangerous, and that for the good of the
State it would be proper that some should be removed from the city, and
placed upon lands where they could support themselves. This was all true,
as Cicero well knew; yet he hesitated not a moment to curry favor with
these, by setting it before them in as objectionable a light as possible in
order to defeat the aim of Rullus. Cicero hated the influence of the people as
much as anybody else in Rome, but he hated Rullu's proposition more
34
because it would lessen the power of the aristocracy, whose favor he just
now longed for more than for anything else; he therefore pretended to be the
friend of the people and to be defending them against the ulterior scheme of
Rullus. He succeeded. Rullu's bill was defeated, and his plan came to
nothing. And had his plan even succeeded it would likewise have come to
nothing; because now the cry had become popular and was becoming more
and more imperative - "Bread for nothing, and games forever!"
35
CHAPTER II.
THE TWO TRIUMVIRATES.
THE senators held office for life, and therefore the Senate was always in
possession of power; while owing to the fact that the elections were annual,
the power of the people was but spasmodic at the best. Whenever some
extraordinary occasion, or some leader who could carry the multitude with
him, arose, the people would awake and carry everything before them. But
when the particular occasion was past, or the leader fallen, the people would
drop back into the old easy way, though there was scarcely ever an election
without a riot, and the Senate would gradually regain all its former power;
each time only using it the more despotically, in revenge for the checks
which had been put upon it, and the insults which it had received. With
politics, as it had universally become, it was inevitable and in fact essential,
that there should arise a power constantly active, which should balance that
of the Senate, and hold in check its despotic tendencies. This power, as had
already appeared, lay in the army. But the army must be led. Consequently
the logic of the situation was that a coalition should be formed representing
the different classes of the people, but depending upon the army for support.
Such a coalition was demanded by the times and events, and was actually
created in B. C. 60.
Pompey's work was done in the East, and in December 62 B. C., he returned
to Rome to display and enjoy such a triumph as had never before been seen
on earth. A long train of captive princes of the conquered countries as
trophies of his victories, and wagons laden with all manner of treasure as an
offering to the State, followed the triumphant general as he returned to the
capital. A triumphal column was erected in his honor, with an inscription
which declared "that Pompey, 'the people's general,' had in three years
captured fifteen hundred cities, and had slain, taken, or reduced to
submission twelve million human beings." The offerings which he brought
filled the treasury to overflowing, and the income from the countries
subdued made the annual revenue of the republic double what it had been
before. All this was lost upon the Senate, however, except to deepen its
jealousy of Pompey. By a special vote, indeed, he "was permitted to wear
his triumphal robe in the Senate as often and as long as it might please
him;" but with this the Senate proposed that favors to Pompey should cease.
36
At the border of Italy Pompey had disbanded his troops, and he entered
Rome as a private citizen, with only his political influence to sustain him.
And just here Pompey failed. Although he was every inch a general, he was
no politician. He could victoriously wield an army, but he could do nothing
with a crowd. He could command legions, but could not command votes.
More than this, during his absence, the senatorial party had employed the
time in strenuous efforts and by all means in their power, to destroy his
influence in the city, and to create jealousy and distrust between Caesar and
Pompey. When Pompey had departed for Asia, it was with the friendship of
Caesar, whose influence had helped to secure his appointment. During
Pompey's absence, Caesar's influence and popularity had constantly
increased in Rome. He held the people's favor, and Pompey held the
military power. The senatorial party decided, if possible, to divide this
power by estranging Pompey and Caesar from one another. The tale was
carried to Pompey that his wife, Mucia, had been seduced by Caesar.
This accomplished its intended purpose, and Pompey divorced her.
Pompey's prompt action in disbanding his troops at the border of Italy had
relieved the Senate from dread of his military power; yet Pompey's troops,
although disbanded, and of no force as a military power, were an important
element in the elections, so long as Pompey could retain their sympathies.
Pompey asked that his acts in Asia might be ratified, but the Senate and its
partisans, though not openly refusing to do so, raised so many questions and
created so many delays as to amount in effect to a refusal. He also asked
that public lands might be distributed to his soldiers, and this also was so
successfully opposed as to defeat him. He then attempted to gain his wishes
by political influence and action. By the free use of money he secured the
election of both the consuls for the year 60 B. C.; but he was disappointed
in both. One had not sense enough to be a consul, and the other, Metellus
Celer, was the brother of Mucia, whom Pompey had divorced, and under
pretense had only lent himself to Pompey in order to take revenge for the
reproach thus cast upon his sister. Celer immediately went over to the
senatorial party, and engaged in the most violent opposition to Pompey. The
tribune Flavius, who had proposed Pompey's measures, went so far as to
seize Celer, and put him in prison. Celer called the senators to his cell to
deliberate there. The tribune set up his tribunal at the prison door, so that
the senators might not enter; but the senators had the prison walls torn
down, and went in in spite of the tribune.
37
The Senate, not content with estranging Pompey and Caesar from one
another, and openly insulting Pompey besides, proceeded to offend Caesar.
At the close of Caesar's praetorship, - at the end of 62 B. C., - the province
of Further Spain had been assigned him. But he was in debt two hundred
and fifty millions of sesterces - about twelve millions of dollars. To pay his
debts and make the necessary preparations for his journey to Spain, he
borrowed from Crassus eight hundred and thirty talents - nearly thirteen
millions of dollars. The senatorial party, however, endeavored to prevent his
departure from Rome, and a decree was passed to the effect that the praetors
should not go to their provinces until certain important questions of State
and religion had been finally settled. Caesar knew that this was aimed at
him, and therefore in defiance of the decree he went at once to his province,
and put himself at the head of the legions there. This was the first real
opportunity that Caesar had ever had to prove his ability as a military
leader, and he acquitted himself well. "He thus effected the complete
subjugation of the districts of Lusitania north of the Tagus, including the
wild fastnesses of the Herminian Mountains and the rapid waters of the
Durius. Brigantium in Galicia, protected on the land side by the difficult
character of the surrounding country, he attacked with a naval armament,
and erected his victorious standard at the furthest extremity of his
province." - Merivale.*13
The complete conquest of his province, and the settlement of its civil
administration upon a permanent basis, were all accomplished in a little
more than a year. His great success entitled him to a triumph, and he desired
also to stand for the consulship during the ensuing year. He addressed the
Senate soliciting the award of the triumph which he had justly earned. The
Senate knew that he wanted also to be a candidate for the consulship. The
law was that no general to whom was granted a triumph should come into
Rome until the time of triumphal entry, which time was to be fixed by the
Senate; and the custom, which had the force of law, was that every
candidate for the consulship must appear publicly in the Forum on three
distinct occasions, and must be present personally in the Forum on the day
of the election. The Senate designed to prevent Caesar's candidacy for the
consulship by granting the triumph and setting the time on a day beyond the
day of the election, thus keeping him out of the city, so that it would be
impossible for him to be present in the Forum as a candidate. This custom
could be, and in fact had been, dispensed with on important occasions; but
the Senate was very tenacious of both law and custom when they could be
turned to its own advantage. Caesar applied to the Senate for a dispensation
38
allowing him to be a candidate in his absence. The Senate would not grant
it, and when Caesar's friends began to urge the matter, Cato defeated them
by obtaining the floor and talking all the rest of the day. When Caesar
learned of the determination of the Senate to shut him out of the consulship
by granting a triumph on a day after the election, he checkmated their
nicely-planned move. He renounced the triumph, went at once to Rome,
went through the necessary forms, and appeared as a candidate for the
consulship.
The Senate had now offended Pompey and embittered his soldiers, and had
committed itself to open and determined hostility to Caesar. Pompey took in
the situation, saw his opportunity, and acted upon it at once. He made
overtures to Caesar, who received him willingly, and an alliance was
formed. Caesar and Crassus were already firm friends, and had been
working together for some time. But Crassus and Pompey were bitter
enemies. Caesar's tact, however, soon tempered the feud, and reconciled the
enmity. Caesar was the idol of the people; Pompey was the idol of the
soldiers; and Crassus, the richest individual in the Roman world,
represented the moneyed class, the farmers of the taxes, etc., who were not
of the nobility. These three men covenanted together "that no proceedings
should be allowed to take place in the commonwealth without the consent
of each of the three contracting parties. United they constituted a power
beyond all the resources of the commonwealth to cope with" - Merivale.*14
Thus became an accomplished fact, and though there were a few expiring
struggles, the power of the Roman Senate was virtually gone forever.
had already refused to allow. This measure, however, like that of Tiberius
Gracchus, included thousands of the free citizens who had sold their lands
and crowded into Rome. In the long interval since the repeal of the land law
of Sulla, things had fallen back into the same old way. The public lands had
fallen from those to whom the State had distributed them, to the great
landed proprietors. Caesar's land law, like all those before it, proposed to
buy the rights of these proprietors, as represented in their improvements,
and distribute the lands among Pompey's veterans and several thousands of
the unemployed population of the city. He showed to the Senate that there
was plenty of money in the treasury, which Pompey's soldiers themselves
had brought to the State, to supply all the land required under the act. The
Senate would not listen. Cato took the lead in the opposition, and talked
again for a whole day; he grew so violent at last that Caesar ordered the
lictors to take him off to prison. Many of the senators followed Cato. As
nothing could be done, however, Caesar ordered Cato to be set free, at the
same time telling them that as they had refused to take part in legislation,
henceforth he would present his propositions at once to the people. Bibulus,
however, was owned by the Senate, and he as consul might obstruct and
delay the proceeding in the assembly. Besides this, the Senate had bribed
three tribunes to assist Bibulus.
Caesar did not hesitate. A day was appointed, and he presented his bill in
the Forum, which before daylight the populace had filled to overflowing, to
prevent the senatorial party from getting in. As Bibulus was consul, a
passage was made for him through the crowd, and he took his place with
Caesar on the porch of the temple of Castor and Pollux. Caesar stepped
forward, and read from a tablet the proposed law, and turning to Bibulus
asked if he had any fault to find with it. Bibulus answered that there should
be no revolutions while he was consul, at which the assembly hissed. This
made Bibulus yet more angry, and he burst out to the whole assembly,
"During my year you shall not obtain your desire, not though you cried for
it with one voice." Pompey and Crassus, though not officials, were both
present. Caesar now signaled to them; they stepped forward, and he asked
whether they would support the law. Pompey made a speech in which he
declared that he spoke for his veterans and for the poor citizens, and that he
approved the law in every letter of it. Caesar then asked, "Will you then
support the law if it be illegally opposed?" Pompey replied: "Since you,
consul, and you, my fellow-citizens, ask aid of me, a poor individual
without office and without authority, who nevertheless has done some
40
service to the State, I say that I will bear the shield if others draw the
sword."
At this, a mighty shout arose from the assembly. Crassus followed with a
speech to the same purpose. He likewise was cheered to the echo. Bibulus
rushed forward to forbid the vote to be taken. The bribed tribunes
interposed their veto. Bibulus declared that he had consulted the auspices, -
had read the sky, - and that they were unfavorable to any further proceeding
that day, and declared the assembly dissolved. But the assembly had not
come together to be dissolved by him, nor in any such way as that. They
paid no attention. He then declared all the rest of the year to be holy time.
This was met by a yell that completely drowned his voice. The assembly
rushed upon the platform, pushed Bibulus off, broke his insignia of office,
bandied him about with the bribed tribunes, and trampled upon them; but
they were able to escape without serious injury. Then Cato took up the
strain, pushed his way to the rostra, and began to rail at Caesar. He was met
with a roar from the assembly that completely drowned his voice, and in a
moment he was arrested and dragged away, raving and gesticulating. The
law was then passed without a dissenting voice.
The next day Bibulus asked the Senate to pass a decree annulling the act of
the assembly, but this failed. Cato, Celer, and Favonius openly refused to
obey the law, upon which a second law was passed, making it a capital
offense to refuse to swear obedience to the law. Bibulus then shut himself
up in his own house, and refused to act as consul any more. This left the
triumvirate absolute, with the actual power in Caesar's hands for the rest of
the year. Pompey's soldiers had been provided for by the land law which
had just been passed, and his acts in Asia were confirmed. In addition to
this an act was passed in behalf of Crassus. The farmers of the taxes
throughout the provinces had taken the contract at too high a price, and now
they were not making as much as they expected. Crassus was the chief of all
these, and an act was passed granting new terms. By these acts Caesar had
more firmly bound to himself both Pompey and Crassus. He then proceeded
more fully to gratify the people by a magnificent display of plays and
games.
In legislation, the Senate was totally ignored; Caesar acted directly with the
assembly of the people, and passed such laws as he pleased. Yet it must be
said that he passed none that were not good enough in themselves, but they
were laws which in fact meant nothing. There was no public character to
sustain them, and consequently they were made only to be broken. There
41
was a law for the punishment of adultery, when not only Caesar, but nine
tenths of the people were ready to commit adultery, at the first opportunity.
There were laws for the protection of citizens against violence, when every
citizen was ready to commit violence at a moment's notice. There were laws
to punish judges who allowed themselves to be bribed, when almost every
man in Rome was ready both to offer and to receive brides. There were laws
against defrauding the revenue, when almost every person only desired an
opportunity to do that very thing. There were laws against bribery at
elections, when every soul in Rome from Caesar to the lowest one of the
rabble that shouted in the Forum, was ready to bribe or to be bribed.
"Morality and family life were treated as antiquated things among all ranks
of society. To be poor was not merely the sorest disgrace and the worst
crime, but the only disgrace and the only crime: for money the statemen
sold the State, and the burgess sold his freedom; the post of the officer and
the vote of the juryman were to be had for money; for money the lady of
quality surrendered her person, as well as the common courtesan; falsifying
of documents, and perjuries had become so common that in a popular poet
of this age an oath is called `the plaster for debts.' Men had forgotten what
honesty was; a person who refused a bribe was regarded not as an upright
man, but as a personal foe. The criminal statistics of all times and countries
will hardly furnish a parallel to the dreadful picture of crimes - so varied, so
horrible, and so unnatural." - Mommsen.*15 In this condition of affairs such
laws were nothing more nor less than a legal farce.
Caesar's consulship was about to expire, and as above stated, when he was
elected the Senate had named as his "province" the department of roads and
forests instead of a province. As this was intended at the first to be only a
slur upon Caesar, and as both he and the people fully understood it, the
people set aside this appointment, and voted to Caesar for five years the
command of Illyria, and Gaul within the Alps; but as there were some fears
from the barbarians of Gaul beyond the Alps, a proposition was introduced
to extend his province to include that. Pompey and Crassus heartily
assented, and the Senate seeing that it would be voted to him any way by
the assembly, made a virtue of necessity, and bestowed this itself. Pompey
now married Caesar's daughter Julia, which more firmly cemented the
alliance while Caesar should be absent.
The triumvirate had been formed to continue for five years. As the term
drew to a close, the triumvirate was renewed for five years more. Pompey
and Crassus were made consuls for the year 55 B. C., with the
understanding that while in office they should extend Caesar's command in
42
Gaul for five years longer after the expiration of the first five; and that at the
expiration of their consulate, Pompey should have Spain as his province,
and Crassus should have Syria.
The first thing to by done the new consuls was to secure the assembly's
indorsement of the triumvirs' arrangement of the provinces. This also the
senators opposed by every means to the very last. Cato raved as usual, and
when at the expiration of his allotted time he refused to sit down, he was
dragged away by an officer, and the meeting adjourned. The next day the
assembly came together again. When the senatorial party saw that the action
of the triumvirs was to be ratified in spite of them, Cato and Atticus, a
tribune, were lifted to men's shoulders, and the tribune cried out, as Bibulus
on the like occasion formerly, that the skies were unfavorable, and the
proceedings illegal. Other tribunes ordered the proceedings to go on, at
which a riot began. Clubs and stones and swords and knives were freely
used. The senatorial party were driven out, the arrangement of the provinces
fully ratified, and the assembly dismissed. The people had no sooner gone
out than the senatorial party came back, presented a motion for Caesar's
recall, and proceeded to vote upon it. The assembly returned, and drove
them out with more bloodshed, and certainly to prevent all question as to
what had been done, passed a second time the motion upon Caesar's
appointment.
Pompey, yet more to please the populace, dedicated a new theater, which
would seat forty thousand people. It was decorated with marble and adorned
with precious stones in such abundance as had never before been seen in
Rome. The dedication with music, games, chariot races, and contests
between men and beasts, continued five days, during which five hundred
lions - one hundred each day - were turned loose in the arena only to be
killed. Besides this, eighteen elephants were compelled to fight with bands
of gladiators, the piteous cries of the poor creatures finding a response even
in the savage sympathies of Romans.
By the strifes of parties, the election of consuls for the year 54 was
prevented until the expiration of 55, and the consulates of Pompey and
Crassus had expired. Crassus departed for the East. Pompey assumed
command of the province of Spain, but instead of going to Spain, remained
in Rome.
In 54, Pompey's wife, Caesar's daughter, died; in June 53 Crassus was killed
in that memorable battle with the Parthians; and the triumvirate was
dissolved. Pompey had now been so long separated from the army that his
43
influence with the soldiery was almost gone, while Caesar's uninterrupted
course of victory in Gaul had made him the idol of the army, as well as the
pride of the people. The triumvirate was no sooner broken by the death of
Crassus, than the Senate began earnestly to try to win Pompey, and compass
Caesar's destruction. "No aristocracy was ever more short-sighted at the
crisis of its fate than the once glorious patriciate of Rome. It clung
desperately to its privileges, not from a fond regard to their antiquity, or
their connection with any social or religious prejudices; disdained to invoke
the watchwords of patriotism or utility; it took up its ground upon the
enactments which Sulla had made to enhance its own wealth and power,
and depress those of its rivals, and contended with its assailants upon purely
selfish considerations. Without a policy and without a leader, the nobles
went staggering onward in their blind conflict with the forces arrayed
against them." - Merivale.*16
Pompey took his stand with the Senate. Although he was in Rome, he was
really commander of the province of Spain, and was thus in possession of
an army, though that army was at a distance. Under pretense of a need of
troops in Syria against the Parthians who had defeated and slain Crassus,
the Senate drew from Caesar two legions, and stationed them at Capua. A
motion was then made in the Senate for Caesar's recall, and the appointment
of his successor. But just then an obstacle presented itself which
disconcerted all their plans. Scribonius Curio had been one of the most
violent partisans of the senatorial party, and largely on account of this he
had been elected tribune by the favor of the Senate. But Curio went over to
the interests of Caesar. When the motion was made to appoint a successor
to Caesar, Curio moved an amendment to the effect that Pompey be
included, and that when Caesar was relieved of this command, Pompey
should be relieved of his command also. This amendment met with such
approval that it was accepted by an overwhelming majority, and the people
were so jubilant that they strewed flowers in Curio's way as he returned
from the assembly. The adoption of this amendment completely blocked the
effort of the Senate to depose Caesar.
Curio so persistently interposed his veto to all proceedings against Caesar,
that at last an attempt was made to get rid of him. One of the censors
pronounced him unworthy of a place in the Senate; the consul Marcellus put
the question to vote, and it was defeated. Then the consul and his partisans
dressed themselves in mourning, and went straight to Pompey; declared the
city in danger; placed its safety in his hands; and gave him the two legions
that were at Capua. Pompey refused to accept the charge unless it was
44
sanctioned by the consuls who had been elected for the next year. These
both confirmed the appointment, and promised their support when they
should come into office. Caesar's enemies had now both an army and a
commander. This being by the official act of the consular authority, WAS A
CONFESSION THAT LEGAL GOVERNMENT WAS AT AN END, AND
WAS VIRTUALLY THE ESTABLISHMENT OF GOVERNMENT
ONLY BY MILITARY FORCE.
Curio's tribunate ended with the year 50, and he closed his term of office
with an appeal to the people, in which he declared that justice was violated,
that the reign of law was passed, and that a military domination reigned in
the city. He then left the city, and went to Caesar, who was encamped at
Ravenna with a legion.
The consuls for the year 49 were both avowed enemies to Caesar. Two of
the tribunes for the year were Mark Antony and Cassius Longinus, -
friendly to Caesar and ready to veto every proposition that appeared to be to
his disadvantage. Caesar sent Curio back to Rome early in January with a
letter in which he offered any one of three things: (1) That the agreement
long before made should stand, and he be elected consul in his absence; or
(2) that he would leave his army if Pompey would disband his troops; or (3)
that he would surrender to a successor all Gaul beyond the Alps with eight
of his ten legions, if he were allowed to retain his original province of
Illyria and Northern Italy with two legions. The consuls objected to the
reading of the letter, but the demands of the tribunes prevailed. When it had
been read through, the consuls prohibited any debate upon it, and made a
motion to consider the state of the republic. None of Caesar's propositions
would be considered for a moment. Lentulus, one of the consuls, took the
lead in urging prompt and determined action, and others followed to the
same purpose. Some advised delay till they were better prepared; others
advised that a deputation be sent to treat further with Caesar.
The majority supported Lentulus. It was moved that Caesar should dismiss
his troops by a certain day which the Senate should name, and return to
Rome as a private citizen, or be declared a public enemy. The two tribunes
interposed their vetos on the ground that it had been decreed by the people
that Caesar should be allowed to stand for the consulship in his absence; but
their plea was totally disregarded, and the motion was passed almost
unanimously. The tribunes then protested against the illegality of the
proceedings, and cried aloud that they were refused the free exercise of their
official prerogatives. The assembly in reply voted the State in danger;
45
suspended the laws; ordered an immediate levy of troops; and gave the
consuls sole power to provide for the public safety. The Senate next
proposed to punish the two tribunes. They were given to understand that if
they entered the Senate house, they would be expelled by force. They, with
Curio, fled to Caesar. The consuls made Pompey commander-in-chief of the
forces, and gave him the freedom of the public treasury. Pompey went to
Capua to take charge of the two legions there, and organize the new levies.
When the news of these proceedings reached Caesar at Ravenna, he
assembled his legions, and laid the whole matter before them. The Senate
had satisfied itself with the pleasing illusion that Caesar's legions were so
dissatisfied with him and discouraged by the long tedious campaigns in
barbarous Gaul, that they only waited for a good opportunity to desert him
in a body. But never had they been more mistaken than they were in this.
The soldiers were ready to support him to the utmost. They not only offered
to serve without pay, but actually offered him money for the expenses of the
war. Only one officer out of the whole army failed him. This one slipped
away secretly, and fled to Pompey, and Caesar sent all his baggage after
him.
Caesar sent orders to Gaul beyond the Alps for two legions to follow him,
and he set out toward Rome with the one legion - 5,000 men - that was with
him. About twenty miles from Ravenna, a little stream called the Rubicon
formed part of the boundary between the territory of Rome proper and the
provinces which had been assigned to Caesar. To cross this boundary with
an armed force was to declare war; but as the Senate had already by its
actions more than once openly declared war, Caesar had no hesitation in
crossing the boundary. He passed it, and marched ten miles onward to
Rimini. There he halted and waited for the two legions ordered from Gaul,
one of which reached him about the end of January, and the other about the
middle of February.
By the time that Caesar had reached Rimini, the rumor had reached Rome
that he was coming, and a panic seized his enemies throughout the whole
city. Their excited imaginations and guilty fears pictured him as coming
with all his legions, accompanied by hosts of the terrible barbarians of Gaul,
hurrying on by forced marches, nearer and yet nearer, and breathing forth
fiery wrath. "Flight, instant flight, was the only safety. Up they rose,
consuls, praetors, senators, leaving wives and children and property to their
fate, not halting even to take the money out of the treasury, but contenting
themselves with leaving it locked. On foot, on horseback, in litters, in
46
carriages, they fled for their lives to find safety under Pompey's wing in
Capua." - Froude.*17
Instead of Caesar's marching toward Rome, however, he was waiting
quietly at Rimini for his legions to come from Gaul, and his waiting there
was working doubly to his advantage, to say nothing of the results of the
panic-stricken fears of his enemies in Rome. Not only did the two legions
come promptly from Gaul, but troops flocked to him from all the country
around; and cities on the way to Rome began to declare for him, and were
ready to open their gates as soon as he should arrive. Ahenobarbus, with a
few thousand men, occupied a strong place in the mountains directly in
Caesar's way. Caesar surrounded the place, and captured the whole body of
them. He then let them all go. Ahenobarbus and some of his officers went
away, but his troops declared for Caesar. As soon as Pompey and the nobles
heard of the capture of Ahenobarbus and the the desertion of these troops,
they took up their flight again for Brundusium on the east coast of Italy,
where they might take ships for Epirus. The greater part of them sailed
away at once. Pompey remained with a portion of his army for the ships to
return to take them away. Caesar hurried to Brundusium, where he arrived
on the ninth of March. Pompey was there. Caesar asked for a meeting, but
Pompey refused. Caesar began a siege, but the ships soon came, and
Pompey and his army sailed away for Durazzo on the coast of Epirus.
Caesar had no ships, and could follow the fugitives no farther. He therefore
went directly to Rome. She threw wide her gates to receive him.
The remains of the Senate was convened by the tribunes who had fled to
Caesar, but it would do nothing. The assembly of the people voted him the
money in the treasury. He took what he needed, and as Spain and the
Mediterranean Coast of Gaul were yet subject to Pompey, he went in a few
days to bring these into subjection. This was all accomplished before
winter. He was made dictator in his absence. He returned to Rome in
October. He appointed a day for the election of consuls for the year 48, and
himself and Servilius Isauricus were chosen without opposition. Thus he
was elected consul for the very year that had been promised him long before
by the Senate and assembly, although the Senate had declared that he never
should have it at all. The election of the other lawful magistrates soon
followed, the form of legal government was restored, and he set out at once
to find Pompey and the Senate. He marched to Brundusium, and sailed to
Epirus. There he found that Pompey had gone to Macedonia. After much
maneuvering, the armies met at Pharsalia in Thessaly, and Pompey's army
was completely routed. Pompey fled to Egypt. Caesar followed closely; but
47
Pompey had been murdered and beheaded before he had fairly landed, and
only his head was preserved and rendered an unwelcome present to Caesar.
Caesar spent the time till the autumn of 47 setting things in order in Egypt
and the East, then he returned to Rome. Finding that Pompey was dead, and
that all hope of support from him was gone, Caesar's enemies in Rome
became his most servile flatterers. Those who had plunged the State into
civil war rather than allow him while absent to be even a candidate for the
consulship, now in his absence made him dictator for a whole year, and
were ready to heap upon him other preferences without limit.
A part of the year 46 was spent in subduing the opposing forces in Africa.
This was soon accomplished, and the servile flatterers went on with their
fawning adulations. Even before his return, the Senate voted in his favor a
national thanksgiving to continue forty days. When he returned, they voted
him not one triumph, but four, with intervals of several days between, and
that his triumphal car should be drawn by white horses. They made him
inspector of public morals for three years. And as though they would be as
extravagant in their adulation as they had been in their condemnation, they
voted him dictator for ten years, with the right to nominate the consuls and
praetors each year; that in the Senate his chair should always be between
those of the two consuls; that he should preside in all the games of the
circus; that his image carved in ivory should be borne in processions among
the images of the gods, and be kept laid up in the capitol over against the
place of Jupiter; that his name should be engraved on a tablet as the restorer
of the capital; and finally that a bronze statue of him standing on a globe
should be set up with the inscription, "Caesar, the Demi-god."
Caesar was not wanting in efforts to maintain the applause of the populace.
He gave to each soldier about a thousand dollars, and to each citizen about
twenty dollars, with house-rent free for a year; and provided a magnificent
feast for the citizens, who were supported by the public grants of grain.
Twenty-two thousand tables were spread with the richest viands, upon
which the two hundred thousand State paupers feasted, while from
hogsheads the finest wine flowed freely. Above all this he furnished the
finest display of games and bloody battles of gladiators that had ever been
seen. So great was it, indeed, and so bloody, and so long continued, that it
fairly surfeited the savage Roman appetite; and the people began to
complain that the vast sums of money spent on the shows would have been
better employed in donations direct to themselves. Time and space would
48
fail to tell of the numbers, the magnitude, and the magnificence of the
buildings with which he adorned the city.
In the winter of 46-5 Caesar was compelled to go to Spain to reduce the last
remains of the senatorial forces. This was accomplished before the month of
April was passed, yet he did not return to Rome until September. As soon as
the news of his victory reached Rome, however, the Senate, which sincerely
hoped he would be killed, began once more to pour forth its fulsome
flattery. It voted a national thanksgiving to continue fifty days, decreed him
another triumph, conferred upon him the power to extend the bounds of the
city, and erected another statue of him with the inscription, "To The
Invincible Deity."
When he returned and had enjoyed his triumph, he again celebrated the
occasion with games, combats, and shows no less splendid than those which
he had given before, only not so long continued. After this was all over, he
took up the regulation of the affairs of society and state. He gave his
soldiers lands, but instead of trying to provide lands in Italy for all of them,
he distributed the most of them in colonies in the provinces. He cut down
the quantity of public grants of grain, and sent thousands upon thousands of
citizens away beyond the seas to establish Roman provinces. Eighty
thousand were sent to rebuild Carthage. Another host was sent to rebuild
Corinth, which had been destroyed by the Romans a hundred years before.
To lessen the evils that had rent the State so long in the annual elections, he
enacted that the elections to the lesser offices of the State should be held
only once in three years. He enacted that at least one third of the hired help
of farmers, vineyardists, stock raisers, etc., should be Roman citizens. He
enacted that all physicians, philosophers, and men of science should be
Roman citizens. This privilege was likewise bestowed upon large numbers
of people in Gaul, Spain, and other places. In the early days of Rome,
unions of the different trades and handicrafts had been formed for mutual
benefit. In the times which we have sketched, they had become nothing but
political clubs, and withal had become so dangerous that they had to be
utterly abolished. In B. C. 58, Clodius, to strengthen his political influence,
had restored them. Caesar now abolished them again, but allowed bona fide
trades-unions to be organized upon the original plan of mutual benefit.*18
As inspector of public morals he next attempted, as he had when he was
consul in 59, to create reform by law. It was a time of unbounded luxury
and of corresponding license and licentiousness. He forbade the rich young
nobles to be carried in litters. Sea and land were being traversed for dainties
49
for the tables of the rich; Caesar appointed inspectors of the tables and the
provision stores to regulate the fare, and any prohibited dish found on any
table was picked up and carried away even though the guests were sitting at
the table at the moment. The marriage relation had fallen to very loose
ways. He enacted that any Roman citizen who was the father of three
legitimate children born in Rome, or four in Italy, or five anywhere else,
should be exempted from certain public obligations; and that the mothers in
such cases should be allowed the special dignity of riding in litters, dressing
in purple, and wearing necklaces of pearls. Divorces were as frequent as
anybody chose to make them, and Caesar, who had divorced his own wife
merely upon suspicion, essayed to regulate divorces; and he who from his
youth had enjoyed the personal favors of the chief women of Rome, he who
"had mistresses in every country which he visited, and liaisons with half the
ladies in Rome," and who was at the time maintaining an adulterous
connection with the Queen of Egypt, - he presumed to enact laws against
adultery.
One thing, however, he did , which was more lasting than all his other acts
put together; and, in fact, of more real benefit. This was the reform of the
calendar.
All this time the Senate was heaping upon him titles and honors in the same
extravagant profusion as before. One decree made him the father of his
country; another liberator; another made him imperator, and commander-in-
chief of the army for life with the title to be hereditary in his family. They
gave him full charge of the treasury; they made him consul for ten years,
and dictator for life. A triumphal robe and a crown of laurel were bestowed
on him, with authority to wear them upon all occasions. A figure of his head
was impressed upon the coin. His birthday was declared to be a holiday
forever; and the name of the month, Quinctilius, was changed to Julius, and
is still our July. Next his person was declared sacred, and any disrespect to
him in word or action was made to be sacrilege. It was decreed that the oath
of allegiance should be sworn by the Fortune of Caesar. The Senate itself
took this oath, and by it swore sacredly to maintain his acts, and watch over
the safety of his person. To complete the scale, they declared that he was no
more Caius Julius, a man, but Divus Julius, a god; and that a temple should
be built for the worship of him, and Antony should be the first priest.
Then, having exhausted the extremest measure of the most contemptible
sycophancy, March 15, B. C. 44, THEY MURDERED HIM.
50
Caesar was dead; but all that had made him what he had been, still lived.
Pretended patriots assassinated Caesar to save the republic from what they
supposed was threatened in him; but in that act of base ingratitude and cruel
"patriotism," there was accomplished that which they professed to fear from
him, and which in fact they realized from those who were worse than he. It
was with the Romans at this time, as it was with the Athenians when
Demosthenes told them that if there were no Philip, they themselves would
create a Philip. Affairs had reached that point in the Roman State where a
Caesar was inevitable, and though to avoid it they had killed the greatest
Roman that ever lived, the reality was only the more hastened by the very
means which they had employed to prevent it. This they themselves realized
as soon as they had awakened from the dream in which they had done the
desperate deed. Cicero exactly defined the situation, and gave a perfect
outline of the whole history of the times, when, shortly after the murder of
Caesar, he bitterly exclaimed, "We have killed the king; but the kingdom is
with us still. We have taken away the tyrant; the tyranny survives." That
tyranny survived in the breast of every man in Rome.
At the death of Caesar, to Mark Antony, the sole surviving consul, the reins
of government fell. Lepidus, Caesar's general of cavalry, was outside the
walls with a legion of troops about to depart for Spain. He took possession
of the Camp of Mars, and sent to Antony assurances of support. As night
came on, with a body of troops he entered the city and camped in the
Forum. He and Antony at once came to a mutual understanding. Antony as
consul agreed to secure for Lepidus the office of Pontifex Maximus made
vacant by the murder of Caesar, and the alliance was completed by Antony's
daughter being given in marriage to the son of Lepidus. Antony secured
Caesar's will and all his private papers, besides a great sum of money.
As the will showed that Caesar had bequeathed his private gardens to the
people of Rome forever as a pleasure ground, and to each citizen a sum of
money amounting to nearly fourteen dollars, this bound the populace more
firmly than ever to the memory of Caesar. And as Antony stood forth as the
one to avenge Caesar's death, this brought the populace unanimously to his
support. By the help of all this power and influence, Antony determined to
put himself in the place which Caesar had occupied. Among Caesar's papers
he found recorded many of Caesar's plans and intentions in matters of the
government. These he made to serve his purpose as occasion demanded; for
the Senate dared not dissent from any of Caesar's recorded wishes and
designs. When the legitimate papers were exhausted, he bribed one of
Caesar's clerks to forge and declare to be Caesar's purpose, such State
51
wheedled the Senate into transferring to him. Next he intrigued to have the
province of Gaul within the Alps bestowed on him instead of the province
of Macedonia which had already been given him. This the Senate hesitated
to do, and interposed so many objections that Antony found his purpose
about to be frustrated, and he made overtures to Octavius. Octavius received
him favorably; a pretended reconciliation was accomplished between them;
and by the support of Octavius, Antony secured the change of provinces
which he desired. Antony called four of his legions from Macedonia to
Brundusium, and went to that place to assume command. As soon as
Antony went to Brundusium, Octavius went to Campania, to the colonies of
veterans who had been settled there upon the public lands, and by the offer
of about a hundred dollars to each one who would join him, he soon secured
a force of ten thousand men. These he took to the north of Italy, to the
border of Antony's province, and put them in camp there.
When Antony met his legions at Brundusium, he found them sullen, and
instead of their greeting him with acclamations they demanded
explanations. They declared that they wanted vengeance for Caesar's death,
and that instead of punishing the assassins, Antony had dallied with them.
They called upon him to mount the tribunal, and explain his conduct. He
replied that it was not the place of a Roman commander to explain his
conduct, but to enforce obedience. Yet he betrayed his fear of them by
mingling promises with his threats and pledges with his commands. He
offered them about twenty dollars apiece, and drew a contrast between the
hard service in Parthia, and the easy time that was before them in the
province to which he was to take them. This did not satisfy them. He put
some to death, yet the others would not be quiet. The agents of Octavius
were among them contrasting the hundred dollars to each man, that he was
paying, with the paltry twenty dollars that Antony was offering. Antony was
obliged to increase his bid, but it was not yet near the price Octavius was
offering. He broke up the command into small bodies, and ordered them to
march separately thus along the coast of the Adriatic, and unite again at
Rimini, and he himself returned to Rome. He had barely time to reach his
home, when a messenger arrived with the word that one of his legions had
gone over bodily to Octavius. This message had scarcely been delivered
when another came saying that another legion had done likewise. He went
with all haste to where they were, hoping to win them back, but they shut
against him the gates of the city where they were, and shot at him from the
walls. By raising his bid to the same amount that Octavius was paying, he
succeeded in holding the other two legions in allegiance to himself.
53
War could be the only result of such counterplotting as this, and other
circumstances hastened it. Antony now had four legions; Lepidus had six;
three were in Gaul under the command of Plancus; and Octavius had five.
When Antony had obtained the exchange of provinces, the one which he
secured - Gaul within the Alps - was already under the command of a pro-
consul, Decimus Brutus. But with the command of the province Antony had
received authority to drive out of it any pretender to the government. He
commanded Decimus to leave the province. Decimus refused, and Antony
declared war. Decimus shut himself up in a stronghold, and Antony laid
siege to him there. Octavius saw now an opportunity to humble Antony, and
strengthen himself - he offered his service to the Senate.
The two consuls whose term of office had expired came up, January 43, B.
C., and Octavius joined his forces to theirs. Two battles were fought in
April, in both of which Antony was worsted, though both the pro-consuls
were slain. Antony left the field of battle, and marched across the Alps and
joined Lepidus. Decimus desired to follow with all the forces present; but as
he was one of the murderers of Caesar, Octavius would not obey him. Also
the troops of Octavius declared that Caesar's heir was their leader, and
Decimus their enemy. Decimus then marched also across the Alps, and
joined his forces to those of Plancus. This left Italy wholly to Octavius, and
he made the most of the opportunity. He demanded that the Senate grant
him a triumph. His demand was only treated with contempt. The Senate in
turn sent to him a peremptory command to lead his army against "the
parricides and brigands" that had joined their forces in Gaul. He replied by
sending to Rome four hundred of his soldiers to demand for him the
consulship for the year 42.
The soldiers presented their demand in the Senate house. It was refused.
One of them then laid his hand upon his sword and declared with an oath,
"If you do not grant it, this shall obtain it for him." Cicero replied, "If this is
the way that you sue for the consulship, doubtless your chief will acquire
it." The soldiers returned to Octavius, and reported upon their embassy.
Octavius with his legions immediately crossed the Rubicon and started for
Rome, giving up to the license of his soldiers all the country as he passed.
As soon as the Senate learned that Octavius was coming with his army, they
sent an embassy to meet him, and to tell him that if he would only turn back
they would grant everything he asked, and add yet above all about five
hundred dollars for each of his soldiers. But he, knowing that he had the
Senate in his power, determined to make his own terms after he should get
54
possession of the city. The Senate turned brave again, put on a blustering
air, and forbade the legions to come nearer than ninety miles to the city. As
two legions had just come from Africa, the Senate supposed they had a
military power of their own. They threw up fortifications and gave the
praetors military command of the city. By this time Octavius and his army
had reached Rome. The senators again suddenly lost all their bravery. Such
of them as had least hope of favor fled from the city or hid themselves. Of
the others, each one for himself decided to go over to Octavius; and when
each one with great secrecy had made his way to the camp of the legions, he
soon found that all the others had done the same thing. The legions and the
praetors who had been set to defend the city went over bodily to Octavius.
The gates were thrown open; Octavius with his legions entered the city; the
Senate nominated him for consul; the assembly was convened, and he was
elected - September 22, 43 B. C. - with his own cousin, Pedius, chosen as
his colleague, and with the right to name the prefect of the city. Octavius
became twenty years old the next day.
An inquiry was at once instituted upon the murder of Caesar, and all the
conspirators were declared outlaws; but as Brutus and Caassius, the two
chief assassins, were in command of the twenty legions in Macedonia and
Asia Minor, Octavius needed more power. This he obtained by forming an
alliance with Antony and Lepidus. These two commanders crossed the
Alps, and the three met on a small island in the River Reno, near Bologna.
There, as a result of their deliberation for three days, was formed, and the
tripartition of the Roman world was made.
When the powers of the triumvirate had thus been made firm, the triumvirs
sat down "with a list of the noblest citizens before them, and each in turn
pricked [with a pin] the name of him whom he destined to perish. Each
claimed to be ridded of his personal enemies, and to save his own friends.
But when they found their wishes to clash, they resorted without
compunction to mutual concessions." Above all other men Cicero was the
one upon whom Antony desired to execute vengeance; and in return for this
boon, he surrendered to Octavius his own uncle on his mother's side.
Lepidus gave up his own brothers. "As they proceeded, their views
expanded. They signed death warrants to gratify their friends. As the list
slowly lengthened, new motives were discovered for appending to it
additional names. The mere possession of riches was fatal to many; for the
masters of so many legions were always poor: the occupation of pleasant
houses and estates sealed the fate of others; for the triumvirs were
voluptuous as well as cruel. Lastly, the mutual jealousy of the proscribers
augmented the number of their victims, each seeking the destruction of
those who conspicuously favored his colleagues, and each exacting a
similar compensation in return. The whole number extended, we are told, to
three hundred senators and two thousand knights; among them were
brothers, uncles, and favorite officers of the triumvirs themselves." -
Merivale.*20
When this list had been arranged, the triumvirs with their legions started to
Rome. Before they reached the city, they sent to the consuls the names of
seventeen of the most prominent citizens, with an order to put them all to
death at once. Cicero was one of the seventeen. The executioners "attacked
the houses of the appointed victims in the middle of the night: some they
seized and slew unresisting; others struggled to the last, and shed blood in
their own defense; others escaping from their hands raised the alarm
throughout the city, and the general terror of all classes, not knowing what
to expect, or who might feel himself safe, caused a violent commotion." -
Merivale.*21 Cicero had left the city, but he was overtaken by the
messengers of blood, his head and his hands were cut off and carried to
Antony, who exulted over the ghastly trophies; and Fulvia in a rage of
gloating anger took the bloody head and held it upon her knees, and looking
into the face poured forth a torrent of bitter invective against him whose
face it was, and then in a perfect abandon of fury seized from her hair her
golden bodkin, and pierced and through the tongue that had so often, so
exultantly, and so vilely abused both her husbands.
56
The triumvirs reached Rome one after another. "Octavius entered first; on
the following day Antony appeared; Lepidus came third. Each man was
surrounded by a legion and his praetorian cohort. The inhabitants beheld
with terror these silent soldiers taking possession of every point
commanding the city. Rome seemed like a place conquered and given over
to the sword." - Duruy.*22 A tribune called an assembly of the people; a
few came, and the three commanders "were now formally invested with the
title of triumvirs, and all the powers they claimed were conferred upon
them" November 27, B. C. 43. The following night there was posted
throughout the city this edict: -
"M. Lepidus, Marcus Antonius, and Octavius Caesar, chosen triumvirs for
the reconstitution of the republic, thus declare: Had not the perfidy of the
wicked answered benefits by hatred; had not those whom Caesar in his
clemency spread after their defeat, enriched and loaded with honors,
become his murderers, we too should disregard those who have declared us
public enemies. But perceiving that their malignity can be conquered by no
benefits, we have chosen to forestall our enemies rather than be taken
unawares by them. Some have already been punished; with the help of the
gods we shall bring the rest to justice. Being ready to undertake an
expedition against the parricides beyond the seas, it has seemed to us and
will appear to you necessary that we should not leave other enemies behind
us. Yet we will be more merciful than a former imperator, who also restored
the ruined republic, and whom you hailed with the name of Felix. Not all
the wealthy, not all who have held office, will perish, but only the most
dangerous evil-doers. These offenders we might have seized unawares; but
for your sakes we have preferred to draw up a list of proscribed persons
rather than to order an executing by the troops, in which harm might have
come to the innocent. This then is our order: Let no one hide any of those
whose names follow; whosoever shall aid in the escape of a proscribed man
shall be himself proscribed. Let the heads be brought to us. As a reward, a
man of free condition shall receive twenty-five thousand Attic drachmae, a
slave ten thousand, together with freedom and the name of citizen. The
names of persons receiving these rewards shall be kept secret." - Duruy.*23
Attached to this document were one hundred and thirty names of senators
and knights who were devoted to death. Another list of one hundred and
fifty was almost immediately added, and yet others followed in quick
succession. Guards had been placed at all the gates, all places of refuge had
been occupied, and all means of escape had been cut off. The slaughter
began. "The executioners, armed with the prostituted forms of authority,
57
was fast estranging him from Octavius and the Roman people. The matter
was patched up for a little while, by the marriage of Antony and Octavia,
the sister of Octavius, B. C. 40; but within two years Antony was again
swallowed up in the charms of Cleopatra, from whom he never again
separated. Two children whom he had by her he named respectively the Sun
and the Moon, and when Cleopatra assumed the dress and professed the
aATJ TTRibutes of Isis, Antony played the part of Osiris. He publicly
rejected Octavia in 35, divorced her in 32, and war was declared the same
year. The war began and ended with the naval battle of Actium, September
2, B. C. 31.
In the midst of the battle Cleopatra hoisted sail and fled. Antony left
everything and followed her. They sailed home to Alexandria, and there
committed suicide. In the meantime Lepidus had been set aside, and now,
just thirteen and one-half years from the murder of Caesar, the State, having
again gone through the same course precisely, came again to the exact point
where it had been then, only in worse hands, and Octavius was the head of
one hundred and twenty millions of people, and SOLE MASTER OF THE
ROMAN WORLD.
61
CHAPTER III.
THE ROMAN MONARCHY.
The Senate had exhausted the vocabulary of flattering titles in those which
it had given to Caesar. Although all these were now given to Octavius, there
was none amongst them which could properly define the new dignity which
he possessed. Much anxious thought was given to this great question. "At
last he fixed upon the epithet 'Augustus,' a name which no man had borne
before, and which, on the contrary, had been applied to things the most
noble, the most venerable, and the most sacred. The rites of the gods were
called august; their temples were august. The word itself was derived from
the holy auguries; it was connected in meaning with the abstract term
"authority," and with all that increases and flourishes upon earth. The use of
this glorious title could not fail to smooth the way to the general acceptance
of the divine character of the mortal who was deemed worthy to bear it. The
Senate had just decreed the divinity of the defunct Caesar; the courtiers
were beginning now to insinuate that his successor, while yet alive, enjoyed
an effluence from deity; the poets were even suggesting that altars should
be raised to him; and in the provinces, among the subjects of the State at
least, temples to his divinity were actually rising, and the cult of Augustus
was beginning to assume a name, a ritual, and a priesthood. - "Encyclopedia
Britannica."*31
He tyrannized over the nobles by his power, and held the affections of the
populace by his munificence. "In the number, variety, and magnificence of
his public spectacles, he surpassed all former example. Four and twenty
times, he says, he treated the people with games upon his own account, and
three and twenty times for such magistrates as were either absent or not able
to afford the expense. . . . He entertained the people with wrestlers in the
Campus Martius, where wooden seats were erected for the purpose; and
also with a naval fight, for which he excavated the ground near the Tiber."
In order that the people might all go to these special shows, he stationed
guards through the streets to keep the houses from being robbed while the
dwellers were absent. "He displayed his munificence to all ranks of the
people on various occasions. Moreover, upon his bringing the treasure
belonging to the kings of Egypt into the city, in his Alexandrian triumph, he
made money so plentiful that interest fell, and the price of land rose
considerably. And afterwards, as often as large sums of money came into
his possession by means of confiscations, he would lend it free of interest,
for a fixed term, to such as could give security for the double of what was
borrowed. The estate necessary to qualify a senator, instead of eight
hundred thousand sesterces, the former standard, he ordered, for the future,
to be twelve hundred thousand; and to those who had not so much, he made
63
good the deficiency. He often made donations to the people, but generally
of different sums; sometimes four hundred, sometimes three hundred, or
two hundred and fifty sesterces: upon which occasions, he extended his
bounty even to young boys, who before were not used to receive anything,
until they arrived at eleven years of age. In a scarcity of corn, he would
frequently let them have it at a very low price, or none at all, and doubled
the number of the money tickets." - Suetonius.*32
It occurred to him that he ought to abolish the distribution of grain at public
expense, as he declared that it was "working unmitigated evil, retarding the
advance of agriculture, and cutting the sinews of industry." But he was
afraid to do it, lest some one would take advantage of the opportunity and
ascend to power by restoring it. His own words are these: "I was much
inclined to abolish forever the practice of allowing the people corn at the
public expense, because they trust so much to it, that they are too lazy to till
their lands; but I did not persevere in my design, as I felt sure that the
practice would sometime or other be revived by some one ambitious of
popular favor." - Suetonius.*33
In public and political life a confirmed and constant hypocrite, in private
and domestic life he was no less. He was so absolutely calculating that he
actually wrote out beforehand what he wished to say to his friends, and
even to his wife. He married Clodia merely for political advantage, although
at that time she was scarcely of marriageable age. He soon put her away,
and married Scribonia. Her, too, he soon put away, "for resenting too freely
the excessive influence which one of his mistresses had gained over him"
(Suetonius*34) and immediately took Livia Drusilla from her wedded
husband. Her he kept all the rest of his days; for, instead of resenting any of
his lascivious excesses, she connived at them.
By Scribonia he had a daughter - Julia. Her he gave first to his sister's son,
who soon died; and then he gave her to her brother-in-law, Marcus Agrippa,
who was already married to her cousin by whom he had children.
Nevertheless
Agrippa was obliged to put away his wife and children, and take Julia.
Agrippa likewise soon died; then Tiberius was obliged to put away his wife,
by whom he already had a son and who was soon to become a mother
again, in order that he might be the step-son of the emperor by becoming
Julia's third husband. By this time, however, Julia had copied so much of
her father's wickedness that Tiberius could not live with her; and her
daughter had copied so much of hers, that "the two Julias, his daughter and
64
TIBERIUS.
Forty-three years of the sole authority of Augustus had established the
principle of absolutism in government, but "the critical moment for a
government is that of its founder's death." It was now to be discovered
whether that principle was firmly fixed; but Tiberius was fifty-six years old,
and had been a careful student of Augustus, and though at his accession the
new principle of government was put to its severest test, Tiberius made
Augustus his model in all things; "continued his hypocritical moderation,
and made it, so to speak, the rule of the imperial government." - Duruy.*36
Though he immediately assumed the imperial authority, like his model, "He
affected by a most impudent piece of acting to refuse it for a long time; one
while sharply reprehending his friends who entreated him to accept it, as
little knowing what a monster the government was; another while keeping
in suspense the Senate when they implored him and threw themselves at his
feet, by ambiguous answers and a crafty kind of dissimulation; in so much
that some were out of patience and one cried out during the confusion,
`Either let him accept it or decline it at once;' and a second told him to his
face: `Others are slow to perform what they promise, but you are slow to
promise what you actually perform.' At last as if forced to it, and
complaining of the miserable and burdensome service imposed upon him,
he accepted the government." - Suetonius.*37
The purpose of all this was, as with Augustus, to cause the Senate by fairly
forcing imperial honors upon him, firmly to ally itself to the imperial
authority by making itself the guardian of that power; so that when any
danger should threaten the emperor, the Senate would thus stand pledged to
65
defend him. And dangers were at this time so thick about Tiberius that he
declared he had "a wolf by the ears."
The principle thing that had marked his accession was the murder of
Agrippa Posthumus, the son of Agrippa the minister of Augustus; and now
a slave of Agrippa's had got together a considerable force to avenge his
master's death. "Lucius Scribonius Libo, a senator of the first distinction,
was secretly fomenting a rebellion, and the troops both in Illyricum and
Germany were mutinous. Both armies insisted upon high demands,
particularly that their pay should be made equal to that of the praetorian
guards. The army in Germany absolutely refused to acknowledge a prince
who was not their own choice, and urged with all possible importunity
Germanicus, who commanded them, to take the government on himself,
though he obstinately refused it." - Suetonius.*38
All these dangers were soon passed, and Tiberius pretending to be the
servant of the Senate, "assumed the sovereignty by slow degrees," and the
Senate allowed nothing to check its extravagance in bestowing titles,
honors, and powers, for "such was the pestilential character of those times,
so contaminated with adulation, that not only the first nobles, whose
obnoxious splendor found protection only in obsequiousness, but all who
had been consuls, a great part of such as had been praetors, and even many
of the inferior senators, strove for priority in the fulsomeness and
extravagance of their votes. There is a tradition that Tiberius, as often as he
went out of the Senate, was wont to cry out in Greek, 'How fitted for slavery
are these men!' Yes, even Tiberius, the enemy of public liberty, nauseated
the crouching tameness of his slaves." - Tacitus.*39
This course of conduct he continued through nine years, and his reign was
perhaps as mild during this time as that of any other Roman would have
been; but when at last he felt himself secure in the position where he was
placed above all law, there was no enormity that he did not commit.
One man being now the State, and that one man being "divine," high
treason - violated majesty - became the most common crime, and the
"universal resource in accusations." In former times," If any one impaired
the majesty of the Roman people by betraying an army, by exciting sedition
among the Commons, in short, by any maladministration of the public
affairs, the actions were matter of trial, but words were free." - Tacitus.*40
But now the law embraced "not words only, but a gesture, an involuntary
forgetfulness, an indiscreet curiosity." - Duruy.*41 More than this, as the
emperor was the embodiment of the divinity of the Roman State, this
66
"Considerable rewards were voted for the prosecutors, and sometimes for
the witnesses also. The information of any person, without exception, was
taken, and all offenses were capital, even speaking a few words, though
without any ill intention. A poet was charged with abusing Agamemnon;
and a historian, for calling Brutus and Cassius `the last of the Romans.' The
two authors were immediately called to account, and their writings
suppressed, though they had been well received some years before, and read
in the hearing of Augustus. Some who were thrown into prison, were not
only denied the solace of study, but debarred from all company and
conversation. Many persons, when summoned to trial, stabbed themselves
at home, to avoid the distress and ignominy of a public condemnation,
which they were certain would ensue. Others took poison in the Senate
house. The wounds were bound up, and all who had not expired, were
carried, half dead, and panting for life, to prison. Those who were put to
death, were thrown down the Gemonian stairs, and then dragged into the
Tiber. In one day, twenty were treated in this manner, and amongst them
women and boys. Because, according to an ancient custom, it was not
lawful to strangle virgins, the young girls were first deflowered by the
executioner, and afterwards strangled.
"Those who were desirous to die, were forced to live. For he thought death
so slight a punishment, that upon hearing that Carnulius, one of the accused,
who was under prosecution, had killed himself, he exclaimed, `Carnulius
has escaped me.' In calling over his prisoners, when one of them requested
the favor of a speedy death, he replied, `You are not yet restored to favor.' A
man of consular rank writes in his annals that at table, where he himself was
present with a large company, he was suddenly asked aloud by a dwarf who
stood by amongst the buffoons, why Paconius, who was under a prosecution
for treason, lived so long. Tiberius immediately reprimanded him for his
pertness, but wrote to the Senate a few days after, to proceed without delay
to the punishment of Paconius." – Suetonius*45
Tiberius died March 16, A. D. 37, in the seventy-eighth year of his age and
the twenty-third year of his reign, and was succeeded by -
CALIGULA.
Caligula was the son of Germanicus, who was the adopted son of Tiberius.
He was born and brought up in the camp. When he grew large enough to
run about, the soldiers made him a pair of boots - Caliga after the pattern of
their own, and from that he got his name of "Caligula," that is, Little Boots.
69
His real name was Caius. He was now twenty-five years old, and had been
with Tiberius for the last five years. "Closely aping Tiberius, he put on the
same dress as he did from day to day, and in his language differed little
from him. Whence the shrewd observation of Passienus the orator,
afterward so famous, `that never was a better slave nor a worse master.'" -
Tacitus.*46 He imitated Tiberius in his savage disposition, and the exercise
of his vicious propensities, as closely as he did in his dress and language. If
he were not worse than Tiberius, it was only because it was impossible to be
worse.
Like his pattern, he began his reign with such an appearance of gentleness
and genuine ability, that there was universal rejoicing among the people out
of grateful remembrance of Germanicus, and among the soldiers and
provincials who had known him in his childhood. As he followed the corpse
of Tiberius to its burning. "He had to walk amidst altars, victims, and
lighted torches, with prodigious crowds of people everywhere attending
him, in transports of joy, and calling him, besides other auspicious names,
by those of `their star,' `their chick,' 'their pretty puppet,' and 'bantling.' . . .
Caligula himself inflamed this devotion, by practising all the arts of
popularity." - Suetonius.*47 This appearance of propriety he kept up for
eight months, and then, having become giddy with the height at which he
stood, and drunken with the possession of absolute power, he ran wildly and
greedily into all manner of excesses.
He gave himself the titles of "Dutiful," "The Pious," "The Child of the
Camp, the Father of the Armies," "The Greatest and Best Caesar." -
Suetonius.*48 He caused himself to be worshiped, not only in his images,
but in his own person. Among the gods, Castor and Pollux were twin
brothers representing the sun, and were the sons of Jupiter. Caligula would
place himself between the statues of the twin brothers there to be worshiped
by all votaries. And they worshiped him, too; some saluting him as Jupiter
Latialis that is, the Roman Jupiter, the guardian of the Roman people. He
caused all the images of the gods that were famous either for beauty or
popularity, to be brought from Greece, and their heads taken off and his put
on instead, and then sent them back to be worshiped. He set up a temple,
and established a priesthood in honor of his own divinity; and in the temple
he set up a statue of gold the exact image of himself, which he caused to be
dressed every day exactly as he was. The sacrifices which were to be
offered in the temple, were flamingos, peacocks, bustards, guineas, turkeys,
and pheasants, each kind offered on successive days. "The most opulent
persons in the city offered themselves as candidates for the honor of being
70
city at night time, and cause the whole city to be illuminated; he exhibited
these games and public plays not only in Rome, but in Sicily, Syracuse, and
Gaul.
As for himself, in his feasts he exerted himself to set the grandest suppers
and the strangest dishes, at which he would drink pearls of immense value,
dissolved in vinegar, and serve up loaves of bread and other victuals
modeled in gold. He built two ships each of ten banks of oars, the poops of
which were made to blaze with jewels, with sails of various parti-colors,
with baths, galleries, and saloons; in which he would sail along the coast
feasting and reveling, with the accompaniments of dancing and concerts of
music. At one of these revels he made a present of nearly one hundred
thousand dollars to a favorite charioteer. His favorite horse he called
Incitatus, - go ahead, - and on the day before the celebration of the games of
the circus, he would set a guard of soldiers to keep perfect quiet in the
neighborhood, that the repose of Go-ahead might not be disturbed. This
horse he arrayed in purple and jewels, and built for him a marble stable with
an ivory manger. He would occasionally have the horse eat at the imperial
table, and at such times would feed him on gilded grain in a golden basin of
the finest workmanship. He proposed at last to make the horse consul of the
empire.
Having spent all the money, though an enormous sum, that had been laid up
by Tiberius, it became necessary to raise funds sufficient for his
extravagance, and to raise it he employed "every mode of false accusation,
confiscation, and taxation that could be invented." He commanded that the
people should make their wills in his favor. He even caused this rule to date
back as far as the beginning of the reign of Tiberius, and from that time
forward any centurion of the first rank who had not made Tiberius or
Caligula his heir, his will was annulled, and all his property confiscated.
The wills of all others were set aside if any person would say that the maker
had intended to make the emperor his heir. This caused those who were yet
living to make him joint heir with their friends or with their children. If he
found that such wills had been made and the maker did not die soon, he
declared that they were only making game of him, and sent them poisoned
cakes.
The remains of the paraphernalia of his spectacles, the furniture of the
palace occupied by Augustus and Tiberius, and all the clothes, slaves, and
even freedmen belonging to his sisters whom he banished, were put up at
auction, and the prices were run up so high as to ruin the purchasers. At one
72
CLAUDIUS.
The soldiers not only killed an emperor, but they made another one. There
was at that time, living in the palace, an uncle to Caligula, named Claudius,
now fifty years old. Though he seems to have had as much sense as any of
them, he was slighted and counted as a fool by those around him. Even his
mother, when she would remark upon any one's dullness, would use the
comparison, "He is a greater fool than my son Claudius." About the palace
he was made the butt of the jests and practical jokes of the courtiers and
even of the buffoons. At supper he would cram himself full of victuals, and
drink till he was drunk; and then go to sleep at the table. At this, the
company would pelt him with olive stones or scraps of victuals; and the
buffoons would prod him with a cane, or snip him with to wake him. And
when he had gone to sleep, while he lay snoring, they would put slippers on
his hands, that when he should wake and attempt to rub his eyes open, he
would rub his face with the slippers.
The night that Caligula was killed, Claudius, fearing for his own life, crept
into a balcony, and hid himself behind the curtains of the door. The soldiers,
rushing through the palace, happened to see his feet sticking out, and one of
them grabbed him by the heels and demanding to know who owned them,
dragged forth Caludius; and when he discovered who he was, exclaimed,
"Why, this is Germanicus; let's make him emperor!" The other soldiers in
the band immediately adopted the idea, saluted him as emperor, set him on
a litter, and carried him on their shoulders to the camp of the praetorian
guards. The next day while the Senate deliberated, the people cried out that
they would have one master, and that he should be Claudius. The soldiers
74
assembled under arms, and took the oath of allegiance to him; upon which
he promised them about seven hundred dollars apiece.
By the mildness and correctness of his administration, he soon secured the
favor and affection of the whole people. Having once gone a short distance
out of the city, a report was spread that he had been waylaid and killed.
"The people never ceased cursing the soldiers for traitors, and the Senate as
parricides, until or two persons, and presently after several others, were
brought by the magistrates upon the rostra, who assured them that he was
alive, and not far from the city, on his way home." - Suetonius.*51
As he sat to judge causes, the lawyers would openly reprove him and make
fun of him. One of these one day, making excuses why a witness did not
appear, stated that it was impossible for him to appear, but did not tell why.
Claudius insisted upon knowing, and after several questions had been
evaded, the statement was brought forth that the man was dead, upon which
Claudius replied, "I think that is a sufficient excuse." When he would start
away from the tribunal, they would call him back. If he insisted upon going,
they would seize hold of his dress or take him by the heels, and make him
stay until they were ready for him to go. A Greek once having a case before
him, got into a dispute with him, and called out loud, "You are an old fool;"
and a Roman knight once being prosecuted upon a false charge, being
provoked at the character of the witnesses brought against him, upbraided
Claudius with folly and cruelty, and threw some books and a writing pencil
in his face. He pleased the populace with distributions of grain and money,
and displays of magnificent games and spectacles.
This is the Claudius mentioned in Acts xviii, 2, who commanded all Jews to
depart from Rome. This he did, says Suetonius, because they "were
continually making disturbances at the instigation of one Chrestus." These
disturbances arose from contentions of the Jews against the Christians about
Christ. As the Christians were not yet distinguished from the Jews, the
decree of banishment likewise made no distinction, and when he
commanded all Jews to depart from Rome, Christians were among them.
One of his principal favorites was that Felix, governor of Judea, mentioned
in Acts xxiii, 24, before whom Paul pleaded, and who trembled as the
apostle "reasoned of righteousness, temperance, and judgment to come."
Claudius was not as bad as either Tiberius or Caligula, but what he himself
lacked in this respect was amply made up by his wives. "In his marriage, as
in all else, Claudius had been pre-eminent in misfortune. He lived in an age
of which the most frightful sign of depravity was that its women were, if
75
possible, a shade worse than its men, and it was the misery of Claudius, as it
finally proved his ruin, to have been united by marriage to the very worst
among them all. Princesses like the Bernice, and the Drusilla, and the
Salome, and the Herodias of the sacred historians, were in this age a
familiar spectacle; but none of them were so wicked as two at least of
Claudius's wives. He was betrothed or married no less than five times. The
lady first destined for his bride had been repudiated because her parents had
offended Augustus; the next died on the very day intended for her nuptials.
By his first actual wife, Urgulania whom he had married in early youth, he
had two children, Drusus and Claudia; Drusus was accidentally choked in
boyhood while trying to swallow a pear which had been thrown up into the
air. Very shortly after the birth of Claudia, discovering the unfaithfulness of
Urgulania, Claudius divorced her, and ordered the child to be stripped
naked and exposed to die. His second wife, AElia Petina, seems to have
been an unsuitable person, and her also he divorced. His third and fourth
wives lived to earn a colossal infamy - Valeria Messalina for her shameless
character, Agrippina the younger for her unscrupulous ambition.
"Messalina, when she married, could scarcely have been fifteen years old,
yet she at once assumed a dominant position, and secured it by means of the
most unblushing wickedness. But she did not reign so absolutely
undisturbed as to be without her own jealousies and apprehensions; and
these were mainly kindled by Julia and Agrippina, the two nieces of the
emperor. They were, no less than herself, beautiful, brilliant, and evil-
hearted women, quite ready to make their own coteries, and to dispute, as
far as they dared, the supremacy of a bold but reckless rival. They, too, used
their arts, their wealth, their rank, their political influence, their personal
fascinations, to secure for themselves a band of adherents, ready, when the
proper moment arrived, for any conspiracy. . . .
"The life of this beautiful princess, short as it was, - for she died at a very
early age, - enough to make her name a proverb of everlasting infamy. For a
time she appeared irresistible. Her personal fascination had won for her an
unlimited sway over the facile mind of Claudius, and she had either won
over by her intrigues, or terrified by her pitiless severity, the noblest of the
Romans and the most powerful of the freedmen." - Farrar.*52
She became "so vehemently enamored of Caius Silius, the handsomest of
the Roman youth, that she obliged him to divorce his wife, Julia Silana, a
lady of high quality," that she might have him to herself. "Nor was Silius
blind to the danger and malignity of his crime; but, as it was certain
76
destruction to decline her suit, and there were some hopes of beguiling
Claudius, while great rewards were held out to him, he was content to take
the chance of what might happen thereafter, and enjoy the present
advantages. The empress proceeded not stealthily, but went to his house
frequently, with a numerous train, accompanied him incessantly abroad,
loaded him with presents and honors; and at last, as if the fortune of the
empire had been transferred with the emperor's wife, at the house of her
adulterer were now seen the slaves, freedmen, and equipage of the prince." -
Tacitus.*53
Claudius made a journey to Ostia, and while he was gone, Messalina
publicly celebrated her marriage with Silius, with royal ceremony. "I am
aware that it will appear fabulous that any human beings should have
exhibited such recklessness of consequences; and that, in a city where
everything was known and talked of, any one, much more a consul elect,
should have met the emperor's wife, on a stated day, in the presence of
persons called in, to seal the deeds, as for the purpose of procreation, and
that she should have heard the words of the augurs, entered the house of the
husband, sacrificed to the gods, sat down among the guests at the nuptial
banquet, exchanged kisses and embraces, and in fine passed the night in
unrestrained conjugal intercourse. But I would not dress up my narrative
with fictions to give it an air of marvel, rather than relate what has been
stated to me or written by my seniors." - Tacitus.*54
The report of all this was carried to Claudius, which so terrified him that but
for his favorites, he would undoubtedly have surrendered the empire to
Silius. Several of these, however, rallied him with the assurance that they
would stand by him and help him through, and they persuaded him to start
for Rome; but fearing that even then, if Messalina should meet him, she
would persuade him to pardon her, they took him in the same carriage with
themselves, and all the way as they went, one of them kept continually
exclaiming, "O the villainy, O the treason!" As for Messalina, "she never
wallowed in greater voluptuousness; it was then the middle of autumn, and
in her house she exhibited a representation of the vintage: the winepresses
were plied, the wine vats flowed, and round them danced women begirt
with skins like Bacchanalians at their sacrifices, or under the maddening
inspiration of their deity: she herself, with her hair loose and flowing,
waved a thyrsus; by her side Silius, crowned with ivy, and wearing buskins,
tossed his head about; while around them danced the wanton choir in
obstreperous revelry. It is reported that Vectius Valens, having in a frolic
77
own sister-in-law, Domitia Lepida. Among the latter was the wealthy Lollia
Paulina, against whom she trumped up an accusation of sorcery and treason,
upon which her wealth was confiscated, but her life spared by the emperor,
who banished her from Italy. This half vengeance was not enough for the
mother of Nero. Like the daughter of Herodias in sacred history, she
dispatched a tribune with orders to bring her the head of her enemy; and
when it was brought to her, and she found a difficulty in recognizing those
withered and ghastly features of a once celebrated beauty, she is said with
her own hand to have lifted one of the lips, and to have satisfied herself that
this was indeed the head of Lollia. . . . Well may Adolf Stahr observe that
Shakespeare's Lady Macbeth and husband-murdering Gertrude are mere
children by the side of this awful giant-shape of steely feminine cruelty." -
Farrar. *57
By the horrible crimes and fearful sinning of Agrippina, Nero became
emperor of Rome, A. D. 57, at the age of seventeen. As in the account
already given, there is enough to show what the Roman monarchy really
was; and as that is the purpose of this chapter, it is not necessary any further
to portray the frightful enormities of individual emperors. It is sufficient to
say of Nero, that, in degrading vices, shameful licentiousness, and horrid
cruelty, he transcended all who had been before him.
It is evident that for the production of such men as Antony and Augustus,
Tiberius and Caligula, Claudius and Nero, with such women as their
mothers and wives - to say nothing of Galba, Otho, Vitellius, and Domitian,
who quickly followed - in direct succession and in so short a time, there
must of necessity have been a condition of society in general which
corresponded to the nature of the product. Such was in fact the case.
"An evil day is approaching when it becomes recognized in a community
that the only standard of social distinction is wealth. That day was soon
followed in Rome by its unavoidable consequence, a government founded
upon two domestic elements, corruption and terrorism. No language can
describe the state of that capital after the civil wars. The accumulation of
power and wealth gave rise to a universal depravity. Law ceased to be of
any value. A suitor must deposit a bribe before a trial could be had. The
social fabric was a festering mass of rottenness. The people had become a
populace; the aristocracy was demoniac; the city was a hell. No crime that
the annals of human wickedness can show was left unperpetrated; -
remorseless murders; the betrayal of parents, husbands, wives, friends;
79
"That in these statements I do not exaggerate, hear what Tacitus says: `The
holy ceremonies of religion were violated; adultery reigning without
control; the adjacent islands filled with exiles; rocks and desert places
stained with clandestine murders, and Rome itself a theater of horrors,
where nobility of descent and splendor of fortune marked men out for
destruction; where the vigor of mind that aimed at civil dignities, and the
modesty that declined them, were offenses without distinction; where virtue
was a crime that led to certain ruin; where the guilt of informers and the
wages of their iniquity were alike detestable; where the sacerdotal order, the
consular dignity, the government of provinces, and even the cabinet of the
prince, were seized by that execrable race as their lawful prey; where
nothing was sacred, nothing safe from the hand of rapacity; where slaves
were suborned, or by their own malevolence excited against their masters;
where freemen betrayed their patrons, and he who had lived without an
enemy died by the treachery of a friend.'" - Draper. *58
To complete this dreadful picture requires but the touch of Inspiration.
"Professing themselves to be wise, they became fools; and changed the
glory of the uncorruptible God into an image made like to corruptible man,
and to birds, and four-footed beasts, and creeping things. Wherefore God
also gave them up to uncleanness, through the lusts of their own hearts, to
dishonor their own bodies between themselves: who changed the truth of
God into a lie, and worshiped and served the creature more than the Creator,
who is blessed forever. Amen. For this cause God gave them up unto vile
affections. For even their women did change the natural use into that which
is against nature: and likewise also the men, leaving the natural use of the
woman, burned in their lust one toward another; men with men working that
which is unseemly, and receiving in themselves that recompense of their
error which was meet. And even as they did not like to retain God in their
knowledge, God gave them over to a reprobate mind, to do those things
which are not convenient: being filled with all unrighteousness, fornication,
wickedness, covetousness, maliciousness; full of envy, murder, debate,
deceit, malignity, whisperers, backbiters, haters of God, despiteful, proud,
boasters, inventors of evil things, disobedient to parents, without
understanding, covenant-breakers, without natural affection, implacable,
unmerciful: who, knowing the judgment of God, that they which commit
such things are worthy of death; not only do the same, but have pleasure in
them that do them."*59
When this scripture was read by the Christians in Rome, they knew from
daily observation that it was but a faithful description of Roman society as it
81
was. And Roman society as it was, was but the resultant of pagan
civilization, and the logic, in its last analysis, of the pagan religion. Roman
society as it was, was ULTIMATE PAGANISM.
82
CHAPTER IV.
THE "TEN PERSECUTIONS."
THAT which Rome was in its supreme place, the other cities of the empire,
- Alexandria, Antioch, Ephesus, Corinth, etc. - were in their narrower
spheres; for it was the licentiousness of Greece and the East which had
given to the corruption of Rome a deeper dye. Into that world of iniquity,
Jesus Christ sent, as sheep among wolves, a little band of disciples carrying
hope to the despairing, joy to the sorrowing, comfort to the afflicted, relief
to the distressed, peace to the perplexed, and to all a message of merciful
forgiveness of sins, of the gift of the righteousness of God, and of a purity
and power which would cleanse the soul from all unrighteousness of heart
and life, and plant there instead the perfect purity of the life of the Son of
God and the courage of an everlasting joy. This gospel of peace and of the
power of God unto salvation they were commanded to go into all the world
and preach to every creature.
The disciples went everywhere preaching the word, and before the death of
men who were then in the prime of life this good news of the grace of God
had actually been preached in all the then known world. Rom. i, 8 and x, 18;
Col. i, 6, 23. And by it many were brought to the knowledge of the peace
and power of God, revealed in the gospel of Jesus Christ. "In every
congregation there were prayers to God that he would listen to the sighing
of the prisoner and captive, and have mercy on those who were ready to die.
For the slave and his master there was one law and one hope, one baptism,
one Saviour, one Judge. In times of domestic bereavement the Christian
slave doubtless often consoled his pagan mistress with the suggestion that
our present separations are only for a little while, and revealed to her
willing ear that there is another world - a land in which we rejoin our dead.
How is it possible to arrest the spread of a faith which can make the broken
heart leap why with joy?" - Draper. *60
Yet to arrest the spread of that faith there were many long, earnest, and
persistent efforts by the Roman empire. Before entering, however, upon the
examination of this subject as it is, it is necessary to notice a point that has
been much misunderstood or else much misrepresented; that is the imperial
or "Ten Persecutions."
83
In the Church and State scheme of the fourth century, the theory of the
bishops was that the kingdom of God was come; and to maintain the theory
it became necessary to pervert the meaning of both Scripture history and
Scripture prophecy. Accordingly, as the antitype of the ten plagues of
Egypt, and as the fulfillment of the prophecy of the ten horns which made
war with the Lamb (Rev. xvii, 12-14), there was invented the theory of ten
persecutions of the Christians inflicted by the ten emperors, Nero,
Domitian, Trajan, Marcus Aurelius, Septimius Severus, Maximin, Decius,
Valerian, Aurelian, and Diocletian. Some of these persecuted the Christians,
as Nero, Marcus Aurelius, Decius, and Diocletian; others were as gentle
toward the Christians as toward anybody else; and yet others not named in
the list, persecuted everybody but the Christians. The truth is that so far as
the emperors were concerned, taken one with another, from Nero to
Diocletian, the Christians fared as well as anybody else.
In this discussion and in the study of this subject everywhere, it must ever
be borne in mind that Christianity was wholly outlawed in the Roman
empire, and that every one who professed it became by the very fact of his
profession an outlaw - an enemy to the emperor and people of Rome, and
guilty of high treason.
So long as the Christians were confounded with the Jews, no persecution
befell them from the Roman State, because the Roman empire had
recognized the Jewish religion as lawful; consequently when the Emperor
Claudius commanded all Jews to depart from Rome, Christians were
included among them, as for instance Aquila and Priscilla. Acts xviii, 1, 2.
And when in Corinth, under Gallio the Roman governor of the province of
Achaia, the Jews made insurrection against Paul upon the charge that "this
fellow persuadeth men to worship God contrary to the law," Gallio replied:
"If it were a matter of wrong or wicked lewdness, O ye Jews, reason would
that I should bear with you: but if it be a question of words and names, and
of your law, look ye to it; for I will be no judge of such matters." And with
this, "he drave them from the judgment seat." Acts xviii, 12-16. Also when
the centurion Lysias had rescued Paul from the murderous Jews in
Jerusalem, and would send him for protection to Felix the governor, he
wrote to Felix thus: "When I would have known the cause wherefore they
accused him, I brought him forth into their council: whom I perceived to be
accused of questions of their law, but to have nothing laid to his charge
worthy of death or of bonds." Chap. xxiii, 28, 29.
84
To please the Jews, Felix left Paul in prison. When Festus came in and had
given him a hearing, and would bring his case before King Agrippa, he
spoke thus of the matter: "There is a certain man left in bonds by Felix:
about whom, when I was at Jerusalem, the chief priests and the elders of the
Jews informed me, desiring to have judgment against him. To whom I
answered, It is not the manner of the Romans to deliver any man to die,
before that he which is accused have the accusers face to face, and have
license to answer for himself concerning the crime laid against him.
Therefore, when they were come hither without any delay on the morrow, I
sat on the judgment seat, and commanded the man to be brought forth.
Against whom, when the accusers stood up, they brought none accusation
of such things as I supposed: but had certain questions against him of their
own superstition, and of one Jesus, which was dead, whom Paul affirmed to
be alive. And because I doubted of such manner of questions, I asked him
whether he would go to Jerusalem, and there be judged of these matters. But
when Paul had appealed to be reserved unto the hearing of Augustus, I
commanded him to be kept till I might send him to Caesar." And when
Agrippa had heard him, the unanimous decision was, "This man doeth
nothing worthy of death or of bonds," and Agrippa declared, "This man
might have been set at liberty, if he had not appealed unto Caesar." Acts
xxv, 14-21; xxvi, 31, 32.
And even when he had been heard twice by Caesar - Nero - as it was still
but a controversy between Jews concerning questions of their own, the
Roman power refused to take cognizance of the case, and Paul, a Christian,
was released. But when Christianity had spread among the Gentiles and a
clear distinction was made and recognized between the Christians and the
Jews, by all parties, and Christianity appeared as a new religion not
recognized by the Roman law, then came the persecution of Christians by
the Roman State.
The first persecution of the Christians was that which was inflicted by -
NERO, n A. D. 64, although it was only the horrid cruelty inflicted that
made his punishment of the Christians conspicuous above that of many
others upon whom the rage of that tyrant fell. For, "Except that his murders
were commonly prompted by need or fear, and therefore fell oftenest on the
rich and powerful, it can hardly be said that one class suffered from them
more terribly than another. His family, his friends, the senators, the knights,
philosophers and Christians, Romans and provincials, were all decimated by
them." - Merivale. *61
85
DOMITIAN,
who is next named in the list of persecutors, was so jealous of his imperial
power and withal such a downright coward, that he was afraid of every man
who was, or might become, popular or from any cause conspicuous. His
suspicions were constantly creating imaginary plots against his throne and
his life, and his fears welcomed any tale of treason or of plot. There was an
ample number of flatterers and sycophants who voluntarily assumed the vile
office of informers, to have satisfied perhaps any man in the world but
Domitian. He, however, was not content with this.
He deliberately hired every man in the empire who was willing to sell
himself to such service. And there were multitudes who were willing so to
sell themselves. This system had been employed by others, but "Domitian
seems, of all the emperors, to have carried it furthest, and adopted it most
systematically. It was an aggravation rather than an extenuation of his crime
87
that he seduced into his service men of high rank and character, and turned
the Senate into a mob of rivals for the disgrace of thus basely serving him.
The instruments of his jealous precaution rose in a graduated hierarchy. The
knights and senators trembled before a Massa Baebius, a Carus, and a
Latinus; but these delators trembled in their turn before the prince of
delators, Memminus Regulus, and courted him, not always successfully, by
the surrender of their estates or their mistresses. . . . The best and noblest of
the citizens were still marked out as the prey of delators whose patron
connived at enormities which bound their agents more closely to himself,
and made his protection more necessary to them. The haughty nobles
quailed in silence under a system in which every act, every word, every
sigh, was noted against them, and disgrace, exile, and death followed upon
secret whispers. The fears of Domitian increased with his severities. He
listened to the tales not of senators and consulars only, but of the humblest
officials and even of private soldiers. Often, says Epictetus, was the citizen,
sitting in the theater, entrapped by a disguised legionary beside him, who
pretended to murmur against the emperor, till he had led his unsuspecting
neighbor to confide to him his own complaints, and then skulked away to
denounce him." - Merivale.*64
Such a system gave full and perfect freedom to vent every kind of petty
spite; and not only was freedom given to it, but by the informers' receiving a
share of the property of the accused, a premium was put upon it. Many were
put to death to allay Domitian's fears. Large numbers of others were either
put to death or banished for the sake of their property, and yet many others
were executed or banished upon charges invented by the informers to
satisfy their personal hatred or to maintain with the emperor their standing
of loyalty. Among the victims of this universal treachery, some Christians
were numbered. Hated as they were, it would have been strange indeed had
there been none. Among these was the apostle John, who was banished to
the Isle of Patmos. There were two others whose names we know - Flavius
Clemens and his wife Domitilla. Clemens was the cousin, and Domitilla
was the niece, of Domitian. Clemens had enjoyed the favor of the emperor
for a long time, and attained the honor of the consulship. The term of his
office, however, had hardly more than expired when he was accused,
condemned, and executed; and Domitilla was banished to a desolate island
on the western coast of Italy. The charge against them was "atheism and
Jewish manners," "which cannot with any propriety be applied except to the
Christians, as they were obscurely and imperfectly viewed by the
magistrates and by the writers of that period." - Gibbon.*65
88
both sexes, who are now and hereafter likely to be called to account, and to
be in danger; for this superstition is spread like a contagion, not only into
cities and towns, but into country villages also, which yet there is reason to
hope may be stopped and corrected. To be sure the temples, which were
almost forsaken, begin already to be frequented; and the holy solemnities,
which were long intermitted, begin to be revived. The sacrifices begin to
sell well everywhere, of which very few purchasers had of late appeared;
whereby it is easy to suppose how great a multitude of men may be
amended, if place for repentance be admitted."
To this letter Trajan replied: -
"My Pliny: You have taken the method which you ought, in examining the
causes of those that had been accused as Christians; for indeed no certain
and general form of judging can be ordained in this case. These people are
not to be sought for; but if they be accused and convicted, they are to be
punished: but with this caution, that he who denies himself to be a
Christian, and makes it plain that he is not so, by supplicating to our gods,
although he had been so formerly, may be allowed pardon, upon his
repentance. As for libels sent without an author, they ought to have no place
in any accusation whatsoever, for that would be a thing of very ill example,
and not agreeable to my reign."*67
These are the facts in the case in regard to the persecution by Trajan. As a
matter of fact Trajan had little to do with it. Pliny found the laws being
violated. As governor of a province, he took judicial and executive
cognizance of it. In his enforcing of the laws there were questions raised
which he submitted to the emperor for decision. The emperor informed him
that the proper course had been pursued. As a lover of justice, he directed
that no regard should be paid to anonymous communications, but that all
accusations should be made in due and legal form. He even goes so far as to
limit to the regular form of judicial process the Christians' disregard of the
law - they were not to be sought after; but when accused in regular form, if
they refused to yield, they were to be punished. In all this it is easy to see
the emperor, who was the representative of the law; the just judge, refusing
everything but the strictest conformity to the regular legal proceedings; and
the humane man, willing rather to forego opportunity, than to hunt for
occasion, to prosecute. It is difficult, therefore, to see how Trajan could
fairly be charged with persecuting the Christians.
Trajan died in A. D. 117, and was succeeded by -
91
HADRIAN.
The fanatical populace being forbidden by Trajan's orders to proceed
against the Christians in any but the legal way, had in many places taken to
raising riots and wreaking their vengeance upon the Christians in this
disorderly way. In A. D. 124, Hadrian made a tour through the Eastern
provinces. The proconsul of Asia Minor complained to him of these riotous
proceedings. The emperor issued a rescript commanding that the Christians
should not be harassed, nor should informers be allowed to ply their trade in
malicious prosecutions. If those who desired to prosecute the Christians
could clearly prove their charges before the tribunal, "let them pursue this
course only, but not by mere petitions and mere outcries against the
Christians." "If any one bring an accusation and can show that they have
done anything contrary to the laws," the magistrate was to judge of the
matter "according to the heinousness of the crime;" but if any one should
undertake a prosecution of the Christians "with a view to slander," the
matter was to be investigated "according to its criminality," and if it was
found that the prosecution had been made on false accusation, the false
accusers were to be severely punished.
This rescript is as follows: -
"To Minucius Fundanus: I have received an epistle, written to me by the
most illustrious Serenius Granianus whom you have succeeded. I do not
wish, therefore, that the matter should be passed by without examination, so
that these men may neither be harassed, nor opportunity of malicious
proceedings be offered to informers. If, therefore, the provincials can
clearly evince their charges against the Christians, so as to answer before
the tribunal, let them pursue this course only, but not by mere petitions, and
mere outcries against the Christians. For it is far more proper, if any one
would bring an accusation, that you should examine it. If any one, therefore,
bring an accusation, and can show that they have done anything contrary to
the laws, determine it thus according to the heinousness of the crime. So
that indeed, if any one should purpose this with a view to slander,
investigate it according to its criminality, and see to it that you inflict the
punishment."*68
Hadrian's leniency was not from any respect to the Christians as such, but
from his own native respect for justice and fairness. He died A. D. 138, and
was succeeded by -
92
ANTONINUS PIUS.
As soon as Hadrian's death was known, the restraints imposed by his edicts
were cast off, and the sufferings of the Christians from popular tumult and
riot were renewed. The bitterness of the popular clamor was deepened by
serious disasters. Disastrous floods, earthquakes, and fires occurred about
this time, all of which the superstitious pagans interpreted as the evidence of
the anger of the gods poured upon the empire as punishment for the
disrespect shown to the gods by the Christians, and which was so lightly
dealt with by the imperial power. Antoninus, however, being doubtless the
mildest-mannered man that ever held the imperial power of Rome, renewed
and rather extended
tended the protective edicts of Hadrian. Antoninus was succeeded in A. D.
161, by -
MARCUS AURELIUS.
Public calamities still continued. A terrible pestilence swept over the whole
Roman empire from Ethiopia to Gaul, and the fury of the populace again
fell severely upon the devoted Christians. Marcus Aurelius saw this matter
in much the same light as the great mass of the people, and looked upon the
pestilence that then raged, as a warning to restore the ancient religion in its
minutest particulars. He summoned priests from all quarters to Rome, and
even put off his expedition against the Marcomannians for the purpose of
celebrating the religious solemnities, by which he hoped that the evil might
be averted. He therefore sanctioned the popular rage against the Christians,
and followed it up with an edict in which he commanded that search should
be made for the Christians; and when brought to trial, they were to be
forced by tortures to deny the faith and do homage to the Roman gods.
Marcus Aurelius died, March 17, A. D. 180, and was succeeded by his son -
COMMODUS.
This emperor, instead of being a persecutor of the Christians, was rather a
friend to them, if such a man could be counted the friend of anybody.
Commodus, for the first three years of his reign, was a monster in vice, and
after that a monster in cruelty as well as in vice. One evening in the third
year of his reign, as he was returning from the amphitheater through the
dark passage to the imperial palace, he was attacked by an assassin who felt
93
with a net and a leaden trident. He thus fought (?) seven hundred and thirty-
five times, and each contest meant the death of his antagonist. The list of
senators sacrificed to his suspicions continued still to lengthen. His cruelty
at last arrived at that pitch where nobody within his reach could feel secure
for an hour; and that they might certainly escape his furious caprice, Marcia
his favorite concubine, Eclectus his chamberlain, and Laetus his praetorian
prefect, formed a conspiracy to kill him. Marcia gave him a drink of
poisoned wine, and the poison was assisted in its work by a professional
wrestler who strangled him. Yet Commodus was not a persecutor of the
Christians; but with this exception, there were few people in all the empire
whom he did not persecute. For some reason Marcia was friendly to the
Christians, and her influence with Commodus, as well as his disposition to
be as unlike his father as possible, inclined him to be favorable to them.
SEPTIMIUS SEVERUS,
the fifth of the "ten persecutors," was emperor from A. D. 193 to 211. He
was at first the friend of the Christians. There were Christians among the
domestics of his household. Both the nurse and the teacher of his son
Caracalla were Christians, and "he always treated with peculiar distinction
several persons of both sexes who had embraced the new religion." -
Gibbon.*70 It must not be supposed, however, that Severus himself was
inclined to become a Christian. Finding that the number of Christians was
rapidly increasing, he issued an edict in A. D. 202 forbidding anybody
thereafter to adopt the new religion. This, however, did not prohibit those
who were already Christians from remaining so. The purpose being to
check the spread of the new religion, he forbade any further changing from
the old to the new. Yet the result of the edict was indirectly to increase the
hardships of the Christians under the already existing laws. This was the
measure of the persecution by Septimius Severus. But there is another side
to the story of Severus which, when compared with this, shows that it is
only by a severe stretch of language, if not of imagination, that the
Christians could be counted as persecuted by him.
It was through a triangular civil war that Septimius Severus secured the
imperial power. He was commander of the troops on the Illyrian frontier,
and was in Pannonia. Pescennius Niger was commander of the troops in
Syria. Clodius Albinus was governor of Britain. The troops of Niger
proclaimed him emperor; and the troops of Severus did the same for him.
Severus had the advantage of being nearest to Rome. He hastened into Italy
95
with his army, and was acknowledged by the Senate as lawful emperor.
War immediately followed between Severus and Niger. Niger was defeated
in two engagements, and slain. As long as the contest with Niger was
uncertain, Severus pretended the utmost friendship for Albinus; bestowed
upon him the title of Caesar; sent him a letter in which he called him the
brother of his soul and empire; and charged the messengers who carried the
letter that when they delivered it, they should secure a private audience with
Albinus and assassinate him.
Albinus, however, detected the conspiracy, and by it discovered that if he
were to live, it would have to be as emperor. He crossed into Gaul; the
armies met at Lyons; Albinus was defeated, captured, and beheaded.
Severus discovered that the Senate had encouraged Albinus. He therefore
sent to the Romans the head of Albinus with a letter declaring that none of
the adherents of either Albinus or Niger should be spared. He did, however,
pardon thirty-five senators who were accused of having favored Albinus,
while forty-one other senators with their wives, their children, and their
friends were put to death. The same punishment was inflicted upon the most
prominent characters of Spain, Gaul, and Syria, while many others were
sent into exile, or suffered the confiscation of all their property, merely
because they had obeyed the governor under whose authority they had
happened to fall in the triangular conflict. Niger had been a popular
governor, and many cities of the East contributed to him considerable sums
of money when he was proclaimed emperor. All these cities were deprived
of their honors, and were compelled to pay to Severus four times the
amount that they had contributed to Niger. To elevate to the dignity of a
persecution the treatment of the Christians by Septimius Severus in view of
his treatment of the Roman Senate and whole cities and provinces of the
empire, bears too much evidence of an attempt to make out a case, to be
counted worthy of any weight.
Severus was succeeded in A. D. 211, by his two sons,
and spent the rest of his reign, about four years, in the several provinces of
the empire, particularly those of the East, "and every province was by turn
the scene of his rapine and cruelty." - Gibbon.*71 The senators were
compelled to accompany him wherever he went and to furnish daily
entertainment at immense expense, which he gave over to his soldiers. They
were likewise required to build in every city where he would come,
magnificent palaces and splendid theaters which he would either not visit at
all or else visit and order at once to be torn down.
The property of the most wealthy was confiscated at once, while that of the
great mass of the people was taken under the form of taxes heavily
increased. In the city of Alexandria in Egypt, simply because they had
indulged in a bit of raillery at his expense, he took his station on top of the
temple of Serapis, and commanded a general massacre of the citizens,
which he directed and enjoyed from his elevated station. Thousands upon
thousands of people were thus inhumanly slaughtered. And these are but
parts of his wicked ways. Yet Caracalla is not numbered among the
persecutors of the Christians, nor did he, in fact, molest the Christians as
such. Yet it would be difficult to find an emperor, from Nero to Diocletian,
who caused as much suffering to the Christinas, as Caracalla did to almost
everybody but the Christians. It would not be correct, however, to suppose
that the Christians were exempt from his ravages: they of course shared the
common lot in his desperate attentions.
The next in the list of the "Ten Persecutors" is -
MAXIMIN.
In the year 235 A. D., Maximin became emperor by the murder of the
emperor Alexander Severus. Of him and the persecution of the Christians
inflicted by him, the ecclesiastical historian says: -
"The emperor Alexander being carried off after a reign of thirteen years,
was succeeded by Maximinus, who, inflamed with hatred against the house
of Alexander, consisting of many believers, raised a persecution, and
commanded at first only the heads of the churches to be slain, as the
abettors and agents of evangelical truth.' - Eusebius.*72
Alexander Severus had not only been a friend to the Christians, but had
gone so far as to place an image of Christ among his household gods. The
church in Rome had appropriated a piece of land in that city which was
claimed by the Cooks' Union. A dispute arose about it, and the case was
97
DECIUS,
whose reign was but a little more than two years in length, from A. D. 249-
251. Decius was somewhat after the model of Trajan and Marcus Aurelius -
devoted to Rome, her laws, and her institutions. His serious endeavor was to
bring back the Roman discipline, and the Roman virtue of earlier times.
Therefore, one of the earliest acts of his reign was to revive the office of
censor. The choosing of the censor was left to the Senate, and as the result,
Valerian was unanimously chosen. The speech which Decius made upon the
investiture of Valerian with the insignia of his office, will enable the reader
to form some estimate of the ideal which this emperor had formed for
himself in the matter of government. He said: -
"Happy Valerian, - happy in the general approbation of the Senate and of
the Roman republic! Accept the censorship of mankind: and judge of our
manners. You will select those who deserve to continue members of the
Senate; you will restore the equestrian order to its ancient splendor; you will
improve the revenue, yet moderate the public burdens. You will distinguish
into regular classes the various and infinite multitude of citizens; and
accurately review the military strength, the wealth, the virtue, and the
resources of Rome. Your decisions shall obtain the force of laws. The army,
the palace, the ministers of justice, and the great officers of the empire, are
all subject to your tribunal. None are exempted excepting only the ordinary
consuls, the prefect of the city, the king of the sacrifices, and (as long as she
preserves her chastity inviolate) the eldest of the vestal virgins. Even these
few, who may not dread the severity, will anxiously solicit the esteem of the
Roman censor." - Gibbon.*75
With such views of the public needs and of his duty as emperor to restore
the purity of the old Roman discipline, it could only be that the effects of
his efforts would be first felt by the Christians, because by their denial of
99
the gods and repudiation of the Roman religion and their denial of the right
of the State to interfere with their religious exercise or profession, they were
placed as the first of the enemies of the Roman people. In the year 250 the
persecution began. Rigorous search was ordered for all the people who were
suspected of refusing to conform to the Roman worship, with the object of
compelling them to return to the exercise of the ceremonies of the Roman
religion. When they were found, if they refused, threats were first to be
used, and if that failed, torture was to be applied, and if that failed, death
was to be inflicted.
The persecution began in Rome, and as there had been a long period of
peace, many of the professed Christians had become worldly, and thought
more of increasing their earthly possessions than of cultivating the Christian
virtues. Cyprian, Bishop of Carthage, who lived at the time and was put to
death only a few years afterward, says: -
"Forgetful of what believers had either done before in the times of the
apostles, or always ought to do, with the insatiable ardor of covetousness,
devoted themselves to the increase of their property."*76
Immediately upon the issuing of this edict, large numbers of these gave up
their profession, whose ready compliance encouraged the emperor to
suppose that it would be but an easy task entirely to suppress the Christian
faith. Bishops themselves had set the people an example in worldly
degeneracy, for says Cyprian of them: -
"Among the priests there was no devotedness of religion; among the
ministers there was no sound faith: in their works there was no mercy; in
their manners their was no discipline. In men, their beards were defaced; in
women, their complexion was dyed: the eyes were falsified from what
God's hand had made them; their hair was stained with a falsehood. Crafty
frauds were used to deceive the hearts of the simple, subtle meanings for
circumventing the brethren. They united in the bond of marriage with
unbelievers; they prostituted the members of Christ to the Gentiles. They
would swear not only rashly, but even more, would swear falsely; would
despise those set over them with haughty swelling, would speak evil of one
another with envenomed tongue, would quarrel with one another with
obstinate hatred. Not a few bishops who ought to furnish both exhortation
and example to others, despising their divine charge, became agents in
secular business, forsook their throne deserted their people, wandered about
over foreign provinces, hunted the markets for gainful merchandise, while
brethren were starving in the church. They sought to possess money in
100
hoards, they seized estates by crafty deceits, they increased their gains by
multiplying usuries. - Cyprian.*77
Seeing then, that so many of the people had so readily renounced their
profession, and believing that the influence of the bishops was to a large
extent the cause of the existence and spread of Christianity, and seeing the
character of many of them thus displayed, the efforts of Decius were first
directed at these with the hope that if their influence was checked, it would
be easy to restore the Roman worship. But it could not be made to succeed.
If a bishop was imprisoned or banished, it only bound his flock closer to
him; if he was put to death, by his example others were only encouraged to
be the more faithful to their profession; and thus, although the persecution
began with the bishops, it soon embraced the people; and although it had its
beginning in Rome, it soon extended throughout the empire.
Thus began the first imperial persecution that there had been in the city of
Rome since that of Nero, and the first one which really spread over the
whole empire. Wherever the edict was published, the idea was always by
mild measures first, if possible, to restore the Roman worship everywhere;
and it was only when the milder measures failed, that the severer were
employed, even to death. Being so wide-spread, the Decian persecution was
thus the severest that had ever yet been inflicted upon the Christians by any
emperor; yet it continued only about two years, for the emperor lost his life
in a battle with the Goths in December, 251.
The author of the next of the "Ten Persecutions" was -
VALERIAN,
who became emperor in August, 253. At first he was favorable to the
Christians. Indeed, Dionysius, as quoted by Eusebius, says that "never was
there any of the emperors before him so favorably and benevolently
disposed toward them;" that, "in the commencement of his reign" he
"plainly received them with excessive civility and friendship;" and that the
emperor's house "was filled with pious persons, and was, indeed, a
congregation of the Lord."*78 This is probably somewhat extravagant, but
that the emperor was friendly to the Christians at the beginning of his reign,
is very evident.
This leniency continued till the year 257, when his conduct toward them
was reversed; but, like Decius, he hoped to put an end to Christianity
without the employment of violent measures. He endeavored first to compel
101
the church leaders, - the bishops, the presbyters, and the deacons, - to
renounce Christianity, expecting that the people would follow their
example. This failing, he next forbade their holding meetings; likewise
failing in this, an edict was issued in 258 commanding them to be put to
death at once. The senators and knights who were Christians, were to be
deprived of their rank and property, and if they still persevered, they were to
be beheaded. Women of rank who were Christians, were to be deprived of
their property and banished. Sixtus, the Roman bishop, and four deacons of
the church in Rome were put to death under this edict in August. This
persecution came to an end in 260, when Valerian was taken prisoner by the
king of Persia. He was succeeded in the empire by his son -
GALLIENUS,
who not only immediately put a stop to the persecution, but issued an edict
which in effect recognized Christianity as among the lawful religions of the
Roman empire, by commanding that the church property should be restored;
for none but legally existing bodies could legally hold common property.
Yet this man who showed himself to be such a friend to the Christians as to
make their religion legal, was very little behind Maximin in his cruelty to
every one but the Christians. During his reign there arose nineteen usurpers
in different parts of the empire, of whom there was not one "who enjoyed a
life of peace or died a natural death." Gallienus was so fortunate as to be
successful over them all, yet their efforts kept the empire in a state of
constant ferment,
and the disposition of Gallienus toward all be gathered from a command
that he issued with respect to one Ingenuus, who assumed the office of
emperor in the province of Illyricum. When the revolt had been quelled,
Gallienus wrote to his minister there these words: -
"It is not enough that you exterminate such as have appeared in arms: the
chance of battle might have served me as effectually. The male sex of every
age must be extirpated; provided that, in the execution of the children and
old men,you can contrive means to save our reputation. Let every one die
who has dropped an expression, who has entertained a thought, against me,
against me - the son of Valerian, the father and brother of so many princes.
Remember that Ingenuus was made emperor: tear, kill, hew in pieces. I
write to you with my own hand, and would inspire you with my own
feelings." - Gibbon.*79
102
AURELIAN,
who became emperor in A. D. 270. His persecution, like that of some of the
others in the list, is a myth. So far from Aurelian's being a persecutor or an
enemy of the Christians, or one whom they dreaded, the bishops themselves
appealed to him in one of their intestine controversies.
Paul of Samosata was Bishop of Antioch, and like many other bishops of
his day, he assumed a style and an arrogance becoming an emperor of
Rome rather than a servant of Christ. He was accused of heresy and tried by
a council of bishops, who pronounced him deposed, and named another to
be seated in his place. But, although they could easily enough pronounce
him deposed, it was another thing to unseat him in fact. Paul held his
bishopric in spite of them. The council then appealed to Aurelian to enforce
their decree and compel Paul to vacate the bishopric. Aurelian refused to
decide the question himself, but referred them to the Bishop of Rome,
saying that whoever the bishops of Rome and Italy should decide to be the
proper person, should have the office. They decided against Paul, and
Aurelian compelled him to relinquish his seat. Afterward, however, in the
last year of his reign, as it proved to be, Eusebius says that Aurelian was
persuaded to raise persecution against the Christians, and the rumor was
spread abroad everywhere; yet before any decree was issued, death
overtook him. This is the history of Aurelian as one of the "Persecutors",
and this is the history of "the ninth persecution."
The tenth persecution, that of Diocletian, was a persecution indeed. We
shall not dwell upon it here, because it will have to be noticed fully in
another place.
The evidence here presented, however, is sufficient to show that the story of
the Ten Persecutions is a fable. That both events and names have been
forced into service to make up the list of ten persecutions and to find among
the Roman emperors ten persecutors, the history plainly shows.
103
The history shows that only five of the so-called ten persecutors can by any
fair construction be counted such. These five were Nero, Marcus Aurelius,
Valerian, Decius, and Diocletian. Of the other five Trajan not only added
nothing to the laws already existing, but gave very mild directions for the
enforcement of these, which abated rather than intensified the troubles of
the Christians. It would be difficult to see how any directions could have
been more mild without abrogating the laws altogether, which to Trajan
would have been only equivalent to subverting the empire itself. Domitian
was not a persecutor of the Christians as such, but was cruel to all people;
and in common with others, some Christians suffered, and suffered only as
did others who were not Christians. Septimius Severus only forbade any
more people to become Christians without particularly interfering with such
as were already Christians. The cruelty of Maximin, more bitter even than
that of Domitian, involved all classes, and where it overtook Christians, that
which befell them was but the common lot of thousands and thousands of
people who were not Christians. Aurelian was not in any sense a persecutor
of the Christians in fact. At the utmost stretch, he only contemplated it. Had
he lived longer, he might have been a persecutor; but it is not honest to
count a man a persecutor who at the most only intended to persecute. It is
not fair in such a case to turn an intention into a fact.
Looking again at the record of the five who really were persecutors, it is
found that from Nero to Marcus Aurelius was ninety-three years; that from
Marcus Aurelius to Decius was eighty years; that from Decius to Valerian's
edict was six years; and that from the edict of Gallienus to Diocletian's edict
of persecution was forty-three years. From the record of this period, on the
other hand, it is found that between Nero and Marcus Aurelius, Domitian
and Vitellius raged; that between Marcus and Decius, the savage
Commodus and Caracalla, and Elagabalus and Maximin, all ravaged the
empire like wild boars a forest; and that next after Valerian came Gallienus.
From these facts it must be admitted that if the persecution of the Christians
by Pagan Rome depended upon the action of the emperors, and if it is to be
attributed to them, Christians had not much more to bear than had the
generality of people throughout the empire. In short, the story of the "Ten
Persecutions" is a myth.
104
CHAPTER V.
CHRISTIANITY AND THE ROMAN EMPIRE.
ALTHOUGH the tale of the "Ten Persecutions" is a myth, this is not by any
means to pronounce as myths all stories of the persecution of Christians by
Pagan Rome. Though there were not ten persecutions as such, there was one
continuous persecution, only with variations, for two hundred and fifty
years.
Nor is it strictly correct to speak of this as the persecution of Christians by
the Romans. It was all this, it is true, but it was much more. The controversy
between the Christians and the Romans was not a dispute between
individuals, or a contention between sects or parties. It was a contest
between antagonistic principles. It was, therefore, a contest between
Christianityand Rome, rather than between Christians and Romans. On the
part of Christianity it was the proclamation of the principle of genuine
liberty; on the part of Rome it was the assertion of the principle of genuine
despotism. On the part of Christianity it was the assertion of the principle of
the rights of conscience and of the individual; on the part of Rome it was
the assertion of the principle of the absolute absorption of the individual,
and his total enslavement to the State in all things, divine as well as human,
religious as well as civil
This is detected by a mere glance again at the actions of the emperors whom
we have named in the previous chapter. With the exception of Nero, the
emperors who persecuted the Christians most, were among the best that
Rome ever had; while those emperors who were the very worst, persecuted
the Christians, as such, the least or not at all. Marcus Aurelius, indeed, is
acknowledged not only to have been one of the best of the Roman
emperors, but one of the best men of all pagan times; while on the other
hand, Domitian, and Vitellius, and Commodus, and Caracalla, and
Elagabalus, and Maximin, were not only the worst of Roman emperors, but
among the worst of all men. While on the part of those emperors who
persecuted the Christians it was not cruelty that caused them to do so; on
the part of the others named who did not persecute the Christians as such,
but who persecuted everybody indiscriminately, it was nothing but cruelty
that caused them to do so. With the exception of Nero, it was invariably the
best of the emperors who persecuted the Christians; and they invariably did
105
it, not because they were cruel and delighted to see people suffer, but only
by the enforcement of the laws which were already extant; by way of
respect to institutions long established; and to preserve a system the fall of
which, to them, meant the fall of the empire itself.
The best men naturally cared most for the Roman institutions and held as
most sacred the majesty of Rome and the dignity of Roman law as the
expression of that majesty. Being thus the most jealous of the Roman
integrity and Roman institutions, any disregard of the majesty of Rome, or
any infraction of the laws, would not be suffered by them to go unnoticed.
Christians, caring nothing for the majesty of Rome in view of the awful
majesty of Jesus Christ, not only disregarded the Roman laws on the subject
of religion, but asserted the right to disregard them; and held it to be the
most sacred and heaven-enjoined duty to spread abroad these views to all
people. Consequently, in the very nature of things, these would be the first
ones to incur the displeasure of those emperors who held sacred the Roman
institutions. On the other hand, those emperors who cared little or nothing
for anything but the gratification of their
appetites and passions, and the indulgence of their cruel propensities, cared
little or nothing whether the Christians obeyed the laws or not. They
themselves cared nothing for the laws, the manners, or the institutions of
Rome, and they cared little whether other people cared for these things or
not.
Jesus Christ came into the world to set men free, and to plant in their souls
the genuine principle of liberty, - liberty actuated by love, - liberty too
honorable to allow itself to be used as an occasion to the flesh, or for a
cloak of maliciousness,- liberty led by a conscience enlightened by the
Spirit of God, - liberty in which man may be free from all men, yet made so
gentle by love that he would willingly become the servant of all, in order to
bring them to the enjoyment of this same liberty. This is freedom indeed.
This is the freedom which Christ gave to man; for, whom the Son makes
free is free indeed. In giving to men this freedom, such an infinite gift could
have no other result than that which Christ intended; namely, to bind them
in everlasting, unquestioning, unswerving allegiance to him as the royal
benefactor of the race. He thus reveals himself to men as the highest good,
and brings them to himself as the manifestation of that highest good, and to
obedience to his will as the perfection of conduct. Jesus Christ was God
manifest in the flesh. Thus God was in Christ reconciling the world to
himself, that they might know him, the only true God, and Jesus Christ
106
relations to God. The common accusation against them was that they were
"irreverent to the Caesars, and enemies of the Caesars and of the Roman
people."
To the Christian, the word of God asserted with absolute authority: Fear
God, and keep his commandments; for this is the whole duty of man." Eccl.
xii, 13. To him, obedience to this word through faith in Christ, was eternal
life. This to him was the conduct which showed his allegiance to God as the
highest good, - a good as much higher than that of the Roman State as the
government of God is greater than was the government of Rome.
This idea of the State, was not merely the State as a civil institution, but as a
divine institution, and the highest conception of divinity itself. The genius
of Rome was the supreme deity. Thus the idea of the State as the highest
good was the religious idea, and consequently religion was inseparable from
the State. All religious views were to be held subordinate to the State, and
all religion was only the servant of the State.
The Roman State being the chief deity, the gods of Rome derived their
dignity from the State rather than the State deriving any honor from them.
And the genius of the Roman State being to the Roman mind the chief
deity, as Rome had conquered all nations, it was demonstrated to the
Roman mind that Rome was superior to all the gods that were known. And
though Rome allowed conquered nations to maintain the worship of their
national gods, these as well as the conquered people were considered only
as servants of the Roman State. Every religion was held subordinate to the
religion of Rome, and though "all forms of religion might come to Rome
and take their places in its pantheon, they must come as the servants of the
State."
The State being the Roman's conception of the highest good, Rome's own
gods derived all their dignity from the fact that they were recognized as
such by the State. It was counted by the Romans an act of the greatest
condescension and an evidence of the greatest possible favor to bestow
State recognition upon any foreign gods, or to allow any Roman subject to
worship any other gods than those which were recognized as such by the
Roman State. A fundamental maxim of Roman legislation was, -
"No man shall have for himself particular gods of his own; no man shall
worship by himself any new or foreign gods, unless they are recognized by
the public laws." - Cicero. *82
108
Again: the Roman State being the supreme deity, the Senate and people
were but the organs through which its ideas were expressed; hence the
maxim, Vox populi, vox dei, - the voice of the people is the voice of god.
As this voice gave expression to the will of the supreme deity, and
consequently of the highest good; and as this will was expressed in the form
of laws; hence again the Roman maxim, "What the law says is right."
It is very evident that in such a system there was no place for individuality.
The State was everything, and the majority was in fact the State. What the
majority said should be, that was the voice of the State, that was the voice
of God, that was the expression of the highest good, that was the expression
of the highest conception of right; and everybody must assent to that or be
considered a traitor to the State. The individual was but a part of the State.
There was therefore no such thing as the rights of the people; the right of
the State only was to be considered, and that was to be considered absolute.
"The first principle of their law was the paramount right of the State over
the citizen. Whether as head of a family, or as proprietor, he had no natural
rights of his own; his privileges were created by the law as well as defined
by it. The State in the plenitude of her power, delegated a portion of her
own irresponsibility to the citizen, who satisfied the conditions she required,
in order to become the parent of her children; but at the same time she
demanded of him the sacrifice of his free agency to her own rude ideas of
political expediency." - Mericale. *83
It is also evident that in such a system, there was no such thing as the rights
of conscience; because as the State was supreme also in the realm of
religion, all things religious were to be subordinated to the will of the State,
which was but the will of the majority. And where the majority presumes to
decide in matters of religion, there is no such thing as rights of religion or
conscience. Against this whole system Christianity was diametrically
opposed, -
First, In its assertion of the supremacy of God; in the idea of God as
manifested in Jesus Christ as the highest idea of good; in the will of God as
expressed in his law as the highest conception of right; and in the fear of
God and the keeping of his commandments as the whole duty of man.
Christ had set himself before his disciples as the one possessing all power in
heaven and in earth. He had told them to go into all the world and teach to
every creature all things whatsoever he had commanded them. Christ had
said that the first of all the commandments, that which inculcates the
highest and first of all duties, is "Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all
109
thy heart, and with all thy soul, and with all thy mind, and with all thy
strength." This put Jesus Christ above the State, and put allegiance to him
above allegiance to the State; this denied the supremacy of Rome, and
likewise denied that either the Roman gods were gods at all, or that the
genius of Rome itself was in any sense a god.
Secondly, When the republic as represented by the Senate and people of
Rome was merged in the imperial power, and the emperor became the
embodiment of the State, he represented the dignity, the majesty, and the
power of the State, and likewise, in that, represented the divinity of the
State. Hence divinity attached to the Caesars.
Christianity was directly opposed to this, as shown by the word of Christ,
who, when asked by the Pharisees and the Herodians whether it was lawful
to give tribute to Caesar or not, answered: "Render therefore unto Caesar
the things which are Caesar's; and unto God the things that are God's." In
this Christ established a clear distinction between Caesar and God, and
between religion and the State. He separated that which pertains to God
from that which pertains to the State. Only that which was Caesar's was to
be rendered to Caesar, while that which is God's was to be rendered to God
and with no reference whatever to Caesar.
The State being divine and the Caesar reflecting this divinity,l whatever was
God's was Caesar's. Therefore when Christ made this distinction between
God and Caesar, separated that which pertains to God from that which
pertains to Caesar, and commanded men to render to God that which is
God's, and to Caesar only that which is Caesar's, he at once stripped Caesar
- the State - of every attribute of divinity. And in doing this he declared the
supremacy of the individual conscience; because it is left with the
individual to decide what things they are which pertain to God.
Thus Christianity proclaimed the right of the individual to worship
according to the dictates of his own conscience, while Rome asserted the
duty of every man to worship according to the dictates of the State.
Christianity asserted the supremacy of God; Rome asserted the supremacy
of the State. Christianity set forth God as manifested in Jesus Christ as the
chief good; Rome held the State to be the highest good. Christianity set
forth the law of God as the expression of the highest conception of right;
Rome held the law of the State to be the expression of the highest idea of
right. Christianity taught that the fear of God and the keeping of his
commandments is the whole duty of man; Rome taught that to be the
obedient servant of the State is the whole duty of man. Christianity
110
the generations of the Roman ages. Yet that was the only proper alternative
of the Roman State, and that is what ought to have been done.
Civil government being thus declared to be of God, and its authority
ordained of God, the instruction proceeds: "Whosoever therefore resisteth
the power, resisteth the ordinance of God: and they that resist shall receive
to themselves damnation. . . . Wherefore ye must needs be subject, not only
for wrath, but also for conscience' sake." Governments being of God, and
their authority being ordained of God, Christians in respecting God will
necessarily respect in its place, the exercise of the authority ordained by
him; but this authority, according to the words of Christ, is to be exercised
only in those things which are Caesar's and not in things which pertain to
God. Accordingly, the letter to the Romans proceeds, "For this cause pay ye
tribute also; for they are God's ministers, attending continually upon this
very thing." This connects Paul's argument directly with that of Christ
above referred to, and shows that this is but a comment on that statement,
and an extension of the argument therein contained.
The scripture proceeds: "Render therefore to all their dues: tribute to whom
tribute is due; custom to whom custom; fear to whom fear; honor to whom
honor. Owe no man anything, but to love one another; for he that loveth
another hath fulfilled the law. For this, Thou shalt not commit adultery,
Thou shalt not kill, Thou shalt not steal, Thou shalt not bear false witness,
Thou shalt not covet; and if there be any other commandment, it is briefly
comprehended in this saying, namely, Thou shalt love thy neighbor as
thyself."
Let it be borne in mind that the apostle is here writing to Christians
concerning the respect and duty which they are to render to the powers that
be, that is, to the State in fact. He knew full well, and so did those to whom
he wrote, that there are other commandments in the very law of which a part
is here quoted. But he and they likewise knew that these other
commandments do not in any way relate to any man's duty or respect to the
powers that be. Those other commandments of the law which is here partly
quoted, relate to God and to man's duty to him. One of them is, "Thou shalt
have no other gods before me;" another, "Thou shalt not make unto thee any
graven image," etc.; another, "Thou shalt not take the name of the Lord thy
God in vain;" and another, "Remember the Sabbath day to keep it holy; six
days shalt thou labor and do all thy work, but the seventh day is the Sabbath
of the Lord thy God," etc.: and these are briefly comprehended in that
saying, namely, "Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy heart, and
112
with all thy soul, and with all thy mind, and with all thy strength."
According to the words of Christ, all these obligations, pertaining solely to
God, are to be rendered to him only, and with man in this realm, Caesar can
never of right have anything to do in any way whatever.
As, therefore, the instruction in Romans xiii, 1-10 is given to Christians
concerning their duty and respect to the powers that be; and as this
instruction is confined absolutely to man's relationship to his fellow-men, it
is evident that when Christians have paid their taxes, and have shown
proper respect to their fellow-men, then their obligation, their duty, and
their respect,to the powers that be,have been fully discharged, and those
powers never can rightly have any further jurisdiction over their conduct.
This is not to say that the State has jurisdiction of the last six
commandments as such. It is only to say that the jurisdiction of the State is
confined solely to man's conduct toward man, and never can touch his
relationship to God, even under the second table of the law. This will be
more fully discussed in a subsequent chapter.
This doctrine asserts the right of every man to worship according to the
dictates of his own conscience, as he pleases, and when he pleases. Just this,
however, was the subject of the whole controversy between Christianity and
the Roman empire. There was never any honest charge made that the
Christians did violence to any man, or refused to pay tribute. The direct and
positive instruction was not only that they should do no evil, but that they
should speak no evil of any man; and that they practiced accordingly is
shown by Pliny's letter to Trajan concerning the Christians, in which he says
that when they met and partook of that harmless meal, before they separated
they pledged one another not to steal, not to commit adultery, not to do
violence to any man. The Roman State never had any just charge to bring
against the Christians in any of these respects. The charge was atheism,
because they denied the gods, and high treason, because they denied the
right of the State to rule in things pertaining to God. Therefore as a matter
of fact the whole controversy between Christianity and the Roman empire
was upon the simple question of the rights of conscience, - the question
whether it is the right of every man to worship according to the dictates of
his own conscience, or whether it is his duty to worship according to the
dictates of the State.
This question was then as it always has been, very far-reaching. When the
right was claimed to worship according to the dictates of conscience, in that
was claimed the right to disregard all the Roman laws on the subject of
113
religion, and to deny the right of the State to have anything whatever to do
with the question of religion. But this, according to the Roman estimate,
was only to bid defiance to the State and to the interests of society
altogether. The Roman State, so intimately and intricately connected with
religion, was but the reflection of the character of the Roman people, who
prided themselves upon being the most religious of all nations, and Cicero
commended them for this, because their religion was carried into all the
details of life. "The Roman ceremonial worship was very elaborate and
minute, applying to every part of daily life. It consisted in sacrifices,
prayers, festivals, and the investigations, by auguries and haruspices, of the
will of the gods and the course of future events. The Romans accounted
themselves an exceedingly religious people, because their religion was so
intimately connected with the affairs of home and State. . . . Thus religion
everywhere met the public life of the Roman by its festivals, and laid an
equal yoke on his private life by its requisition of sacrifices, prayers, and
auguries. All pursuits must be conducted according to a system carefully
laid down by the College of Pontiffs. . . . If a man went out to walk, there
was a form to be recited; if he mounted his chariot, another." - James
Freeman Clarke.*84
But this whole system of religion was false. The gods which they worshiped
were false gods. Their gods, in short were but reflections of themselves, and
the ceremonies of worship were but the exercise of their own passions and
lusts. Neither in their gods nor their worship was there a single element of
good. Therefore upon it all Christianity taught the people to turn their
backs. The Christian doctrine declared all these gods to be no gods, and all
the forms of worship of the gods to be only idolatry, and a denial of the only
true God - the God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ.
The games and all the festival days were affairs of state, and "were an
essential part of the cheerful devotion of the pagans, and the gods were
supposed to accept, as the most grateful offering, the games that the prince
and people celebrated in honor of their peculiar festivals." - Gibbon. *85
The festivities of the wedding and the ceremonies of the funeral were all
conducted under the protection of the gods. More than this, "the number of
the gods was as great as the number of the incidents in earthly life." -
Mommsen.*86 The "pagan's domestic hearth was guarded by the penates,
or by the ancestral gods of his family or tribe. By land he traveled under the
protection of one tutelar divinity, by sea of another; the birth, the bridal, the
funeral, had each its presiding deity; the very commonest household utensils
114
alone for the sake of the gods, because whoever despises them is incapable
of reverence for anything else; but because such persons, by introducing
new divinities, mislead many to adopt also foreign laws." *88
The Christians did refuse to worship the gods according to the laws, or in
any other way; they did introduce that which was pre-eminently alien to all
the Roman customs in this particular; they did despise the gods. In the
presence of the purity, the goodness, and the inherent holiness of Jesus
Christ, the Christians could have no other feeling than that of abhorrence for
the wicked, cruel, and licentious gods of the heathen. And when from love
for Christ they shrank in abhorrence from this idolatry, it only excited to
bitter hatred the lovers of the licentious worship of the insensate gods; and,
as above stated, there was the law, and there the machinery of the State,
ready to be used in giving force to the religious enmity thus excited.
One of the ruling principles of law in the Roman State was this:-
"Whoever introduces new religions, the tendency and character of which are
unknown, whereby the minds of men may be disturbed, shall, if belonging
to the higher rank, be banished; if to the lower, punished with death."*89
Nothing could be more directly condemned by this law than was
Christianity.
1. It was wholly a new religion, one never before heard of; it was not in any
sense a national religion, but was ever announced as that which should be
universal. Being so entirely new, in the nature of the case its tendency and
character were unknown to the Roman mind.
2. Of all religions the world has ever known, Christianity appeals most
directly to the minds of men. The first of all the commandments demanding
the obedience of men declares, "Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all
thy heart, and with all thy mind." The law of God was set forth as the
highest conception of right, and the letter to all the Christians in Rome said,
"With the mind I myself serve the law of God." Rom. vii, 25. Again that
same letter said, "Be not conformed to this world: but be ye transformed by
the renewing of your mind." Chap. xii, 2. Again and again in the Christian
writings this same idea was set forth, and it was all summed up in the
saying of Christ to the woman of Samaria, "God is a spirit: and they that
worship him must worship him in Spirit;" thus setting God before the mind
to be discerned only by the mind, and worshiped in a mental and spiritual
conception only.
116
3. The Christians were almost wholly from the lower ranks. The common
people heard Christ gladly; so also did they hear his gracious gospel from
his disciples. There was yet a further disadvantage, however, in the position
of the Christians. Christianity had sprung from among the Jews. It had been
despised by the Jews. The Jews were viewed by the Romans as the most
despicable of all people. Therefore, as the Christians were despised by the
Jews, who were despised by the Romans, it followed that to the Romans the
Christians were the despised of the despised. It was but the record of a
literal fact which Paul wrote: "We are made as the filth of the world, and are
the off scouring of all things unto this day." 1 Cor. iv, 13. The law declared
that if those who did what the statute forbade belonged to the lower ranks,
they were to be punished with death; and as the Christians were mostly
from the lower ranks, death became the most common penalty incurred by
the profession of Christianity.
There was yet another disadvantage. These laws had all been framed, and
the system had been established, long before there were any Christians in
the world. Therefore the teaching of the Christians, their practice, and their
disregard of the Roman laws, appeared to the Romans in no other light than
as an open insurrection against the government, and an attempt at the
dissolution of society itself.
The persecution of the Christians, having its foundation principle in the
system of laws and government of Rome, proceeded from four distinct
causes and from four distinct sources.
First, from the populace. The Christians refused to pay any respect or honor
whatever to the gods to whom the people were devoted in every act and
relationship of life. They were charged at once with being atheists and
enemies of the gods, and therefore of being the direct cause of all the
calamities and misfortunes that might befall anybody from any source.
Everything in nature, as well as in the life of the individual, was presided
over by some particular deity, and therefore whatever, out of the natural
order, might happen in the course of the seasons or in the life of the
individual, was held to be a token of the anger of the insulted gods, which
was only to be appeased by the punishment of the Christians.
If the fall of rain was long delayed so that crops and pastures suffered, it
was laid to the charge of the Christians. If when rain did come, there was
too much so that the rivers overflowed and did damage, they charged this
likewise to the Christians. If there was an earthquake or a famine, the
Christians' disrespect to the gods was held to be the cause of it. If an
117
The second source from which proceeded the persecution of the Christians
was the priests and artisans. The priests had charge of the temples and
sacrifices, by which they received their living and considerable profit
besides. Pliny's testimony, before quoted, plainly says that in his province
"the temples were almost forsaken," and of the sacrifices "very few
purchasers had of late appeared." The influence of Christianity reached
much farther than to those who openly professed it. Many, seeing the
Christians openly forsaking the gods, and refusing to offer sacrifices, would
likewise, merely upon economical principles, stop making sacrifices in the
temples. The priests and the traffickers in sacrificial offerings, seeing their
gains falling off, were not slow in charging to the Christians the
delinquency, were prompt to prosecute them before the tribunals, and were
very diligent to secure the most rigid enforcement of the laws commanding
sacrifice to the gods. From the same cause the artisans found their gains
vanishing, through the diminished sale of carved and engraved images,
amulets, etc. Upon which, like that Demetrius of the Scriptures who made
silver shrines for Diana (Acts xix, 21-29), they became very zealous for the
honor of the gods, and raised persecution against the disciples in order to
restore the worship of the gods - and their own accustomed income.
A third source from which persecution arose was the governors of
provinces. Some of these were of cruel and splenetic disposition, and,
holding a personal animosity against the Christians, were glad of the
opportunity to be the ministers of such laws as were of force against them.
Others who were totally indifferent to the merits of the question, yet who
earnestly desired to be popular, were ready to take part with the people in
their fanatical rage, and to lend their power and use their official influence
against the Christians. Yet others who had no particular care for the worship
of the gods, could not understand the Christians' refusal to obey the laws.
The governors could see nothing in such a refusal to obey the law and
perform the ceremonies therein prescribed, but what appeared to them to be
blind, willful obstinacy and downright stubbornness. They regarded such
willful disobedience to the law to be much more worthy of condemnation
than even the disrespect to the gods. Such a one was Pliny, who said, "Let
their confessions be of any sort whatever, this positiveness in inflexible
obstinacy deserved to be punished." Many of the governors "would sooner
pardon in the Christians their defection from the worship of the gods, than
their want of reverence for the emperors, in declining to take any part in
those idolatrous demonstrations of homage which pagan flattery had
119
plea seemed the more impertinent from the fact that it was made by the
despised of the despised.
The fourth source from which persecution came to the Christians was the
emperors. Yet until Christianity had become so wide-spread as to attract the
attention of the emperor, there was no general persecution from this source.
The first persecution by the direct instigation of the emperors was that
inflicted by Nero. With this exception, the persecution of the Christians by
the emperors was solely as the representatives of the State, to maintain the
authority of the State and the dignity of her laws; and to preserve the State
from the certain ruin which they supposed to be threatened from
Christianity. This explains why it was that only the best of the emperors
persecuted the Christians, as such.
In the emperor was merged the State. He alone represented the divinity of
the Roman State. The Christians' refusal to recognize in him that divinity or
to pay respect to it in any way, was held to be open disrespect to the State.
The Christians' denial of the right of the State to make or enforce any laws
touching religion or men's relationship to God, was counted as an
undermining of the authority of government. As it was held that religion
was essential to the very existence of the State, and that the State for its own
sake, for its own self-preservation, must maintain proper respect for
religion; when Christianity denied the right of the State to exercise any
authority or jurisdiction whatever in religious things, it was held to be but a
denial of the right of the State to preserve itself.
Therefore when Christianity had become quite generally spread throughout
the empire, it seemed to such emperors as Marcus Aurelius, Decius,
Valerian, and Diocletian - emperors who most respected Roman institutions
- that the very existence of the empire was at stake. Consequently their
opposition to Christianity was but an effort to save the State, and was
considered by them as the most reasonable and laudable thing in the world.
And it was only as a matter of State policy that they issued edicts or
emphasized those already issued for the suppression of Christianity. In
making or enforcing laws against the Christians it was invariably the
purpose of these emperors to restore and to preserve the ancient dignity and
glory of the Roman State. In an inscription by Diocletian, it is distinctly
charged that by Christianity the State was being overturned, and his views
on this subject are seen in the following extract from one of his edicts: -
"The immortal gods have, by their providence, arranged and established
what is right. Many wise and good men are agreed that this should be
121
"Among other matters which we have devised for the benefit and common
advantage of our people, we have first determined to restore all things
according to the ancient laws and the public institutions of the Romans. And
to make provision for this, that also the Christians, who have left the
religion of their fathers, should return again to a good purpose and
resolution." *93
With persecution proceeding from these four sources, it is evident that from
the day that Christ sent forth his disciples to preach the gospel, the
Christians were not certain of a moment's peace. It might be that they could
live a considerable length of time unmolested; but yet they were at no time
sure that it would be so, because they were subject at all times to the spites
and caprices of individuals and the populace, and at any hour of the day or
night any Christian was liable to be arrested and prosecuted before the
tribunals, or to be made the butt of the capricious and violent temper of the
heathen populace.
Yet to no one of these sources more than another, could be attributed the
guilt or the dishonor of the persecution, because each one was but the
inevitable fruit of that system from which persecution is inseparable. The
theory which attaches blame to the emperors as the persecutors of the
Christians is a mistaken one, because the emperor was but the
representative, the embodiment, of the State itself. The State of Rome was a
system built up by the accumulated wisdom of all the Roman ages; and to
expect him whose chief pride was that he was a Roman, and who was
conscious that it was the highest possible honor to be a Roman emperor - to
expect such a one to defer to the views of a new and despised sect of
religionists whose doctrines were entirely antagonistic to the entire system
of which he was a representative, would be to expect more than Roman
pride would bear. As the case stood, to have done such a thing, would have
been to make himself one of the despised sect, or else the originator of
another one, worthy only, in the eyes of the populace, of the same contempt
as these. Of course we know now that the emperors should have done just
122
that thing, and they were told then that they ought to do it, but the fact is
nevertheless that Roman pride would not yield. Nor is this the only case of
the kind in the history of Christianity.
The theory that would make the governors responsible is likewise a
mistaken one, because the governors were simply the officers of the State
set over a particular province to conduct the affairs of the government and
to maintain the laws. It was not in their power to set aside the laws,
although as we have seen, some of them even went as far as possible in that
direction rather than cause the Christians to suffer by enforcing the law.
The only theory that will stand the test at all is that which places upon the
priests and the people the guilt of the persecutions. They were the ones who
did it from real bitterness of the persecuting spirit. And yet to attach all the
blame to these, would be a mistake, because it would have been impossible
for them to persecute had it not been for the system of government of which
they were a part.
Had the State been totally separated from religion, taking no cognizance of
it in any way whatever; had the State confined itself to its proper
jurisdiction, and used its power and authority to compel people to be civil
and to maintain
the public peace, it would have been impossible for either people, priests,
governors, or emperors, to be persecutors. Had there been no laws on the
subject of religion, no laws enforcing respect for the gods, nor prohibiting
the introduction of new religions, - even though religious controversies
might have arisen, and having arisen even had they engendered bitter
controversies and stirred up spiteful spirits, - it would have been impossible
for any party to do any manner of wrong to another.
Instead of this, however, the Roman government was a system in which
religion was inseparable from the State - a system in which the religion
recognized was held as essential to the very existence of the State; and the
laws which compelled respect to this religion were but the efforts of the
State at self-preservation. Therefore there was a system permanently
established, and an instrument formed, ready to be wielded by every one of
these agencies to persecute the professors of that religion.
Except in cases of the open violence of the mob, all that was done in any
instance by any of the agencies mentioned, was to enforce the law. If the
Christians had obeyed the laws, they never would have been persecuted.
But that was the very point at issue. It was not right to obey the laws. The
123
laws were wrong. To obey the laws was to cease to be a Christian. To obey
the laws was to dishonor God and to deny Christ. To obey the laws was to
consent that mankind should be deprived of the blessing of both civil and
religious liberty, as well as to forfeit for themselves eternal life.
If religion be properly a matter of State, and rightfully a subject of
legislation, then there never was any such thing as persecution of the
Christians. And what is more, there never has been in all history any such
thing as persecution on account of religion. If religion be properly a subject
of legislation and of law, then it is the right of the State to make any laws it
may choose on the subject of religion; and it is its right to attach to these
laws whatever penalty will most surely secure proper respect for the
religion chosen. And if the legislation be right, if the law be right, the
enforcement of the law under whatever penalty cannot be wrong.
Consequently if religion be properly a matter of the State, of legislation, and
of law, there never was and there never can be any such thing as persecution
on account of religion or for conscience' sake.
From all these evidences it is certain that the real blame and the real guilt of
the persecution of the Christians by the Roman empire lay in the pagan
theory of State and government - the union of religion and the State. This
was the theory of the State, and the only theory that then held sway, and this
necessarily embodied both a civil and a religious despotism. And as Jesus
Christ came into the world to set men free and to plant in their hearts and
minds the genuine principles of liberty, it was proper that he should
command that this message of freedom, and this principle of liberty, should
be proclaimed in all the world to every creature, even though it should meet
with the open hostility of earth's mightiest power. And proclaim it his
disciples did, at the expense of heavy privations and untold sufferings.
"Among the authentic records of pagan persecutions, there are histories
which display, perhaps more vividly than any other, both the depth of
cruelty to which human nature may sink, and the heroism of resistance it
may attain. . . . The most horrible recorded instances of torture were usually
inflicted, either by the populace or in their presence in the arena. We read of
Christians bound in chairs of red-hot iron, while the stench of their half-
consumed flesh rose in a suffocating cloud to heaven; of others who were
torn to the very bone by shells or hooks of iron; of holy virgins given over
to the lust of the gladiator, or to the mercies of the pander; of two hundred
and twenty-seven converts sent on one occasion to the mines, each with the
sinews of one leg severed by a red-hot iron, and with an eye scooped from
124
its socket; of fires so slow that the victims writhed for hours in their
agonies; of bodies torn limb from limb, or sprinkled with burning lead; of
mingled salt and vinegar poured over the flesh that was bleeding from the
rack; of tortures prolonged and varied through entire days. For the love of
their divine Master, for the cause they believed to be true, men, and even
weak girls, endured these things without flinching, when one word would
have freed them from their sufferings. No opinion we may form of the
proceedings of priests in a later age, should impair the reverence with which
we bend before the martyr's tomb." - Lecky. *94
All this was endured by men and women, and even weak girls, that people
in future ages might be free - free to worship according to the dictates of
their own consciences - free both civilly and religiously. All this was
endured in support of the principle that with religion civil government can
of right have nothing to do. Yet for two hundred and fifty years this contest
continued. On one side was the poor and despised, on the other the rich and
the honored. On one side was the apparently weak, yet really strong; on the
other the apparently powerful, yet really weak. On one side was a new
doctrine sustained by no earthly power, and without recognition; on the
other side was a system which was the outgrowth of ages, and supported by
all the resources of the mightiest empire that the world had ever known. Yet
it was the conflict of truth and right against error and wrong, of the power
of God against the power of the Roman State; and it was bound to conquer.
Two hundred and fifty years this contest continued, and then as the outcome
of the longest, the most wide-spread, and the most terrible persecution that
ever was inflicted by the Roman State, that empire was forced officially to
recognize the right of every man to worship as he pleased. Thus was
Christianity acknowledged to be victorious over all the power of Rome. The
rights of conscience were established, and the separation of religion and the
State was virtually complete.
Whatever men may hold Christianity to be, however they may view it,
whether as the glorious reality that it is, or only a myth; whether as the
manifestation of the truth of God, or only an invention of men; - it never
can be denied that from Christianity alone the world received that
inestimable boon, the rights of conscience; and the principle - invaluable
alike to religion, the State, and the individual - of the absolute, complete,
and total separation between the civil and the religious powers.
It never can be denied that Christianity was in the Roman empire in the first
and second centuries as really as it ever was at any time afterward. Marcus
125
Aurelius, Suetonius, Hadrian, Tactius, Tacitus, and Pliny, all give the most
unexceptionable testimony that it was there. And just as certainly as it was
there, so certainly did it proclaim the right of men to worship according to
the dictates of their own consciences, and that the State has not of right
anything to do with religion. And so certainly was there a prolonged and
terrible contest upon this issue. Therefore those who object to Christianity
while advocating the rights of conscience, and opposing a union of religion
and the State, contradict themselves and undermine the foundation upon
which they stand. Christianity is the glorious original of the rights of
conscience and of the individual. Jesus Christ was the first to announce it to
the world; and his disciples were the first to proclaim it to all men, and to
maintain it in behalf of all men in all future ages. George Bancroft states the
literal truth when he says: -
"No one thought of vindicating religion for the conscience of the individual,
till a voice in Judea, breaking day for the greatest epoch in the life of
humanity, by establishing a pure, spiritual, and universal religion for all
mankind, enjoined to render to Caesar only that which is Caesar's. The rule
was upheld during the infancy of the gospel for all men." *95
Therefore it is not too much to repeat that, from Christianity alone the world
has received that inestimable boon, the rights of conscience; and the
principle invaluable alike to religion, the State, and the individual - of the
absolute, complete, and total separation between the civil and the religions
powers.
Yet this victory of Christianity over Pagan Rome was no sooner won, and
the assured triumph of Christianity was no sooner at hand, than ambitions
bishops and political priests perverted it and destroyed the prospect of all its
splendid fruit. They seized upon the civil power, and by making the State
the servant of the church, established a despotism as much more cruel than
the one which had just been conquered, as the truth which was thus
perverted was higher, nobler, and more glorious than the evil system which
had been established in the blindness and error of paganism.
The system which had been conquered was that in which the State
recognizes and makes use of religion only for its political value, and only as
the servant of the State. This was paganism, and such a system is pagan
wherever found. The system which was established by the perversion of
Christianity and the splendid victory that it had won, was a system in which
the State is made the servant of the church, and in which the power of the
126
State is exercised to promote the interests of the church. This was the
papacy
And to tell the history of the perversion of Christianity, and the
establishment, and the support, of the papal despotism, is the purpose of the
following chapters of this book.
127
CHAPTER VI.
THE RISE OF CONSTANTINE.
DURING the eighty years occupied for the most part by the "dark,
unrelenting Tiberius, the furious Caligula, the feeble Claudius, the
profligate and cruel Nero, the beastly Vitellius, and the timid, inhuman
Domitian," "Rome groaned beneath an unremitting tyranny, which
exterminated the ancient families of the republic and was fatal to almost
every virtue, and every talent, that arose in that unhappy
period."-Gibbon.*96
This dreary scene was relieved by a respite of eighty-four years through the
successful reigns of Nerva, Trajan, Hadrian, Antoninus Pius, and Marcus
Aurelius; only to be opened up again by Commodus, A.D. 180, and to
continue unrelieved for more than one hundred years. It is useless to pursue
the subject in detail. Of this period it may be remarked as of one before, that
to attempt to follow it in detail, would be only "to record the mandates of
despotism, incessant accusations, faithless friendships, the ruin of
innocence; one unvarying repetition of causes terminating in the same
event, and presenting no novelty from their similarity and tiresome
reiteration."-Tacitus.*97
The inroads of the barbarians obliged the legions to be always stationed on
the frontier of the empire, all the way from the mouth of the Rhine to the
mouth of the Danube. Emperors were made and unmade by the soldiers
according to their own caprice, many of whom never saw the capital of their
empire; and the office was one so certainly to be terminated by murder that
although from Commodus to Constantine there were sixty men named as
emperor, only seven died a natural death; two - Decius and Valerian -
perished by the enemy; and all the rest were murdered in the internal strifes
of the failing empire.
DIOCLETIAN,
the commander of the imperial body-guard, was proclaimed emperor by the
troops September 17, 285. He organized system by which he wished to give
to the office of emperor a tenure more secure than that allowed by the
licentious caprice of the soldiery. He reigned alone only about six months,
128
the eastern fashion, the divinity of his lord and master." The two emperors
assumed not exactly crowns, but diadems, the first that had been worn by
Romans since the abolition of the kingly office. "The sumptuous robes of
Diocletian and his successors were of silk and gold, and it is remarked with
indignation, that even their shoes were studded with precious stones."
It is, however, as the author of the last and most terrible persecution of
Christianity by Pagan Rome - the last effort of the pagan State against the
freedom of thought and of worship taught by Christianity - that Diocletian
is chiefly known to the world, though strictly speaking he was not the
author of it.
Diocletian and Constantius were both friendly to the Christians, and had
many professed Christians in public offices. In considerable numbers they
were employed in Diocletians's palace; but Galerius and Maximian were
savagely opposed to every form of the Christian name. Galerius urged upon
Diocletian the issuing of a decree condemning Christianity. Diocletian
hesitated, but agreed to prohibit any Christian from holding any public
office or employment, and spoke strongly against the shedding of blood.
Galerius persuaded him to allow the calling of a council of the officers of
the State, the outcome of which was that on February 24, A.D. 303, a
"general edict of persecution was published; and though Diocletian, still
averse to the effusion of blood, had moderated the fury of Galerius, who
proposed that every one refusing to offer sacrifice should immediately be
burnt alive, the penalty inflicted on the obstinacy of the Christians might be
deemed sufficiently rigorous and effectual.
"It was enacted that their churches in all provinces of the empire should be
demolished to their foundations, and the punishment of death was
denounced against all who should presume to hold any secret assemblies for
the purpose of religious worship. The philosophers, who now assumed the
unworthy office of directing the blind zeal of persecution, had diligently
studied the nature and genius of the Christian religion; and as they were not
ignorant that the speculative doctrines of the faith were supposed to be
contained in the writings of the prophets, of the evangelists, and of the
apostles, they most probably suggested the order that the bishops and the
presbyters should deliver all their sacred books into the hands of the
magistrates, who were commanded under the severest penalties, to burn
them in a public and solemn manner. By the same edict the property of the
church was at once confiscated; and the several parts of which it might
consist, were either sold to the highest bidder, united to the imperial
130
offering the appointed sacrifice. This again was soon followed by an edict,
the fourth in the series, including the whole body of the Christians within
the provisions of the edicts which had preceded. Heavy penalties were
pronounced against all who should attempt to shield the Christians from the
force of the edicts.
"Many were burnt alive, and the tortures by which the persecutors sought to
shake their resolution were so dreadful that even such a death seemed an act
of mercy. The only province of the empire where the Christians were at
peace was Gaul, which had received its baptism of blood under Marcus
Aurelius, but was now governed by Constantius Chlorus, who protected
them from personal molestation, though he was compelled,in obedience to
the emperor, to destroy their churches. In Spain, which was also under the
government, but not under the direct inspection of Constantius, the
persecution was moderate, but in all other parts of the empire it raged with
fierceness, till the abdication of Diocletian in 305. This event almost
immediately restored peace to the western province, but greatly aggravated
the misfortunes of the Eastern Christians, who passed under the absolute
rule of Galerius. Horrible, varied and prolonged tortures were employed to
quell their fortitude, and their final resistance was crowned by the dreadful
of all deaths, roasting over a slow fire.
"It was not till A.D. 311, eight years after the commencement of the general
persecution, ten years after the first measure against the Christians, that the
Eastern persecution ceased. Galerius, the archenemy of the Christians, was
struck down by a fearful disease. His body, it is said became a mass of
loathsome and fetid sores - a living corpse, devoured by countless worms,
and exhaling the odor of a charnel-house. He who had shed so much
innocent blood, shrank himself from a Roman death. In his extreme anguish
he appealed in turn to physician after physician, and to temple after temple.
At last he relented towards the Christians. He issued a proclamation
restoring them to liberty, permitting them to rebuild their churches, and
asking their prayers for his recovery."- Leaky. *103
The edict of Galerius here referred to was as follows: -
"Among the important cares which have occupied our mind for the utility
and preservation of the empire, it was our intention to correct and re-
establish all things according to the ancient laws and public discipline of the
Romans. We were particularly desirous of reclaiming, into the way of
reason and nature, the deluded Christians, who had renounced the religion
and ceremonies instituted by their fathers; and presumptuously despising
133
sent to Galerius to announce to him the fact. Such a proceeding had not
been included in his plans, and Galerius threatened to burn both the letter
and the messenger who brought it. Constantine, however, at the head of the
legions of Britain, was in a position not to be despised. Galerius, therefore
decided to make the best of the situation. He recognized Constantine as the
successor of Constantius in that division of the empire, with the title of
Caesar, but fourth in rank, while he raised Severus to the dignity of
Augustus.
Just at this time there was another important move upon the stage of action.
The people of the city of Rome were greatly offended at the action of
Diocletian in removing the capital, and Galerius now took step that
deepened their sense of injury. A general census was begun to list all the
property of the Roman citizens for the purpose of levying a general tax.
Wherever there was any suspicion of concealment of any property, the
citizen was tortured to compel an honest statement of his possessions. Rome
had been exempt from taxation for nearly five hundred years, and when the
census takers began their work there, the injury which the people felt that
they had already suffered by the removal of their capital, was so deepened,
that they broke out into open revolt, and proclaimed Maxentius emperor,
October 28, A. D. 306. Maxentius was the son of Maximian. "The praefect
of the city and a few magistrates, who maintained their fidelity to Severus,
were massacred by the guards; and Maxentius, invested with the imperial
ornaments, was acknowledged by the applauding Senate and people as the
protector of the Roman freedom and dignity."-Gibbon.*106
At the invitation of Maxentius and the Senate, Maximian gladly left his
place of retirement, and again assumed the position of associate emperor.
Galerius ordered Severus, who was stationed at Milan, to march to Rome
and put down this rebellion. But when he reached the city, he found it so
well fortified and defended against him that he dared not attack it. Besides
this, a large number of his troops deserted him to their old commander
Maximian, and he was compelled, if he would save his life, to march back
again as fast as he could. He stopped at Ravenna, which was strongly
fortified, and where he had a large fleet. Maximian soon came up and began
a seige. Severus had found so little favor among the people of Italy, and had
been deserted by so large number of his troops, that Maximian found it an
easy task to convince him that there was a plan formed by the city of
Ravenna also, to betray him and deliver him up. By this means, and the
positive assurance that his life would be preserved, Severus was persuaded
135
to surrender. But no sooner was the city secured, than he found that the only
liberty that was left him was to kill himself.
February A. D. 307, Maximian went to Milan, took possession of his former
capital, and without waiting, crossed the Alps to meet Constantine, who was
then at Arles in Gaul. March 31 an alliance was formed. Constantine
married Maximian's daughter Fausta, and Maximian gave him the title of
Augusts. Galerius himself now undertook to punish the Romans for their
rebellion; but his experience was identical with that of Severus, only that he
was fortunate enough to escape with his life and some of his troops. In his
retreat, the enmity of the Romans was yet more deepened by the desolation
which his legions left in their train. "They murdered, they ravished, they
plundered, they drove away the flocks and herds of the Italians; they burnt
the villages through which they passed and they endeavored to destroy the
country which it had not been in their power to subdue."-Gibbon. *107
Galerius, not willing to recognize either Maxentius or Maximian, appointed
Licinius to the office of Augustus, November 11, 307, to fill the vacancy
caused by the death of Severus. Maximin, governor of Syria and Egypt,
with the title of Caesar, no sooner heard of the appointment of Licinius to
the title of Augustus, than he demanded of Galerius the same honor; and the
demand was made in a tone which in the existing condition of things
Galerius was compelled to respect. Thus at the beginning of the year 308,
"for the first, and indeed for the last, time the Roman world was
administered by six emperors." - Gibbon.*108
It was not however the purpose of these six emperors to administer the
Roman world together. Each one was determined to administer it alone.
Each one was jealous of all the others, and narrowly watched them all,
ready instantly to grasp and make the most of whatever opportunity might
present itself. The first two of the emperors between whom this mutual
jealousy produced an open quarrel, were Maximian and Maxentius.
Maxentius refused to acknowledge himself subordinate to his father, and his
father insisted that it was by his ability as a commander that Maxentius was
made secure in his claim to the dignity of emperor. The difference between
them was submitted to the troops for decision. They decided in favor of
Maxentius. Maximian left his son and Italy, and went to his son-in-law
Constantine, in Gaul, and there a second time he abdicated the imperial
dignity; but only that he might the more securely contrive new mischiefs.
Not long afterward an invasion of the Franks called Constantine and his
troops to the Rhine north of the Moselle. A report of the death of
136
Rome went to Constantine at Arles, and in the name of the Senate and
people requested him to deliver the city from the despotism of the tyrant.
Constantine gladly embraced the opportunity thus offered, and quickly set
out toward Rome.*109
At Turin he met and destroyed a strong body of the troops of Maxentius;
and at Verona after, a considerable siege of the city, and a hard-fought
battle in the field, which beginning in the afternoon, continued through the
whole of the following night, he vanquished quite a formidable army.
Between Verona and Rome there was nothing to check the march of
Constantine. Maxentius drew out his army, and met Constantine on the
banks of the Tiber, nine miles from Rome. He crossed the Tiber and set his
army in battle array, with the river in his rear. The battle was joined.
Maxentius was soon defeated; and his army, broken to pieces, attempted to
escape. In the confusion and by the terrible onslaught of Constantine's
veterans, thousands of the soldiers of Maxentius were crowded into the
river and drowned. Maxentius, endeavoring to escape on his horse across
the Milvian bridge, was crowded off into the river, and being clothed with
heavy armor, was drowned, October 28, A. D. 312.
In the month of March, 313, Constantine and Licinius met in Milan.
Constantine's sister Constantia was given in marriage to Licinius as a bond
of friendship between the two emperors. Maximin, on hearing of the death
of Maxentius, declared war against Licinius, and started with an army from
Syria toward Europe. He crossed the Bosphorus, captured Byzantium,
marched onward and took Heraclea. By this time Licinius himself had
arrived within eighteen miles of that place, and April 30 a battle was
fought,and Maximin was defeated. He himself, however, escaped, and in
the month of the following August, his life ended in a manner not certainly
known.
The edict of Galerius restoring to Christians the right to worship had had
little or no effect upon Maximin. In his dominions and by his direction the
persecutions had continued. Before Constantine and Licinius had seperated,
after their meeting at Milan in March, they jointly issued the celebrated
edict of Milan, which acknowledged the right for which Christianity had
contended for two hundred and fifty weary and painful years, by confirming
"to each individual of the Roman world the privilege of choosing and
professing his own religion." That edict is as follows: -
"Wherefore as I, Constantine Augustus, and I, Licinius Augustus came
under favorable auspices to Milan, and took under consideration all affairs
138
that pertained to the public benefit and welfare, these things among the rest
appeared to us to be most advantageous and profitable to all.
"We have resolved among the first things to ordain those matters by which
reverence and worship to the Deity might be exhibited. That is, how we
may grant likewise to the Christians, and to all the free choice to follow that
mode of worship which they may wish. That whatsoever divinity and
celestial power may exist, may be propitious to us and to 'all that live under
our government. Therefore, we have decreed the following ordinance as our
will, with a salutary and most correct in ten tion, that no freedom at all shall
be refused to Christians, to follow or to keep their observances or worship.
But that to each one power be granted to devote his mind to that worship
which he may think adapted to himself. That the Deity may in all things
exhibit to us his accustomed favor and kindness.
"It was just and consistent that we should write that this was our pleasure.
That all exceptions respecting the Christians being completely removed,
which were contained in the former epistle that we sent to your fidelity, and
whatever measures were wholly sinister and foreign to our mildness, that
these should be altogether annulled; and now that each one of the Christians
may freely and without molestation pursue and follow that course and
worship which he has proposed to himself: which, indeed, we have resolved
to communicate most fully to your care and diligence, that you may know
we have granted liberty and full freedom to the Christians, to observe their
own mode of worship which as your fidelity understands absolutely granted
to them by us, the privilege is also granted to others to pursue that worship
and religion they wish. Which it is obvious is consistent with the peace and
tranquillity of our times; that each may have the privilege to select and to
worship whatsoever divinity he pleases.But this has been done by us, that
we might not appear in any manner to detract anything from any manner of
religion, or any mode of worship." *110
If all the professors of Christianity had been content with this victory, and
had held the tide of events steadily to the principles of this edict,- the
principles for which Christianity had so long contended,- the miseries of the
ages to come would never have been.
Yet in order that we may enter upon the direct history of the perversion of
this victory,in such a way that it may be best understood, it is essential that
we trace two other lines of events that culminate in Constantine, and which
gave the most material force to that important series of movements which
made the papacy a success.
139
CHAPTER VII.
ANCIENT SUN WORSHIP.
consecrated a temple to the year, and to the months which divided it into
twelve parts, that is, to the twelve labors or victories which conducted
Hercules to immortality. It is under the name of Hercules Astrochyton, or
the god clothed with a mantle of stars, that the poet Nonnus designates the
sun, adored by the Tyrians. He is the same god,' observes the poet, `whom
different nations adore under a multitude of different names: Belus on the
bank of the Euphrates, Ammon in Libya, Apis at Memphis, Saturn in
Arabia, *112 Jupiter in Assyria, Serapis in Egypt, Helios among the
Babylonians, Apollo at Delphi,AEsculapius throughout Greece,' etc.
Martianus Capella in his hymn to the sun, as also Ausonius and Macrobius,
confirms the fact of this multiplicity of names given to a single star.
"The Egyptians, according to Plutarch, thought that Hercules had his seat in
the sun and that he traveled with it around the moon. The author of the
hymns ascribed to Orpheus. fixes still more strongly the identity of
Hercules with the sun. He calls Hercules the god who produced time whose
forms vary, the father of all things, and destroyer of all. He is the god who
brings back by turns Aurora and the night, and who, moving onward from
east to west, runs through the career of his twelve labors; the valiant Titan
who chases away maladies, and delivers man from the evils which afflict
him.'" - Anthom.*113
By whatever name or under whatever form the sun was worshiped, there
was always a female divnity associated with it. Sometimes this female was
the moon sometimes the earth, sometimes the atmosphere, and at other
times simply the female principle in nature. In other forms it was the idea of
a male and female blended in one, as in the case of Baalim. The female
sometimes appeared as the wife of the one with whom she was worshiped;
sometimes as both the sister and the wife, as in the case of Osiris; yet again
as the wife of some other god; and often not exactly as a wife at all, but
simply as a female associate. With Osiris was associated Isis; with Baal,
Ashtaroth, or Astarte; with Bel, Mylitta; with Shamas, Anunit; with Adonis,
Venus; with Hercules, Omphale; with Apollo, Diana; with Atys, Cybele.
Sometimes they were worshiped in the images of the male and female
human figure; sometimes in the form of a bull and a heifer, as in Osiris and
Isis; sometimes in a form in which the human and the beast were blended;
sometimes in a simple carved disc for the male, and a piece of carved wood
for the female, as in some forms of Baal and Astarte; sometimes in the form
of stones which had fallen from heaven, but mostly in the form of cones or
obelisks*114 which they themselves had shaped to represent the male, and
of other shapes to represent the female. And yet in unison with all these the
141
the perfect confusion of all relationships among the worshipers, even to the
mutual interchange of garments between the sexes. In the eighteenth chapter
of Leviticus there is a faithful record of such a result among the sun
worshipers of the land of Canaan whom the Lord caused to be blotted from
the earth. The prohibition in Deuteronomy xxii, *116 - "The woman shall
not wear that which pertaineth unto a man, neither shall a man put on a
woman's garment" - was aimed directly at this practice in sun worship.
The sacrifice of virginity was the most acceptable offering that ever could
be made in the worship of the sun. Indeed, until this sacrifice had been
made, no other offering was acceptable. One ancient writer saw the manner
of worship of Bel and Mylitta in Babylon, and has left a record of what he
saw. He says: -
"The Babylonians have one most shameful custom. Every woman born in
the country must once in her life go and sit down in the precinct of Venus,
and there consort with a stranger. . . . . Venus is called Mylitta by the
Assyrians." - Herodotus. *117
Baal-peor, by whose shameful worship Balaam succeeded in bringing evil
upon Israel when he failed in his own efforts to curse them, was the god
which in Moab presided over such characters as above described by
Herodotus in Babylon. This particular system of worship did not prevail
outside of Egypt and the Eastern nations. In Greece and Rome the worship
was through Bacchus, Hercules, Apollo, etc., and was more in the form of
festivals - mysteries - celebrated with obscene symbols and in most
lascivious rites. The rites of Bacchus are thus described: -
" The worship of Bacchus prevailed in almost all parts of Greece. Men and
women joined in his festivals dressed in Asiatic robes and bonnets, their
heads wreathed with vine and ivy leaves, with fawn skins flung over their
shoulders, and thyrsi or blunt spears twined with vine leaves, in their hands.
They ran through the country shouting Io Bacche ! Euoi ! Iacche ! etc.,
swinging their thyrsi, beating on drums, and sounding various instruments.
Indecent emblems were carried in procession, and the ceremonies often
assumed a most immoral character and tendency. The Woman, who bore a
chief part in these frantic revels, were called Bacchae Maenades Thyiades
Euades, etc. " - Anthon.*118
In the mysteries Bacchus was identified with Osiris, and was worshiped as
the sun. In India, Schiva and his worship were identical with Bacchus and
his worship. "The two systems of worship have the same obscenities, and
the same emblems of the generative power." - Anthon.*119 "An obscure
143
native of Greece brought first to Etruria, and shortly afterwards to the more
congenial soil of Rome, the mysterious orgies of Bacchus, which had
already obtained an infamous celebrity in the East. The horrible
wickednesses which were perpetrated at the initiations, at which the
passions of the youth of either sex were inflamed by wine and music,
secresy and security, had been practiced by the devotees without remorse
for some time, before they were discovered. . . . The Bacchanalia, though
constantly interdicted, continued to reappear in the city." - Merivale.*120
The worship of the Phrygian Cybele and Atys was common in Greece five
hundred years before Christ, and was introduced into Rome about 547 B.
C., when an embassy was sent to the king of Pergamus to ask for the stone
which represented Cybele, and which was said to have fallen from heaven.
The king gave up the stone, which was taken to Rome. A temple was built,
and a festival established in her honor. The festival was called Megalesia,
and was celebrated annually in the early part of April, and is thus described:
-
"Like Asiatic worship in general, that of Cybele was enthusiastic. Her
priests named Galli and Corybantes, ran about with dreadful cries and
howlings, beating on timbrels, clashing cymbals, sounding pipes, and
cutting their flesh with knives. The box-tree and cypress were considered as
sacred to her, as from the former she made the pipes, and Atys was said to
have been changed into the latter." - Anthon.*121
The universality of the worship of the sun in Hercules has been already
shown. Of the manner in which his worship was conducted, we have the
following account: -
"It seems to have been marked by an almost delirious sensuality. Married
and unmarried females prostituted themselves at the festival of the gods.
The two sexes changed their respective characters; and tradition reported
that Hercules himself had given an example of this, when, assuming the
vestments and occupation of a female, he subjected himself to the service of
the voluptuous Omphale. The Lydian Hercules was named Sandon, after the
robe dyed with sandyx, in which Omphalc had arrayed him, and which the
females of the country imitated in celebrating his licentious worship." -
Anthon.*122
In Rome and Italy, "The worship of Hercules was from an early date among
the most widely diffused; he was, to use the words of an ancient author,
adored in every hamlet of Italy, and altars were everywhere erected to him
in the streets of the cities and along the country roads." - Mommsen.*123
144
the pure worship of Jehovah. Yet in his later years Solomon turned from the
Lord, and "loved many strange women, together with daughter of Pharaoh,
women of the Moabites, Ammonites, Edomites, Zidonians, and Hittites; of
the nations concerning which the Lord said unto the children of Israel, Ye
shall not go in to them, neither shall they come in into you: for surely they
will turn away your heart after their gods: Solomon clave unto these in love.
And he had seven hundred wives, princesses, and three hundred
concubines: and his wives turned away his heart. For it came to pass when
Solomon was old, that his wives turned away his heart after other gods: and
his heart was not perfect with the Lord his God, as was the heart of David
his father. For Solomon went after Ashtaroth the goddess of the Zidonians,
and after Milcom the abomination of the Ammonites. And Solomon did evil
in the sight of the Lord and went not fully after the Lord, as did David his
father. Then did Solomon build a high place for Chemosh, the abomination
of Moab, in the hill that is before Jerusalem, and for Molech, the
abomination of the children of Ammon. And likewise did he for all his
strange wives, which burnt incense and sacrificed unto their gods." 1 Kings
xi, 1-8.
After the death of Solomon, the ten tribes separated themselves from Judah
and Benjamin, and under the kingship, and by the direction, of Jeroboam,
established a false worship through the two golden calves copied from
Egypt, one of which was placed in Bethel and the other in Dan. Each of the
successors of Jeroboam walked in the way of Jeroboam "and in his sin
wherewith he made Israel to sin," unto the time of Omri, who in this wicked
way "did worse than all that were before him." "And Ahab the son of Omri
did evil in the sight of the Lord above all that were before him. And it came
to pass as if it had been a light thing for him to walk in the sins of Jeroboam
the son of Nebat, that he took to wife Jezebel, the daughter of Ethbaal, king
of the Zidonians, and went and served Baal, and worshiped him. And he
reared up an altar for Baal in the house of Baal, which he had built in
Samaria. And Ahab made a grove; and Ahab did more to provoke the Lord
God of Israel to anger than all the kings of Israel that were before him." 1
Kings xvi, 30-33.
From this it is evident that as corrupt and degrading as was the worship
established by Jerobaoam, that of the sun was far worse. Ethbaal was a
priest of Baal and Astarte, who assassinated the king and made himself king
in his stead. Jezebel brought with her into Israel the worship of Baal and
Astarte,- the male and female sun, - and established it to such an extent that
in a few years there were four hundred and fifty prophets of Baal and four
146
hundred of Astarte, and only seven thousand people in all Israel who had
not joined in the wicked worship. Elijah began a reformation, but the
worship and the gods introduced by Jezebel remained in some measure till
the reign of Jehu, who gathered every worshiper of Baal to a general
assembly in honor of Baal, and slew them all. "And they brought forth the
images out of the house of Baal, and burned them. And they brake down the
image of Ball, and brake down the house of Baal, and made it a draught
house unto this day. Thus Jehu destroyed Baal out of Israel. Howbeit from
the sins of Jeroboam the son of Nebat, who made Israel to sin, Jehu
departed not from after them, to wit, the golden calves that were in Bethel
and that were in Dan." 2 Kings x, 26-29.
Athaliah, the daughter of Ahab and Jezebel, married Jehoram, the son of
Jehoshaphat king of Judah, and with her, sun worship through Baal and
Ashtaroth was introduced into the kingdom of Judah; for Jehoram "walked
in the way of the kings of Israel, as did the house of Ahab; for the daughter
of Ahab was his wife: and he did evil in the sight of the Lord." 2 Kings viii,
18. This worship of Baalim continued till the time of Hezekiah, who "brake
the images [sun images] in pieces, and cut down the groves [Ahseras,
representations of Ashtaroth], and threw-down the high places and the altars
out of all Judah and Benjamin." 2 Chron. xxxi, 1. By Manasseh, however,
this worship was all restored in its fullest extent; "for he built again the high
places which Hezekiah his father had broken down, and he reared up altars
for Baalim, and made groves, and worshiped all the host of heaven, and
served them. Also he built altars in the house of the Lord whereof the Lord
had said, In Jerusalem shall my name be forever. And he built altars for all
the host of heaven in the two courts of the house of the Lord. And he caused
his children to pass through the fire in the valley of the son Hinnom: also he
observed times and used enchantments, and used witchcraft, and dealt with
a familiar spirit, and with wizards: he wrought much evil in the sight of the
Lord, to provoke him to anger. And he set a carved image, the idol which he
had made in the house of God of which God had said to David and to
Solomon his son, In this house and in Jerusalem, which I have chosen
before all the tribes of Israel, will I put my name forever." 2 Chron. xxxiii,3-
7.
This image which he set in the house of the Lord was rather a double image
of Baal and Ashtaroth, which he put up above the altars of Baal in the house
of the Lord. The cloisters about the temple were used as stables for the
horses which were dedicated to the sun. By the side of the temple he built
147
houses for the priests and priestesses of the Baalim, where the women wove
hangings for the figures of Astarte.
Happily, Manasseh was succeeded by Josiah, who annihilated this whole
system. "For in the eighth year of his reign, while he was yet young, he
began to seek after the God of David his father : and in the twelfth year he
began to purge Judah and Jerusalem from the high places, and the groves,
and the carved images, and the molten images. And they brake down the
altars of Baalim in his presence; and the images that were on high above
them he cut down; and the groves, and the carved images, and the molten
images he brake in pieces and made dust of them, and strewed it upon the
graves of them that had sacrificed unto them."
"And he brake down the houses of the sodomites, that were by the house of
the Lord, where the women wove hangings for the grove. And he brought
all the priests out of the cities of Judah and defiled the high places where the
priests had burned incense, from Geba to Beer-sheba, and brake down the
high places of the gates that were in the entering in of the gate of Joshua,
the governor of the city, which were on a man's left hand at the gate of the
city. . . . And he defiled Topheth, which is the valley of the children of
Hinnom. that no man might make his son or his daughter to pass through
the fire to Molech. And he took away the horses that the kings of Judah had
given to the sun, at the entering in of the house of the Lord, by the chamber
of Nathan-melech the chamberlain, which was in the suburbs, and burned
the chariots of the sun with fire. And the altars that were on the top of the
upper chamber of Ahaz, which the kings of Judah had made, and the altars
which Manasseh had made in the two courts of the house of the Lord, did
the king beat down, and brake them down from thence, and cast the dust of
them into the brook Kidron." 2 Chron. xxxiv, 3,4 ; 2 Kings xxiii,7-12
Yet by the time that Zedekiah reigned, there was again a serious lapse not
tonly into certain forms of sun worship, but into the open worship of the
literal sun. Ezekiel was among the captives in Babylonia, and by the Spirit
of God he was taken in a vision to Jerusalem, and was caused to see the
abominations that were being practiced there. First, he was caused to see the
image of Jealousy in the very entry way to the altar of sacrifies, before the
house of the Lord.
He was told to turn, and he would see greater abominations than this. He
then saw, "and behold every form of creeping things, and abominable
beasts, and all the idols of the house of Israel, portrayed upon the wall
round about. And there stood before them seventy men of the ancients of
148
the house of Israel, and in the midst of them Stood Jaazaniah the son of
Shaphan, with every man his censer in his hand; and a thick cloud of
incense went up."
Again he was told to turn, and he would see yet greater abominations than
this that they were doing. He was then brought " to the door of the gate of
the Lord's house which was toward the north : and, behold, there sat women
weeping] for Tammuz."
And he was told to turn yet again, and he should see greater abominations
even than this. "And he brought me into the inner court of the Lord's house,
and, behold, at the door of the temple of the Lord, between the porch and
the altar, were about five and twenty men, with their backs toward the
temple of the Lord, and their faces toward the east, and they worshiped the
sun toward the east." Eze.viii,16.
All that is meant in this we cannot tell; but this much is certain, that, in the
estimate of Jehovah, as bad as was the worship of Astarte, and however
much it provoked to jealousy; as bad as was the worship of all manner of
abominable beasts; as bad as was the worship of Tammuz; yet worse than
all these, even though in them were embodied some forms of sun worship -
more abominable than all these was the setting of the face toward the east,
in the worship of the sun itself. This was to turn the back upon the Lord; to
leave him and his worship behind; and, in worshiping the visible sun, to
choose all that was included in all the forms of its worship that might be
known. This was open apostasy - the renunciation of all that was good and
the acceptance of all that was bad.
Now, aside from the lascivious rites of Bacchus and Hercules, and beyond
the fearful orgies of Cybele, this very form of worship prevailed in the
Roman empire. The worship of the sun itself was the principal worship of
the Romans in the time of Constantine. The sun, as represented in Apollo,
was the chief and patron divinity recognized by Augustus. "Apollo was the
patron of the spot which had given a name to his great victory of Actium;
Apollo himself, it was proclaimed, had fought for Rome and for Octavius
on that auspicious day; the same Apollo, the sun-god, had shuddered in his
bright career at the murder of the dictator, and had terrified the nations by
the eclipse of his divine countenance . . . . Besides building a splendid
temple to Apollo on the Palatine Hill, the emperor sought to honor him by
transplanting to the Circus Maximus, the sports of which were under his
special protection, an obelisk from Heliopolis [city of the sun] in Egypt.
149
This flame-shaped column was a symbol of the sun, and originally bore a
blazing orb upon its summit." - Merivale. *125
To Sol Deus invictus - the sun, the unconquerable god - were attributed the
world-wide conquests of the Roman power. The greatest and most
magnificent temple that ever was built on earth, except only that built by
Solomon, was erected by Antoninus Pius, emperor of Rome, at Baalbek, in
honor of the visible shining sun.
But it was in Elagabalus that the worship of the sun received its strongest
imperial impetus. The way that he became emperor was this : The emperor
Caracalla was murdered near Antioch, March 8, A.D. 217, and there
Macrinus became emperor in his stead. Caracalla's mother committed
suicide shortly afterward, and then Macrinus commanded Julia Maesa, her
sister, to leave Antioch with her family. She went to Emesa where a
considerable body of troops was stationed, and where was a temple of the
sun which the troops frequented in their worship. Julia's grandson,
Bassianus, was made high-priest of the sun in this temple. In this young
man the troops "recognized," or thought they recognized, the features of
Caracalla." Julia took particular pains, by the careful distribution of money,
to deepen this impression, and May 16,218, he was declared emperor by the
troops at Emesa. He asserted his hereditary right to the office because of his
relationship of Caracalla.
The rebellion rapidly spread among the troops throughout the province.
Officers who tried to check it were murdered, and the power of young
Bassianus daily grew.
Macrinus assembled his troops, and left Antioch to quell the insurrection. A
battle was fought, and Macrinus was slain, thus ending a reign of eighty-
seven days, and Bassianus became emperor in fact, June 7, A.D. 218. He
assumed the name of Marcus Aurelius Antoninus, and sent letters to the
Senate announcing his accession to the empire in the place of Macrinus. Not
being ready just then to go to Rome personally, he sent a picture of himself
which he commanded to be placed in the Senate house over the altar of
victory. "He was drawn in his sacerdotal robes of silk and gold, after the
loose flowing fashion of the Medes and Phenicians; his head was covered
with a lofty tiara, his numerous collars and bracelets were adorned with
gems of an inestimable value. His eyebrows were tinged with black, and his
cheeks painted with an artificial red and white." - Gibbon. *126 The name
under which the sun was worshiped at Emesa, where Bassianus was high-
priest, was Elagabalus. His accession to the office of emperor he attributed
150
CHAPTER VIII.
THE FALLING AWAY - THE GREAT APOSTASY.
troubled, neither by spirit, nor by word, nor by letter as from us, as that the
day of Christ is at hand. Let no man deceive you by any means: for that day
shall not come, except there come a falling away first, and that man of sin
be revealed, the son of perdition; who opposeth and exalteth himself above
all that is called God, or that is worshiped; so that he as God sitteth in the
temple of God, showing himself that he is God. Remember ye not, that,
when I was yet with you, I told you these things? And now ye know what
withholdeth that he might be revealed in his time. For the mystery of
iniquity doth already work: only he who now letteth will let, until he be
taken out of the way. And then shall that Wicked be revealed, whom the
Lord shall consume with the spirit of his mouth, and shall destroy with the
brightness of his coming." 2 Thess. ii, 1-8.
All this he had taught them when he was there with them, and therefore
reminded them, in the fifth verse, "Remember ye not, that, when I was yet
with you, I told you these things? Then, having recalled to their minds the
fact, he simply appeals to their knowledge, and says, "And now ye know
what withholdeth that he [the son of perdition] might be revealed in his
time." (This plainly sets forth the prophecy of a great falling away or
apostasy from the truth of the gospel. The purity of the gospel of Christ
would be corrupted and its intent perverted. The falling away of which Paul
wrote to the Thessalonians, is referred to in his counsel to the elder to the
church at Ephesns, whom he called to meet him at Miletus. To them he
said: "For I know this that after my departing shall grievous wolves enter in
among you, not sparing the flock. Also of your own selves shall men arise
speaking perverse things, to draw away disciples after them. Therefore
watch and remember that by the space of three years I ceased not to warn
every one night and day with tears." Acts xx, 29-31.
This warning was not alone to the people of Ephesus in the three years that
he was there. It is seen through all his epistles. Because of this readiness of
individuals to assert themselves, to get wrong views of the truth, and to
speak perverse things, the churches had constautly to be checked guided
trained, reproved, and rebuked. There were men even in the church who
were ever ready to question the authority of the apostles. There were those
who made it a business to follow up Paul, and by every possible means to
counteract his teaching and destroy his influence. They declared that he was
not an apostle of the Lord at all, but of men; that he had never seen the
Lord; that he was simply a tent maker going about over the country working
at his trade, and passing himself off as an apostle. Others charged him with
teaching the doctrine that it is right to do evil that good may come.
155
But it was not alone nor chiefly from these characters that the danger
threatened. It was those who from among the disciples would arise speaking
perverse things, of which an instance and a warning are given in the letter to
Timothy: "Study to show thyself approved unto God, a workman that
needeth not to be ashamed, rightly dividing the word of truth. But shun
profane and vain babblings; for they will increase unto more ungodliness.
And their word will eat as doth a canker; of whom is Hymeneus and
Philetus; who concerning the truth have erred, saying that the resurrection is
past already; and overthrow the faith of some." 2 Tim. ii, 15-18.
Nor yet was it with such as these that the greatest danger lay. It was from
those who would arise not only speaking perverse things, but "speaking
perverse things to draw away disciples after them." Through error of
judgment, a man might speak perverse things with no bad intention; but the
ones here mentioned would speak perverse things purposely and with the
intention of making disciples for themselves - to draw away disciples after
them instead of to draw disciples to Christ. These would pervert the truth
and would have to pervert the truth, in order to accomplish their purpose.
He who always speaks the truth as it is in Jesus, will draw disciples to Jesus
and not to himself. To draw to Christ will be his only wish. But when one
seeks to draw disciples to himself, and puts himself in the place of Christ,
then he must pervert the truth, and accommodate it to the wishes of those
whom he hopes to make his own disciples. This is wickedness; this is
apostasy.
There was another consideration which made the danger the more
imminent. These words were spoken to the bishops. It was a company of
bishops, to whom the apostle was speaking when he said: "Of your own
selves shall men arise speaking perverse things to draw away disciples after
them." From that order of men who were chosen to guide and to care for the
church of Christ, from those who were set to protect the church - from this
order of men there would be those who would pervert their calling, their
office, and the purpose of it, to build up themselves, and gather disciples to
themselves in the place of Christ. To watch this spirit, to check its
influence, and to guard against its workings, was constant effort of the
apostle; and for the reason as stated to the Thessalonians, that the mystery
of iniquity was already working. There were at that time elements abroad
which the apostle could plainly see would develop into all that the
Scriptures had announced. And scarcely were the last of the apostles dead
when the evil appeared in its practical workings.
156
No sooner were the apostles removed from the stage of action, no sooner
was their watchful attention gone, and their apostolic authority removed,
than this very thing appeared of which the apostle had spoken. Certain
bishops, in order to make easier the conversion of the heathen; to multiply
disciples, and by this increase their own influence and authority; began to
adopt heathen customs and forms.
When the canon of Scripture was closed, and the last of the apostles was
dead, the first century was gone; and within twenty years of that time the
perversion of the truth of Christ had become widespread. In the history of
this century and of this subject the record is, -
"It is certain that to religious worship, both public and private, many rites
were added, without necessity, and to the offense of sober and good men." -
Mosheim.*133
And the reason of this is stated to be that - "The Christians were pronounced
atheists, because they were destitute of temples, altars, victims, priests, and
all that pomp in which the vulgar suppose the essence of religion to consist.
For unenlightened persons are prone to estimate religion by what meets
their eyes. To silence this accusation, the Christian doctors thought it
necessary to introduce some external rites, which would strike the senses of
the people, so that they could maintain themselves really to possess all those
things of which Christians were charged with being destitute. though under
different forms." - Mosheim.*134
This was at once to accommodate the Christian worship and its forms to
that of the heathen, and almost at one step to heathenize Christianity. No
heathen element or form can be connected with Christianity or its worship,
and Christianity remain pure.
Of all the ceremonies of the heathen, the mysteries were the most sacred
and most universally practiced. Some mysteries were in honor of Bacchus,
some of Cybele, but the greatest of all, those considered the most sacred of
all and the most widely practiced, were the Eleusinian, so called because
celebrated at Eleusis in Greece. But whatever was the mystery that was
celebrated, there was always in it as an essential part of it, the elements of
abomination that characterized sun worship everywhere, because the
mysteries were simply forms of the wide-spread and multiform worship of
the sun. Among the first of the perversions of the Christian worship was to
give to its forms the title and air of the mysteries. For says the record: -
157
Among the Greeks and the people of the East, nothing was held more
sacred than what were called the mysteries. This circumstances led the
Christians, in order to impart dignity to their religion, to say that they also
had similar mysteries, or certain holy rites concealed from the vulgar and
they not only applied the terms used in the pagan mysteries to Christian
institutions, particularly baptism and the Lord's supper, but they gradually
introduced also the rites which were designated by those terms." -
Mosheim.*135
That this point may be more fully understood we shall give a sketch of the
Eleusinian mysteries. As we have stated, although there were others, these
were of such preeminence that they acquired the specific name by way of -
the mysteries. The festival was sacred to Ceres and Proserpine. Everything
about it contained a mystery, and was to be kept secret by the initiated.
"This mysterious secrecy was solemnly observed and enjoined on all the
votaries of the goddess; and if any one ever appeared at the celebration,
either intentionally or through ignorance, without proper introduction, he
was immediately punished with death. Persons of both sexes and all ages
were initiated at this solemnity, and it was looked upon so heinous one of
the heaviest accusations which contributed to the condemnation of Socrates.
The initiated were under the more particular care of the deities, and
therefore their lives were supposed to be attended with more happiness and
real security than those of other men. This benefit was not only granted
during life, but it extended beyond the grave, and they were honored with
the first places in the Elysian fields, while others were left to wallow in
perpetual filth and ignominy." - Anthon.*136
There were the greater and the lesser mysteries. The greater were the
Eleusinian in fact, and the lesser were invented, according to the
mythological story, because Hercules passed near Eleusis, where the greater
mysteries were celebrated, and desired to be initiated, but as he was a
stranger and therefore could not lawfully be admitted,a form of mysteries
was adopted into which he could be initiated. These were ever afterward
celebrated as the lesser, and were observed at Agrae. In the course of time
the lesser were made preparatory to the greater, and the candidate must be
initiated into these before he could be initiated into the greater. "No person
could be initiated at Eleusis without a previous purification at Agrae. This
purification they performed by keeping themselves pure, chaste, and
unpolluted during nine days, after which they came and offered sacrifices
and prayers, wearing garlands of flowers, and having under their feet
Jupiter's skin, which was the skin of a victim offered to that god. The person
158
who assisted was called Hudranos, from hudor, water, which was used at
the purification; and they themselves were called the initiated. A year after
the initiation at the less mysteries they sacrificed a sow to Ceres, and were
admitted into the greater, and the secrets of the festivals were solemnly
revealed to them, from which they were called inspectors.
"The initiation was performed in the following manner: The candidates,
crowned with myrtle, were admitted by night into a place called the
mystical temple, a vast and stupendous building. As they entered the
temple, they purified themselves by washing their hands in holy water, and
received for admonition that they were to come with a mind pure and
undefiled, without which the cleanliness of the body would be
unacceptable. After this the holy mysteries were read to them from a large
book called petroma, because made of two stones, Petrai, fitly cemented
together; and then the priest proposed to them certain questions, to which
they readily answered. After this, strange and fearful objects presented
themselves to their sight; the place often seemed to quake, and to appear
suddenly resplendent with fire, and immediately covered with gloomy
darkness and horror." - Anthon.*137 After initiation, the celebration lasted
nine days.
These mysteries, as well as those of Bacchus and others, were directly
related to the sun for "the most holy and perfect rite in the Eleusinian
Mysteries was to show an ear of corn mowed down in silence, and this was
a symbol of the Phrygian Atys." - "Encyclopedia Britannica."*138
The Phrygian Atys, as we have before shown, was simply the incarnation of
the sun, and the mysteries being a form of sun worship, the "sacred"
symbols cannot be described with decency. Having given in a previous
chapter the characteristics of the celebration of the worship of the sun, it is
not necessary to describe the actions that were performed in the celebration
of the mysteries that were performed in the celebration of the mysteries
after the initiation, any further than is spoken by the apostle with direct
reference to this subject. "Have no fellowship with the unfruitful works of
darkness, but rather reprove them. For it is a shame even to speak of those
things which are done of them in secret." Eph. v, 11, 12.
It was to accommodate the Christian worship to the minds of a people who
practiced these things that the bishops gave to the Christian ordinances the
name of mysteries. The Lord's supper was made the greater mystery,
baptism the lesser and the initiatory robe, and the celebration of the former.
After the heathen manner also a white garment was used as the initiatory
159
robe, and the candidate having been baptized, and thus initiatory robe, and
the candidate mysteries, was admitted into what was called in the church the
order of catechumens, in which order they remained a certain length of
time, as in the heathen celebration, before they were admitted to the
celebration of the Lord's supper, the greater mystery.
"This practice originated in the Eastern provinces, and then after the time of
Adrian (who first introduced the pagan mysteries among the Latins) it
spread among the Christians of the West." The reign of Hadrian was from
117-138. Therefore, before the second century was half gone, before the last
of the apostles had been dead forty years, this apostasy, this working of the
mystery of iniquity, had so largely spread over both the East and the West,
that it is literally true that "a large part, therefore, of the Christian
observances and institutions even in this century, had the aspect of the
pagan mysteries." - Mosheim.*139
Nor is this all. In the previous chapter we have abundantly shown the
worship of the sun to have been universal. These apostates not being
content with so much much of the sun worship as appeared in the
celebration of the mysteries, adopted the heathen custom of worshiping
toward the East. So says the history: -
"Before the coming of Christ, all the Eastern nations performed divine
worship with their faces turned to that part of the heavens where the sun
displays his rising beams. This custom was founded upon a general opinion
that God, whose essence they looked upon to be light, and whom they
considered as being circumscribed within certain limits, dwelt in that part of
the firmament from which he sends forth the sun, the bright image of his
benignity and glory. The Christian converts, indeed, rejected this gross error
[of supposing that God dwelt in that part of the firmament]; but they
retained the ancient and universal custom of worshiping toward the east,
which sprang from it. Nor is this custom abolished even in out times, but
still prevails in a great number of Christian churches." - Moscheim.*140
The next step in addition to this was the adoption of the day of the sun as a
festival day. To such an extent were the forms of sun worship practiced in
this apostasy, that before the close of the second century the heathen
themselves charged these so-called Christians with worshiping the sun. A
presbyter of the church of Carthage, then and now one of the "church
Fathers," who wrote about A. D. 200, considered it necessary to make a
defense of the practice, which he did to the following effect in an address to
the rulers and magistrates of the Roman empire: -
160
passover in remembrance of the death of Christ, the true passover; and this
was continued among those who from among the Gentiles had turned to
Christ. Accordingly the celebration was always on the passover day - the
fourteenth of the first month. Rome, however, and from her all the West,
adopted the day of the sun as the day of this celebration. According to the
Eastern custom, the celebration, being on the fourteenth day of the month,
would of course fall on different days of the week as the years revolved.
The rule of Rome was that the celebration must always be on a Sunday - the
Sunday nearest to the fourteenth day of the first month of the Jewish year.
And if the fourteenth day of that month should of the Jewish year. Sunday,
then the celebration was not to be held on that day, but upon the next
Sunday. One reason of this was not only to be as like heathen as possible,
but to be as unlike the Jews as possible: this, in order not only to facilitate
the "conversion" of the heathen by conforming to their customs, but also by
pandering to their spirit of contempt and hatred of the Jews. It was upon this
point that the bishop of Rome made his first open attempt at absolutism.
We know not precisely when this began, but it was practiced in Rome as
early as the time of Sixtus I, who was bishop of Rome A. D. 119-128. The
practice was promoted by his successors, and Anicetus, who was bishop of
Rome A. D. 157-168, "would neither conform to that [Eastern] custom
himself, nor-suffer any under his jurisdiction to conform to it, obliging them
to celebrate that solemnity on the Sunday next following the fourteenth of
the moon." - Bower.*143 In A. D. 160, Polycarp, bishop of Ephesus, made
a journey to Rome to consult with Anicetus about this question, though
nothing special came of the consultation. Victor, who was bishop of Rome
A. D. 192-202, likewise proposed to oblige only those under his jurisdiction
to conform to the practice of Rome; but he asserted jurisdiction over all, and
therefore presumed to command all.
Accordingly, after having taken the advice of some foreign bishops, he
wrote an imperious letter to the Asiatic prelates commanding them to
imitate the example of the Western Christians with respect to the time of
celebrating the festival of Easter. The Asiatics answered this lordly
requisition by the pen of Polycrates, bishop of Ephesus, who declared in
their name, with great spirit and resolution, that they would by no means
depart, in this manner, from the custom handed down to them by their
ancestors. Upon this the thunder of excommunication began to roar. Victor,
exasperated by this resolute answer of the Asiatic bishops, broke
communion with them, pronounced them unworthy of the name of his
162
brethren, and excluded them from all fellowship with the church of Rome."
- Mosheim.*144
In view of these things it will readily be seen that between paganism and
this kind of Christianity it soon became difficult to distinguish, and the third
century only went to make any distinction still more difficult to be
discerned.
In the latter part of the second century, there sprang up in Egypt a school of
pagan philosophy called the "Eclectic." The patrons of this school called
themselves "Eclectics" because they professed to be in search of truth alone,
and to be ready to adopt any tenet of any system in existence which seemed
to them to be agreeable to their ideas of truth. They held Plato to be the one
person above all others who had attained the nearest to truth in the greatest
number of points. Hence they were also called "Platonists."
"This philosophy was adopted by such of the learned at Alexandria, as
wished to be accounted Christians, and yet to retain the name, the garb, and
the rank of philosophers. In particular, all those who in this century presided
in the schools of the Christians at Alexandria, Athenagoras, Pantaenus, and
Clemens Alexandrinus, are said to have approved of it. These men were
persuaded that true philosophy, the great and most salutary gift of God, lay
in scattered fragments among all the sects of philosophers; and therefore,
that it was the duty of every wise man and especially of a Christian teacher,
to collect those fragments from all quarters, and to use them for the defense
of religion and the confutation of impiety. Yet this selection of opinions did
not prevent them from regarding Plato as wiser than all the rest, and as
especially remarkable for treating the Deity, the soul, and things remote
from sense, so as to suit the Christian scheme." - Mosheim.*145
In the end of the second century, and especially in the first forty-one years
of the third, there flourished in Alexandria one of these would-be-
philosophers - Ammonius Saccas by name - who gave a turn to the
philosophy of the Eclectics, which caused his sect to be called the New
Platonists. The difference between the Eclectics and the system founded by
Ammonius was this: The Eclectics held, as above stated, that in every
system of thought in the world there was some truth, but mixed with error,
their task being to select from all these to form one harmonious system.
Ammonius held that when the truth was known, all sects had the same
identical system of truth; that the differences among them were caused
simply by the different ways of stating that truth; and that the proper task of
the philosopher was to find such a means of stating the truth that all should
163
be able to understand it, and so each one understand all the others. This was
to be accomplished by a system of allegorizing and mystification, by which
anybody could get whatever he wanted out of any writing that might come
to his notice.
One of the earliest attaches to this philosophy from among those who
professed to be Christians, was Clement of Alexandria, who became the
head of that kind of school at Alexandria. These philosophers "believed the
language of Scripture to contain two meanings; the one obvious, and
corresponding with the direct import of the words; the other recondite, and
concealed under the words, like a nut by the shell. The former they
neglected, as of little value, their study chiefly being to extract the latter: in
other words, they were more intent on throwing obscurity over the sacred
writings, by the fictions of their own imaginations, than on searching out
their true meanings. Some also, and this is stated especially of Clement,
accommodated the divine oracles to the precepts of philosophy." -
Mosheim.*146
The following highly edifying explanation by Clement, of the Scripture
relating to the fish which Peter caught, will illustrate this system of
interpretation: -
"That fish then which, at the command of the Lord. Peter caught points to
digestible and God-given and moderate food. And by those who rise from
the water to the bait of righteousness, he admonishes us to take away luxury
and avarice, as the coin from the fish; in order that he might displace
vainglory; and by giving the stater to the taxgatherers and rendering the
Caesar the things which are Caesar's might preserve to God the things
which are God's. The stater is capable of other explanations not unknown to
us, but the present is not a suitable occasion for their treatment. Let the
mention we make for our present purpose suffice, as it is not unsuitable to
the flowers of the Word; and we have often done this, drawing to the urgent
point of the question the most beneficial fountain, in order to water those
who have been planted by the Word."*147
And this, of the Saviour's miracle of turning the water into wine, also helps
to an understanding of the excellent wisdom of this philosophy: -
"He gave life to the watery element of the meaning of the law, filling with
his blood the doer of it who is of Adam, that is, the whole world; supplying
piety with drink from the vine of truth, the mixture of the old law and of the
new word, in order to the fulfillment of the predestined time."*148
164
Of the benefits children will derive from a starvation diet, he gives this
valuable instruction: -
"They say that the bodies of children, when shooting up to their height, are
made to grow right by deficiency in nourishment. For then the spirit, which
pervades the body in order to its growth, is not checked by abundance of
food obstructing the freedom of its course."*149
The close resemblance between the pagan philosophy and that of the New
Platonists is illustrated by the fact that but one of the classes concerned
could tell to which of them Ammonius Saccas belonged. The pagans
generally regarded him a pagan. His own kind of Christians counted him a
good Christian all his life. The genuine Christians all knew that he was a
pagan, and that the truth of the whole matter was that he was a pretended
Christian "who adopted with such dexterity the doctrines of the pagan
philosophy as to appear a Christian to the Christians, and a pagan to the
pagans."*150 He died A. D. 241.
Clement is supposed to have died about A. D. 220, and the fame and
influence which he had acquired - and it was considerable - was far
outshone by Origen, who had been taught by both Clement and Ammonius.
Origen imbibed all the allegorical and mystifying processes of both
Ammonius and Clement, and multiplied upon them from his own wild
imagination. He was not content with finding two meanings in the
Scriptures as those before him, but took the secondary sense, the hidden
meaning, and added to it four additional meanings of his own. His system
then stood thus: First, All scripture contains two meanings, the literal and
the hidden. Second, This hidden sense has within itself two meanings, the
moral and the mystical. Third, The mystical has within it yet two other
meanings, the allegorical and the anagogical. According to this method of
mysticism, therefore, in every passage of Scripture there are at least three
meanings, and there may be any number from three to six.
His explanation of it is this: First, Man is composed of three parts, a rational
mind, a sensitive soul, and a visible body. The Scriptures resemble man,
and therefore have a three-fold sense; (a) a literal sense which corresponds
to the body; (b) a moral sense corresponding to the soul; and (c) a mystical
sense which corresponds to the mind. Second, As the body is the baser part
of man, so the literal is the baser sense of Scripture; and as the body often
betrays good men into sin, so the literal sense of Scripture often leads into
error. Therefore, those who would see more in the Scripture than common
people could see, must search out this hidden meaning, and yet further must
165
search in that hidden meaning for the moral sense. And those who would be
perfect must carry their search yet farther, and beyond this moral sense
which they found in the hidden meaning they must find the mystical sense,
with its additional train of allegorical and anagogical senses.
As in this system of philosophy the body of man was a clog to the soul and
hindered it in its heavenly aspirations, and was therefore to be despised, and
by punishment and starvation was to be separated as far as possible from the
soul, it followed that the literal sense of Scripture, which corresponded to
man's body likewise, was a hinderance to the proper understanding of all the
hidden meanings of the Scripture, and was to be despised and separated as
far as possible from the hidden sense, and counted of the least possible
worth. Accordingly, one of the first principles of this teaching was the
following: -
"The source of many evils lies in adhering to the carnal or external part of
Scripture. Those who do so will not attain to the kingdom of God. Let us
therefore seek after the spirit and substantial fruit of the word, which are
hidden and mysterious." - Origen. *151
And the next step was but the logical result of this; namely: -
"The Scriptures are of little use to those who understand them as they are
written." - Origen. *152
By such a system as this it is evident that any one could find whatever he
pleased in any passage of Scripture, and that the Scripture could be made to
support any doctrine that was ever invented by the wildest fancy of the
veriest fanatic. Even though the doctrine might be flatly contradictory to the
Scripture, the Scripture could be made fully to agree with and teach the
doctrine.
From this sketch of Platonism as held by Origen, the essential truth of the
following passage will be readily seen : -
"This new species of philosophy, imprudently adopted by Origen and other
Christians, did immense harm to Christianity. For it led the teachers of it to
involve in philosophic obscurity many parts of our religion, which were in
themselves plain and easy to be understood; and to add to the precepts of
the Saviour no few things, of which not a word can be found in the Holy
Scriptures. . . . It recommended to Christians various foolish and useless
rites, suited only to nourish superstition, no small part of which we see
religiously observed by many even to the present day. And finally it
alienated the minds of many, in the following centuries, from Christianity
166
time." - Milman. *156 His reign was also too short to accomplish anything
beyond his own individual example. But the same tendency went rapidly
forward.
On the side of philosophy and the apostasy, the progress was continuous
and rapid. About the middle of this century, Origen and Celsus, a pagan
philosopher, held a protracted discussion upon the respective merits of the
pagan and the Christian philosophy. And the standing of the two systems at
this time, is well described in the following statement: -
"Heathenism, as interpreted by philosophy, almost found favor with some
of the more moderate Christian apologists. . . . The Christians endeavored to
enlist the earlier philosophers in their cause; they were scarcely content with
asserting that the nobler Grecian philosophy might be designed to prepare
the human mind for the reception of Christianity; they were almost inclined
to endow these sages with a kind of prophetic foreknowledge of its more
mysterious doctrines. `I have explained,' says the Christian in Minucius
Felix, `the opinions of almost all the philosophers, whose most illustrious
glory it is that they have worshiped one God, though under various names;
so that one might suppose either that the Christians of the present day are
philosophers, or that the philosophers of old were already Christians.'
"These advances on the part of Christianity were more than met by
paganism. The hesthen religion, which prevailed at least among the more
enlightened pagans during this period, . . . was almost as different from that
of the older Greeks and Romans, or even that which prevailed at the
commencement of the empire, as it was from Christianity. . . . On the great
elementary principle of Christianity, the unity of the supreme God, this
approximation had long been silently made. Celsus, in his celebrated
controversy with Origen, asserts that this philosophical notion of the Deity
is perfectly reconcilable with paganism." - Milman. *157
The emperor Decius, having no sympathy with any religion, philosophy, or
morality, but that of the old original Roman, did his best to restore it
throughout the empire. Hence the persecution, as described in Chapter IV of
this book. Valerian followed closely the course marked out by Decius; but
in the forty years of peace to religion, from the edict of toleration by
Gallienus to the edict of persecution by Diocletian, all these elements
worked steadily forward in the same general direction. Of the progress of
the apostasy during this time, we have a powerful illustration in the practice
of Gregory Thaumaturgus, the "wonder-worker."
168
Gregory was a pupil and a convert of Origen's. Origen strongly urged him
"to devote his acquirements in heathen science and learning, to the
elucidation of the Scriptures." When he left Origen's school at Alexandria,
he returned to Pontus, and became bishop of Neo Caesarea, A. D. 240 to
270, and how fully he followed the advice of Origen is shown by the
following: -
"`When Gregory perceived that the ignorant multitude persisted in their
idolatry, on account of the pleasures and sensual gratiflcations which they
enjoyed at the pagan festivals, he granted them a permission to indulge
themselves in the like pleasures, in celebrating the memory of the holy
martyrs, hoping that, in process of time, they would return of their own
accord, to a more virtuous and regular course of life.' There is no sort of
doubt that, by this permission, Gregory allowed the Christians to dance,
sport, and feast at the tombs of the martyrs, upon their respective festivals,
and to do everything
which the pagans were accustomed to in their temples, during the feasts
celebrated in honor of their gods." - Mosheim. *158
Neo Caesarea was one of the most important cities in Pontus. Yet so
diligently did Gregory thus employ the talents committed to him by Origen,
that it is related of him that whereas "there were said to be only seventeen
Christians in the whole city when he first entered it as bishop, there were
said to be only seventeen pagans in it at the time of his death." *159 It is
manifest, however, from Gregory's practice, that those who were by him
brought to the Christian name were as much pagan as before except in the
mere matter of the name.
In the time of Diocletian, that which was known as paganism was so far
different from the original paganism of Rome that Milman plainly
designates it as the "new paganism." This new paganism was so little
removed from the apostate form of Christianity which we have traced, as
really to differ from it only in name. The standing of the two systems at the
accession of Diocletian is thus described : -
"Among the cares of his administration, he by no means neglected the
purification of the ancient religions. In paganism itself, that silent but
manifest change of which we have already noticed the commencement, had
been creeping on. . . . This new paganism, as has been observed, arose out
of the alliance of the philosophy and the religion of the old world. These
once implacable adversaries had reconciled their differences, and coalesced
against the common enemy. Christianity itself had no slight influence upon
169
the formation of the new system; and now an Eastern element, more and
more strongly dominant, mingled with the whole, and lent it, as it were, a
visible object of worship. From Christianity, the new paganism had adopted
the unity of the Deity, and scrupled not to degrade all the gods of the older
world into subordinate demons or ministers. The Christians had
incautiously held the same language: both concurred in the name of
demons; but the pagans used the term in the Platonic sense, as good but
subordinate spirits, while the same term spoke to the Christian ear as
expressive of malignant and diabolic agency. But the Jupiter Optimus
Maximums was not the great Supreme of the new system. The universal
deity of the East, the sun, to the philosophic was the emblem or
representative; to the vulgar, the Deity. Diocletian himself, though he paid
so much deference to the older faith as to assume the title of Jovius, as
belonging to the lord of the world, yet, on his accession, when he would
exculpate himself from all concern in the murder of his predecessor,
Numerian, appealed in the face of the army to the all-seeing deity of the
sun. It is the oracle of Apollo of Miletus, consulted by the hesitating
emperor, which is to decide the fate of Christianity. The metaphorical
language of Christianity had unconsciously lent strength to this new
adversary; and, in adoring the visible orb, some, no doubt, supposed that
they were not departing far from the worship of the `Sun of
Righteousness.'" - Milman. *160
Diocletain himself really contemplated the same fusion of all religions into
one, with the sun as the one great universal deity, which Elagabalus had
contemplated in his day; but by Galerius and the leading philosopher of the
new paganism, he was persuaded to use all the power of the State in the
effort to make paganism alone supreme over and against every form and
every profession of the Christian name. The result, however, was as already
related, that Galerius was compelled to issue a public edict confessing his
failure.
Then came Constantine, the best imperial representative of the new
paganism, and the most devout worshiper of the sun as the supreme and
universal deity, with the avowed purpose, as expressed in his own words,
"First to bring the diverse judgments formed by all nations respecting the
Deity to a condition, as it were, of settled uniformity." In Constantine the
new paganism met its ideal and the New Platonism - the apostate,
paganized, sun worshiping form of Christianity - met its long-wished-for
instrument. In him the two streams met. In him the aspiration of Elagabalus,
the hope of Ammonius Saccas and Origen, and the ambition of the
170
CHAPTER IX.
THE EXALTATION OF THE BISHOPRIC.
THE Scripture was fulfilled; there had come a falling away. But that there
should come a falling away, was not all of the story - through that falling
away there was to be revealed "that man of sin," "the son of perdition," "the
mystery of iniquity," "that wicked," who would oppose and exalt himself
above all that is called God or that is worshiped; and who, when he did
appear, would continue even till that great and notable event - the second
coming of the Lord Jesus Christ.
Referring again to the scripture quoted from 2 Thessalonians ii, 2, at the
beginning of the previous chapter, it is seen that self-exaltation is the spring
of the development of this power.
As that scripture expresses it, "He opposeth and exalteth himself." As
another scripture gives it, "He shall magnify himself in his heart." And
another, "He magnified himself even to the prince of the host" - the Lord
Jesus Christ. And yet another, "He shall also stand up against the Prince of
princes." That is, he shall reign, or assert authority above, and in opposition
to, the authority of Christ; or, as the thought is developed by Paul, this
power would oppose and exalt itself above all that is called God or that is
worshiped, so that he as God sitteth in the temple - the place of worship - of
God, showing himself that he is God.
Referring also again to the instruction of Paul to the elders who met him at
Miletus, there is seen a prophecy of this same spirit of self-exaltation, - a
wish to gain disciples to themselves instead of to Christ. They would prefer
themselves to Christ, thus at once putting themselves above him, in
opposition to him. And this would be developed from among the bishops.
"Of your own selves shall men arise, speaking perverse things, to draw
away disciples after them."
This spirit was actively manifested in opposition to the apostle John while
he was yet alive, for he says: "I wrote unto the church; but Diotrephes, who
loveth to have the pre-eminence among them, receiveth us not." 3 John 9.
This assertion of pre-eminence was shown in prating against the apostle
with malicious words, and not only rejecting him, but casting out of the
church those members who would receive him. It was but a little while after
172
the living authority of the apostles was gone, before this was carried to yet
further extremes.
According to the word of Christ, there is no such thing as pre-eminence, or
mastership, or sovereignty of position, among men in the church. There was
once an argument among his disciples as to who should be counted the
greatest, and Jesus called them unto him and said: "Ye know that they
which are accounted to rule over the Gentiles exercise lordship over them;
and their great ones exercise authority upon them. But so shall it not be
among you: but whosoever will be great among you, shall be your minister:
and whosoever among you will be the chiefest, shall be servant of all. For
even the Son on man came not to be ministered unto, but to minister, and to
give his life a ransom for many." Mark x, 42-45.
And in warning his disciples of all times against the practice of the scribes
and Pharisees of that time, who were but the popes of their day, he says they
"love the uppermost rooms at feasts, and the chief seats in the synagogues,
and greetings in the markets, and to be called of men, Rabbi, Rabbi. But be
not ye called Rabbi: for one is your master, even Christ; and all ye are
brethren....Neither be ye called masters: for one is your master, even Christ.
But he that is greatest among you shall be your servant. And whosoever
shall exalt himself shall be abased; and he that shall humble himself shall be
exalted." Matt. xxiii, 6-12.
With these instructions the apostles went forth under the great commission
of Christ, preaching everywhere that with the Lord there is no respect of
persons, but that all are equal before God. There is neither lordship nor
over-lordship among men in the church of Christ; but all are brethren.
Christ only is the head of the church, and the head of every man in the
church.
In the church each member has the same rights as any other member; but
for the good of all and the mutual benefit of all concerned, as well as better
to carry on his work in the world, the Lord has established his church, and
with it a system of church order in which certain ones are chosen to exercise
certain functions for the mutual benefit of all in the organization. These
officers are chosen from among the membership by the voice of the
membership. Of these officers there are two classes, and two only, - bishops
and deacons. This is shown by Paul's letter to the Philippians - "Paul and
Timotheus, the servants of Jesus Christ, to all the saints in Christ Jesus
which are at Philippi, with the bishops and deacons." Chap.i 1.
173
Bishops are sometimes called elders; but the same office is always
signified. When Paul gave directions to Titus in this matter, he said : "For
this cause left I thee in Crete, that thou shouldest set in order the things that
are wanting, and ordainelders in every city, as I had appointed thee if any be
blameless. . . . For abishop must be blameless, as the steward of God." Titus
i, 5-7.
This is further shown in Acts xx, to which we have before referred; when
Paul had called unto him to Miletus "theelders of the church" of Ephesus,
among other things he said to them: "Take heed therefore unto yourselves,
and to all the flock, over the which the Holy Ghost hath made you
overseers," - episkopoi - bishops.
Peter also writes to the same effect: "The elders which are among you I
exhort, who am also an elder, and a witness of the sufferings of Christ, and
also a partaker of the glory that shall be revealed: Feed the flock of God
which is among you, taking the oversight thereof, not by constraint, but
willingly; not for filthy lucre, but of a ready mind; neither as being lords
over God's heritage, but being ensamples to the flock." 1 Peter v, 1-3.
This text not only shows that the terms "elder" and "bishop" refer to the
same identical office, but it shows that Peter counted himself as one among
them; and that not only by his precept but by his example he showed that in
this office, although overseers they were not overrulers or lords.
The true idea on this point has been clearly stated as follows: -
"It has been said that the pope, the bishops, the priests, and all those who
people convents, form the spiritual or ecclesiastical estate; and that princes,
nobles, citizens, and peasants form the secular or lay estate. This is a
specious tale But let no man be alarmed. All Christians belong to the
spiritual estate; and the only difference between them is in the functions
which they fulfill. We have all but one baptism, but one faith; and these
constitute the spiritual man. Unction, tonsure, ordination, consecration,
given by the pope, or by a bishop,may make a hypocrite, but can never
make a spiritual man. We are all consecrated priests by baptism, as St. Peter
says: `You are a roval priesthood;' although all do not actually perform the
offices of kings and priests, because no one can assume what is common to
all without the common consent. But if this consecration of God did not
belong to us, the unction of the pope could not make a single priest. If ten
brothers, the sons of one king, and possessing equal claims to his
inheritance, should choose one of their number to administer for them, they
would all be kings, and yet only one of them would be the administrator of
174
In support of these three orders among the "clergy," it was claimed that they
came in proper succession from the high-priests, the priests, and the Levites
of the Levitical law. "Accordingly, the bishops considered themselves as
invested with a rank and character similar to those of the high-priest among
the Jews, while the presbyters represented the priests, and the deacons the
Levites." - Mosheim.*164
These distinctions were established as early as the middle of the second
century. This led to a further and most wicked invention. As they were now
priests and Levites after the order of the priesthood of the former
dispensation, it was necessary that they also should have a sacrifice to offer.
Accordingly, the Lord's supper was turned into "the unbloody sacrifice."
Thus arose that which is still in the Roman Catholic Church the daily
"sacrifice" of the mass. "The comparison of the Christian oblations with the
Jewish victims and sacrifices, produced many unnecessary rites, and by
degrees corrupted the very doctrine of the holy supper, which was
converted, sooner, in fact, than one would think, into a sacrifice."
-Mosheim.*165 With this also came a splendor in dress, copied from that of
the former real priesthood.
The estimate in which the bishop was now held may be gathered from the
following words of a document of the second century: -
"It is manifest, therefore, that we should look upon the bishop even as we
would upon the Lord himself." "It is well to reverence both God and the
bishop. He who honors the bishop has been honored of God; he who does
anything without the knowledge of the bishop, does (in reality) serve the
devil." - Ignatius.*166
The next step was for certain bishops to assert authority over other bishops;
and the plea upon which this was claimed as a right, was that the bishops of
those churches which had been established by the apostles were of right to
be considered as superior to all others. Furthermore it was claimed that in
those churches the true doctrine of Christ had been preserved in the greatest
purity. As the bishops of those churches claimed to be the repositories of
the true doctrine, whenever any question arose upon any matter of doctrine
or interpretation of the scripture, appeal was made to the bishop of the
nearest apostolic church. As Rome was the capital of the empire, and as the
church there claimed direct descent not only from one but from two
apostles, it soon came to pass that the church of Rome claimed to be the
source of true doctrine, and the bishop of that church to be supreme over all
other bishops. In the latter part of the second century, during the episcopate
176
starving in the church. They sought to possess money in hoards, they seized
estates by crafty deceits, they increased their gains by multiplying usuries."
- Cyprian.*168
As the bishopric became more exalted, and arrogated to itself more
authority, the office became an object of unworthy ambition and unholy
aspiration. Arrogance characterized those who were in power, and envy
those who were not. And whenever a vacancy occurred, unseemly and
wholly unchristian strife arose among rival presbyters for the vacant seat.
"The deacons, beholding the presbyters thus deserting their functions,
boldly invaded their rights and privileges; and the effects of a corrupt
ambition were spread through every rank of the sacred order." -
Mosheim.*169
Cornelius became bishop of Rome, A. D. 251. A presbyter of the same
church aspired to the same office, and was supported by a considerable
party in the church, and also by five other presbyters. He wrote letters to
Cyprian, bishop of Carthage, charging Cornelius with heinous sins.
Cornelius also wrote about the same time to Cyprian, who thus learning of
the division in the church of Rome, called together in council the bishops of
his province, and they sent two of their number with letters to Rome to
inquire into the trouble. The church in Rome immediately sent letters in
answer to the bishops in Africa, assuring them that Cornelius had been
properly chosen, and was worthy of the situation. The two messengers
returning, also confirmed the testimony of the letters by a report of their
own investigations. Upon this the African bishops sent Cornelius a series of
resolutions which they had adopted in the council lately held, with respect
to those who denied the faith in the time of the persecution by Decius, to the
effect that all such should not be excluded forever from the church, but
should be admitted after doing sufficient penance - those who had bought
exemption in the time of persecution being obliged to do longer penance
than others: - and if while doing penance they should come suddenly to the
point of death, they should be received into the church at once.
Upon receiving the resolutions, Cornelius called a council of sixty bishops,
and a large number from the other orders of the clergy. Amoung them was
Novatian, who had been opposed to Cornelius for the office of bishop. In
the council he likewise opposed the resolution sent up from Africa. He
maintained that all who had yielded in the time of persecution ought never
again to be admitted to the church upon any terms whatever. The majority,
however, was against him, and he himself was turned out of the church.
178
Upon this he joined with a presbyter by the name of Novatus, who had been
turned out of the church at Carthage, and the followers of the two together
agreed to ordain Novatian a bishop in Rome. Novatian immediately set
himself in opposition to Cornelius. This party then sent letters to the other
churches round about, informing them of the ordination of Novatian, and
exhorting them not to communicate with any who had in any way denied
the faith under persecution. Cornelius also at the same time wrote to other
bishops informing them that the ordination of Novatian was irregular. Thus
the division and the controversy spread farther and farther.
While this was going on in Rome, there was also a division in the church of
Carthage, where a certain Felicissimus had been excommunicated, whose
party also had elected a bishop of their own, by the name of Fortunatus.
Felicissimus went to Rome, hoping to win Cornelius to his side, and the
messengers of Novatian went to Carthage to gain the favor of Cyprian and
the bishops of Africa to their side. But Cyprian stood by the bishop of
Rome, and carried with him the bishops of Africa. Novatian sent yet other
messengers into Africa, who diligently worked up partisans there, and it
was not long before they secured the ordination of some of their party as
bishops. These newly ordained bishops asserted their right to exercise the
office of bishop over churches connected with the church of Rome, instead
of the regular bishops of those churches. This increased the confusion,
which spread finally throughout the provinces of Africa. This became a
matter of great perplexity to Cornelius. As both parties were continually
sending their letters, and messengers, and embassies, to him , and as both
made the same claims, it was very difficult for him to decide who were the
regular Catholic bishops. But Cyprian, to relieve this perplexity, drew up a
list of all the Catholic bishops in the African provinces, and sent it to
Cornelius at Rome.
These discussions gave an opportunity for the further assertion of the
dignity and authority of the bishopric. Cyprian," the representative of the
episcopal system" (Neander *170), declared that -
"The church is founded upon the bishops, and every act of the church is
controlled by these same rulers." Whence you ought to know that the bishop
is in the church, and the church is the bishop; and if any one be not with the
bishop, that he is not in the church."*171
He insisted that God made the bishops and the bishops made the deacons,
and argued thus: - "But if we [bishops] may dare anything against God who
179
makes bishops, deacons may also dare against us by whom they are
made."*172
"The epistle of Cyprian to Cornelius, bishop of Rome, shows the height to
which the episcopal power had aspired before the religion of Christ had
become that of the Roman empire. The passages of the Old Testament, and
even of the New, in which honor or deference is paid to the Hebrew
pontificate, are recited in profuse detail; implicit obedience is demanded for
the priest of God, who is the sole infallible judge or delegate of Christ." - ;
Milman.*173
Cornelius was succeeded in the bishopric of Rome by Lucius, who was put
to death in less than six months, and was succeeded by Stephen, A. D. 253
to 253. Soon after Stephen's election, the bishop of Lyons in Gaul wrote to
inform him that the bishop of Arles had adopted the views and discipline of
Novatian. He also wrote to Cyprian to the same effect. About the same time
a question involving much the same point was causing a difficulty in Spain.
There two bishops, Basilides and Martial, had been deposed by a council of
bishops, and two others were appointed in their places. They were both
charged with surrendering the Scriptures in the time of persecution.
Basilides went to Rome to secure the support of the bishop of Rome in his
desire to be re-instated. In this he succeeded, and returned to Spain, and
there exercised his office as bishop as he had formerly done, and Martial
followed his example. Then the bishops of Spain sent letters and deputies to
Carthage, asking the advice and help of the African bishops; and the
deputies whom they sent were the two bishops whom they had put in the
place of Basilides and Martial. A council of twenty-eight bishops was held
in Carthage, presided over by Cyprian. Having only a one-sided view of the
case, as the bisip of Rome had had the other side they indorsed the action of
the church of Spain, and decided that Basilides and Martial ought not to be
acknowledged as bishops; that it was not lawful to commune with them;
and that whosoever should do so ought to be excommunicated.
Not long afterward, there arose another subject of controversy, which
caused much contention with far-reaching consequences. As the bishops
arrogated to themselves more and more authority, both in discipline and
doctrine, "heretics" increased. Whosoever might disagree with the bishop,
was at once branded as a heretic, and was cut off from his communion, as
Diotrephes had counted as a heretic even the apostle John. Upon this point
the representative of the episcopal system further declared: - "Neither have
heresies arisen, nor have schisms originated, from any other source than
180
from this, that God's priest is not obeyed; nor do they consider that there is
one person for the time priest in the church, and for the time judge in the
stead of Christ; whom, if according to divine teaching,the whole fraternity
should obey, no one would stir up anything against the college of priests; no
one, after the divine judgment, after the suffrage of the people, after the
consent of the Co-bishops, would make himself a judge, not now of the
bishop, but of God. No one would rend the church by a division of the unity
of Christ."- Cyprian.*174
He therefore argued that if any person was outside of this system of
episcopal unity, and was not obedient to the bishop, this was all the
evidence necessary to demonstrate that he was a heretic. Consequently he
declared that no one ought "even to be inquisitive as to what" any one
"teaches, so long as he teaches out of the pale of unity."*175 In this way the
truth itself could easily be made heresy.
By this system, "heretics" soon became numerous, and, as many persons
were changing their residence from place to place, a question was raised
whether baptism by heretics was valid. Some bishops of important churches
held that it was, others held that it was not. Yet up to this time all bishops
and churches were allowed to decide this for themselves. A council of
bishops in Africa and Numidia, about the beginning of the third century,
had established in those provinces the discipline that all heretics must be re-
baptized when applying for admission to any of those churches. This
practice was also adopted in Cappadocia, Galatia, Phrygia, Cilicia, and
neighboring provinces, by a council held at Iconium in Phrygia, A. D. 230.
Pontus and Egypt followed the same course, but Italy, Gaul, and Spain held,
on the contrary, that baptism by heretics was valid, it mattered not what the
heresy might be.
Thus stood the question when Stephen became bishop of Rome. Soon after
the difficulty with the Spanish bishops, some bishops of Numidia and
Mauritania sent in quiries to Cyprian, raising anew the question of baptism
by heretics. A council of seventy-one bishops was held at Carthage, which
declared that the practice of re-baptizing should be invariably followed. The
council sent a letter to Stephen of Rome, reporting their decision, and
asking him to agree with it. Stephen answered the council by letter in which
he first called particular attention to the great dignity of the bishopric of
Rome, and the honor which it derived from its succession to the apostle
Peter. Next he informed them that he absolutely rejected and condemned
their decrees. He then threatened to cut off from his communion all who
181
should presume to disobey by re-baptizing any heretics, and finally not only
ordered Cyprian to change his opinion on the subject, and practice
accordingly, but declared him to be "a false Christ,"a "false apostle," and a
"deceitful workman."
On receipt of Stephen's letter, Cyprian called another council of eighty-five
bishops, which met September 1, A. D. 256. The council canvassed the
whole subject anew, came to their original conclusion, and again sent word
by messengers to Stephen, who not only refused to receive them at all, but
forbade all the church of Rome either to receive or entertain them in any
manner. He then proceeded to execute his threat, and excommunicated the
whole council, and whoever held the same opinion as the council. This
excluded from his communion the bishops of Africa, Numidia, Mauritania,
Egypt, Cilicia, Galatia, and Cappadocia. He endeavored by a letter,
however, to win the bishop of Alexandria to his view, but failed.
Cyprian wrote to Firmilian, bishop of Caesarea in Cappadocia, telling him
of Stephen's conduct. In reply Firmilian wrote to Cyprian a letter in which
he compared Stephen to Judas Iscariot, and branded him as "inhuman,"
"audacious," "insolent," "wicket," "impious," "schismatic," "a defamer of
Peter and Paul," and "worse than all heretics." This Firmilian is pronounced
"one of the most eminent prelates at that time in the church, both for piety
and learning;" but Cyprian was not far behind him and Stephen in eminence
for this kind of piety. For he wrote to the bishop of Sobrata a letter in which
he charged Stephen
with "pride and impertinence, self-contradiction and ignorance, with
indifference, obstinacy, and childishness," and called him "a favorer and
abettor of heretics against the church of God." - Bower.*176 Stephen died
August 2, A. D. 257, and thus was stopped the generous flow of pious
phrases.
Stephen was succeeded by Sixtus II, who held the office about a year, and
was put to death in the persecution under Valerian. He was succeeded July
22, A. D. 259, by Dionysius. At this time there was another Dionysius, who
was bishop of Alexandria, and who had entered into a certain controversy
with Sabellius upon the subject of the trinity. In the arguments which he
published, some persons thought they discovered heresy, and reported it to
the bishop of Rome, who called a council of the bishops of Italy, and
requested Dionysius to answer the accusation and give an explanation of his
faith. Dionysius addressed to the bishop of Rome a "confutation and
182
indulging in luxury and surfeiting; that although men around him were
groaning and lamenting because of these things, they were so much afraid
of his tyranny and power that they did not venture to accuse him; and
finally, that all these things might be borne with in the hope of correcting
the evil, were it not that he had trifled away the sacred mystery, and paraded
his execrable heresy.*177
On account of Paul's heresy, a council of eighty bishops was assembled at
Antioch. Paul was excommunicated, pronounced deposed from the
bishopric, and the council on their own authority appointed a successor.
Their assumed authority to appoint a successor without consulting the
membership of the church of Antioch, caused yet a larger number to take
sides with Paul, because such proceeding was decidedly irregular.
At this time Zenobia was queen of the East, and with her Paul was rather a
favorite. Under her protection and upon the irregularity of the proceedings
of the council, he openly for four years defied the decrees of the council,
and held his place as bishop of Antioch. When Aurelian, in A. D. 270, went
to the East to dethrone Zenobia, the bishops appealed to him to enforce their
decrees and remove Paul. Aurelian referred the case for decision to the
bishops of Rome and Italy. Before this controversy was ended, Dionysius
died, and his successor, Felix, decided against Paul. Then according to the
decree that Aurelian had already pronounced, Paul was removed from the
office and emoluments of the bishopric of Antioch.
We do not know whether the charges brought against Paul were all true or
not, as those who made the charges were all his enemies. But whether they
were true or not, is not particularly important; because if they were true, it is
not to the credit of the bishopric of that time, for they clearly involve other
bishops in the most serious moral delinquencies of Paul. On the other hand
if the charges were not true, then that a company of eighty bishops should
falsely make such charges, is scarcely less to the credit of the bishopric of
the time, than the other would be if it were true.
In either case, therefore, it is certain that the statement of Eusebius of the
condition of the bishopric in 302, when the Diocletian persecution began, is
strictly true. "They were sunk in negligence and sloth, one envying and
reviling another in different ways, and almost on the point of taking up arms
against each other, and were assailing each other with words as with darts
and spears, prelates inveighing against prelates, and people rising up against
people, and hypocrisy and dissimulation had arisen to the greatest height of
malignity." Also some who appeared to be pastors were inflamed against
184
each other with mutual strifes, only accumulating quarrels and threats,
rivalship, hostility, and hatred to each other, only anxious to assert the
government as a kind of sovereignty for themselves.
The Scripture was fulfilled. Therehadcome a falling away; there was a self-
exaltation of the bishopric; and THE TIME WAS COME WHEN THE
MAN OF SIN SHOULD BE REVEALED.
185
CHAPTER X.
THE RELIGION OF CONSTANTINE.
MUCH research and great effort has been made to discover the time of
Constantine's conversion to Christianity. One writer dates it at his accession
in 306, another in 312, another in 321, yet another not till 323, and still
another about 327. Others put it at his death-bed baptism, while still others
insist that he never was a Christian. When he became a Christian, or
whether he ever did, is an interesting question even at this time, and we
propose to set forth as fully as in our power lies, facts by which any person
can decide this question.
We have already given the history of Constantine's accession and onward to
the defeat of Maxentius. We have also shown that at the time of his
accession to the throne he was a devout worshiper of the sun. We have
related how an incursion of the Franks into Gaul drew him from Arles to the
Rhine, and gave Maximian an opportunity to usurp the imperial authority in
his absence; and how he was called by this usurpation from his war with the
Franks to save his own imperial authority. As he was about to return to the
Rhine to enter again upon the war with the Franks, he received the
intelligence that they had retired from Gaul to their own country: and to
express his gratitude - A. D. 308 - he gave public thanks in a celebrated
temple of Apollo, probably a Autun (Augustodunum), and presented a
magnificent offering to the god." - Neander. *178
We have also shown how events rapidly culminated in the war between him
and Maxentius, and of his attitude toward Christians, as expressed in the
Edict of Milan. "Up to this period, all that we know of Constantine's
religion would imply that he was outwardly, and even zealously, pagan. In a
public oration, his panegyrist extols the magnificence of his offerings to the
gods. His victorious presence was not merely expected to restore more than
their former splendor to the Gaulish cities ruined by barbaric incursions, but
sumptuous temples were to arise at his bidding, to propitiate the deities,
particularly Apollo, his tutelary god. The medals struck for these victories
are covered with the symbols of paganism." - Milman. *179
But about the latter part of the year 311 of early in 312, there certainly came
such a change in his mind as to lead him to favor Christianity. The
influences that caused this change will be more fully set forth hereafter. In
186
this place it is necessary merely to say that there was enmity between him
and Galerius, which of itself naturally threw Constantine into opposition to
the plans and ambitions of that emperor. Galerius had done all that he could
to keep Constantine from escaping from the dominions of Diocletian to
those of Constantius. Constantine knew that the purpose of Galerius in this
was nothing but evil, if not death, to him. By extraordinary speed he
defeated the scheme of Galerius in this, and when he was made emperor in
Britain, as we have seen, the purposes of Galerius were almost wholly
disconcerted. This, we repeat, naturally made Constantine an opponent of
the plans of Galerius. Therefore when Galerius spent his strongest efforts in
behalf of the pagan party in the State, Constantine naturally leaned toward
the other. In this also ha had the example of his humane father, who,
although not able to defeat wholly the edicts of persecution, greatly
modified their effects. Another thing that influenced him in this direction
was because, as he himself said, -
"My father revered the Christian God, and uniformly prospered. while the
emperors who worshiped the beathen gods, died a miserable death;
therefore, that I may enjoy a happy life and reign I will imitate the example
of my father, and join myself to the cause of the Christians, who are
growing daily, while the heathen are diminishing." *180
And "this low utilitarian consideration weighed heavily in the mind of an
the ambitious captain, who looked forward to the highest seat of power
within the gift of his age." - Schaff. *181 It is manifest that the only
consideration that operated upon his mind at this time was this utilitarian
one, and that whatever favor he felt toward Christians so far was merely as
a matter of policy, with the hope that by this he might be aided in his
aspirations to the sole rulership of the empire. This is confirmed by another
in these words: -
"But to Constantine himself, if at this time Christianity had obtained any
hold upon his mind, it was now the Christianity of the warrior, as
subsequently it was that of the statesman. It was the military commander
who availed himself of the assistance of any tutelar divinity who might
insure success to his daring enterprise." - Milman.*182
Such was his attitude toward Christianity before the defeat of Maxentius.
Nor was there afterward any material change, either in his profession or his
character. In the same manner as the cruel emperors before him, at the
defeat of Maxentius, not content with the death of that emperor himself and
a large number of his adherents, he executed vengeance also on his infant
187
son. "Utterly devoid of faith in anything else except himself and his own
destiny, unyielding in that ambition to exercise dominion, which nerved
him for the doubtful war against Maxentius, he regarded both mankind and
religion with pity and contempt, and sought to rule men for their good and
his own glory, by means of any faith which they might prefer; and hence, as
Christianity became more known and popular, he identified himself with it
more and more, only in order to foster any agency which seemed to be
available in the work of consolidating the warring factions of the empire,
and securing the permanency of his throne." - The Author of Arius the
Libyan.
At what time he made the labarum is not certainly known ; but whenever it
was, it was simply another instance of his policy in pretending to favor the
church party while still retaining his paganism. For when he constructed the
labarum, he simply "changed the heathen labarum into a standard of the
Christian cross with the Greek monogram of Christ, which he had also put
upon the shields of his soldiers." "On the top of the shaft was a crown
composed of gold and precious stones, and containing the monogram of
Christ; and just under this crown was a likeness of the emperor and his sons
in gold." - Schaff.*183
That by this emblem Constantine intended to profess to the church party his
alliance with them, is evident, yet, he did not propose to forsake his
paganism; for the object in placing there the likenesses of himself and sons
was that they might be worshiped by the pagan part of his army. This is
confirmed in the following words :
"Even in the labarum, if the initiated eyes of the Christian soldierly could
discern the sacred of Christ indistinctly glittering above the cross, there
appeared, either embossed on the beam below or embroidered on the square
purple banner which depended from it, the bust of the emperor and those of
his family, to whom the heathen part of his army might pay their homage of
veneration." "And so, for the first time, the meek and peaceful Jesus became
the God of battle; and the cross, the holy sign of Christian redemption,a
banner of bloody strife." - Milmun.*184
In honor of his triumph over Maxentius, a statue of himself was erected in
the Roman forum - A. D. 316. In his right hand was the labarum with the
inscription, -
"By virtue of this salutary sign, which is the true symbol of valor, I have
preserved and liberated your city from the yoke of tyranny." - Euselius.*185
188
sun-god. . . . The problem before him was to legislate for the new faith in
such a manner as not to seem entirely inconsistent with his old practices,
and not to come in conflict with the prejudices of his pagan subjects. These
facts serve to explain the peculiarities of this decree. He names the holy
day, not the Lord's day, but the `day of the sun' the heathen designation, and
thus at once seems to ulentify it with his former Apollo-worship." - Rev.
Geo. Elliott. *188
Another excellent authority remarks upon this as follows:
"It is the day of sun, which is to be observed by the general veneration. The
courts were to be closed, and the noise and tumult of public business and
legal litigation were no longer to violate the repose of the sacred day. But
the believer in the new paganism, of which the solar worship was the
characteristic, might acquiesce without scruple in the sanctity of the first
day of the week." - Milman.*189
And yet another adds the following pointed testimony: -
"The same tenacious adherence to the ancient god of light has left its trace,
even to our own time, on one of the most sacred and universal of Christian
institutions. The retention of the old pagan name of Dies Solis or `Sunday'
for the weekly Christian festival, is, in great measure, owing to the union of
pagan and Christian sentiment with which the first day of the week was
recommended by Constantine to his subjects, pagan and Christian alike, as
the `venerable day of the sun.' . . . .It was his mode of harmonizing the
discordant religions of the empire under one common institution." -
Stanley.*190
The next day after issuing this Sunday law, that is, March 8, A. D. 321, he
published another edict, in which he "expressly ordains, that whenever
lightning should strike the imperial palace or any other public building, the
haruspices, according to ancient usage, should be consulted as to what it
might signify, and a careful report of the answer should be drawn up for his
use." And by yet another " law of the same year, he declares also the
employment of heathen magic, for good ends, as for the prevention or
healing of diseases, for the protection of harvests, for the prevention of rain
and of hail, to be permitted, and in such expressions, too, as certainly betray
a faith in the efficacy of these pretended supernatural means, unless the
whole is to be ascribed simply to the legal forms of paganism." -
Neander.*191
190
Nor yet did he stop here. "This was only the first act of the domestic
tragedy: the death of the emperor's wife Fausta, the partner of twenty years
of wedlock, the mother of his three surviving sons, increased the general
horror. She was suffocated in a bath which had been heated to an
insupportable degree of temperature." "The tragedy which took place in the
family of Constantine betrayed to the surprised and anxious world that, if
his outward demeanor showed respect or veneration for Christianity, its
milder doctrines had made little impression on the unsoftened paganism of
his heart." – Milman*197
Shortly after this, Constantine's mother went to Jerusalem on a pilgrimage
to recover the holy places, and to build churches upon them. She carried a
letter from Constantine to Macarius, bishop of Jerusalem, in which he stated
that it was always his "first and only object to excite all minds to the
observation of the holy law with alacrity and diligence proportioned to the
brightness of the manifestation which is thrown by new miracles upon the
truth of the faith, day by day:" and that it was his " most intense desire to
erect beautiful edifices" upon that spot which had been consecrated " by the
sufferings of our Lord, who thus brought faith to light."*198
Helena was said to be about eighty years old at this time, and tale was
invented, and one hundred years later became a matter of history, that she
discovered the tomb in which the Saviour had been buried; that in it were
found all three of the crosses that were used on the day of the crucifixion,
the nails that were used in the crucifixion of the Saviour, and the tablet
which Pilate had caused to be put upon the cross of the Saviour. But nobody
could tell which was the true cross. Yet says the fable :
"From this trouble she was shortly relieved by Macarius, bishop of
Jerusalem, whose faith solved the doubt, for he sought a sign from God and
obtained it. The sign was this: A certain woman of the neighborhood, who
had been long afflicted with disease, was now just at the that point of death.
The bishop therefore ordered that each of the crosses should be applied to
the dying woman, believing that she would be healed upon being touched
by the precious cross. Nor was he disappointed in his expectation : for the
two crosses having been applied which were not the Lord's the woman still
continued in a dying state; but when the third, Which was the true cross,
touched her, she was immediately healed, and recovered her former
strength. In this manner then was the genuine cross discovered. The
emperor's mother erected over the place of the sepulcher a magnificent
church, and named it New Jerusalem, having built it opposite to that old and
193
deserted city. There she left a portion of the cross, inclosed in a silver case,
as a memorial to those who might wish to see it. The other part she sent to
the emperor, who, being persuaded that the city would be perfectly secure
where that relic should be preserved, privately inclosed it in his own statue,
wich stands on a large column of porphyry in the forum called
Constantince's at Constantinople. I have written this from report indeed; but
almost all the inhabitants of Constantinople affirm that it is true. Moreover,
Constantine caused the nails with which Christ's hands were fastened to the
cross (for his mother having found these also in the sepulcher had sent
them) to be converted into bridle bits and helmet, which he used in his
military expeditions." - Socrates.*199
From this it would seem that by this time he would be ready to stand by the
profession of Christianity alone, but such was not the case; for in A. D. 328,
when he traced the limits and laid the foundation of his projected new city
of Constantinople, he held the same ambiguous course as formerly, and
accordingly "issued an imperial edict announcing to the world that
Constantine by the command of God had founded the eternal city." "But
however the Deity might have intimated his injunctions to commence the
work, or whatever the nature of the invisible guide which, as he declared,
thus directed his steps, this vague appeal to the Deity would impress with
the same respect all his subjects, and by its impartial ambiguity offend
none. In earlier times the pagans would have bowed down in homage before
this manifestation of the nameless tutelar deity of the new city; at the
present period, they had become familiarized, as it were, with the
concentration of Olympus into one Supreme Being. The Christians would,
of course, assert the exclusive right of the one true God to the appellation,
and attribute to his inspiration and guidance every important act of the
Christian emperor." - Milman.*200
Yet a little later his actions seemed to indicate that he had reverted to
paganism alone; for when in A. D. 330 the actual work of building the city
was inaugurated, the "ancient ritual of Roman paganism contained a solemn
ceremony, which dedicated a new city to the protection of the Deity"
(Milman*201), and Sopater, a Neoplatonic heathen, "assisted with his
heathen ceremonies at the consecration." - Stanley.*202
However, in building the city he fully acquitted himself in the estimation of
both pagans and Catholics. For while he erected magnificent edifices for the
Catholic Church, he also set up the images of the pagan deities "in all the
public places of Constantinople. If the inhabitants were not encouraged, at
194
least they were not forbidden, to pay divine honors to the immortal
sculptures of Phidias and Praxiteles, which were brought from all quarters
to adorn the squares and baths of Byzantium. The whole Roman world
contributed to the splendor of Constantinople. The tutelar deities of all the
cities of Greece (their influence, of course, much enfeebled by their removal
from their local sanctuaries) were assembled, - the Minerva of Lyndus, the
Cybele of Mount Dindymus (which was said to have been placed there by
the Argonauts), the muses of Helicon, the
Amphitrite of Rhodes, the Pan consecrated by united Greece after the defeat
of the Persians, the Delphic Tripod. The Diocuri [Castor and Pollux]
overlooked the Hippodrome." - Milman.*203
When in 334 the city was finished, and he ;would celebrate its completion,
"the ceremonial of the dedication was attended by still more dubious
circumstances. After a most splendid exhibition of chariot games in the
Hippodrome, the emperor moved in a magnificent car through the most
public part of the city, encircled by all his guards in the attire of a religious
ceremonial, and bearing torches in their hands. The emperor himself held a
golden statue of the Fortune of the city in his hands. An imperial edict
enacted the annual celebration of this rite. On the birthday of the city, the
gilded statue of himself, thus bearing the same golden image of Fortune,
was annually to be led through the Hippodrome to the foot of the imperial
throne, and to receive the adoration of the reigning emperor." -
Milman.*204
Yet it seems as though he considered this not enough. When he had
besieged Licinius at this place, he had pitched his tent on a certain hill. In
the building of the city he chose that spot for the principal forum at one end
of which was a statue of Cybele, and at the other the goddess of Fortune, the
patroness of the new city. In the center of the forum he planted a column,
the pedestal of which was of white marble twenty feet high. Upon this were
set, one upon another, ten pieces of "porphyry, each of each measured about
ten feet in height and about thirty-three in circumference," making the pillar
in all about one hundred and twenty feet in height. On the top of this pillar,
Constantine placed a colossal bronze statue of Apollo, with the figure of his
own head upon it, and round about the crown like the rays of the sun were
the nails of "the true cross," which his mother had sent to him from
Jerusalem. The full account of this is well given by another, and is of
sufficient importance in this connection to be quoted in full: -
195
of Tyre to examine further into some questions that were raised in the
trinitarian controversy. Yet all this time he was still keeping about him that
Sopater who had assisted with the heathen ceremonials at the foundation of
Constantinople. Sopater was so openly favored by Constantine that the
church party grew jealous and quite alarmed for fear they should lose their
emperor altogether.*206
In A. D. 337 Constantine was taken with a serious illness, and being
satisfied that he was about to die, he called for an Arian bishop, and was
baptized. Then "he was clothed in robes of dazzling whiteness; his couch
was covered with white also: in the white robes of baptism, on a white
deathbed, he lay, in expectation of his end. . . . At noon on Whit-Sunday,
the 22nd of May, in the sixty-fourth year of his age, and the thirty-first of
his reign, he expired. . . . So passed away the first Christian emperor, the
first defender of the faith - the first imperial patron of the papal see, and of
the whole Eastern church, - the first founder of the holy places - PAGAN
AND CHRISTIAN, ORTHODOX AND HERETICAL, LIBERAL AND
FANATICAL, not to be imitated or admired, but much to be remembered,
and deeply to be studied." - Stanley.*207
His body was inclosed in a coffin of gold and taken in solemn procession to
Constantinople, where it lay in state for three months, waiting for his two
eldest sons to arrive, the youngest only being present.
And yet the record is not complete. When he was attacked by his last illness
he suspected poison, and before he died he gave to the bishop of Nicomedia
his will to be handed to his eldest son when he should arrive at
Constantinople. The bishop having read it and found its terrible import, put
it in the dead emperor's hand, and left it there until Constantius took it. The
purport of the instruction was that he believed he had been poisoned by his
brothers and their children, and instructed his sons to avenge his death.
"That bequest was obeyed by the massacre of six out of the surviving
princes of the imperial family. Two alone escaped." Stanley.*208
As neither Christians nor pagans could tell to which religion Constantine
belonged while he was alive, and consequently both claimed him, so
likewise both claimed him after he was dead: -
"Even after his death both religions vied, as it were, for Constantine. He
received with impartial favor the honors of both. The first Christian
emperor was defiled by the pagans; in a latter period he was worshiped as a
saint by part of the Christian church. On the same medal appears his title of
`god,' with the monogram, the sacred symbol of Christianity; in another he
197
is seated in the chariot of the sun, in a car drawn by four horses, with a hand
stretched forth from the clouds to raise him to heaven." - Milman.*209
Even to this time and to this extent Constantine himself was to blame for his
ambiguous position, as he had been all the time he had lived as emperor. He
himself had erected a grand church in Constantinople called the Church of
the Apostles, which he intended to be his burial place. Further particulars
are as follows: -
"He had in fact made choice of this spot in the prospect of his own death,
anticipating with extraordinary fervor of faith that his body would share
their title with the apostles themselves, and that he should thus even after
death become the subject, with them, of the devotions which would be
performed to their honor in this place. He accordingly caused twelve coffins
to be set up in this church, like sacred pillars in honor and memory of the
apostolic number, in the center of which his own was placed, having six of
theirs on either side of it." - Eusebius.*210
And as had been his practice all the way along, he called this church by a
name "truly indicating the mixture of pagan and Christian ideas led to its
erection, the `Heroon.'" - Stanley.*211. The word "Heroon" denotes the
temple or chapel of a hero.
We have now given the facts simply as we have found them, in regard to
Constantine's religious life. We think no one can have the slightest
difficulty in deciding that he never was a Christian in any proper sense of
the word. We think all must agree "that his progress in the knowledge of
Christianity was not a progress in the practice of its virtues;" that "his love
of display and his prodigality, his suspiciousness and his despotism,
increased with his power, and that the very brightest period of his reign is
stained with gross crimes, which even the spirit of the age and the policy of
an absolute monarch cannot excuse." - Schaff.*212
All of this is confirmed by another in recording the "fact that he was by
general consent, a worse prince at the close of his reign than at its
beginning, when he was little better than a pagan." - Stanley.*213
The synopsis of the whole question as to what was the religion of
Constantine, can be no better expressed than it has already been by another
in the following words: -
"Constantine adopted Christianity first as a superstition, and put it by the
side of his heathen superstition, till finally in his conviction the Christian
198
vanquished the pagan, though without itself developing into a pure and
enlightened faith." - Schaff.*214
And the final analysis, the conclusion of the whole matter, the sum of all
that has been, or that can be, said is that in Constantine the elements of the
actual pagan and the apostate Christian were so perfectly mixed as to
produce THE TYPICAL PAPIST OF ALL TIMES.
199
CHAPTER XI.
CONSTANTINE AND THE BISHOPS.
FROM the reading of Chapter VI, it will be remembered that Diocletian had
no sooner abdicated than the system of orderly government which he had
established and which he hoped would continue, fell to precess, and
confusion once more ruled in the affairs of state. So far as the government
was concerned, the army was now, as it had been for hundreds of years, the
source of power; but among the four aspiring emperors not only the military
force, but the territory of the empire, was almost equally divided. So nearly
equal was this division that not one of the emperors had any material
advantage over another in this respect. Yet it was the ambition of each one
to become sole emperor. It therefore became a matter of vital concern to
each one to obtain whatever power he might and yet there was no further
resource to be hoped for from the side of the empire. Thus stood matters
among the emperors.
How was it with the church? We insert again the quotation made from
Eusebius concerning the state of things in the churches before the
persecution by Diocletian: -
"When by reason of excessive liberty, we sunk into negligence and sloth,
one envying and reviling another in different ways, and we were almost, as
it were on the point of taking up arms against each other. and were assailing
each other with words as with darts and spears, prelates inveighing against
prelates, and people rising up against people, and hypocrisy and
dissimulation had arisen to the greatest height of malignity, then the divine
judgment, which usually proceeds with a lenient hand, whilst the multitudes
were yet crowding into the church, with gentle and mild visitations began to
afflict its episcopacy; the persecution having begun with those brethren that
were in the army. But, as if destitute of all sensibility, we were not prompt
in measures to appease and propitiate the Deity; some, indeed, like atheists,
regarding our situation as unheeded and unobserved by a providence, we
added one wickedness and misery to another. But some that appeared to be
our pastors, deserting the law of piety, were inflamed against each other
with mutual strifes, only accumulating quarrels and threats, rivalship,
hostility, and hatred to each other, only anxious to assert the government as
a kind of sovereignty for themselves."
200
The persecution had caused all these divisions and disputes to be laid aside.
Every other interest was forgotten in the one all-absorbing question of the
rights of conscience against pagan despotism. Thus there was created at
least an outward unity among all the sects of whatever name, professing the
Christian religion in any form. Thus was molded a compact power which
permeated every part of the empire, and which was at the same time
estranged from every material interest of the empire as it then stood. Here
was power which if it could be secured and used, would assure success to
him who would gain it, as certainly as he could make the alliance. This
condition of affairs was clearly discerned at the time. Constantine
"understood the signs of the times and acted accordingly."
"To Constantine, who had fled from the treacherous custody of Galerius, it
naturally occurred that if he should ally himself to the Christian party,
conspicuous advantages must forthwith accrue to him. It would give him in
every corner of the empire men and women ready to encounter fire and
sword; it would give him partisans not only animated by the traditions of
their fathers, but - for human nature will even in the religious assert itself -
demanding retribution for the horrible barbarities and injustice that had
been inflicted on themselves; it would give him, and this was the most
important of all, unwavering adherents in every legion in the army. He took
his course. The events of war crowned him with success. He could not be
otherwise than outwardly true to those who had given him power, and who
continued to maintain him on the throne." - Draper.*215
Constantine was not the only one who saw this opportunity. Maximin
likewise detected it, but was distrusted by the church party. Constantine
being a much more accomplished politician, succeeded. In addition to the
advantages which offered themselves in this asserted unity of the churches,
there was a movement among the bishops, which made it an additional
incentive to Constantine to form the alliance which he did with the church.
Although it is true that all the differences and disputes and strifes among the
bishops and sects had been forgotten in the supreme conflict between
paganism and freedom of thought, there is one thing mentioned by Eusebius
that still remained. That was the ambition of the bishops "to assert the
government as a kind of sovereignty for themselves." Nor was it alone
government in the church which they were anxious to assert; but
government in the State as well, to be used in the interests of the church.
For, "There had in fact arisen in the church . . . a false theocratical theory,
originating, not in the essence of the gospel, but in the confusion of the
religious constitutions of the Old and New Testaments." - Neander.*216
201
This theocratical theory of the bishops is the key to the whole history of
Constantine and the church of his time, and through all the dreary period
that followed. It led the bishops into the wildest extravagance in their
worship of the imperial influence, and coincided precisely with
Constantine's idea of an absolute monarchy.
The idea of the theocracy that the bishops hoped to establish appears more
clearly and fully in Eusebius's "Life of Constantine" than in any other one
production of the time. There the whole scheme appears just as they had
created it, and as it was applied in the history of the time. The church was a
second Israel in Egyptian bondage. Maxentius was a second Pharaoh,
Constantine was a second Moses. As the original Moses had grown up in
the palace of the Pharaohs, so likewise this new Moses had grown up in the
very society of the new Pharaohs. Thus runs the story: -
"Ancient history relates that a cruel race of tyrants oppressed the Hebrew
nation; and the God who graciously regarded them in their affliction,
provided that the prophet Moses, who was then an infant, should be brought
up in the very palaces and bosoms of the oppressors, and instructed in all
the wisdom they possessed. And when he had arrived at the age of
manhood, and the time was come for divine justice to avenge the wrongs of
the afflicted people, then the prophet of God, in obedience to the will of a
more powerful Lord, forsook the royal household, and estranging himself in
word and deed from those by whom he had been brought up. Openly
preferred the society of his true brethren and kinsfolk. And in due time God
exalted him to be the leader of the whole nation; and, after delivering the
Hebrews from the bondage of their enemies, inflicted divine vengeance
through his means upon the tyrant race. This ancient story, though regarded
by too many as fabulous, has reached the ears of all. But now the same God
has given to us to be eye-witnesses of miracles more wonderful than fables,
and, from their recent appearance, more authentic than any report. For the
tyrants of or day have ventured to war against the supreme God, and have
sorely afflicted his church. And in the midst of these, Constantine, who was
shortly to become their destroyer, but at that time of tender age, and
blooming with the down of early youth, dwelt, as God's servant Moses had
done, in the very home of the tyrants. Young, however, as he was, he shared
not in the pursuits of the impious: for from that early period his noble nature
(under the leading of the Divine Spirit), inclined him to a life of piety and
acceptable service to God." - Eusebius.*217
202
"And now those miracles recorded in Holy Writ, which God of old wrought
against the ungodly (discredited by most as fables, yet believed by the
faithful), did he in very deed confirm to all, alike believers and unbelievers,
who were eye-witnesses to the wonders I am about to relate. For as once in
the days of Moses and the Hebrew nation, who were worshipers of God, he
cast Pharaoh's chariots and his host into the waves, and drowned his chosen
chariot-captains the Red Sea, - so at this time did Maxentius, and the
soldiers and guards with him, sink to the bottom as a stone, when, in his
flight before the divinely aided forces of Constantine, he essayed to cross
the river which lay in his way, over which he had made a strong bridge of
boats, and had framed an engine of destruction, really against himself, but
in the hope of ensnaring thereby him who was beloved-of God. For his God
stood by the one to protect him, while the other, destitute of his aid, proved
to be the miserable contriver of these secret devices to his own ruin. So that
one might well say, "He made a pit, and digged it, and shall fall into the
ditch which he made. His mischief shall return upon his own head, and his
iniquity shall come down upon his own pate.' Thus, in the present instance,
under divine direction, the machine erected on the bridge, with the
ambuscade concealed therein, giving way unexpectedly before the
appointed time, the passage began to sink down, and the boats with the men
in them went bodily to the bottom. At first the wretch himself, then his
armed attendants and guards, even as the sacred oracles had before
described, `sank as lead in the mighty waters.' So that they who thus
obtained victory from God might well, if not in the same words, yet in fact
in the same spirit as the people of his great servant Moses, sing and speak as
they did concerning the impious tyrant of old: `Let us sing unto the Lord,
for he has been glorified exceedingly: the horse and his rider has he thrown
into the sea. He is become my helper and my shield untosalvation.' And
again, `Who is like to thee, O Lord, among the gods? who is like thee,
glorious in holiness, marvelous in praises, in praises, doing wonders?'" -
Eusebius.*220
Such adulation was not without response on the part of Constantine. He
united himself closely with the bishops, of whom Eusebius was but one,
and, in his turn, flattered them: -
"The emperor was also accustomed personally to invite the society of God's
ministers, whom he distinguished with the highest possible respect and
honor, treating them in every sense as persons consecrated to the service of
God. Accordingly, they were admitted to his table, though mean in their
attire and outward appearance; yet not so in his estimation, since he judged
204
not of their exterior as seen by the vulgar eye, but thought he discerned in
them somewhat of the character of God himself." - Eusebius.*221
This worked charmingly. Throughout the empire the courtly bishops
worked in Constantine's interest; and as Licinius only now remained
between Constantine and his longed-for position as sole emperor and
absolute ruler, the bishops and their political church-followers prayed
against Licinius and for Constantine. As these "wordly-minded bishops,
instead of caring for the salvation of their flocks, were often but too much
inclined to travel about and entangle themselves in worldly concerns"
(Neander*222), Licinius attempted to check it. To stop their meddling with
the political affairs of his dominions, he forbade the bishops to assemble
together or to pass from their own dioceses to others. He enacted that
women should be instructed only by women; that in their assemblies the
men and the women should sit separate; and commanded that they of
Nicomedia should meet outside the city, as the open air was more healthful
for such large assemblies.
This only tended to make the bishops more active, as the acts of Licinius
could be counted as persecution. Licinius next went so far as to remove
from all public office whoever would not sacrifice to the gods, and the line
was quickly drawn once more in his dominion in favor of paganism. This
caused Constantine's party to put on a bolder face, and they not only prayed
for Constantine against Licinius, but they began to invent visions in which
they pretended to see the "legions of Constantine marching victoriously
through the streets at midday.'" - Neander.*223
These enactments on the part of Licinius furnished the new Moses with an
opportunity to conquer the heathen in the wilderness, and to go on to the
possession of the promised land and the full establishment of the new
theocracy. War was declared, and Constantine, with the labarum at the head
of his army, took up his march toward the dominions of Licinius.
Another step was now taken in furtherance of the theocratical idea, and in
imitation of the original Moses. It will be remembered that, after the
passage of the Red Sea, Moses erected a tabernacle, and pitched it afar off
from the camp, where he went to consult the Lord and to receive what the
Lord had to give in commandment to Israel. Constantine, to sustain his part
in this scheme of a new theocracy, and as far as possible to conform to the
theoratical plans of the bishops, likewise erected a tabernacle, and pitched it
a considerable distance from his camp. To this tabernacle he would repair
and pretend to have visions and communications from the Lord, and to
205
"He then proceeded to deal with this adversary of God and his followers
according to the laws of war, and consign them to the fate which their
crimes deserved. Accordingly the tyrant himself [Licinius] and they whose
counsels had supported him in his impiety, were together subjected to the
just punishment of death. After this, those who had so lately been deceived
by their vain confidence in false deities, acknowledged with unfeigned
sincerity the God of Constantine, and openly professed their belief in him as
the true and only God." - Eusebius.*226
When Constantine went to take his seat as presiding officer in the Council
of Nice, his theocratical flatterers pretended to be dazzled by his splendor,
as though an angel of God had descended straight from heaven, and he who
sat at Constantine's right hand that day, thus testifies: -
"And now, all rising at the signal which indicated the emperor's entrance, at
last he himself proceeded through the midst of the assembly, like some
heavenly messenger of God." - Eusebius.*227
Constantine, to sustain his part in the farce, declared openly in the council
that "the crimes of priests ought not to be made known to the multitude, lest
they should become an occasion of offense or of sin;" and that if he should
detect "a bishop in the very act of committing adultery," he would throw
"his imperial robe over the unlawful deed, lest any should witness the
scene," and be injured by the bad example." Theodoret.*228 And when the
council was closed and the creed for which they had come together was
established, he sent a letter to the "Catholic Church of the Alexandrians," in
which he announced that the conclusions reached by the council were
inspired by the Holy Spirit, and could be none other than the divine will
concerning the doctrine of God.
After the council was over, he gave a banquet in honor of the twentieth year
of his reign, to which he invited the bishops and clergy who had attended
the council. The bishops responded by pretending that it seemed to be the
very likeness of the kingdom of Christ itself. The description is as follows: -
"The emperor himself invited and feasted with those ministers of God
whom he had reconciled, and thus offered as it were through them a suitable
sacrifice to God. Not one of the bishops was wanting at the imperial
banquet, the circumstances of which were splendid beyond description.
Detachments of the body guard and other troops surrounded the entrance of
the palace with drawn swords, and through the midst of these the men of
God proceeded without fear into the innermost of the imperial apartments,
in which some were the emperor's own companions at table, while others
207
reclined on couches arranged on either side. One might have thought that a
picture of Christ's kingdom was thus shadowed forth, and that the scene was
less like reality than a dream." - Eusebius.*229
At the banquet "the emperor himself presided, and as the feast went on,
called to himself one bishop after another, and loaded each with gifts in
proportion to his deserts." This so delighted the bishops that one of them -
James of Nisibis, a member of that monkish tribe who habitually lived on
grass, browsing like oxen, was wrought up to such a height that he declared
he saw angels standing round the emperor. Constantine, not to be outdone,
saw angels standing around James, and pronounced him one of the three
pillars of the world. He said, "There are three pillars of the world; Antony in
Egypt, Nicolas of Myra, James in Assyria."*230
Another instance of this mutual cajolery is given concerning Eusebius and
the emperor as follows: -
"One act, however, I must by no means omit to record, which this admirable
prince performed in my own presence. On one occasion, emboldened by the
confident assurance I entertained of his piety, I had begged permission to
pronounce a discourse on the subject of our Saviour's sepulcher in his
hearing. With this request he most readily complied, and in the midst of a
large number of auditors, in the interior of the palace itself, he stood and
listened with the rest. I entreated him (but in vain) to seat himself on the
imperial throne which stood near: he continued with fixed attention to
weigh the topics of my discourse, and gave his own testimony to the truth of
the theological doctrines it contained. After some time had passed, the
oration being of considerable length, I was myself desirous of concluding;
but this he would not permit, and exhorted me to proceed to the very end.
On my again entreating him to sit, he in his turn admonished me to desist,
saying it was not right to listen in a careless manner to the discussion of
doctrines relating to God; and again, that this posture was good and
profitable to himself, since it argued a becoming reverence to stand while
listening to sacred truths. Having, a therefore concluded my discourse. I
returned home, and resumed my usual occupations." - Eusebius.*231
Constantine himself occasionally appeared in the role of preacher also. "On
these occasions a general invitation was issued, and thousands of people
went to the palace to hear an emperor turned preacher" (Stanley*232; they
were ready at the strong points to respond with loud applause and cheering.
At times he would attack his courtiers for their rapacity and worldliness
208
generally, and they, understanding him perfectly, would cheer him loudly
for his preaching, and go on in the same old way imitating his actions.
Again: when his mother sent the nails of the true cross to him from
Jerusalem with the instruction that some of them should be used as bridle
bits for his war-horse, it was counted a further evidence that the kingdom of
God was come; for it was made to be the fulfillment of that which
"Zachariah the prophet predicted, `that what is upon the bridles of the
horses shall be holiness unto the Lord Almighty,'" - Theodoret.*233 And
when he appointed his sons and nephews as Caesars to a share in the
governmental authority, this was made to be a fulfillment of the prophecy of
Daniel vii, 17, "The saints of the Most High shall take the kingdom.!" -
Yet more than this: Eusebius actually argued that the emperor's dining hall
might be the New Jerusalem described in the book of Revelation.*234 And
at the celebration of the thirtieth year of his reign, another of the bishops
was so carried away with the imperial honors conferred upon him, that he
went so far as to declare that Constantine had been constituted by God to
rule over all in the present world, and was destined also by the Lord to reign
with the Son of God in the world to come. This, it seems, was rather too
much even for Constantine, and he exhorted the gushing bishop not to use
such language any more; but instead to pray for him that he might be
accounted worthy to be a servant of God, rather than joint ruler, in the
world to come. - Eusebius.*235
But after he was dead, and therefore unable to put any check upon the
extravagance of their adulation, Eusebius pretended to hesitate as to
whether it would not be committing gross sacrilege to attempt to write his
life. However, he finally concluded to venture upon it. Some of his
statements we have already given; but there are a few more that should be
reproduced in this connection. Referring to Constantine's lying in state so
long before his sons assumed the imperial authority, he says: -
"No mortal had ever, like this blessed prince, continued to reign even after
his death, and to receive the same homage as during his life: he only, of all
who have ever lived, obtained this reward from God: a suitable reward,
since he alone of all sovereigns had in all his actions honored the supreme
God and his Christ, and God himself accordingly was pleased that even his
mortal remains should still retain imperial authority among men."*236
This was not enough, however. It must needs be that God should set him
forth as the pattern of the human race: -
209
"And God himself, whom Constantine worshiped, has confirmed this truth
by the clearest manifestations of his will, being present to aid him at the
commencement, during the course, and at the end of his reign, and holding
him up the human race as an exemplary pattern of godliness.*237
Next, he seeks some object worthy to be a standard of comparison for"this
marvelous man." But he is unable to find any such thing or person but the
Saviour himself Therefore he declares: -
"We cannot compare him with that bird of Egypt, the only one, as they say,
of its kind, which dies, self-sacrificed, in the midst of aromatic perfumes,
and, rising from its own ashes, with new life soars aloft in the same form
which it had before. Rather did he resemble his Saviour, who, as the sown
corn which is multiplied from a single grain, had yielded abundant increase
through the blessing of God, and had over-spread the world with his fruit.
Even so did our thrice blessed prince become multiplied, as it were,through
the succession of his sons. His statue was erected along with theirs in every
province, and the name of Constantine was owned and honored even after
the close of his mortal life."*238
But even this does not satisfy the aspirations of the episcopal adulator. The
task is now become one of such grandeur as to transcend all his powers; he
stops amazed, and in impotence resigns it all to Christ, who only, he
professes, is worthy to do the subject justice: -
"For to whatever quarter I direct my view, whether to the east, or to the
west, or over the whole world, or toward heaven itself, I see the blessed
emperor everywhere present; . . . and I see him still living and powerful,
and governing the general interests of mankind more completely than ever
before, being multiplied as it were by the succession of his children to the
imperial power. . . .
"And I am indeed amazed when I consider that he who was but lately
visible and present with us in his mortal body, is still, even after death,
when the natural thought disclaims all superfluous distinctions as
unsuitable, most marvelously endowed with the same imperial dwellings,
and honors, and praises, as heretofore. But further, when I raise my
thoughts even to the arch of heaven, and there contemplate his thrice
blessed soul in communion with God himself, freed from every mortal and
earthly vesture, and shining in a refulgent robe of light; and when I perceive
that it is no more connected with the fleeting periods and occupations of
mortal life, but honored with an ever-blooming crown, and an immortality
of endless and blessed existence; I stand as it were entranced and deprived
210
of all power of utterance: and so, while I condemn my own weakness, and
impose silence on myself, I resign the task of speaking his praises worthily
to one who is better able, even to him who alone has power (being the
immortal God - the Word) to confirm the truth of his own sayings."*239
All this with much more to the same purpose is set forth by that bishop who
above all others is entitled "one of the best among the bishops of
Constantine's court," and the one who "cannot be reckoned among the
number of the ordinary court bishops of his period." - Neander.*240
By the plain, unbiased facts of history, Constantine stands before the world
as a confirmed and constant hypocrite, a perjurer, and a many-times
murderer. And yet this bishop, knowing all this, hesitates not to declare him
the special favorite of God; to liken him to Jesus Christ; to make God
indorse him to the human race as an example of godliness; and to exalt him
so high that no one but "the immortal God" can worthily speak his praises!
When one of the best of the bishops of his court, one who was familiar with
the whole course of his evil life, could see in the life and actions of such a
man as this, a Moses, and angels, and the New Jerusalem, and the kingdom
of God, and even the Lord Christ - when in such a life, all this could be seen
by one of the best of the bishops, we can only wonderingly inquire what
could not be seen there by the worst of the bishops!
Can any one wonder, or can any reasonable person dispute, that from a
mixture composed of such bishops and such a character, there should come
the mystery of iniquity in all its hideous enormity?
These things of themselves would go far to discredit the story; but when it
is borne in mind that the only record that was even then made of it was in
Eusebius's "Life of Constantine," the character of which is quite clearly seen
in the extracts which we have made from it in the chapter, the story may be
entirely discredited. Eusebius's words are as follows: -
"While he was thus praying with fervent entreaty, a most marvelous sign
appeared to him from heaven, the account of which it might have been
difficult to receive with credit, had it been related by any other person. But
since the victorious emperor himself long afterwards declared it to the
writer of this history, when he was honored with his acquaintance and
society, and confirmed his statement by an oath, who could hesitate to
accredit the relation, especially since the testimony of after-time has
established its truth?" *241
It will be seen at once that this account is of the same nature as that of
Eusebius's "Life of Constantine" throughout. It is of the same piece with
that by which" no mortal was allowed to contribute to the elevation of
Constantine." If it should be pleaded that Constantine confirmed his
statement by an oath, the answer is that this is no evidence of the truth of
the statement. "That the emperor attested it on oath, as the historian tells us,
is indeed no additional guarantee for the emperor's veracity." - Stanley.*242
He gave his oath to his sister as a pledge for the life of her husband, and
shortly had him killed. In short, when Constantine confirmed a statement by
an oath, this was about the best evidence that he could give that the
statement was a lie. This is the impression clearly conveyed by Stanley's
narrative as may be seen by a comparison of Lecture ill, par. iii; Lecture iv,
par. 9; Lecture vi, par. 10, and is sustained by the evidence of Constantine's
whole imperial course.
In addition to this, there is the fact that Eusebius himself only credited the
story because it came from Constantine, and because it was established "by
the testimony of after-time," in which testimony he was ever ready to see
the most wonderful evidence of God's special regard for Constantine; and
the further fact that it was one of the principles of Eusebius that "it may be
lawful and fitting to use falsehood as a medicine, for the advantage of those
who require such a method,"*243 which principle is fully illustrated in his
dealings with Constantine.
When all these things, and many others which might be mentioned, are
fairly considered, they combine to make the story of Constantine's vision of
the cross, utterly unworthy of the slightest credit, or any place, in any sober
212
or exact history. Therefore I do, and all others ought to, fully concur in the
opinion that this "flattering fable" "can claim no place among the authentic
records of history; and by writers whose only object is truth, it may very
safely be consigned to contempt and oblivion." - Waddington.*244
213
CHAPTER XII.
THE UNION OF CHURCH AND STATE.
IF the mutual flattery of Constantine and the bishops had concerned only
themselves, it would have been a matter of very slight importance indeed;
but this was not so. Each side represented an important interest. Constantine
merely represented the State, and the bishops the church; and their mutual
flattery was only the covering of a deep laid and far reaching scheme which
each party was determined to work to the utmost, for its own interests. "It
was the aim of Constantine to make theology a branch of politics; it was the
hope of every bishop in the empire to make politics a branch of theology."-
Draper.*245 Consequently, in their mutual toadyism were involved the
interests of both the Church and the State, and the welfare of human society
for ages to come.
Therefore, "To the reign of Constantine the Great must be referred the
commencement of those dark and dismal times which oppressed Europe for
a thousand years. It is the true close of the Roman empire, the beginning of
the Greek. The transition from one to the other is emphatically and abruptly
marked by a new metropolis, a new religion, a new code, and, above all, a
new policy. An ambitious man had attained to imperial power by
personating the interests of a rapidly growing party. The unavoidable
consequences were a union between the Church and the State, a diverting of
the dangerous classes from civil to ecclesiastical paths, and the decay and
materialization of religion." - Draper.*246
To set forth the true account of the seed that was sown in the workings of
this mutual intrigue, and to indicate certain inevitable fruits thereof, must
now employ our thoughts. As we are to consider acts which were very far-
reaching, and trace their consequences, we shall follow to its logical results
each special act as it occurs, before noticing the next one.
When the alliance was formed between Constantine and what was
represented to him as Christianity, it was with the idea on his part that this
religion formed a united body throughout the empire. As has been shown,
this was true in a certain sense, because the persecution as carried on by
Galerius under the edicts of Diocletian, was against Christianity as a
profession, without any distinction whatever as to its phases, and this
caused all the different sects to stand together as one in defense of the
214
principles that were common to all. Therefore the essential unity of all the
professions of Christianity he supposed to be a fact; and from all his actions
and writings afterward it is certain that representations had been made to
him by the bishops in a stronger measure than was true, and in an infinitely
stronger measure than he found it in practice to be.
As has also been shown, the alliance with Christianity on his part was
wholly political, and merely a part of the political machinery by which he
designed to bring together again the divided elements of the empire into one
harmonious whole, as contemplated by Diocletian. It being represented to
him by the bishops who met him in Gaul in A. D. 311, that Christianity was
a united body which, if he would support it, would in turn be a powerful
support to him, he accepted their representations as the truth, and formed
the alliance solely as a part of his political designs, and to help him to
forward his declared "mission to unite the world under one head."
But an apparent unity upon the grand principles common to all sects of
Christianity, created by a defense of the rights of Christians to believe and
to worship according to the dictates of their own conscience, and a real
unity which would stand together in Christian brotherhood under the
blandishments of imperial favor, were two very different things. It was easy
enough for all the sects in which Christianity claimed at that time to be
represented, to stand together against an effort of the imperial power to
crush out of existence the very name, as well as the right to profess it. It was
not so easy for these same denominations to stand together as one,
representing the charity and unifying influence of Christianity, when
imperial support, imperial Influence, and imperial power, were the prizes to
be gained.
Therefore, although the alliance was formed with what was supposed to be
Christianity as a whole, without any respect to internal divisions, it was
very soon discovered that each particular faction of the Christian profession
was ambitious to be recognized as the one in which, above all others,
Christianity was most certainly represented. The bishops were ready and
willing to represent to Constantine that Christianity was one. They did so
represent it to him. And although he entered the alliance with that
understanding, the alliance had no sooner been well formed than it devolved
upon him to decide among the conflicting factions and divisions just where
that one was to be found.
The Edict of Milan ordered that the church property which had been
confiscated by the edicts of Diocletian, should be restored to "the whole
215
restoration of the property of the Christians, under the Edict of Milan, had
no sooner begun, than the contentions which had been raised before the late
persecution, between the church of Rome and the churches of Africa, were
not only made to assume new and political significance, but were made an
issue upon which to secure the imperial recognition and the legal
establishment of the Catholic Church. As the rule had already been
established that all who did not agree with the bishops of the Catholic
Church were necessarily heretics, and not Christians, it was now claimed by
the Catholic Church that therefore none such could be partakers of the
benefits of the edict restoring property to the Christians. The Catholic
Church disputed the right of heretics to receive property or money under the
Edict of Milan, by disputing their right to the title of Christians. This forced
an imperial decision upon the question as to who were Christians. The
dispute was raised in Africa. Anulinus was proconsul in that province. To
settle this question, Constantine issued the following edict: -
"Hail, our most esteemed Anulinus: This is the course of our benevolence;
that we wish those things that belong justly to others, should not only
remain unmolested, but should also, when necessary, be restored, most
esteemed Anulinus. Whence it is our will, that when thou shalt this epistle,
if any of those things belonging to the Catholic Church of the Christians in
the several cities or other places, are now possessed either by the decurions,
or any others, these thou shalt cause immediately to be restored to their
churches. Since we have previously determined, that whatsoever these same
churches before possessed, shall be restored to their right when therefore,
your fidelity has understood this decree of our orders to be most evident and
plain, make all haste to restore, as soon as possible, all that belongs to the
churches, whether gardens or houses, or anything else, that we may learn
thou hast attended to, and most carefully observed, this our decree. Farewell
most esteemed and beloved Anulinus."*248
By this it was made evident that the imperial favors were only for the
Catholic Church. Nor was it enough that Constantine should decide that all
his favors were for the Catholic Church; he must next decidewhich was the
Catholic Church. This was brought about by a division which was created in
the church at Carthage, having its origin in the late persecution.
The edict issued by Diocletian had commanded the magistrates everywhere
to compel the Christians to deliver up the Scriptures. Some Christians did
so; others refused and suffered all kinds of punishments rather than to do so.
When Constantine formed his alliance with the bishops, Mensurius was
217
bishop of Carthage, and some of his enemies had falsely accused him of
being one of those who had delivered up the Scriptures rather than to suffer.
They were supported by a certain Donatus, bishop of a city in Numidia, and
they separated themselves from communion with Mensurius. When
Mensurius died, as the "primacy of the African church was the object of
ambition to these two parties" (Milman*249), and as this primacy carried
with it imperial patronage, there were several candidates. A certain
Caecilianus was elected, however, "in spite of the cabals and intrigues of
Botrus and Caelesius, two chief presbyters who aspired to that dignity."-
Bower.*250.
Botrus and Caelesius were now joined by Donatus and his party, and these
all were further joined and supported by a certain Lucilla, a woman of great
qualities, wealth, and interest, and an avowed enemy to Caecilianus. This
faction gathered together about seventy of the bishops of Numidia for the
purpose of deposing Caecilianus as one having been illegally chosen. When
they came together at Carthage, they found that the great majority of the
people were in favor of Caecilianus; but they went ahead, nevertheless.
They summoned him to the council. He refused to go, and it was well that
he did so, because one of them had already said of him, "If he comes among
us, instead of laying our hands on him by way of ordination, we ought to
knock out his brains by way of penance." - Bower.*251 A council
composed of men of this character, it is easy to believe, were readily
susceptible to whatever influence might be brought to bear upon them to
bring them to a decision. Lucilla, by the free use of money, succeeded in
persuading them to declare the election of Caecilianus void, and the
bishopric of Carthage vacant. They pronounced him and all who held with
him separated from their communion, and proceeded to elect and ordain a
certain Majorinus, who had formerly been one of Lucilla's servants, but was
now a reader in the church.
Thue stood matters in the church in Africa when in March, A.D. 313,
Constantine sent to the proconsul Anulinus the following edict: -
"Health to thee, most esteemed Anulinus. As it appears from many
circumstances that when the religion was despised, in which the highest
reverence of the heavenly Majesty is observed, that our public affairs were
beset with great dangers, and dangers, and that this religion, when legally
adopted and observed, afforded the greatest prosperity to the Roman name
and distinguished felicity to all men, as it has been granted by the divine
beneficence, we have resolved that those men who gave their services with
218
and summoning others of the opposite parties from Africa, who are
pertinaciously and incessantly contending with one another, that by a
careful examination of the matter in their presence, it might thus be decided.
But since, as it happens some, forgetful of their own salvation, and the
reverence due to our most holy religion, even now do not cease to protract
their own enmity, being unwilling to conform to the decision already
promulgated, and asserting that they were very few that advanced their
sentiments and opinions, or else that all points which ought to have been
first fully discussed not being first examined, they proceeded with too much
haste and precipitancy to give publicity to the decision. Hence it has
happened that those very persons who ought to exhibit a brotherly and
peaceful unanimity, rather disgracefully and detestably are at variance with
one another, and thus give this occasion of derision to those that are
without, and whose minds are averse to our most holy religion. Hence it has
appeared necessary to me to provide that this matter which ought to have
ceased after the decision was issued by their own voluntary agreement now,
at length, should be fully terminated by the intervention of many.
"Since, therefore, we have commanded many bishops to meet together from
different and remote places, in the city of Arles, towards the calends of
August, I have also thought proper to write to thee, that taking a public
vehicle from the most illustrious Latronianus, corrector of Sicily, and taking
with thee two others of the second rank, which thou mayest select, also
three servants to afford you services on the way ; I would have you meet
them within the same day at the aforesaid place. That by the weight of your
authority, and the prudence and unanimity of the rest that assemble, this
dispute, which has disgracefully continued until the present time, in
consequence of certain disgraceful contentions, may be discussed, by
hearing all that shall be alleged by those who are now at variance, whom we
have also commanded to be present, and thus the controversy be reduced,
though slowly, to that faith and observance of religion, and fraternal
concord, which ought to prevail. May Almighty God preserve thee in safety
many years." *255
This council met according to appointment, August, A.D. 314, and was
composed of the bishops from almost all the provinces of the Western
division of the empire. Sylvester, who was now bishop of Rome, was
summoned to the council, but declined on account of age, sending two
presbyters and two deacons as his representatives. This council also
declared Caecilianus innocent of the crimes laid against him by the
Donatists. The council also decided that whoever should falsely accuse his
221
brethren should be cut off from the communion of the church without hope
of ever being received again, except at the point of death. It further decided
that such bishops as had been ordained by the Donatists should officiate
alternately with the Catholic bishops till one or the other should die.
But the council did not stop with the consideration of the question which it
was summoned to consider. The bishops in council now took it upon
themselves to legislate in matters of discipline for the world, and to bestow
special preference and dignity upon the bishop of Rome. They "ordained
that Easter should be kept on the same day, and on a Sunday, by all the
churches in the world" (Bower fn*256), and that the bishop of Rome should
announce to the churches the particular Sunday upon which it should be
celebrated. Before adjourning, the council sent to the bishop of Rome an
account of their proceedings, with a copy of the decrees which they had
adopted concerning the discipline of the churches, that he might publish
them to all the churches.
The Donatists appealed again, not for council, but to the emperor himself.
Constantine held a consistory and heard their appeal, and in harmony with
the council already held, pronounced in favor of Caecilianus and against the
Donatists. Upon this the Donatists claimed that the emperor had been
influenced by Hosius, one of his favorite bishops, and denied that he had
any jurisdiction in the matter at all, because it was not right for civil
magistrates to have anything to do with religion! This claim was true
enough, if they had made it at the beginning, and had refused from the first
to allow their controversy to be touched upon in any way by the imperial
authority. Then they would have stood upon proper ground; but when they
themselves were the first to appeal to the civil authority; when they had
asked the emperor to consider the matter again and again and again, with
the hope of getting the imperial power on their side; and when they had
carried to the last extreme, their efforts in this direction, - when they had
done all this in vain, and then turned about to protest, their protest was
robbed of every shadow of force or merit.
The question as to which was the Catholic Church having now been
decided, Constantine, in his next epistle, could add yet another
distinguishing title. As we have seen, the Edict of Milan - March , A. D.
313 - ordered that the churches should be restored to the Christians - "the
whole body of Christians" - without distinction. When the Catholic Church
asserted its sole right to the designation "Christian," and backed its assertion
with political reasons which were then peculiarly cogent, the imperial
222
epistle ran - March, A. D. 313 - "to the Catholic Church of the Christians."
When the emperor wrote to Melchiades appointing the first council under
the imperial authority, his epistle ran - autumn, A. D. 313 - the holy
Catholic Church." When he wrote to Chrestus - summer, A. D. 314 -
summoning him to the second council under imperial authority, he referred
to the doctrine of the Catholic Church as embodying the "most holy
religion." When it had been decided which was "the most holy Catholic
religion," he addressed an epistle to Caecilianus - A. D. 316 - announcing
imperial favors to "the legitimate and most holy Catholic religion," and
empowered Caecilianus to assist the imperial officers in preventing any
diversion from the most holy Catholic Church.
The following is that letter: -
"Constantine Augustus, to Caecilianus, bishop of Carthage: As we have
determined that in all the provinces of Africa, Numidia, and Mauritania,
something should be granted to certain ministers of the legitimate and most
holy Catholic religion to defray their expenses, I have given letters to Ursus,
the most illustrious lieutenant-governor of Africa. and have communicated
to him, that he shall provide, to pay to your authority, three thousand folles
[about one hundred thousand dollars].
"After you shall have obtained this sum, you are to order these monies to be
distributed among the aforesaid ministers, according to the abstract
addressed to thee from Hosius. But if thou shalt learn, perhaps, that
anything shall be wanting to complete this my purpose with regard to all,
thou art authorized, without delay, to make demands for whatever thou
mayest ascertain to be necessary, from Herbicides, the procurator of our
possessions. And I have also commanded him when present, that if thy
authority should demand any monies of him, he should see that it should be
paid without delay. And as I ascertained that some men, who are of no
settled mind, wished to divert the people from the most holy Catholic
Church, by a certain pernicious adulteration, I wish thee to understand that I
have given, both to the proconsul Anulinus and to Patricius, vicar-general of
the perfects, when present, the following injunctions: that, among all the
rest, they should particularly pay the necessary attention to this, nor should
by any means tolerate that this should be overlooked. Wherefore, if thou
seest any of these men persevering in this madness, thou shalt, without any
hesitancy, proceed to the aforesaid judges, and report it to them, that they
may animadvert upon them as I commanded them when present. May the
power of the great God preserve thee many years."*257
223
When the Donatists rejected the decision of the emperor himself, and
denied his right to say anything in the controversy in which they had invited
him over and over again to participate, as announced in the above letter to
Caecilianus he carried against them - A. D. 316 - the interference which
they had solicited, to the full extent to which it would undoubtedly have
been carried against the Catholics if the Donatists had secured the decision
in their favor. The Donatists bishops were driven out, and Constantine
ordered all their churches to be delivered to the Catholic party. As this was
done in the interests, and by the direct counsel, of the Catholic party
through Hosius, the emperor's chief counselor, the imperial authority thus
became wholly partisan, and to both parties was given a dignity which was
far, far beyond any merit that was in the question at issue. To the Catholic
party it gave the dignity of an imperial alliance and the assurance of
imperial favor. The Donatist party it elevated to a dignity and clothed with
an importance which placed it before the world as worthy of imperial
antagonism. Into the Catholic party, it infused more than ever the pride of
place, power, and imperial favor. To the Donatist party it gave the dignity
and fame of a persecuted people, and increased the evil which it attempted
to destroy.
More than this, when the governmental authority, which should be for the
protection of all alike from violence, became itself a party to the
controversy, it forsook the place of impartial protector, and assumed the
place of a partisan. This only deepened the sense of injury felt by the
defeated, and the sense of triumph felt by the victorious, party; and the
antagonism was only the more embittered. "The implacable faction
darkened into a sanguinary feud. For the first time, human blood was shed
in conflicts between followers of the Prince of peace." - Milman.*258 And
the government, by becoming a partisan, had lost the power to keep peace.
By becoming a party to religious controversy, it had lost the power to
prevent civil violence between religious factions. "Each party recriminated
on the other, but neither denies the barbarous scenes of massacre and
license which devastated the African cities. The Donatists boasted of their
martyrs, and the cruelties of the Catholic party rest on their own admission:
they deny not, they proudly vindicate, their barbarities: `Is the vengeance of
God to be defrauded of its victims?' and they appeal to the Old Testament to
justify, by the examples of Moses, of Phineas, and of Elijah, the Christian
duty of slaying by thousands the renegades and unbelievers," -
Milman.*259 This, though a shameful perversion of Scripture, was but the
practical working out of the theocratical theory of government, which was
224
the basis of the whole system of the union of Church and State which had
been created by Constantine and the bishops.
Constantine issued an edict commanding peace, but it was all in vain. The
tumult went on, constantly increasing in violence, until the only alternative
was for the imperial authority either to enter upon the horrors of a
protracted war with its own subjects or openly refuse to go any farther. The
latter step was taken. In A. D. 321, upon the advice of the civil officers of
Africa, Constantine "repealed the laws against the Donatists, and gave the
African people full liberty to follow either of the contending parties, as they
liked best." - Mosheim.*260
The Donatist controversy touched no point of doctrine, but of discipline
only, and was confined to the provinces of Africa. The result in this case,
however, ought to have convinced Constantine that the best thing for the
imperial authority to do was to return, and strictly adhere, to the principles
of the Edict of Milan, to let religious questions and controversies entirely
alone, and allow each individual "the privilege of choosing and professing
his own religion." Yet, even if this thought had occurred to him, it would
have been impossible for him to do so and attain the object of his ambition.
The principles of the Edict of Milan had no place in the compact entered
into between Constantine and the bishops. As yet he possessed only half the
empire; for Licinius still held the East, and Constantine's position was not
yet so secure that he dare risk any break with the bishops. He had bargained
to them his influence in religious things for theirs in politics. The contract
had been entered into, he had sold himself to the church influence, and he
could not go back even if he would. The empire was before him, but
without the support of the church party it could not be his.
It is necessary now to notice the material point in that edict issued in A. D.
313, exempting from all public offices the clergy of the Catholic Church.
As a benefit to society and that "the greatest good might be conferred on the
State," the clergy of the Catholic Church were to "be held totally free and
exempt from all public offices."
At this time the burdens and expenses of the principal offices of the State
were so great that this exemption was of the greatest material benefit. The
immediate effect of the edict, therefore, was to erect the clerical order into a
distinct and privileged class. For instance, in the days of the systematic
governing of the empire, the decurionate was the chief office of the State.
"The decurions formed the Senates of the towns; they supplied the
magistrates from their body, and had the right of electing them. Under the
225
purpose of this later law. Thus the evil consequences of the original law still
flowed on, and "numbers, without any inward call to the spiritual office, and
without any fitness for it whatever, now got themselves ordained as
ecclesiastics, for the sake of enjoying this exemption, whereby many of the
worst class came to the administration of the most sacred calling." -
Neander.*265
Another scheme adopted by Constantine, was fraught with more evil in the
same direction. As he had favored the new religion only on account of its
value to him as a political factor, he counted it to his advantage to have as
many as possible to profess that religion. He therefore used all the means
that could be employed by the State to effect this purpose. He made the
principal positions about his palace and court, a gift and reward to the
professors of the new imperial religion, and with "the hopes of wealth and
honors, the example of an emperor, his exhortations, his irresistible smiles,
diffused conviction among the venal and obsequious crowds which usually
fill the apartments of a palace. . . . As the lower ranks of society are
governed by imitation, the conversion of those who possesed any eminence
of birth, of power, or of riches, was soon followed by dependent multitudes.
The salvation of the common people was purchased at an easy rate, if it be
true that, in one year, twelve thousand men were baptized at Rome, besides
a proportionable number of women and children, and that a white garment,
with twenty pieces of gold, had been promised by the emperor to every
convert." - Gibbon.*266
It will be observed that in this statement Gibbon inserts the cautious clause,
"if it be true," but such a precaution was scarcely necessary; because the
whole history of the times bears witness that such was the system followed,
whether this particular instance was a fact or not. This is proved by the next
instance which we shall mention of Constantine's efforts in gaining converts
to the new religion. He wrote letters offering rewards both political and
financial to those cities which, as such, would forsake the heathen religion,
and destroy or allow to be destroyed their heathen temples. "The cities
which signalized a forward zeal, by the voluntary destruction of their
temples, were distinguished by municipal privileges, and rewarded with
popular donatives." - Gibbon.*267
In cities that would accept this offer, he would build churches at the public
expense, and send there "a complete body of the clergy and a bishop" when
"there were as yet no Christians in the place." Also upon such churches he
bestowed " large sums for the support of the poor; so that the conversion of
227
a Christian has broken his oath to me, and I never broke my word to any
man.'" - Neander.*273
Not only was the church thus rendered powerless to influency those who
were without, but she was likewise power-less to influence for any good
those who were within. When the vast majority in the church were
unconverted and had joined the church from worldly and selfish motives,
living only lives of conscious hypocrisy, it was impossible that church
discipline should be enforced by church authority.
The next step taken by the bishopric, therefore, was to secure edicts under
which they could enforce church discipline. This, too, not only upon the
members of the church. but likewise upon those who were not. The church
having, out of lust for worldly power and influence, forsaken the power of
God, the civil power was the only resource that remined to her. Conscious
of her loss of moral power, she seized upon the civil. The account of this
further wickedness will be given in the next chapter.
230
CHAPTER XIII.
THE ORIGINAL SUNDAY LEGISLATION.
THE church was fully conscious of her loss of the power of God before she
sought the power of the State. Had she not been, she never would have
made any overtures to the imperial authority, nor have received with favor
any from it. There is a power that belongs with the gospel of Christ, and is
inseparable from the truth of the gospel, that is the power of God. In fact,
the gospel is but the manifestation of that power, for the gospel "is the
power of God unto salvation to every one that believeth." Rom. i, 16. As
long, therefore, as any order or organization of people professing the gospel
of Christ maintains the principle of that gospel in sincerity, so long the
power of God will be with them, and they will have no need of any other
power to make their influence felt for good wherever known. But just as
soon as any person or association professing the gospel loses the spirit of it,
so soon the power is gone also. Then, and only then, does such an
organization seek for another kind of power to supply the place of that
which is lost.
Thus was it with the church at this time. She had fallen, deplorably fallen,
from the purity and the truth, and therefore from the power, of the gospel.
And having lost the power of God and godliness, she greedily grasped for
the power of the State and ungodliness. And to secure laws by which she
might enforce her discipline and dogmas upon those whom she had the
power either to convince or to persuade, was the definite purpose which the
bishopric had in view when it struck that bargain with Constantine, and lent
him the influence of the church in his imperial aspirations.
In the chapter on "Constantine and the Bishops," evidence has been given
which shows how diligently the bishops endeavored to convince themselves
that in the theocracy which they had framed and of which they were now a
part, the kingdom of God was come. But they did not suppose for a moment
that the Lord himself would come and conduct the affairs of this kingdom in
person. They themselves were to be the representatives of God upon the
earth, and the theocracy thus established was to be ruled by the Lord
through them. This was but culmination of the evil spirit manifested in the
self-exaltation of the bishopric. That is to say, their idea of a theocracy was
231
utterly false, and the working out of the theory was but the manifestation of
the mystery of inquity.
Yet this is not to say that all ideas of a theocracy have always been false.
The government of Israel was a true theocracy. That was really a
government of God. At the burning bush, God commissioned Moses to lead
his people out of Egypt. By signs and wonders and mighty miracles
multiplied, God delivered Israel from Egypt, led them through the Red Sea,
and through the wilderness, and finally into the promised land. There he
ruled them by judges, to whom "in diverse manners" he revealed his will,
"until Samuel the prophet."
In the days of Samuel, the people asked that they might have a king. Their
request was granted, but only under the following earnest protest: "And the
Lord said unto Samuel, Hearken unto the voice of the people in all that they
say unto thee: for they have not rejected thee, but they have rejected me,
that I should not reign over them. According to all the works which they
have done since the day that I brought them up out of Egypt even unto this
day, wherewith they have forsaken me, and served other gods, so do they
also unto thee. Now therefore hearken unto their voice: howbeit yet protest
solemnly unto them, and show them the manner of the king that shall reign
over them.
"And Samuel told all the words of the Lord unto the people that asked of
him a king. And he said, This will be the manner of the king that shall reign
over you: He will take your sons, and appoint them for himself, for his
chariots, and to be his horsemen; and some shall run before his chariots, and
he will appoint him captains over thousands, and captains over fifties; and
will set them to ear his ground, and to reap his harvest, and to make his
instruments of war, and instruments of his chariots. And he will take your
daughters to be confectionaries,and to be cooks, and to be bakers. And he
will take your fields, and your vineyards, and your oliveyards, even the best
of them and give them to his servants. And he will take the tents of your
seed, and of your vineyards, and give to his officers, and to his servants.
And he will take your menservants, and your maidservants, and your
goodliest young men, and your asses, and put them to his work. He will take
the tenth of your sheep: and ye shall be his servants. And ye shall cry out in
that day because of your king which ye shall have chosen you; and the Lord
will not hear you in that day.
"Nevertheless the people refused to obey the voice of Samuel; and they
said, Nay; but we will have a king over us; that we also may be like all the
232
nations; and that our king may judges us, and go out before us, and fight our
battles. And Samuel heard all the words of the people, and he rehearsed
them in the ears of the Lord. And the Lord said to Samuel, Hearken unto
their voice, and make them a king. And Samuel said unto the men of Israel,
Go ye every man unto his city."
God chose Saul, and Samuel anointed him king over Israel. "And Samuel
said unto all Israel, Behold, I have hearkened unto your voice in all that ye
said unto me, and have made a king over you. And now, behold, the king
walketh before you: and I am old and gray-headed; and, behold, my sons
are with you: and I have walked before you from my childhood unto this
day. Behold, here I am: witness against me before the Lord, and before his
anointed: whose ox have I taken? or whose ass have I taken? or whom have
I defrauded? whom have I oppressed? or of whose hand have I received any
bribe to blind mine eyes therewith? and I will restore it to you. And they
said, Thou hast not defrauded us, nor oppressed us, neither hast thou taken
ought of any man's hand. And he said unto them, The Lord is witness
against you, and his anointed is witness this day, that ye have not found
ought in my hand. And they answered, He is witness.
"And Samuel said unto the people It is the Lord that advanced Moses and
Aaron, and that brought your fathers up out of the land of Egypt. Now
therefore stand still, that I may reason with you before the Lord of all the
righteous acts of the Lord, which he did to you and to your fathers. When
Jacob was come into Egypt, and your fathers cried unto the Lord, then the
Lord sent Moses and Aaron which brought forth your fathers out of Egypt,
and made them dwell in this place. And when they forgot the Lord their
God, he sold them into the hands of Sisera, captain of the host of Hazor, and
into the hand of the Philistines, and into the hand of the king of Moab, and
they fought against them. And they cried unto the Lord, and said, We have
sinned, because we have forsaken the Lord, and have served Baalim and
Ashtaroth: but now deliver us out of the hand of our enemies, and we will
serve thee. And the Lord sent Jerubbaal, and Bedan, and Jephthah, and
Samuel, and delivered you out of the hand of your enemies on every side,
and ye dwelt safe. And when ye saw that Nahash the king of the children of
Ammon came against you, ye said unto me, Nay; but a king shall reign over
us: when the Lord your God was your king. Now therefore, behold the king
whom ye have chosen, and whom ye have desired; and, behold, the Lord
hath set a king over you. If ye will fear the Lord, and serve him, and obey
his voice, and not rebel against the commandment of the Lord; then shall
both ye and also the king that reigneth over you continue following the Lord
233
your God: but if ye will not obey the voice of the Lord, but rebel against the
commandment of the Lord, then shall the hand of the Lord be against you,
as it was against your fathers.
"Now therefore stand and see this great thing, which the Lord will do before
your eyes. Is it not wheat harvest to-day? I will call unto the Lord, and he
shall send thunder and rain; that ye may perceive and see that your
wickedness is great, which ye have done in the sight of the Lord, in asking
you a king. So Samuel called unto the Lord; and the Lord sent thunder and
rain that day: and all the people greatly feared the Lord and Samuel. And all
the people said unto Samuel, Pray for thy servants unto the Lord thy God,
that we die not: for we have added unto all our sins this evil, to ask us a
king.
"And Samuel said unto the people, Fear not: ye have done all this
wickedness: yet turn not aside from following the Lord, but serve the Lord
with all your heary; and turn ye not aside; for then should y go after vain
things, which cannot profit nor deliver; for they are vain. For the Lord will
not forsake his people for his great name's sake" because it hath pleaded
pleased the Lord to make you his people. Moreover as for me, God forbid
that I should sin against the Lord in ceasing to pray for you: but I will teach
you the good and the right way: only fear the Lord, and serve him in truth
with all your heart: for consider how great things he hath done for you. But
if ye shall still do wickedly, ye shall be consumed, both ye and your king."
1 Sam., chaps. viii, xii.
Although the people were allowed to have a king, and although in this
movement they had virtually rejected the Lord, as Samuel told them, the
Lord would not forsake them. He still continued to guide the nation,
communicating his will by prophets; and although they had done wrong in
demanding a king, the Lord made even the kingship to be an additional
element in teaching them his eternal purpose; he made it to them a reminder
of the eternal kingdom which he would establish in the accomplishment of
his purpose concerning the earth.
Saul failed to do the will of God, and as he rejected the word of the Lord,
the Lord rejected him from being king, and sent Samuel to anoint David
king over Israel; and David's house, and David's throne, God established for
evermore.
When Solomon succeeded to the kingdom in the place of David his father,
the record is: "Then Solomon sat on the throne of the Lord as king instead
of David his father." 1 Chron. xxix, 23. David's throne was the throne of the
234
Lord, and Solomon sat on the throne of the Lord as king over the earthly
kingdom of God. The succession to the throne descended in David's line to
Zedekiah, who was made subject to the king of Babylon, that perchance the
kingship with the kingdom might stand. Zedekiah entered into a solemn
covenant before God that he would remain a faithful subject of the king of
Babylon. His name was Mattaniah at first, and when he entered into this
covenant, the king of Babylon changed his name to Zedekiah, which means
The Justice of Jehovah. Mattaniah gave his hand, and accepted this new
name as the seal of the covenant with the king of Babylon, and in so doing
pledged that if he should break that covenant, he would incur the judgment
of the Lord.
Zedekiah did break this covenant, upon which the Lord said: "As I live,
saith the Lord God, surely in the place where the king dwelleth that made
him king, whose oath he despised, and whose covenant he brake, even with
him in the midst of Babylon he shall die . . . Seeing he despised the oath by
breaking the covenant, when, lo, he had given his hand, and hath done all
these things, he shall not escape. Therefore thus saith the Lord God; As I
live, surely mine oath that he hath despised,and my covenant that he hath
broken, even it will I recompense upon his own head." Eze. xvii, 16-19. And
in recompensing this evil upon the head of Zedekiah, the word of Samuel to
the people was fulfilled when he told them, "If ye shall still do wickedly, ye
shall be consumed, both ye and your king." For to Zedekiah, and to the
kingdom forever after, God gave this testimony: "Thou profane, wicked
prince of Israel, whose day is come, when iniquity shall have an end, thus
saith the Lord God: Remove the diadem, and take off the crown; this shall
not be the same; exalt him that is low, and abase him that is high. I will
overturn, overturn, overturn it; and it shall be no more, until he come whose
right it is; and I will give it him." Eze. xxi, 25-27.
The kingdom was then subject to Babylon. When Babylon fell, and Medo-
Persia succeeded, it was overturned the first time. When Medo-Persia fell,
and was succeeded by Grecia, it was overturned the second time. When the
Greek empire gave way to Rome it was overturned the third time. And then
says the word, "It shall be no more, until he come whose right it is; and I
will give it him." And he whose right it is, is thus named: "Thou . . . shalt
call his name Jesus. He shall be great, and shall be called the Son of the
Highest; and the Lord God shall give unto him the throne of his father
David; and he shall reign over the house of Jacob forever; and of his
kingdom there shall be no end." Luke i, 31-33.
235
But that kingdom is not of this world, nor will he sit upon that throne in this
world. While Christ was here as "that prophet," a man of sorrows and
acquainted with grief, he refused to exercise any earthly authority or office
whatever. When appealed to, to mediate in a dispute between two brothers
in regard to their inheritance, he replied, "Man, who made me a judge or a
divider over you?" Luke xii, 14. And when the people would have taken him
and made him a king, he withdrew himself from them, and went to the
mountain alone. John vi, 15. The last night he spent on earth before his
crucifixion,and in the last talk with Pilate before he went to the cross, he
said, "My kingdom is not of this world." John xviii, 36. Thus the throne of
the Lord has been removed from this world, and will be no more in this
world nor of this world, until, as King of kings and Lord of lords, he whose
right it is shall come again. And that time is the end of this world and the
beginning of the world to come. This is shown by many scriptures, some of
which it will be in order here to quote.
To the twelve disciples the Saviour said: "I appoint unto you a kingdom, as
my Father hath appointed unto me; that ye may eat and drink at my table in
my kingdom, and sit on thrones judging the twelve tribes of Israel." Luke
xxii, 29, 30. As to when this shall be, we are informed by the word in
Matthew thus: "In the regeneration when the Son of man shall sit in the of
his glory, ye also shall sit upon twelve thrones, judging the twelve tribes of
Israel." Matt. xix, 23. And the time when he shall sit upon the throne of his
glory, is stated by another passage in Matthew thus: "When the Son of man
shall come in his glory, and all the holy angels with him, then shall he sit
upon the throne of his glory: and before him shall be gathered all nations."
Chap. xxv, 31, 32. By these scriptures and all others on the subject, it is
evident that the kingdom of Christ, the kingdom of God, is not only not of
this world, but is nevermore to be of this world. Therefore while this world
stands, a theocracy can never be in it again. From the death of Christ until
now, every theory of an earthly theocracy has been a false theory. And from
now until the end of the world, every such theory will be a false theory. Yet
such was the their of the bishops of the fourth century; and being such, it
was utterly false and wicked.
The falsity of this theory of the bishops of the fourth century has been
clearly seen by but one of the church historians that is, Neander. And this,
as well as the scheme which the bishops had in mind, has been better
described by him than by all others put together. The design of the bishops
with respect to the civil power is seen in the following statement:-
236
"All things whatsoever that it was duty to do on the Sabbath, these we have
transferred to the Lord's day." - Eusebius.*278
Now the Sabbath is wholly religious. The government in which its
observance was enforced was the government of God. The law by which its
observance was enforced was the law of God. The observance of the
Sabbath was in recognition of Jehovah as the true God, and was a part of
the worship of him as such. Now when it is declared by one of the chiefest
factors in the new theocracy, that all things whatsoever that it was duty to
do on the Sabbath, these we have transferred to the Sunday, this in the
connection in which it stands, is the strongest possible proof that the
observance of the day and the object of the law were wholly, religious,
without a single civil element any where even contemplated. This is
confirmed by the -
Second Count. In accordance with their idea of theocracy, the governmental
system which was now established composed the kingdom of God. We
have seen how this idea was entertained by the bishops at the banquet which
Constantine gave to them at the close of the Council of Nice. We have seen
it further adopted when Constantine's mother sent to him the nails of the
"true cross," of which he made a bridle bit, when the bishops declared that
the prophecy was fulfilled which says, "In that day [the day of the kingdom
of God upon earth] shall there be upon the bridles of the horses, holiness
unto the Lord." This idea, however, stands out in its fullness, in an oration
which Eusebius delivered in praise of Constantine, and in his presence, on
the thirtieth anniversary of the emperor's reign. The flattering bishop
announced that God gave to Constantine greater proofs of his beneficence
in proportion to the emperor's holy services to him, and accordingly had
permitted him to celebrate already three decades, and now was entered upon
the fourth. He related how the emperor at the end of each decennial period,
had advanced one of his sons to a share of the imperial power; a now in the
absence of other sons, he would extend the like favor to other of his
kindred. Thus he said:-
"The eldest, who bears his father's name, he received as his partner in the
empire about the close of the first decade of his reign: the second, next in
point of age, at the second; and the third in like manner at the third
decennial period, the occasion of this our present festival. And now that the
fourth period has commenced, and the time of his reign is still further
prolonged, he desires to extend his imperial authority by calling still more
of his kindred to partake his power; and,by the appointment of the Caesars,
240
fulfills the predictions of the holy prophets, according to what they uttered
ages before: `And the saints of the Most High shall take the kingdom.'" -
Eusebius.*279
Then as we have seen by so many proofs that the sun was the chief deity in
this new kingdom of God, the bishop proceeds to draw for the edification of
the Apollo-loving emperor, the following picture of him as the sun in his
chariot traversing the world; and positively defines the system of
government as a monarchy of God patterned after the divine original: -
"He it is who appoints him this present festival, in that he has made him
victorious every enemy that disturbed his peace: he it is who displays him
as an example of true godliness to the human race. And thus our emperor,
like the radiant sun, illuminates the most distant subjects of his empire
through the presence of the Caesars, as with the far piercing rays of his own
brightness. To us who occupy the Eastern regions he has given a son worthy
of himself; a second and a third respectively to other departments of his
empire, to be, as it were, brilliant reflectors of the light which proceeds
from himself. Once more, having harnessed, as it were, under the selfsame
yoke the four most noble Caesars as horses in the imperial chariot, he sits
on high and directs their course by the reins of holy harmony and concord;
and himself everywhere present, and observant of every event, thus
traverses every region of the world. Lastly, invested as he is with a
semblance of heavenly sovereignty, he directs his gaze above, and frames
his earthly government according to the pattern of that divine original,
felling strength in its conformity to the monarchy of God."*280
This is evidence enough to show that the system of government established
by Constantine and the bishops was considered as in very fact, the kingdom
of God. The laws therefore being laws of the kingdom of God, would
necessarily have a religious character; and that such was held to be the case,
is made plain by the following passage:-
"Our emperor, ever beloved by Him, who derives the source of imperial
authority from above, and is strong in the power of his sacred title, has
controlled the empire of the world for a long period of years. Again: that
Preserver of the universe orders these heavens and earth, and the celestial
kingdom, consistently with his Father's will. Even so our emperor whom he
loves, by bringing those whom he rules on earth to the only begotten Word
and Saviour, renders, them fit subjects of his kingdom."[fn*281]
As the object of the emperor was to render the people fit subject for this
kingdom of God, the Sunday law was plainly in the interests of the new
241
kingdom of God, and was therefore religious only. This is yet further
proved by the-
Third Count. The purpose of the first Sunday law, was "that the day might
be devoted with less interruption to the purposes of devotion." This is
Neander's translation of the statement of Sozomen respecting the first law
closing public offices on Friday and Sunday.*282 Prof. Walford's
translation of the passage is as follows:-
"He also enjoined the observance of the day termed the Lord's day, which
the Jews call the first day of the week, and which the Greeks dedicate to the
sun, as likewise the day before the seventh, and commanded that no judicial
or other business should be transacted on those days, but that God should he
served with prayers and supplications." Sozomen.*283
Such, therefore, was the character and intent of the first enactment
respecting Sunday. And of the second Sunday law we have a statement
equally clear, that such was its purpose also. In praise of Constantine, the
episcopal "orator" says:-
"He commanded, too, that one day should be regarded as a special occasion
for religious worship." - Eusebius.*284
And in naming the great things which Christ had been enabled to
accomplish by the help of Constantine, he shuts out every element upon
which a civil claim might be based, by continuing in the following words:-
"Who else has commanded the nations inhabiting the continents and islands
of this mighty globe to assemble weekly on the Lord's day, and to observe it
as a festival, not indeed for the pampering of the body, BUT for the comfort
and invigoration of the soul by instruction in divine truth?"*285
As the purpose of the Sunday law was to set apart the day for the purposes
of devotion, for the comfort and invigoration of the soul by instruction in
divine truth, and for religious worship, it follows inevitably that the
legislation was wholly religious. This is yet further supported by the-
Fourth Count. The title which is given to the day by Constantine in the
edict, is distinctively religious. It is venerabili die solis - venerable day of
the sun. This was the pagan religious title of the day, and to every heathen
was suggestive of the religious character which attached to the day as the
one especially devoted to the sum and its worship. An additional act of the
emperor himself in this connection, has left no room for reasonable doubt
that the intent of the law was religious only. As the interpreter of his own
242
law, and clearly indicating its intent, he drew up the following prayer,
which he had the soldiers repeat in concert at a given signal every Sunday
morning: -
"We acknowledge thee the only God: we own thee as our King, and implore
thy succor. By thy favor have the gotten victory: through thee are we
mightier than our enemies. We render thanks for thy past benefits, and thee
for future blessings. Together we pray to thee, and beseech thee long to
preserve to us, safe and triumphant, our emperor Constantine and his pious
sons." - Eusebius.*286
If, however, there should be yet in the mind of any person a lingering doubt
as to whether Constantine's Sunday legislation was religious only, with no
though of any civil character whatever, even this must certainly be
effectually removed by the -
Fifth Count. It was by virtue of his office and authority as Pontifex
Maximus, and not as emperor, that the day was set apart to this use; because
it was the sole prerogative of the Pontifex Maximus to appoint holy days. In
proof of this, we have excellent authority in the evidence of two competent
witnesses. Here is the first: -
"The rescript, indeed, for religious observance of the Sunday . . . was
enacted . . . for the whole Roman empire. Yet, unless we had direct proof
that the decree set forth the Christian reason for the sanctity of the day, it
may be doubted whether the act would not be received by the greater part of
the empire, as merely adding one more festival to the Fasti of the empire, as
proceeding entirely from the will of the emperor, or even grounded on his
authority as Supreme Pontiff, by which he had the plenary power of
appointing holy-days." - Milman.*287
It is true that this statement is qualified by the clause "unless we had direct
proof that the decree set forth the Christian reason for the sanctity of the
day;" but this qualification is wholly removed by another statement from the
same author, which reads as follows:-
"The rescript commanding the celebration of the Christian Sabbath bears no
allusion to its peculiar sanctity as a Christian institution. It is the day of the
sun, which is to be observed by the general veneration . . . But the believer
in the new paganism, of which the solar worship was the characteristic,
might acquiesce without scruple in the sanctity of the first day of the
week."*288
This is confirmed by another authority as follows: -
243
"The question having been considered relative to the most holy day of
Easter, it was determined by common consent that it would be proper that
all should celebrate it on one and the same day everywhere. . . . And in the
first place it seemed very unsuitable in the celebration of this sacred feast,
that we should follow the custom of the Jews, a people who, having
imbrued their hands in a most heinous outrage, and thus polluted their souls,
are deservedly blind. . . . Let us then have nothing in common with that
most hostile people the Jews. . . . Surely we should never suffer Easter to be
kept twice in one and the same year. But even if these considerations were
not laid before you, it became your prudence at all times to take heed, both
by diligence and prayer, that the purity of your soul should in nothing have
communion, or seem to have accordance with the customs of men so utterly
depraved. . . .
"Since then it was desirable that this should be so amended that we should
have nothing in common with that nation of parricides, and of those who
slew their Lord; and since the order is a becoming one which is observed by
all the churches of the western, southern, and northern parts, and by some
also in the eastern; from these considerations all have on the present
occasion thought it to be expedient, and I pledged myself that it would be
satisfactory to your prudent penetration, that what is observed with such
general unanimity of sentiment in the city of Rome, throughout Italy,
Africa, all Egypt, Spain, France, Britain, Libya, the whole of Greece, and
the dioceses of Asia, Pontus, and Cilicia, your intelligence also would
readily concur in. Reflect, too, that not only is there a greater number of
churches in the places before mentioned, but also that this in particular is a
most sacred obligation, that all should in common desire whatever strict
reason seems to demand, and which has no communion with the perjury of
the Jews.
"But to sum up matters briefly, it was determined by common consent that
the most holy festival of Easter should be solemnized on one and the same
day; for in such a hallowed solemnity any difference is unseemly, and it is
more commendable to adopt that opinion in which there will be no
intermixture of strange error, or deviation from what is right. These things
therefore being thus ordered, do you gladly receive this heavenly and truly
divine command; for whatever is done in the sacred assemblies of the
bishops is referable to the divine will."
This throws much light upon the next move that was made, as these things
were made the basis of further action by the church.
245
At every step in the course of the apostasy, at every step taken in adopting
the forms of sun worship, and against the adoption and the observance of
Sunday itself, there had been constant protest by all real Christians. Those
who remained faithful to Christ and to the truth of the pure word of God
observed the Sabbath of the Lord according to the commandment, and
according to the word of God which sets forth the Sabbath as the sign by
which the Lord, the Creator of the heavens and the earth, is distinguished
from all other gods. These accordingly protested against every phase and
form of sun worship. Others compromised, especially in the East, by
observing both Sabbath and Sunday. But in the west under Roman
influences and under the leadership of the church and the bishopric of
Rome, Sunday alone was adopted and observed.
Against this Church and State intrigue throughout, there had been also as
against every other step in the course of the apostasy, earnest protest by all
real Christians. But when it came to the point where the church would
enforce by the power of the State the observance of Sunday, this protest
became stronger than ever. And additional strength was given to the protest
at this point, by the fact that it was urged in the words of the very arguments
which the Catholic Church had used when she was antagonized rather than
courted by the imperial authority. This, with the strength of the argument
upon the merit of the question as to the day which should be observed,
greatly weakened the force of the Sunday law. But when, in addition to
these considerations, the exemption was so broad, and when, in addition to
these who observed the Sabbath positively refused to obey the Sunday law,
its effect was virtually nullified.
In order, therefore, to the accomplishment of her original purpose, it now
became necessary for the church to secure legislation extinguishing all
exemption, and prohibiting the observance of the Sabbath so as to quench
that powerful protest. And now, coupled with the necessity of the situation,
the "truly divine command" of Constantine and the Council of Nice that
"nothing" should be held "in common with the Jews," was made the basis
and the authority for legislation, utterly to crush out the observance of the
Sabbath of the Lord, and to establish the observance of Sunday only in its
stead. Accordingly, the Council of Laodicea enacted the following canon: -
"CANON 29. Christians shall not Judaize and be idle on Saturday, but shall
work on that day; but the Lord's day they shall especially honor, and, as
being Christians, shall, if possible, do no work on that day. If, however,
they are found Judaizing, they shall be shut out from Christ."*292
246
on Sundays and other special church days, so that the churches and the
theaters should not be open at the same time.
There was another feature of the case which gave the bishops the
opportunity to make their new demands appear plausible by urging in
another form the selfish and sophistical plea upon which they had asked for
the first edict respecting church days. In the circuses and the theaters large
numbers of men were employed, among whom many were church-
members. But, rather than give up their places, the church-members would
work on Sunday. The bishops complained that these were compelled to
work, and were prohibited to worship: they pronounced it persecution, and
demanded more Sunday laws for "protection."
As a consequence, therefore, and in the logic of the situation, at a council
held at Carthage in June, A. D. 401, the following canon was enacted: -
"CANON 5. On Sundays and feast-days, no plays may be performed."*297
That this canon might also be made effective, the bishops in the same
council passed a resolution, and sent up a petition to the Emperor Honorius,
praying- "That the public shows might be transferred from the Christian
Sunday and from feast-days, to some other days of the week." -
Neander.*298
The reason given in support of the petition was, not only as above, that
those who worked in government offices and employments at such times,
were persecuted, but that - "The people congregate more to the circus than
to the church."*299
The church-members had not enough religion or love of right to do what
they professed to believe was right; therefore the State was asked to take
away from them all opportunity to do wrong: then they would all be
Christians! The devil himself could be made that kind of Christian in that
way - and he would be the devil still!
The petition of the Council of Carthage could not be granted at once, but in
425 the desired law was secured; and to this also there was attached the
reason that was given for the first Sunday law that ever was made; namely,-
"In order that the devotion of the faithful might be free from all
disturbance."*300
It must constantly be borne in mind, however, that the only way in which
"the devotion of the faithful" was "disturbed" by these things, was that when
the circus or the theater was open at the same time that the church was open,
249
the "faithful" would go to the circus or the theater instead of church, and
therefore, their "devotion" was "disturbed." And of course the only way in
which the "devotion" of such "faithful" ones could be freed from all
disturbance, was to close the circuses and the theaters at church time.
In the logic of this theory, there was one more step to be taken. To see how
logically it came about, let us glance at the steps taken from the first one up
to this point: First, the church had all work on Sunday forbidden, in order
that the people might attend to things divine: work was forbidden, that the
people might worship. But the people would not worship: they went to the
circus and the theater instead of to church. Then the church had laws
enacted closing the circuses and the theaters, in order that the people might
attend church. But even then the people would not be devoted, nor attend
church; for they had no real religion. The next step to be taken, therefore, in
the logic of the situation, was to compel them to be devoted - to compel
them to attend to things divine. This was the next step logically to be taken,
and it was taken. The theocratical bishops were equal to the occasion. They
were ready with a theory that exactly met the demands of the case; and one
of the greatest of the Catholic Church Fathers and Catholic saints was the
father of this Catholic saintly theory. He wrote:-
"It is, indeed, better that men should be brought to serve God by instruction
than by fear of punishment or by pain. But because the former means are
better, the latter must not therefore be neglected. . . . Many must often be
brought back to their Lord, like wicked servants, by the rod of temporal
suffering, before they attain the highest grade of religious development." -
Augustine.*301
Of this theory, the author who of all the church historians has best exposed
the evil workings of this false theocracy, justly observes:-
"It was by Augustine, then that a theory was proposed and founded, which .
. . contained the germ of that whole system of spiritual despotism of
intolerance and persecution, which ended in the tribunals of the
Inquisition." - Neander.*302
The history of the Inquisition is only the history of this infamous theory of
Augustine's. But this theory is only the logical sequence of the theory upon
which the whole series of Sunday laws was founded.
In closing his history of this particular subject, the same author says: -
"In this way the Church received help from the State for the furtherance of
her ends." - Neander.*303
250
This statement is correct. Constantine did many things to favor the bishops.
He gave them money and political preference. He made their decisions in
disputed cases final, as the decision of Jesus Christ. But in nothing that he
did for them did he give them power over those who did not belong to the
church, to compel them to act as though they did, except in the one thing of
the Sunday law. In the Sunday law, power was given to the church to
compel those who
did not belong to the church, and who were not subject to the jurisdiction of
the church, to obey the commands of the church. In the Sunday law there
was given to the church control of the civil power, that by it she could
compel those who did not belong to the church to act as though they did.
The history of Constantine's time may be searched through and through, and
it will be found that in nothing did he give to the church any such power,
except in this one thing - the Sunday law. Neander's statement is literally
correct, that it was "in this way the church received help from the State for
the furtherance of her ends."
That this may be set before the reader in as clear a light as possible, we shall
here summarize the facts stated by Neander in their direct bearing. He says
of the carrying into effect of the theocratical theory of the apostate bishops,
that they made themselves dependent upon Constantine by their disputes,
and "by their determination to use the power of the State for the furtherance
of their aims." Then he mentions that first and second Sunday laws of
Constantine, the Sunday law of A. D. 386, the Carthaginian council,
resolution, and petition of 401, and the law of 425 in response to this
petition; and then, without a break, and with direct reference to these
Sunday laws, he says: "In this way the church received help from the State
for the furtherance of her ends."
She started out with the determination to do it; she did it; and "In this way"
she did it. And when she had secured control of the power of the state, she
used it for the furtherance of her own aims, and that in her own despotic
way, as announced in the inquisitorial theory of Augustine. The first step
logically led to the last. And the theocratical leaders in the movement had
the cruel courage to follow the first step unto the last, as framed in the
words of Augustine, and illustrated in the horrors of the Inquisition during
the fearful record of the dreary ages in which the bishopric of Rome was
supreme over kings and nations.
251
CHAPTER XIV.
ESTABLISHMENT OF THE CATHOLIC FAITH.
THE Donatist dispute had developed the decision and established the fact
that it was "the Catholic Church of Christians" in which was embodied the
Christianity which was to be recognized as the imperial religion.
Constantine had allied himself with the church only for political advantage.
The only use he had for the church, was in a political way. Its value for this
purpose lay entirely in its unity. If the church should be all broken up and
divided into separate bodies, its value as a political factor would be gone.
The Catholic Church, on her part, had long asserted the necessity of unity
with the bishopric, a unity in which the bishopric should be possessed of
authority to prohibit, as well as power to prevent, heresy. The church had
supported and aided Constantine in the overthrow of Maxentius and the
conquest of Rome. She again supported and materially aided him in the
overthrow of Licinius and the complete conquest of the whole empire. She
had received a rich reward for her assistance in the first political move; and
she now demanded her pay for services rendered in the second and final
one.
The Catholic Church demanded assistance in her ambitious aim to make her
power and authority absolute over all; and for Constantine's purposes it was
essential that the church should be a unit. These two considerations
combined to produce results both immediate and remote, that proved a
curse to the time then present and to ages to follow. The immediate result
was that Constantine had no sooner compassed the destruction of Licinius
in A.D. 323, than he issued an edict against the Novatians, Valentinians,
Marcionites, Paulians, Cataphrygians, and "all who devised and supported
heresies by means of private assemblies," denouncing them and their
heresies, and commanding them all to enter the Catholic Church. The edict
runs as follows: -
"Victor Constantinus Maximus Augustus, to the heretics: Understand now,
by this present statute, ye Novatians, Valentinians, Marcionites, Paulians,
ye who are called Cataphrygians, and all ye who devise and support
heresies by means of your private assemblies, with what a tissue of
falsehood and vanity, with what destructive and venomous errors, your
doctrines are inseparably interwoven; so that through you the healthy soul is
252
stricken with disease,and the living becomes the prey of everlasting death.
Ye haters and enemies of truth and life, in league with destruction: All your
counsels are opposed to the truth, but familiar with deeds of baseness; fit
subjects for the fabulous follies of the stage: and by these ye frame
falsehoods, oppress the innocent, and withhold the light from them that
believe. Ever trespassing under the mask of godliness, ye fill all things with
defilement: ye pierce the pure and guileless conscience with deadly wounds,
while ye withdraw, one may almost say, the very light of day from the eyes
of men. But why should I particularize, when to speak of your criminality as
it deserves, demands more time and leisure than I can give? For so long and
unmeasured is the catalogue of your offenses, so hateful and altogether
atrocious are they, that a single day would not suffice to recount them all.
And indeed it is well to turn one's ears and eyes from such a subject, lest by
a description of each particular evil, the pure sincerity and freshness of one's
own faith be impaired. Why then do I still bear with such abounding evil;
especially since this protracted clemency is the cause that some who were
sound are become tainted with this pestilent disease? Why not at once
strike, as it were, at the root of so great a mischief by a public manifestation
of displeasure?
"Forasmuch, then, as it is no longer possible to bear with your pernicious
errors, we give warning by this present statute that none of you henceforth
presume to assemble yourselves together. We have directed, accordingly,
that you be deprived of all the houses in which you are accustomed to hold
your assemblies: and our care in this respect extends so far as to forbid the
holding of your superstitious and senseless meetings, not in public merely,
but in any private house or place whatsoever. Let those of you, therefore,
who are desirous of embracing the true and pure religion, take the far better
course of entering the Catholic Church, and uniting with it in holy
fellowship, whereby you will be enabled to arrive at the knowledge of the
truth. In any case, the delusions of your perverted understandings must
entirely cease to mingle with and mar the felicity of our present times; I
mean the impious and wretched doublemindedness of heretics and
schismatics. For it is an object worthy of that prosperity which we enjoy
through the favor of God, to endeavor to bring back those who in time past
were living in the hope of future blessing, from all irregularity and error, to
the right path, from darkness to light, from vanity to truth, from death to
salvation. And in order that this remedy may be applied with effectual
power, we have commanded (as before said), that you be positively
deprived of every gathering point for your superstitious meetings; I mean all
253
the houses of prayer (if such be worthy of the name) which belong to
heretics, and that these be made over without delay to the Catholic Church;
that any other places be confiscated to the public service, and no facility
whatever be left for any future gathering; in order that from this day
forward none of your unlawful assemblies may presume to appear in any
public or private place. Let this edict be made public."*304
Some of the penal regulations of this edict "were copied from the edicts of
Diocletian; and this method of conversion was applauded by the same
bishops who had felt the hand of oppression, and had pleaded for the rights
of humanity." - Gibbon. *305
The Donatist dispute resulted in the establishment of the Catholic Church.
Yet that dispute involved no question of doctrine, but of discipline only.
Just at this time, however, there sprang into prominence the famous
Trinitarian Controversy, which involved, and under the circumstances
demanded, an imperial decision as to what was the Catholic Church in point
of doctrine - what was the Catholic Church in deed and in truth, and which
plunged the empire into a sea of tumult and violence that continued as long
as the empire itself continued, and afflicted other nations after the empire
had perished.
A certain Alexander was bishop of Alexandria. Arius was a presbyter in
charge of a parish church in the same city. Alexander attempted to explain
"the unity of the Holy Trinity." Arius dissented from the views set forth by
Alexander. A sort of synod of the presbyters of the city was called, and the
question was discussed. Both sides claimed the victory, and the controversy
spread. Then Alexander convened a council of a hundred bishops, by the
majority of which the views of Alexander were indorsed. Upon this, Arius
was commanded to abandon his own opinions, and adopt Alexander's. Arius
refused, and Alexander excommunicated him and all who held with him in
opinion, of whom there were a considerable number of bishops and other
clergy, and many of the people.
The partisans of Arius wrote to many bishops a statement of their views,
with a request that if those views were considered correct, they would use
their influence to have Alexander receive them again to communion; but if
they thought the views to be wrong in any particular, they would signify it,
and show them what were the correct opinions on the question. Arius for
himself wrote a book entitled "Thalia," - Songs of Joy - a collection of
songs in which he set forth his views. This expedient took well, for in the
excited state of the parties, his doctrinal songs were hummed everywhere.
254
Alexander on his part, likewise, sent circular letters to the principal bishops
round about. The controversy spread everywhere, and as it spread, it
deepened.
One of the chief reasons for the rapid and wide-spread interest in the
controversy was that nobody could comprehend or understand the question
at issue. "It was the excess of dogmatism founded upon the most abstract
words in the most abstract region of human thought." - Stanley.303 There
was no dispute about the fact of there being a Trinity, it was about the
nature of the Trinity. Both parties believed in precisely the same Trinity, but
they differed upon the precise relationship which the Son bears to the
Father. Alexander declared: -
"The Son is immutable and unchangeable, all-sufficient and perfect, like the
Father, differing only in this one respect, that the Father is unbegotten. He is
the exact image of his Father. Everything is found in the image which exists
in its archetype; and it was this that our Lord taught when he said, `My
Father is greater than I.' And accordingly we believe that the Son proceeded
from the Father; for he is the reflection of the glory of the Father, and the
figure of his substance. But let no one be led from this to the supposition
that the Son is unbegotten, as is believed by some who are deficient in
intellectual power: for to say that he was, that he has always been, and that
he existed before all ages, is not to say that he is unbegotten."*306
Arius said: -
"We say and believe, and have taught, and do teach, that the Son is not
unbegotten, nor in any way unbegotten, even in part; and that he does not
derive his subsistence from any matter; but that by his own will and counsel
he has subsisted before time,and before ages,as perfect God, and only
begotten and unchangeable,and that he existed not before he was begotten,
or created, or purposed, or established. For he was not unbegotten. We are
persecuted because we say that the Son had a beginning, but that God was
without beginning. This is really the cause of our persecution, and likewise,
because we say he is from nothing. And this we say, because he is neither
part of God, nor of any subjacent matter."*307
From these statements by the originators of the respective sides of this
controversy,it appears that with the exception of a single point, the two
views were identical, only being stated in different ways. The single point
where the difference lay was that Alexander held that the Son was begotten
of the very essence of the Father, and is therefore of the same substance
with the Father, while Arius held that the Son was begotten by the Father,
255
not from his own essence, but from nothing; but that when he was thus
begotten,he was, and is, of precisely the like substance with the Father.
Whether the Son of God, therefore, is of the same substance, or only of like
substance, with the Father, was the question in dispute. The controversy
was carried on in Greek, and as expressed in Greek the whole question
turned upon a single letter. The word which expressed Alexander's belief, is
Homoousion. The word which expressed the belief of Arius, is
Homoiousion. One of the words has two "i's" in it, and the other has but
one; but why the word should or should not have that additional "i," neither
party could ever exactly determine. Even Athanasius himself, who
succeeded Alexander in the bishopric of Alexandria, and transcended him in
every other quality, "has candidly confessed that whenever he forced his
understanding to meditate upon the divinity of the Logos, his toilsome and
unavailing efforts recoiled on themselves; that the more he thought, the less
he comprehended; and the more he wrote, the less capable was he of
expressing his thoughts." - Gibbon.*308
It could not possibly be otherwise, because it was an attempt of the finite to
measure, to analyze, and even to dissect, the Infinite. It was an attempt to
make the human superior to the divine. God is infinite. No finite mind can
comprehend him as he actually is. Christ is the Word - the expression of the
thought - of God; and none but he knows the depth of the meaning of that
Word. "He had a name written that no man knew but he himself; . . . and his
name is called The Word of God." Rev. xix, 12, 13. Neither the nature nor
the relationship of the Father and the Son can ever be measured by the mind
of man. "No man knoweth the Son but the Father, neither knoweth any man
the Father save the Son and he to whomsoever the Son will reveal him."
Matt. xi, 27. This revelation of the Father by the Son cannot be complete in
this world. It will require the eternal ages for man to understand "the
exceeding riches of his grace in his kindness toward us through Christ
Jesus." Eph. ii, 7. Therefore, no man's conception of God can ever be fixed
as the true conception of God. God will still be infinitely beyond the
broadest comprehension that the mind of man can measure. The true
conception of God can be attained only through "the Spirit of revelation in
the knowledge of Him." Eph. i, 17. Therefore the only thing for men to do
to find out the Almighty to perfection, is, by true faith in Jesus Christ, to
receive the abiding presence of this Spirit of revelation, and then quietly and
joyfully wait for the eternal ages to reveal "the depth of the riches both of
the wisdom and the knowledge of God."
256
One who lived near the time of, and was well acquainted with, the whole
matter, has well remarked that the discussion "seemed not unlike a contest
in the dark; for neither party appeared to understand distinctly the grounds
on which they calumniated one another. Those who objected to the word
`consubstantial' [Homoousion, of the same substance], conceived that those
who approved it, favored the opinion of Sabellius and Montanus; they
therefore called them blasphemers, as subverters of the existence of the Son
of God. And again the advocates of this term, charging their opponents with
polytheism, inveighed against them as introducers of heathen superstitions. .
. . In consequence of these misunderstandings, each of them wrote volumes,
as if contending against adversaries: and although it was admitted on both
sides that the Son of God has a distinct person and existence, and all
acknowledged that there is one God in a Trinity of persons, yet, from what
cause I am unable to divine, they could not agree among themselves, and
therefore were never at peace." - Socrates.*309
That which puzzled Socrates need not puzzle us. Although he could not
divine why they should not agree when they believed the same thing, we
may very readily do so, with no fear of mistake. The difficulty was that
each disputant required that all the others should not only believe what he
believed, but that they should believe this precisely ashe believed it,
whereas just how he believed it, he himself could not define. And that
which made them so determined in this respect was that "the contest was
now not merely for a superiority over a few scattered and obscure
communities: it was agitated on a far vaster theater - that of the Roman
world. The proselytes whom it disputed were sovereigns. . . . It but but
judging on the common principles of human nature to conclude that the
grandeur of the prize supported the ambition and inflamed the passions of
the contending parties; that human motives of political power and
aggrandizement mingled with the more spiritual influence of the love of
truth, and zeal for the purity of religion." - Milman.*310
It is but just to Arius, however, to say that he had nothing to do with the
political aspect of the question. He defended his views in the field of
argument, and maintained his right to think for himself. Others took up the
argument with more ambitious motives,and these soon carried it far beyond
the power or the guidance of Arius. The chief of these and really the leader
of the Arian party in the politicotheological contest, was Eusebius, bishop
of Nicomedia. This Eusebius is to be distinguished always from Eusebius,
bishop of Caesarea, who was Constantine's favorite, although both were
Arians.
257
The controversy spread farther and farther, and raged more fiercely as it
spread. "All classes took part in it, and almost all took part with equal
energy. `Bishop rose against bishop, district against district, only to be
compared to the Symplegades dashed against each other on a stormy day.'
So violent were the discussions that they were parodied in the pagan
theaters, and the emperor's statues were broken in the public squares in the
conflicts which took place. The common name by which the Arians and
their system were designated (and we may conclude they were not wanting
in retorts), was the Maniacs, - the Ariomaniacs, the Ariomania; and their
frantic conduct on public occasions afterwards goes far to justify the
appellation. Sailors, millers, and travelers sang the disputed doctrines at
their occupations or on their journeys. Every corner, every alley of the city
[this was said afterwards of Constantinople, but must have been still more
true of Alexandria] was full of these discussions - the streets, the market-
places, the drapers, the money-changers, the victualers. Ask a man `how
many oboli?' he answers by dogmatizing on generated and ungenerated
being. Inquire the price of bread, and you are told, `The Son is subordinate
to the Father.' Ask if the bath is ready, and you are told, `The Son arose out
of nothing.'" - Stanley.*311
Constantine's golden dream of a united Christendom was again grievously
disturbed. The bow of promise - of the bishops - which had so brilliantly
irradiated all the political prospect when his alliance was formed with the
church party, was rudely dissipated by the dark cloud of ecclesiastical
ambition, and the angry storm of sectarian strife. He wrote a letter to
Alexander and Arius, stating to them his mission of uniting the world under
one head, and his anxious desire that there should be unity among all, and
exhorted them to lay aside their contentions, forgive one another, use their
efforts for the restoration of peace, and so give back to him his quiet days
and tranquil nights. The letter is long, but it is worth giving in full, not only
on account of the present question, but because it so clearly shows the
views and the hopes of Constantine, as to the unity of the church; and which
controlled him in his alliance with the church party.
"Victor Constantinus Maximus Augustus, to Alexander and Arius: I call
that God to witness (as well I may), who is the helper of my endeavors, and
the Preserver of all men, that I had a twofold reason for undertaking that
duty which I have now effectually performed.
"My design then was, first, to bring the diverse judgments formed by all
nations respecting the Deity to a condition, as it were, of settled uniformity;
258
and, secondly, to restore a healthy tone to the system of the world, then
suffering under the malignant power of a grievous distemper. Keeping these
objects in view, I look forward to the accomplishment of the one with the
secret gaze of the mental eye, while the other I endeavored to secure by the
aid of military power. For I was aware that, if I should succeed in
establishing, according to my hopes, a common harmony of sentiment
among all the servants of God, the general course of affairs would also
experience a change correspondent to the pious desires of them all.
"Finding, then, that the whole of Africa was pervaded by an intolerable
spirit of madness and folly, through the influences of those whose wanton
temerity had presumed to rend the religion of the people into diverse sects, I
was anxious to allay the virulence of this disorder, and could discover no
other remedy equal to the occasion, except in sending some of yourselves to
aid in restoring mutual harmony among the disputants, after I had removed
that common enemy of mankind [Licinius] who had interposed his lawless
sentence for the prohibition of your holy synods.
"For since the power of divine light, and the rule of our holy religion, which
have illumined the world by their sacred radiance, proceeded in the first
instance, through the favor of God, from the bosom, as it were, of the East, I
naturally believed that you would be the first to promote the salvation of
other nations, and resolved with all energy of purpose and diligence of
inquiry to seek your aid. As soon, therefore, as I had secured my decisive
victory and unquestionable triumph over my enemies, my first inquiry was
concerning that object which I felt to be of paramount interest and
importance.
"But, O glorious providence of God! How deep a wound did not my ears
only, but my very heart, receive in the report that divisions existed among
yourselves more grievous still than those which continued in that country,
so that you, through whose aid I had hoped to procure a remedy for the
errors of others, are in a state which demands even more attention than
theirs. And yet, having made a careful inquiry into the origin and
foundation of these differences. I find the cause to be of a truly insignificant
character,and quite unworthy of such fierce contention. Feeling myself,
therefore, compelled to address you in this letter, and to appeal at the same
time to your unanimity and sagacity, I call on Divine Providence to assist
me in the task, while I interrupt your dissensions in the character of a
minister of peace. And with reason: for if I might expect (with the help of a
higher power) to be able without difficulty, by a judicious appeal to the
259
pious feelings of those who heard me, to recall them to a better spirit, how
can I refrain from promising myself a far easier and more speedy
adjustment of this difference, when the cause which hinders general
harmony of sentiment is intrinsically trifling and of little moment?
"I understand, then, that the occasion of your present controversy is to be
traced to the following circumstances: that you, Alexander, demanded of
the presbyters what opinion they severally maintained respecting a certain
passage in the divine law, or rather, I should say, that you asked them
something connected with an unprofitable question: and then that you,
Arius, inconsiderately gave utterance to objections which ought never to
have been conceived at all, or if conceived, should have been buried in
profound silence. Hence it was that a dissension arose between you; the
meeting of the synod was prohibited; and the holy people, rent into diverse
parties, no longer preserved the unity of the one body. Now, therefore, do
ye both exhibit an equal degree of forbearance, and receive the advice
which your fellow-servant feels himself justly entitled to give.
"What then is this advice? It was wrong in the first instance to propose such
questions as these, or to reply to them when propounded. For those points of
discussion which are enjoined by the authority of no law, but rather
suggested by the contentious spirit which is fostered by misused leisure,
even though they may be intended merely as an intellectual exercise, ought
certainly to be confined to the region of our own thoughts, and neither
hastily produced in the public assemblies of the saints, nor unadvisedly
intrusted to the general ear. For how very few are there able either
accurately to comprehend, or adequately to explain, subjects so sublime and
abstruse in their nature? Or, granting that one were fully competent for this,
in how few ordinary minds will he succeed in producing conviction? Or
who, again, in dealing with questions of such subtle nicety as these, can
secure himself against a dangerous declension from the truth? It is
incumbent, therefore, on us in these cases to be sparing of our words, lest,
in case we ourselves are unable, through the feebleness of our natural
faculties, to give a clear explanation of the subject before us, or, on the
other hand, in case the slowness of our hearers' understandings disables
them from arriving at an accurate apprehension of what we say, from one or
other of these causes we reduce the people to the alternative either of
blasphemy or schism.
"Let therefore both the unguarded questions and the inconsiderate answer
receive your mutual forgiveness. For your difference has not arisen on any
260
leading doctrines or precepts of the divine law, nor have you introduced any
new dogma respecting the worship of God. You are in truth of one and the
same judgment: you may therefore well join in that communion which is
the symbol of united fellowship.
"For as long as you continue to contend about these truly insignificant
questions, it is not fitting that so large a portion of God's peopleshould be
under the direction of your judgment, since you are thus divided between
yourselves. I believe it indeed to be not merely unbecoming, but positively
evil, that such should be the case. But I will appeal to your good sense by a
familiar instance to illustrate my meaning: You know that philosophers,
while they all adhere to the general tenets of their respective sects, are
frequently at issue on some particular assertion or statement: and yet,
though they may differ as to the perfection of a principle, they are recalled
to harmony of sentiment by the uniting power of their common doctrines. If
this be true, is it not far more reasonable that you, who are the ministers of
the supreme God, should be of one mind respecting the profession of the
same religion?
"But let us still more thoughtfully and with closer attention examine what I
have said, and see whether it be right that, on the ground of some trifling
and foolish verbal difference between ourselves,brethren should assume
towards each other the attitude of enemies, and the august meeting of the
synod be rent by profane disunion, because we will wrangle together on
points so trivial and altogether unessential. Surely this conduct is unworthy
of us, and rather characteristic of childish ignorance, than consistent with
the wisdom of priests and men of sense. Let us withdraw ourselves with a
good will from these temptations of the devil. Our great God and common
Saviour has granted the same light to us all. Permit me, who am his servant,
to bring my task to a successful issue, under the direction of his Providence,
that I may be enabled through my exhortations, and diligence, and earnest
admonition, to recall his people to the fellowship of one communion. For
since you have, as I said, but one faith, and one sentiment respecting our
religion, and since the divine commandment in all its parts enjoins on us all
the duty of maintaining a spirit of concord, let not the circumstance which
has led to a slight difference between you, since it affects not the general
principles of truth, be allowed to prolong any division or schism among
you.
"And this I say without in any way desiring to force you to entire unity of
judgment in regard to this truly idle question, whatever its real nature may
261
be. For the dignity of your synod may be preserved, and the communion of
your whole body maintained unbroken, however wide a difference may
exist among you as to unimportant matters. For we are not all of us like-
minded on every subject, nor is there such a thing as one disposition and
judgment common to all alike. As far then as regards the divine Providence,
let there be one faith, and one understanding among you, one united
judgment in reference to God. But as to your subtle disputations on
questions of little or no significance, though you may be unable to
harmonize in sentiment, such differences should be consigned to the secret
custody of your own mind and thoughts. And now let the precious bonds of
common affection, let faith in the truth, let the honor due to God, and the
observance of his law, continue immovably established among you.
Resume, then, your mutual feelings of affection and regard; permit the
whole body of the people once more to unite in that embrace which should
be natural to all: and do ye yourselves, having purified your souls, as it
were, from every angry thought, once more return to your former
fellowship. For it often happens that when a reconciliation is affected by the
removal of the causes of enmity, friendship becomes even sweeter than it
was before.
"Restore me then my quiet days and untroubled nights, that henceforth the
joy of light undimmed by sorrow, the delight of a tranquil life, may
continue to be my portion. Else must I needs mourn, with copious and
constant tears, nor shall I be able to pass the residue of my days without
disquietude. For while the people of God, whose fellowservant I am, are
thus divided amongst themselves by an unreasonable and pernicious spirit
of contention, how is it possible that I shall be able to maintain tranquillity
of mind? And I will give you a proof how great my sorrow has been on this
behalf. Not long since I had visited Nicomedia, and intended forthwith to
proceed from that city to the East. It was while I was on the point of
hastening towards you, and was already among you in thought and desire,
that the news of this matter arrested my intended progress, that I might not
be compelled to witness that which I felt myself scarcely able even to hear.
Open then for me henceforward by your unity of judgment that road to the
regions of the East which your dissensions have closed against me, and
permit me speedily to see the happiness both of yourselves and of all other
provinces, and to render due acknowledgment to God in the language of
praise and thanksgiving for the restoration of general concord and liberty to
all."*312
262
This letter he sent by the hand of Hosius, whom he made his ambassador to
reconcile the disputants. But both the letter and the mission of Hosius were
in vain; and yet the more so, by the very fact that the parties were now
assured that the controversy had attracted the interested attention of the
imperial authority. As imperial favor, imperial patronage, and imperial
power, were the chief objects of the contest; and as this effort of the
emperor showed that the reward was almost within the grasp of whichever
party might prove successful; the contention was deepened rather than
abated.
It had already been decided that the imperial favor and patronage was for
the Catholic Church. Each of these parties claimed to be the orthodox and
only Catholic Church. The case of the Donatists had been referred to a
council of bishops for adjudication. It was but natural that this question
should be treated in the same way. But whereas the case of the Donatists
affected only a very small portion of the empire, this question directly
involved the whole East, and greatly concerned much of the West. More
than this, the Catholic religion was now the religion of the empire. This
dispute was upon the question as to what is the truth of the Catholic
religion. Therefore if the question was to be settled, it must be settled for
the whole empire. These considerations demanded a general council.
Therefore,a general council was called, A.D. 325, which met at the city of
Nice, the latter part of May or the first part of June, in that year.
The number of bishops that composed the council was three hundred and
eighteen, while the number of "the presbyters and deacons, in their train,
and the crowd of acolytes and other attendants, was altogether beyond
computation" (Eusebius*313), all of whom traveled and were entertained to
and from the council, and while there, at the public expense. "They came as
fast as they could run, in almost a frenzy of excitement and enthusiasm; the
actual crowd must have been enough to have metamorphosed the place."
And "shrill above all other voices, vehement above all other disputants,
`brandishing their arguments like spears, against those who sat under the
same roof and ate off the same tables as themselves,' were the combatants
from Alexandria, who had brought to its present pass the question which the
council was called to decide." - Stanley.*314
The emperor did not arrive at Nice for several days after the others had
reached that place; but when he came, "He had no sooner taken up his
quarters in the palace of Nicaea, than he found showered in upon him a
number of parchment rolls, or letters, containing complaints and petitions
263
against each other from the larger part of the assembled bishops. We cannot
ascertain with certainty whether they were collected in a single day, or went
on accumulating day after day. It was a poor omen for the unanimity which
he had so much at heart. . . . We are expressly told both by Eusebius and
Sozomen, that one motive which had drawn many to the council was the
hope of settling their own private concerns, and promoting their own private
interests. . . . There, too, were the pent-up grudges and quarrels of years,
which now for the first time had an opportunity of making themselves
heard. Never before had these remote, often obscure, ministers of a
persecuted sect come within the range of imperial power. He whose
presence was for the first time so close to them, bore the same authority of
which the apostle had said that it was the supreme earthly distributor of
justice to mankind. Still after all due allowance, it is impossible not to share
in the emperor's astonishment that this should have been the first act of the
first Ecumenical Assembly of the Christian Church." - Stanley.*315
The council met in a large hall in the palace of the emperor, which had been
arranged for the purpose. In the center of the room on a kind of throne, was
placed a copy of the gospels; at one end of the hall was placed a richly
carved throne,which was to be occupied by Constantine. The day came for
the formal opening of the assembly. The bishops were all assembled with
their accompanying presbyters and deacons; but as it was an imperial
council, it could not be opened but by the emperor himself; and they waited
in silence for him to come. "At last a signal from without - probably a torch
raised by the `cursor' or avaunt-courier - announced that the emperor was
close at hand. The whole assembly rose and stood on their feet; and then for
the first time set their admiring gaze on Constantine, the conqueror, the
august, the great.
"He entered. His towering stature, his strong-built frame, his broad
shoulders, his handsome features, were worthy of his grand position. There
was a brightness in his look and mingled expression of fierceness and
gentleness in his lion-like eye, which well became one who, as Augustus
before him, had fancied, and perhaps still fancied, himself to be the favorite
of the sun-god Apollo. The bishops were further struck by the dazzling,
perhaps barbaric, magnificence of his dress. Always careful of his
appearance, he was so on this occasion in an eminent degree. His long hair,
false or real, was crowned with the imperial diadem of pearls. His purple or
scarlet robe blazed with precious stones and gold embroidery. He was shod
no doubt in the scarlet shoes then confined to emperors, now perpetuated in
the pope and cardinals. Many of the bishops had probably never seen any
264
God who is over all, and you will render the greatest boon to me, your
fellow-servant."*317
Thus the council was formally opened, and then the emperor signified to the
judges of the assembly to go on with the proceedings. "From this moment
the flood-gates of debate were opened wide; and from side to side
recriminations and accusations were bandied to and fro, without regard to
the imperial presence. He remained unmoved amid the clatter of angry
voices, turning from one side of the hall to the other, giving his whole
attention to the questions proposed, bringing together the violent partisans."
- Stanley.*318 To end their personal spites, and turn their whole attention to
the question which was to come properly before the assembly, he took from
the folds of his mantle the whole bundle of their complaints and
recriminations against one another, which they had submitted to him
immediately upon his arrival. He laid the bundle out before the assembly
bound up, and sealed with the imperial ring. Then, after stating that he had
not read one of them, he ordered a brazier to be brought in, and at once
burned them in the presence of the whole assembly. As they were burning,
he addressed the authors of them in the following words: -
"`You have been made by God priests and rulers, to judge and decide, . . .
and have even been made gods, so highly raised as you are above men; for
it is written, "I have said ye are gods, and ye are all the children of the Most
High;" "and God stood in the congregation of the gods, and in the midst he
judges the gods." You ought really to neglect these common matters, and
devote yourselves to the things of God. It is not for me to judge of what
awaits the judgment of God only.' And as the libels vanished into ashes, he
urged them, `Never to let the faults of men in their consecrated offices be
publicly known to the scandal and temptation of the multitude.' `Nay,' he
added, doubtless spreading out the folds of his imperial mantle as he spoke,
`even though I were with my own eyes to see a bishop in the act of gross
sin, I would throw my purple robe over him, that no one might suffer from
the sight of such a crime.'"*319
Then the great question that had caused the calling of the council was taken
up. There were three parties in the council - those who sided with
Alexander, those who sided with Arius, and those who were non-committal,
or, through hope of being mediators, held the middle ground. Arius, not
being a bishop, could not hold an official seat in the council, but he had
come at the express command of Constantine, and "was frequently called
upon to express his opinions." Athanasius, who was more responsible for
266
the present condition of the dispute than was Alexander himself, though
only a deacon, came with his bishop Alexander. He, likewise, though not
entitled to an official place in the council, played not a small part in the
discussion and in bringing about the final result of the council.
The party of Alexander and Athanasius, it was soon discovered, could
depend upon the majority of the council; and they determined to use this
power in the formulation of such a statement of doctrine as would suit
themselves first,and if it should be found impossible for the party of Arius
honestly to accept it, so much the better they would be pleased.
In the discussion, some of the songs which Arius had written, were read. As
soon as Alexander's party heard them, they threw up their hands in horror,
and then clapped them upon their ears and shut their eyes, that they might
not be defiled with the fearful heresy.
Next the draft of a creed was brought in, signed by eighteen bishops of the
party of Arius; but it was not suffered to exist long enough for anybody ever
to obtain a copy. Their opponents broke into a wild uproar, tore the
document to pieces, and expelled Arius from the assembly.
Next, Eusebius of Caesarea, - Constantine's panegyrist - thought to bring the
parties together by presenting a creed that had been largely in use before
this dispute ever arose. He stated that this confession of faith was one which
he had learned in his childhood, from the bishop of Caesarea, and one
which he accepted at his baptism, and which he had taught through his
whole career, both as a presbyter and as a bishop. As an additional
argument, and one which he intended to be of great weight in the council,
he declared that "it had been approved by the emperor, the beloved of
heaven, who had already seen it." It read as follows: -
"I believe in one God, the Father Almighty, maker of all things both visible
and invisible, and in one Lord Jesus Christ, the Word of God, God of God,
Light of Light, Life of Life, the only begotten Son, the First-born of every
creature, begotten of the Father before all worlds, by whom also all things
were made. Who for our salvation was made flesh, and lived amongst men,
and suffered, and rose again on the third day, and ascended to the Father,
and shall come in glory to judge the quick and the dead. And we believe in
one Holy Ghost. Believing each of them to be and to have existed, the
Father, only the Father; and the Son, only the Son; and the Holy Ghost, only
the Holy Ghost: as also our Lord sending forth his own disciples to preach,
said, `Go and teach all nations, baptizing them into the name of the Father,
and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost:' concerning which things we affirm
267
that it is so, and that we so think, and that it has long so been held, and that
we remain steadfast to death for this faith, anathematizing every godless
heresy. That we have thought these things from our heart and soul, from the
time that we have known ourselves, and that we now think and say thus in
truth, we testify in the name of Almighty God, and of our Lord Jesus Christ,
being able to prove even by demonstration, and to persuade you that in the
past times also thus we believed and preached."*320
As soon as this was read in the council, the party of Arius all signified their
willingness to subscribe to it. But this did not suit the party of Alexander
and Athanasius; it was rather the very thing that they did not want, for "they
were determined to find some form of words which no Arian could
receive." They hunted about, therefore, for some point or some word, upon
which they could reject it. It will be noticed that this creed says nothing
about the substance of the Son of God, while that was the very question
which had brought the council together. Eusebius, bishop of Nicomedia,
was chief of the Arians who held seats in the council. At this point a letter
was brought forth. which he had formerly written, in which he had stated
that "to assert the Son to be uncreated, would be to say that he was `of one
substance' - Homoousion - with the Father, and to say that `He was of one
substance' was a proposition evidently absurd."
This gave to the party of Alexander and Athanasius the very opportunity
which they desired; it supplied from the opposite party the very word upon
which they had all the time insisted, and one of the chiefs of that party had
declared that the use of the word in that connection was evidently absurd. If
they, therefore, should insist upon the use of that very word, it would
certainly exclude the Arian party. "The letter produced a violent excitement.
There was the very test of which they were in search; the letter was torn in
pieces to mark their indignation, and the phrase which he had pledged
himself to reject became the phrase which they pledged themselves to
adopt." - Stanley.*321
As Constantine had approved the creed already read by Eusebius, the
question of the party of Alexander now was whether he would approve it
with the addition of this word, and the hopes of both parties now hung
trembling upon the emperor. Hosius and his associates, having the last
consultation with him, brought him over to their side. At the next meeting
of the assembly, he again presented the creed of Eusebius, approved it, and
called upon all to adopt it. Seeing, however, that the majority would not
accept the creed of Eusebius as it was, Constantine decided to "gain the
268
assent of the orthodox, that is, the most powerful, part of the assembly," by
inserting the disputed word. "He trusted that by this insertion they might be
gained, and yet that,under the pressure of fear and favor,the others might
not be altogether repelled. He therefore took the course the most likely to
secure this result, and professed himself the patron and also the interpreter
of the new phrase."- Stanley.*322
Constantine ordered the addition of the disputed word. The party of
Alexander and Athanasius, now assured of the authority of the emperor,
required the addition of other phrases to the same purpose, so that when the
creed was finally written out in full, it read as follows: -
"We believe in one God, the Father Almighty, Maker of all things both
visible and invisible.
"And in one Lord Jesus Christ, the Son of God, begotten of the Father, only
begotten, that is to say, of the substance of the Father, God of God, Light of
Light, very God of very God, begotten, not made, being of one substance
with the Father, by whom all things were made, both things in heaven and
things in earth; who for us men,and for our salvation, came down, and was
made flesh, and was made man, suffered, and rose again on the third day ,
went up into the heavens, and is to come again to judge the quick and dead.
"And in the Holy Ghost.
"But those that say, `There was when he was not,' and `Before he was
begotten he was not, and that he came into existence from what was not,' or
who profess that the Son of God is of a different person or `substance.' or
that he is created, or changeable, or variable, are anathematized by the
Catholic Church."*323
Thus came the original Nicene Creed. Constantine's influence carried with it
many in the council, but seventeen bishops refused to subscribe to it. The
emperor then commanded all to sign it under penalty of banishment. This
brought to terms all of them but five. Eusebius of Caesarea, the panegyrist
and one of the counselors of Constantine, took a whole day to "deliberate."
In his deliberation he consulted the emperor , who so explained the term
Homoousion that it could be understood as Homoiousion. He "declared that
the word, as he understood it, involved no such material unity of the persons
of the God-head as Eusebius feared might be deduced from it." -
Stanley.*324 In this sense, therefore, Eusebius adopted the test, and
subscribed to the creed.
269
nothing could possibly be farther from the truth. Even though the decision
of the Council of Nicaea had been absolutely, and from honest conviction,
spontaneously unanimous, it never could rest with the slightest degree of
obligation or authority upon any soul, who had not arrived at the same
conclusion from honest conviction derived from the free exercise of his own
power of thought. There is no organization, nor tribunal, on earth that has
any right to decide for anybody what is the truth upon any religious
question. "The head of every man is Christ." 1 Cor. xi, 3. "One is your
Master, even Christ." Matt. xxiii, 8. "Who art thou that judgest another
man's servant? to his own master he standeth or falleth. . . . So then every
one of us shall give account of himself to God." Rom. xiv, 4, 12.
In the quest for truth every man is free to search, to believe, and to decide
for himself alone. And his assent to any form of belief or doctrine, to be
true, must spring from his own personal conviction that such is the truth.
"The truth itself, forced on man otherwise than by its own inward power,
becomes falsehood." - Neander. *333 And he who suffers anything to be so
forced upon him, utters a lie against himself and against God.
The realm of thought is the realm of God. Whosoever would attempt to
restrict or coerce the free exercise of the thought of another, usurps the
dominion of God, and exercises that of the devil. This is what Constantine
did at the Council of Nice. This is what the majority of the Council of Nice
itself did. In carrying out the purpose for which it was met, this is the only
thing that it could do, no matter which side of the controversy should prove
victorious. What Constantine and the Council of Nice did, was to open the
way and set the wicked precedent for that despotism over thought, which
continued for more than fourteen hundred dreary years, and which was
carried to such horrible lengths when the pope succeeded to the place of
Constantine as head over both Church and State.
To say that the Holy Spirit had anything whatever to do with the council
either in discussing or deciding the question or in any other way, is but to
argue that the Holy Spirit of God is but the subject and tool of the unholy
passions of ambitious and wicked men.
272
CHAPTER XV.
ARIANISM BECOMES ORTHODOX.
AS before remarked, those who against their will had subscribed to the
creed of the Council of Nice, were determined to redeem themselves as
soon as possible, and by whatever means it could be accomplished. And
they did accomplish it. The story is curious, and the lessons which it teaches
are valuable.
Shortly after the dismissal of the Council of Nice, but in A. D. 326,
Alexander died, and Athanasius succeeded to the episcopal seat of
Alexandria. He, much more than Alexander, had been the life and soul of
the controversy with Arius. It was he who had continually spurred on
Alexander in the extreme and uncompromising attitude which he had
maintained toward Arius. And now when, at the age of thirty years, he
became clothed with the power and the prerogatives of the archbishopric of
Alexandria, the controversy received a new impulse from both sides - from
the side of the Catholics, by the additional pride and intensity of dogmatism
of Athanasius; from the side of the Arians in a determination to humble the
proud and haughty Athanasius. To this end the Arians at once began to
apply themselves diligently to win over Constantine to their side, or at least
to turn him against Athanasius.
In A. D. 327 died Constantine's sister, Constantia. She had held with the
Arian party, having an Arian presbyter as her spiritual adviser. This
presbyter had convinced her that Arius had been unjustly condemned by the
council. In her dying moments "she entreated the emperor to reconsider the
justice of the sentence against that innocent, as she declared, and
misrepresented man." Constantine soon afterward sent a message to Arius,
recalling him from banishment, and promising to send him back to
Alexandria. Arius came and presented a confession of faith which proved
satisfactory to the emperor. About the same time Constantine also restored
to favor the other two leading Arians, Eusebius of Nicomedia and Theognis
of Ptolemais. "They returned in triumph to their dioceses, and ejected the
bishops who had been appointed to their place." - Milman.*334 Hosius
having returned to his place in Spain, Constantine fell under strong Arian
influences, and the Arian bishops began to use him for the accomplishment
of their purposes.
273
equal dignity of the Son. His hollow charity ill disguises his secret
triumph," and to Athanasius, ever afterward, the death of Arius was a
standing argument and a sufficient evidence that in the death of the heretic,
God had condemned the heresy. - Milman.*339
Petition after petition was presented to Constantine for the return of
Athanasius to his place in Alexandria, but the emperor steadily denounced
him as proud, turbulent, obstinate, and intractable, and refused all petitions.
In 337, in the presence of death, Constantine was baptized by an Arian
bishop; and thus closed the life of him upon whom a grateful church has
bestowed the title of "the Great," though, "tested by character, indeed, he
stands among the lowest of all those to whom the epithet has in ancient or
modern times been applied." - "Encyclopedia Britannica."*340
Constantine was succeeded by his three sons; Constantine, aged twenty-one
years; Constantius, aged twenty; and Constans, aged seventeen. They
apportioned the empire amongst themselves. Constantine II had
Constantinople and some portions of the West, with pre-eminence of rank;
Constantius obtained Thrace, Egypt, and all the East; and Constans held the
greater part of the West. Constantius was a zealous Arian, Constantine and
Constans were no less zealous Catholics. The religious parties now had
another element added to their strifes - they could use the religious
differences of the emperors in their own interests. Athanasius being an exile
at Treves, was in the dominions of Constans, his "fiery defender;" while the
place of his bishopric was in the dominions of Constantius, his fiery
antagonist. The Athanasian party, through Constantine II, succeeded in
persuading Constantius to allow the return of Athanasius and all the other
bishops who had been banished.
The return of these bishops again set all the East ablaze. The leaders of the
Arian party addressed letters to the emperors, denouncing Athanasius. They
held another council at Tyre, A. D. 340, in which they brought against him
new charges, and condemned him upon them all. Immediately afterward a
rival council was held at Alexandria, which acquitted Athanasius of all
things in which the other council had condemned him. In this same year
Constantine II was killed in a war with his brother Constans. This left the
empire and the religion to the two brothers - Constantius in Constantinople
and the East, Constans in the West. In the dominions of Constans all Arians
were heretics; in the dominions of Constantius all Catholics were heretics.
The religious war continued, and increased in violence. In A. D. 341,
another council, consisting of ninety bishops, was held at Antioch, in the
276
They also enacted a series of canons, of which three, "full of pure love,"
bestowed special dignity upon the bishop of Rome, as the source of appeal.
One of these ordered that "if any bishop shall think himself unjustly
condemned, his judges, in honor of the memory of the holy apostle Peter -
Sancti, Petri apostoli memoriam honoremus, - shall acquaint the bishop of
Rome therewith, who may either confirm the first judgment, or order the
cause to be re-examined by such of the neighboring bishops as he shall
think fit to name." Another ordered "that the see of the deposed bishop shall
remain vacant till his cause shall be judged by the bishop of Rome." A third
ordered "that if a bishop condemned in his own province, shall choose to be
judged by the bishop of Rome, and desires him to appoint some of his
presbyters to judge him in his name, together with the bishops, the bishop of
Rome may grant him his request." - Bower.*346 The effect of this was only
to multiply and intensify differences and disputes amongst bishops, and
infinitely to magnify the power of the bishop of Rome.
Athanasius, though fully supported by the council, preferred to remain
under the protection of Constans, rather than to risk the displeasure of
Constantius by returning to Alexandria. He remained two years in the West,
during which time he was often the guest of the emperor Constans, and
made such use of these opportunities that in A. D. 349 Constans " signified,
by a concise and peremptory epistle to his brother Constantius, that unless
he consented to the immediate restoration of Athanasius, he himself, with a
fleet and army, would seat the archbishop on the throne of Alexandria." -
Gibbon.*347 Constantius was just at this time threatened with war with
Persia, and fearing the result if war should be made upon him at the same
time by his brother, he yielded, and became as effusive in his professed
friendship for Athanasius as he had formerly been in his genuine hatred.
Constantius invited Athanasius to Antioch, where the two secret enemies
met with open professions of friendship, and even with manifestations of
"mutual respect and cordiality." Constantius ordered all the accusations
against Athanasius to be erased from the registers of the city, and with a
letter of commendation, couched in terms of courtly flattery, he sent the
archbishopon his way to Alexandria. "The Arian bishop, Gregory, was
dead; and Athanasius, amid the universal joy, re-entered the city. The
bishops crowded from all parts to salute and congratulate the prelate who
had thus triumphed over the malice of even imperial enemies. Incense
curled up in all the streets; the city was brilliantly illuminated." -
Milman.*348
280
the edict of Constantius, they insisted more strenuously than ever upon the
unconditional condemnation of Athanasius. Finding that there was no
escape, the representatives of Liberius and all the other Athanasian bishops
but one, signed the document. The one bishop who refused was Paulinus of
Treves. He was accordingly banished, and died in exile five years afterward.
Liberius refused to confirm the action of his representatives, and utterly
rejected the action of the council. In fact, he was so scandalized by the
disgraceful surrender of his legates, that in a letter to Hosius, he expressed
himself as willing to wash out "with his blood the stain which the
scandalous conduct of his legates had brought upon his character." -
Bower.*349 To relieve him from his distress, Lucifer, bishop of Cagliari in
Sardinia, advised him to ask the emperor for another council, offering to go
himself to Arles and present the request to Constantius. Liberius accepted
the proposition, and Lucifer, accompanied by a presbyter and a deacon of
the church of Rome, went to Constantius, and presented the letter of
Liberius. Constantius granted his request, and appointed a council to meet at
Milan, in the beginning of the year 355.
The council met, accordingly, to the number of more than three hundred
bishops of the West, but only a few from the East. This council was but a
repetition on a larger scale, of that at Arles. Constantius insisted, without
any qualification, that the bishops should sign the condemnation of
Athanasius. He took a personal interest in all the proceedings. Like his
father at the Council of Nice, he had the meetings of the council held in the
imperial palace, and presided over them himself.
Constantius not only demanded that the Catholic bishops should sign the
condemnation of Athanasius, but that they should also sign an Arian
formula of faith. They pleaded that the accusers of Athanasius were
unreliable. Constantius replied, "I myself am now the accuser of
Athanasius, and on my word, Valens and the others [the accusers] must be
believed." They argued that this was against the canon of the church.
Constantius replied, "My will is the canon," and appealed to the Eastern
bishops, who all assented that this was correct. He then declared that
whoever did not sign might expect banishment. At this the orthodox bishops
lifted up their hands beseechingly towards heaven, and prayed the emperor
"to fear God, who had given him the dominion, that it might not be taken
from him; also to fear the day of judgment, and not to confound the secular
power with the law of the church, nor to introduce into the church the Arian
heresy." - Hefele.*350
282
They forgot that they themselves, many of them at least, had unanimously
approved in Constantine at the Council of Nice the identical course which
now they condemned in Constantius at the Council of Milan. In their
approval of the action of Constantine in forcing upon others what they
themselves believed, they robbed themselves of the right to protest when
Constantius or anybody else should choose to force upon them what
somebody else believed. They ought not to have thought it strange that they
should reap what they had sown.
Constantius, yet further to imitate his father, claimed to have had a vision,
and that thus by direct inspiration from heaven, he was commissioned "to
restore peace to the afflicted church." At last, by the "inspiration" of
"flatteries, persuasions,bribes, menaces, penalties, exiles" (Milman*351),
the Council of Milan of was brought to a greater unanimity of faith than
even the Council of Nice had been. For there, out of the three hundred and
eighteen bishops, five were banished; while here, out of a greater number,
only five were banished. Surely if a general council is of any authority, the
Council of Milan must take precedence of the Council of Nice, and
Arianism be more orthodox than Athanasianism.
The banished ones were Dionysius of Milan, Eusebius of Vercelli, Lucifer,
and two other representatives of Liberius, Pancratius and Hilary. Hilary was
cruelly beaten with rods before he was sent away.
The documents which had been signed, "all the other Western bishops, like
their colleagues at Milan, were to be forced to sign, and the whole West
compelled to hold communion with the Arians." - Hefele.*352 Liberius
rejected the decisions of the council, and still defended Athanasius.
Constantius sent one of his chief ministers with presents to bribe, and a
letter to threaten, him. Liberius rejected the bribes and disregarded the
threats, and in return cursed all Arian heretics and excommunicated
Constantius. The officer returned to Milan, and reported his failure; upon
this the emperor sent peremptory orders to the prefect of Rome to arrest
Liberius, and bring him to Milan. The prefect, dreading the violence of the
populace, took the precaution to arrest Liberius by night.
Arrived at Milan, the captive bishop was brought before Constantius, and
there also he maintained his refusal to indorse the action of the council.
Constantius told him that he must either sign or go into exile, and he would
give him three days to decide. Liberius answered that he had already
decided, and that he should not change his mind in three days nor in three
months; therefore, the emperor might as well send him that minute to
283
soon as he did suggest it, however, Hosius declared that he was ready to
suffer now under Constantius, as he had suffered sixty years before under
his grandfather Maximian; and in the end made such an impression upon
Constantius, that he allowed him to return unmolested to Cordova. But it
was not long before the favorites of Constantius prevailed upon him to
make another attempt to bring Hosius to terms. He first sent him flattering
and persuasive letters, and when these failed, he proceeded to threats; but all
were unavailing, and Hosius was banished to Sirmium. His relations were
stripped of all their estates and reduced to beggary, but all without avail.
Next he was closely imprisoned - still he refused. Then he was cruelly
beaten, and finally put to the rack and most inhumanly tortured. Under these
fearful torments, the aged bishop yielded at last, A. D. 356.
"The case of Hosius deserves, without all doubt, to be greatly pitied; but it
would be still more worthy of our pity and compassion, had he been himself
an enemy to all persecution. But it must be observed that he was the author
and promoter of the first Christian persecution; for it was he who first
stirred up Constantine against the Donatists, many of whom were sent into
exile, and some even sentenced to death: nay, and led to the place of
execution." - Bower.*354 The surrender of Hosius was counted as the most
signal of victories; it was published throughout the whole East, and caused
the greatest rejoicing among the Arians everywhere.
The next step was for Constantius to remove Athanasius from the
archbishopric of Alexandria. It was now twenty six months from the close
of the Council of Milan, during which time Constantius had been paving the
way for his final expulsion. As soon as the council had closed, an order was
sent to the prefect of Alexandria, to deprive Athanasius of the imperial
revenue, and give it to the Arians. At the same time, all who held public
office were commanded wholly to abandon the cause of Athanasius, and to
communicate with the Arians only. Messengers were sent into the
provinces, bearing the emperor's authority to compel the bishops to
communicate with the Arians, or to go into exile. Now he sent two of his
secretaries and some other officials of the palace, to Alexandria, to banish
Athanasius. These officers, with the governor of Egypt and the prefect,
commanded Athanasius to leave the city. He demanded that they produce
the written authority of the emperor; but Constantius had sent no written
order. Athanasius, supported by the people, refused to obey any verbal
order.
285
conqueror; and each moment of his reign was polluted by cruelty and
avarice." - Gibbon.*357
In A. D. 357 Constantius visited Rome and celebrated a triumph. The
leading women of the church determined to take advantage of the
opportunity thus offered to present a petition for the recall of Liberius. They
first tried to press their husbands into the service of approaching the
emperor, by threatening to leave and go in a body to Liberius, and share his
exile. The husbands replied that the emperor would be much less likely to
be offended by the visit of a delegation of women than of men, and that thus
there would be more hope of really securing the recall of the banished
bishop.
The women agreed that the suggestion was a wise one, and "having adorned
themselves in the most splendid attire, that their rank might be evident from
their appearance" (Theodoret)*358, they proceeded to the imperial palace.
Constantius received them courteously. They earnestly pleaded with him to
take pity on that great city and its numerous flock "bereft of its shepherd,
and ravaged by wolves." The emperor replied, "I thought you had a pastor.
Is not Felix as capable of exercising the pastoral office as any other?" The
women answered that Felix was detested and avoided by all, and that none
would attend service so long as Liberius was absent. Constantius smiled and
said, "If so, you must have Liberius again: I shall without delay dispatch the
proper orders for his return."
The next day the edict of recall was read in the circus, but it provided that
the two bishops should rule jointly. It happened to be the most interesting
and decisive moment of a horse-race, but the excited feelings of the
multitude were turned in an instant to the more absorbing question of the
orthodox faith. Some cried in ridicule that the edict was just, because there
were two factions in the circus, and now each one could have its own
bishop. Others shouted, "What, because we have two factions in the circus,
are we to have two factions in the church?" Then the whole multitude set up
one universal yell, "There is but one God, one Christ, one bishop!" Upon
which Theodoret devoutly remarks, "Some time after this Christian people
had uttered these pious and just acclamations, the holy Liberius returned,
and Felix retired to another city."*359
It is true that Liberius returned soon after this, but Constantius had made it
the condition of his return that he should sign the decisions of the Council
of Milan. Two years' sojourn in cold and barbarous Thrace, while a rival
bishop was enjoying the splendors of the episcopal office in Rome, exerted
287
begotten of the Father without change before all ages, and all beginning,
and all conceivable time, and all comprehensible substance. . . . God from
God, similar to the Father, who has begotten him according to the Holy
Scriptures, whose generation no one knows [understands] but the Father
who has begotten. . . . The words ousia, because it was used by the Fathers
in simplicity [that is, with good intention], but not being understood by the
people, occasion scandal, and is not contained in the Scriptures, shall be put
aside, and in future no mention shall be made of the Usia with regard to
God . . . But we maintain that the Son is similar to the Father in all things,
as also the Holy Scriptures teach and say."*363
The emperor sent a letter to each council, commanding that the bishops
should settle the question of the faith before they should have anything to
do with an investigation of any of their own private differences. The council
at Rimini was already met, and was earnestly discussing the faith, when the
bishops arrived from Srimium with the above creed, which they read aloud
to the assembly, and "declared that it was already confirmed by the
emperor, and was now to be universally accepted without discussion, as to
the sense which individuals might attach to its words." To this all the Arians
in the council readily agreed, but the Catholics, with loud voices,
proclaimed their dissent. They declared that any new formula of faith was
wholly unnecessary; that the Council of Nice had done all that was
necessary in regard to the faith; and that the business of the council was not
to find out what was the true faith, but to put to confusion all its opponents.
They demanded that the bishops who brought this creed should with them
unanimously curse all heresies, and especially the Arian. This demand was
refused by the Arians. Then the Catholics took everything into their own
hands. They unanimously approved the Nicene Creed, especially the
Homoousion; and then declared heretical the creed which had come from
the emperor. They next took up the doctrine of Arianism, and pronounced a
curse upon each particular point; denounced by name the bishops who had
come from the emperor as "ignorant and deceitful men, imposters, and
heretics; and declared them deposed." Finally, they unanimously
pronounced a curse upon all heresies in general, and that of Arius in
particular.
All this they put in writing; every one of them signed it July 21, A. D. 359,
and sent it by the ten deputies, to the emperor, accompanied by a request
that he would allow them to return to their churches. At the same time the
Arians of the council also sent ten deputies to Constantius, who reached the
emperor before the others, and made their report. When the others arrived,
290
Constantius refused even to see them so much as to receive their report, but
sent an officer to receive it, and under the pretext of being overwhelmed
with public business, kept them waiting. After they had waited a long time,
they were directed to go to Adrianople and await the emperor's pleasure,
and at the same time he sent a letter to the bishops at Rimini, commanding
them to wait there the return of their deputies.
Shortly afterwards the deputies were ordered to go to a small town called
Nice, not many miles from Adrianople. This was a trick of the Arians and
Semi-Arians, by which they proposed to have their creed signed there, and
then pass it off upon the uninitiated, as the original creed of the Council of
Nice in Bithynia. There the creed was presented, but with the omission "in
all things," so that it read, "the Son is like to the Father," instead of, "like to
the Father in all things." This the deputies were required to sign, which of
course they refused to do, but were finally forced to sign it, and to reverse
all the acts and proceedings of the Council of Rimini.
The emperor was highly pleased at this result, and calling it a good omen of
like success with the whole council, gave the ten deputies leave to return to
Rimini. At the same time he sent letters to the prefect, commanding him
anew not to allow a single bishop to leave until all had signed, and to exile
whoever should persist in a refusal, provided the number did not exceed
fifteen.
The bishops were "eager to return to their sees; the emperor was inflexible;
Taurus took care to render the place both inconvenient and disagreeable to
them. Some therefore fell off, others followed their example, the rest began
to waver, and being so far got the better of, yielded soon after, and went
over to the Arian party in such crowds that in a very short time the number
of the orthodox bishops who continued steady, was reduced to twenty."
Bower.*364
At the head of these twenty was a certain Phaebadius, and they determined
invincibly to hold their position. Nevertheless they were caught by a trick
that the veriest tyro ought to have seen. Two bishops in particular, Ursacius
and Valens, had charge of the creed, and they pretended in the interests of
peace to be willing to make a concession, and to insert such alterations and
additions as might be agreeable to Phiaebadius, who exulted over the proud
distinction which would thus be his as the preserver of orthodoxy.
They came together, and began to reconstruct the creed: first were inserted
some curses against the Arian heresy, then an addition, declaring the Son to
be "equal to the Father, without beginning, and before all things." When this
291
was written, Valens proposed that in order to leave no room whatever for
any new disputes or any question upon this point, there should be added a
clause declaring that "the Son of God is not a creature like other creatures."
To this the twenty bishops assented, blindly overlooking the fact that in
admitting that the Son was not a creature like other creatures, they did
indeed place him among the creatures, and admitted the very point upon
which the Arians had all the time insisted. Thus all were brought to "the
unity of the faith." The council broke up, and the bishops departed to their
homes.
The council was past, and no sooner did the Arians find themselves secure,
than they loudly proclaimed the victory which they had gained. They
gloried in the fact that the great council of Rimini had not declared that the
Son was not a creature, but only that he was not like other creatures. They
affirmed that it was, and always had been, their opinion that the "Son was
no more like the Father than a piece of glass was like an emerald." Upon
examination of the creed, the twenty bishops were obliged to confess that
they had been entrapped. They renounced the creed, and publicly retracted
"all they had said, done, or signed, repugnant to the truths of the Catholic
Church." - Bower.*365
The companion council which was called at Seleucia, met September 27,
359, but as there were three distinct parties, besides individuals who
differed from all, there was amongst them such utter confusion, tumult, and
bitterness, that after four days of angry debate, in which the prospect
became worse and worse, the imperial officer declared that he would have
nothing more to do with the council, and told them they could go to the
church if they wanted to, and "indulge in this vain babbling there as much
as they pleased." The parties then met separately, denounced, condemned,
and ex-communicated one another, and sent their deputies to Constantius,
who spent a whole day and the greater part of the night, December 31, 359,
in securing their signatures to the confession of faith which he had
approved. The emperor's confession was then published throughout the
whole empire, and all bishops were commanded to sign it, under penalty of
exile upon all who refused. "This order was executed with the utmost rigor
in all the provinces of the empire, and very few were found who did not
sign with their hands what they condemned in their hearts. Many who till
then had been thought invincible, were overcome, and complied with the
times; and such as did not, were driven, without distinction, from their sees
into exile, and others appointed in their room, the signing of that confession
being a qualification indispensably requisite both in obtaining and keeping
292
the episcopal dignity. Thus were all the sees throughout the empire filled
with Arians, insomuch that in the whole East not an orthodox bishop was
left, and in the West but one; namely, Gregory, bishop of Elvira in
Andalusia, and he, in all likelihood, obliged to absent himself from his flock
and lie concealed." - Bower.*366
Thus Constantius had succeeded much more fully than had his father, in
establishing "the unity of the faith." That faith was the original Arian. And
Arianism was now as entirely orthodox, and, if the accommodated sense of
the word be used, as entirely Catholic, as the Athanasian had ever been.
Having like his father, by the aid of the bishops, united the world "under
one head," and brought the opinions respecting the Deity to a condition of
"settled uniformity," the emperor Constantius died the following year, A. D.
361.
293
CHAPTER XVI.
THE CATHOLIC FAITH RE-ESTABLISHED.
praised the emperor for his liberality in permitting every one freely to
worship God according to the dictates of his own conscience.*371
Jovian, though guaranteeing a general toleration, himself professed the
Nicene Creed, and a particular preference for Athanasius, who at his
invitation visited Antioch, and after having settled the faith of the emperor,
and promised him "a long and peaceful reign," returned to his episcopal seat
at Alexandria. The long and peaceful reign assured by the zealous
ecclesiastic continued only about two months from this time, and ended in
the death of Jovian, February 17, A. D. 364. after a total reign of seven
months and twenty one days from the death of Julian.
Ten days after the death of Jovian, Valentinian was chosen emperor, and
thirty days after this he bestowed upon his brother Valens an equal share in
the imperial dignity. Valens assumed the jurisdiction of the whole East,
with his capital at Constantinople. Valentinian retained the dominion of the
West, with his capital at Milan. Both of these emperors pursued the tolerant
policy of Jovian, so far as paganism and the church parties were concerned;
but they let loose a cruel persecution upon the profession of "magic."
The practice of magic was made treason, and under the accusations of
sorcery and witchcraft, an infinite number and variety of individual spites
and animosities were let loose, and it seemed as though the horrors of the
days of Tiberius and Domitian were returned. Rome and Antioch were the
two chief seats of the tribunals of this persecution, and "from the extremities
of Italy and Asia, the young and the aged were dragged in chains to the
tribunals of Rome and Antioch. Senators, matrons, and philosophers
expired in ignominious and cruel tortures. The soldiers who were appointed
to guard the prisons, declared, with a murmur of pity and indignation, that
their numbers were insufficient to oppose the flight or resistance of the
multitude of captives. The wealthiest families were ruined by fines and
confiscations; the most innocent citizens trembled for their safety." -
Gibbon.*372
In 370 Valens cast his influence decidedly in favor of the Arian faith, by
receiving baptism at the hands of the Arian bishop of Constantinople. The
tumults of the religious parties again began, and "every episcopal vacancy
was the occasion of a popular tumult . . . as the leaders both of the
Homoousians and of the Arians believed that if they were not suffered to
reign, they were most cruelly injured and oppressed. . . In every contest, the
Catholics were obliged to pay the penalty of their own faults, and of those
of their adversaries. In every election, the claims of the Arian candidate
296
obtained the preference, and if they were opposed by the majority of the
people, he was usually supported by the authority of the civil magistrate, or
even by the terrors of a military force." - Gibbon.*373
In 373 Athanasius died, and the emperor Valens commanded the perfect of
Egypt to install in the vacant bishopric an Arian Prelate by the name of
Lucius, which was done, but not without the accompaniment of riot and
bloodshed which was now hardly more than a part of the regular ceremony
of induction into office of the principal bishoprics of the empire.
In the West, after the death of Constantius, the bishops returned to the faith
established by the Council of Nice, which so largely prevailed there that the
differences springing from the Arian side caused no material difficulty. As
before stated, Valentinian suffered all religious parties, even the pagan, to
continue unmolested; yet he himself was always a Catholic. About the year
367 he greatly increased the dignity and authority of the bishop of Rome by
publishing a law empowering him to examine, and sit as judge, upon the
cases of other bishops. In 375 Valentinian died, and was succeeded by his
two sons, Gratian, aged sixteen years, and Valentinian II, aged four years.
Gratian was but the tool of the bishops. Ambrose was at that time bishop of
Milan, and never was episcopal ambition more arrogantly asserted than in
that insolent prelate. Soon the mind of the bishop asserted the supremacy
over that of the boy emperor, and Ambrose "wielded at his will the weak
and irresolute Gratian." - Milman.*374 But above all things else that
Gratian did, that which redounded most to the glory of the Catholic Church
was his choice of Theodosius as associate emperor. Valens was killed in a
battle with the Goths, A. D. 378. A stronger hand than that of a youth of
nineteen was required to hold the reins of government in the East.
In the establishment of the Catholic Church, the place of Theodosius is
second only to that of Constantine. About the beginning of the year 380 he
was baptized by the Catholic bishop of Thessalonica, and immediately
afterward he issued the following edict: -
"It is our pleasure that the nations which are governed by our clemency and
moderation, should steadfastly adhere to the religion which was taught by
St. Peter to the Romans, which faithful tradition has preserved, and which is
now professed by the pontiff Damasus, and by Peter, bishop of Alexandria,
a man of apostolic holiness. According to the discipline of the apostles, and
the doctrine of the gospel, let us believe the sole deity of the Father, the
Son, and the Holy Ghost: under an equal majesty, and a pious Trinity. We
authorize the followers of this doctrine to assume the title of Catholic
297
prefects; and the prefects were subject to the immediate jurisdiction of the
emperor himself.
Now when the Church and the State became one, the organization of the
church was made to conform as precisely as possible to that of the empire.
In fact, so far as the provinces and the dioceses, the organization of the
church was identical with that of the empire. There was a gradation in the
order and dignity of the bishoprics according to the political divisions thus
formed.
The dignity of the chief bishop in a province or diocese was regulated by
the chief city. The bishop of the chief city in a province was the principal
bishop of that province, and all the other bishops in the province, were
subject to his jurisdiction; to him pertained the ordination to vacant
bishoprics and all other matters. The bishop of the principal city in the
diocese was chief bishop of that diocese, and all other bishops within said
diocese were subject to his jurisdiction.
The chief bishop of the province was called "Metropolitan," from the
metropolis or chief city, or "primate" from primus, first. The chief bishop of
a diocese was called "exarch." Above these were four bishops
corresponding to the four prefects, and were called "patriarchs," yet these
were not apportioned according to the lines of the prefectures, but were
bishops of the four chief cities of the empire, - Rome, Alexandria, Antioch,
and Constantinople.
This was the general plan of the organization of the church, though through
the mutual ambitions and jealousies of the whole hierarchy, there were
many exceptions; and as time went on, titles and jurisdictions overran the
limits defined in this general plan.
The bishopric of Alexandria had always been held as second only to that of
Rome in dignity, since Alexandria was the second city of the empire.
Constantinople was now an imperial city, and its bishopric was fast
assuming an importance which rivaled that of Alexandria for second place.
To this the archbishop of Alexandria did not propose to assent. That Peter,
bishop of Alexandria, whom the edict of Theodosius had advertised and
indorsed as a man of apostolic holiness, asserted his episcopal jurisdiction
over Constantinople. He sent up seven Alexandrians, who ordained a
certain Maximus to be bishop of Constantinople. A tumult was raised, and
Maximus was driven out by the party of Gregory. He fled to Theodosius,
but his claim was rejected by the emperor also.
299
bishops, with the bishop of Rome at their head, had already assumed the
authority to dictate in the matter. They declared that they would not betray
to the West the dignity which of right belonged to the East, from its being
the scene of the birth and death of the Son of God. They therefore elected
Flavianus as successor to Meletius, and thus only aggravated the schism
which they attempted to heal, and which continued for eighteen years
longer.
Gregory Nazianzen having done all he could to prevent this act of the
council, and knowing that what they had done could only strengthen the
contentions already rife, resigned his bishopric, and left both the council
and the city of Constantinople. He likened a church council to a nest of
wasps, or a flock of magpies, cranes, or geese; declared that no good ever
came of one; and refused ever more to have anything to do with them.*381
Had a few other men been as wise as Gregory Nazianzen showed himself to
be in this case, what miseries the world might have escaped! how different
history would have been ! As Gregory has been, for ages, a Catholic saint,
even the Catholic Church ought not to blame any one for adopting his
estimate of the value of church councils.
Gregory's resignation made it necessary to elect a new bishop of
Constantinople. The choice fell upon Nectarius, a senator and praetor of the
city, who had never yet been baptized. He was first elected bishop, next
baptized into membership of the church, and then by the bishops of the
council was installed in his new office.
Having "settled" these things, the council proceeded to settle the Catholic
faith again. The same question which had been so long discussed as to the
nature of Christ, was up now in regard to the nature of the Holy Spirit.
Now, the question was whether the Holy Spirit is Homoousion with the
Father and the Son. The Macedonians held that it is not. The council
decided that it is. The Macedonians left the assembly, and the remaining
one hundred and fifty bishops framed the following creed: - "We believe in
one God, the Father Almighty, Creator of heaven and earth, and of all
things visible and invisible. And in one Lord Jesus Christ, the only begotten
Son of God, begotten of the Father before all times [ages], Light from
Light, very God from very God, begotten, not created, of the same
substance with the Father, by whom all things were made; who for us men,
and for our salvation, came down from heaven, and was incarnate by the
Holy Ghost of the Virgin Mary, and was made man; who was crucified for
us under Pontius Pilate, suffered and was buried, and the third day he rose
303
again according to the Scriptures, and ascended into heaven, and sat down
at the right hand of the Father; and he shall come again with glory to judge
both the living and the dead; whose kingdom shall have no end. And we
believe in the Holy Ghost, the Lord and Life-giver, who proceedeth from
the Father; who with the Father and the Son together is worshiped and
glorified; who spake by the prophets. And in one Holy Catholic and
apostolic Church. We acknowledge one baptism for the remission of sins.
We look for a resurrection of the dead, and the life of the world to come.
Amen."*382
They also established seven canons, in one of which they attempted to settle
the question of dignity between the bishops of Alexandria and
Constantinople by ordaining as follows: -
"CANON 3. The bishop of Constantinople shall hold the first rank after the
bishop of Rome, because Constantinople is New Rome."*383
This, however, like every other attempt to settle their ecclesiastical disputes,
only bred new and more violent contentions. For, by a trick in words, and a
casuistical interpretation, this canon was afterward made the ground upon
which was claimed by the bishopric of Constantinople, superiority over that
of Rome. It was argued that the words "the first rank after the bishop of
Rome," did not mean the second in actual rank, but the first, and really
carried precedence over Old Rome; that the real meaning was that hitherto
Rome had held the first rank, but now Constantinople should hold the first
rank, i, e., after Rome had held it !
The bishops in council, having finished their labors, sent to Theodosius the
following letter: -
"In obedience to your letters, we met together at Constantinople, and having
first restored union among ourselves, we then made short definitions
confirming the faith of the Fathers of Nicaea, and condemning the heresies
which have risen in opposition to it. We have also, for the sake of
ecclesiastical order, drawn up certain canons; and all this we append to out
letter. We pray you now, of your goodness, to confirm by a letter of your
piety the decision of the synod, that, as you have honored the church by
your letters of convocation, you would thus seal the decisions."*384
Accordingly, the emperor confirmed and sealed their decisions in an edict
issued July 30, 381, commanding that "all the churches were at once to be
surrendered to the bishops who believed in the oneness of the Godhead of
the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost. and were in communion with
Nectarius of Constantinople; in Egypt with Timotheus of Alexandria; in the
304
the chief prosecutor in the case. Even the disagreement as to whether it was
right or not,was silenced when, twenty years afterward, Augustine set forth
his principles, asserting the righteousness of whatever penalty would bring
the incorrigible to the highest grade of religious development; and the
matter was fully set at rest for all time when, in A. D. 447, Leo, bishop of
Rome, justified the execution of Priscillian and his associate heretics, and
declared the righteousness of the penalty of death for heresy.
In re-establishing the unity of the Catholic faith, Theodosius did not confine
his attention to professors of Christianity only. In his original edict, it will
be remembered that all his subjects should be Catholic Christians. A good
many of his subject were pagans, and still conformed to the pagan
ceremonies and worship. In 382 Gratian, at the instance of Ambrose, had
struck a blow at the pagan religion by rejecting the dignity of Pontifex
Maximus, which had been borne by every one of his predecessors; and had
also commanded that the statue and altar of Victory should be thrown down.
Maximus was killed in 388, and on account of the youth of Valentinian II,
Theodosius, as his guardian, became virtually ruler of the whole empire;
and at Rome the same year, he assembled the Senate and put to them the
question whether the old or the new religion should be that of the empire.
By the imperial influence, the majority of the Senate, as in the church
councils, adopted the will of the emperor, and "the same laws which had
been originally published in the provinces of the East, were applied, after
the defeat of Maximus, to the whole extent of the Western empire. . . . A
special commission was granted to Cynegius, the praetorian prefect of the
East, and afterwards to the counts Jovius and Gaudentius, two officers of
distinguished rank in the West, by which they were directed to shut the
temples, to seize or destroy the instruments of idolatry, to abolish the
privileges of the priests, and to confiscate the consecrated property for the
benefit of the emperor, of the church, or of the army." - Gibbon.*391
Thus was the Catholic faith finally established as that of the Roman empire,
thus was that empire "converted," and thus was Pagan Rome made Papal
Rome.
308
CHAPTER XVII.
MARY IS MADE THE MOTHER OF GOD.
By the pious zeal of Theodosius, "the unity of the faith" had been once
more secured, and the empire had been made Catholic. As all his efforts in
this direction had been put forth to secure the peace of the church, it might
be supposed that this result should have been assured. But peace was just as
far from the church now as it ever had been, and a good deal farther from
the State than it had ever yet been.
By this time, among the chief bishoprics of the empire, the desire for
supremacy had become so all-absorbing that each one was exerting every
possible influence to bring the others into subjection to himself. The rivalry,
however, was most bitter between the bishopric of Alexandria and that of
Constantinople. Of the great sees of the empire, Alexandria had always held
the second place. Now, however, Constantinople was the chief imperial
city; and, as already related, the Council of Constantinople had ordained
that the bishop of Constantinople should hold the first rank after the bishop
of Rome. The Alexandrian party argued that this dignity was merely
honorary, and carried with it no jurisdiction. Rome, seeing to what the
canon might lead, sided with Alexandria. Constantinople, however, steadily
insisted that the canon bestowed jurisdiction to the full extent of the honor.
The bishop of Constantinople therefore aspired to the complete occupancy
of the second place, and Alexandria was supremely jealous of the
aspiration.
It will be remembered that when Gregory Nazianzen was first called to the
bishopric of Constantinople, Peter of Alexandria had caused Maximus to be
ordained, and now this same spirit showed itself again and much more
violently than before.
Theodosius died A. D. 395, and was succeeded by his two sons, Arcadius
and Honorius, by whom the empire was permanently divided. Arcadius
became emperor of the East and Honorius of the West. Although Arcadius
occupied the throne and bore the name of "emperor," "the East was now
governed by women and eunuchs." - Milman.*392 Eutropius, the eunuch,
was prime minister to Arcadius. At the death of Nectarius, Eutropius had
brought from Antioch and made bishop of Constantinople, a presbyter, John
surnamed Chrysostom - the golden-mouthed. By the exercise of discipline,
309
were trodden under foot; many wounded by the swords of the soldiers: the
clergy were dragged to prison; some females, who were about to be
baptized, were obliged to fly with their disordered apparel: the waters of the
font were stained with blood; the soldiers pressed up to the altar; seized the
sacred vessels as their plunder; the sacred elements were scattered about! . .
Constantinople for several days had the appearance of a city which had been
stormed. Wherever the partisans of Chrysostom were assembled, they were
assaulted and dispersed by the soldiery; females were exposed to insult, and
one frantic attempt was made to assassinate the prelate." - Milman.*404
Chrysostom was concealed by his friends, but after awhile he escaped from
them, and gave himself up again. Again he was taken from the city by
night; and now he was banished - A. D. 404 - to a town called Caucasus in
the mountains of Armenia. And "on the very day of his departure, some of
John's friends set fire to the church, which by means of a strong easterly
wind, communicated with the Senate-house." - Socrates.*405
As soon as Chrysostom had been permanently sent away, Theophilus sent
to the bishop of Rome the information that he had deposed the bishop of
Constantinople, but without telling him why. Chrysostom also from his
place of exile addressed the bishop of Rome, giving an account of the
proceedings against him, and asking Innocent "to declare such wicked
proceedings void and null, to pronounce all who had any share in them,
punishable according to the ecclesiastical laws, and to continue to him the
marks of his charity and communion." - Bower.*406
As was to be expected, Chrysostom also asked the bishop of Rome to use
his influence to have a general council called to settle the matter. Letters
were also sent from the clergy of Constantinople and the bishops who sided
with Chrysostom, asking Innocent to take an interest in the case. Innocent
answered both with the statement that he admitted the bishops of both
parties to his communion, and thus left no room for complaints on either
side; and that the council which was contemplated might not be biased
beforehand. Innocent applied to the Emperor Honorius, asking him to
persuade Arcadius to agree to the calling of a general council, to settle the
dispute and contention between Chrysostom and Theophilus. Honorius
wrote three letters to Arcadius, the last of which was as follows: -
"This is the third time I write to your Meekness entreating you to correct
and rectify the iniquitous proceedings that have been carried on against
John, bishop of Constantinople. But nothing, I find, has been hitherto done
in his behalf. Having therefore much at heart the peace of the church, which
313
will be attended with that of our empire, I write to you anew by these holy
bishops and presbyters, earnestly desiring you to command the Eastern
bishops to assemble at Thessalonica. The Western bishops have sent five of
their body, two presbyters of the Roman Church, and one deacon, all men
of strictest equity, and quite free from the bias of favor and hatred. These I
beg you would receive with that regard which is due to their rank and merit.
If they find John to have been justly deposed, they may separate me from
his communion; and you from the communion of the orientals, if it appears
that he has been unjustly deposed. The Western bishops have very plainly
expressed their sentiments, in the many letters they have written to me on
the subject of the present dispute. Of these I send you two, the one from the
bishop of Rome, the other from the bishop of Aquileia; and with them the
rest agree. One thing I must above all beg of your Meekness: that you
oblige Theophilus of Alexandria to assist at the council, how averse soever
he may be to it; for he is said to be the first and chief author of the present
calamities. Thus the synod, meeting with no delays or obstructions, will
restore peace and tranquillity in our days."*407
Not only were the letters of Honorius disregarded, but his ambassadors
were insulted and abused; which when he learned, he was about to declare
war, but was prevented by an invasion of the barbarians.
Thus the efforts to obtain a general council upon this question came to
naught. When Innocent learned this, he determined to take the side of
Chrysostom. He therefore published a letter announcing the fact, and
separating from his communion Theophilus and all who were of his party.
Chrysostom died in 407; but the quarrel was continued by the bishop of
Rome, who refused to communicate with the new bishop of Constantinople,
unless he would acknowledge that Chrysostom was lawful bishop of that
city until the day of his death. As this would be to acknowledge that his
own election to the bishopric of Constantinople was unlawful, Atticus
refused; and the contention was kept up seven years longer, but was finally
compromised in 414.
The empress Eudoxia died about A. D. 405. The emperor Arcadius died
May 1, A. D. 408, leaving a son - Theodosius II - seven years of age, heir to
the throne, and a daughter, Pulcheria, ten years of age, who, after A. D. 414,
held the most important place in the affairs of the empire for forty years. At
the age of twenty and by the arts of Pulcheria, Theodosius II was married to
Eudocia, who was nearly eight years older than himself, and the incapable
314
and captured the one who threw the stone. His name was Ammonius, and
the prefect punished him so severely that shortly afterward he died. "Cyril
commanded his body to be taken up; the honors of a Christian martyr were
prostituted on this insolent ruffian, his panegyric was pronounced in the
church, and he was named Thaumasius - the wonderful." - Milman.*408
But the party of Cyril proceeded to yet greater violence than this. At that
time there was in Alexandria a teacher of philosophy, a woman, Hypatia by
name. She gave public lectures which were so largely attended by the chief
people of the city, that Cyril grew jealous that more people went to hear her
lecture than came to hear him preach. She was a friend of Orestes, and it
was also charged that she, more than any other, was the cause why Orestes
would not be reconciled to Cyril. One day as Hypatia was passing through
the street in a chariot, she was attacked by a crowd of Cyril's partisans,
whose ring-leader was Peter the Reader. She was torn from her chariot,
stripped naked in the street, dragged into a church, and there beaten to death
with a club, by Peter the Reader. Then they tore her limb from limb, and
with shells scraped the flesh from her bones, and threw the remnants into
the fire, March, A. D. 414.
This was Cyril, - now Saint Cyril, - bishop of Alexandria. And in addition
to his naturally tyrannical and murderous disposition, "jealousy and
animosity toward the bishop of Constantinople was a sacred legacy
bequeathed by Theophilus to his nephew, and Cyril faithfully administered
the fatal trust." - Milman.*409
In 428, there was appointed to the bishopric of Constantinople a monk of
Antioch, Nestorius by name, who in wickedness of disposition was only
second to Cyril of Alexandria. In his ordination sermon before the great
crowd of people, he personally addressed to the emperor these words: -
"Give me, my prince, the earth purged of heretics, and I will give you
heaven as a recompense. Assist me in destroying heretics, and I will assist
you in vanquishing the Persians."*410
The fifth day afterward, in accordance with this proposition, Nestorius
began his part in purging the earth of heretics. There was a little company of
Arians who met in a private house for worship; these were surprised and
attacked, and as they saw the house being torn to pieces and sacked, they set
fire to it, which burned that building and many others adjoining. On account
of this, Nestorius received from both parties the appropriate nickname of
the "Incendiary." This attack upon the Arians was followed furiously upon
the Quarto-Decimans, who celebrated Easter on a day other than the
316
Catholic Sunday; and also upon the Novatians. The authority of the emperor
somewhat checked his fury against the Novatians, but it raged unmolested
against the Quarto-Decimans throughout Asia, Lydia, and Caria, and
multitudes perished in the tumults which he stirred up, especially at Miletus
and Sardis.
And now these two desperate men, Nestorius and Cyril, became the
respective champions of the two sides of a controversy touching the faith of
the Catholic Church, as to whether Mary was the Mother of God or not. In
the long contention and the fine-spun distinctions as to whether the Son of
God is of the same substance, or only of like substance with the Father,
Christ had been removed entirely beyond the comprehension of the people.
And owing to the desperate character and cruel disposition of the men who
carried on the controversy as the representatives of Christ, the members of
the church were made afraid of him. And now, instead of Jesus standing
forth as the mediator between men and God, he was removed so far away
and was clothed with such a forbidding aspect, that it became necessary to
have a mediator between men and Christ. And into this place the Virgin
Mary was put.
This gave rise to the question as to what was the exact relationship of Mary
to Christ. Was she actually the mother of the divinity of Christ, and
therefore the Mother of God? or was she only the mother of the humanity of
Christ? For a considerable time already the question had been agitated, and
among a people whose ancestors for ages had been devout worshipers of the
mother goddesses - Diana and Cybele - the title "Mother of God" was
gladly welcomed and strenuously maintained. This party spoke of Mary as
"God-bearer;" the opposite party called her only "man-bearer;" while a third
party coming between tried to have all speak of her as "Christ-bearer."
As before stated, this question had already been agitated considerably, but
when two such characters as Cyril and Nestorius took it up, it speedily
became the one all-important question, and the all-absorbing topic.
Nestorius started it in his very first sermon after becoming bishop of
Constantinople. He denied that Mary could properly be called the Mother of
God. Some of his priests immediately withdrew from his communion, and
began to preach against his heresy, and the monks rushed in also. Nestorius
denounced them all as miserable men, called in the police, and had some of
them flogged and imprisoned, especially several monks who had accused
him to the emperor. From this the controversy spread rapidly, and Cyril,
urged on by both natural and inherited jealousy, came to the rescue in
317
Celestine sent by these legates to the bishops in the council exhorted them
"to preserve the true faith," and closed with these words: -
"The legates are to be present at the transactions of the synod, and will give
effect to that which the pope has long ago decided with respect to Nestorius;
for he does not doubt that the assembled bishops will agree with this."*415
Neither of the emperors was present at the council, but they jointly
appointed Count Candidian, captain of the imperial bodyguard, as the
"Protector of the Council." Nestorius came with sixteen bishops,
accompanied by an armed guard composed of bathmen of Constantinople
and a horde of peasants. In addition to this, by the special favor of the
emperor, an officer, Irenaeus, with a body of soldiers, was appointed to
protect him. Cyril came with fifty Egyptian bishops and a number of
bathmen and "a multitude of women" from Alexandria, and such sailors in
his fleet as he could depend upon. Arrived at Ephesus, he was joined by
Memnon, bishop of that city, with fifty-two bishops, and a crowd of
peasants whom he had drawn into the city. Juvenalis, bishop of Jerusalem,
came with his subordinate bishops, we know not the number; these also
were hostile to Nestorius, and joined Cyril and Memnon. Others came from
Thessalonica, Apamea, and Hieropolis, and when the council opened, there
were one hundred and ninety-eight bishops present, including the pope's
legates, and not including Nestorius. John of Antioch, with the bishops of
his diocese, was on the way, but did not reach Ephesus until Cyril's part of
the council was over.
The council was to have met June 7, 431, but owing to delays on the part of
the bishops of Jerusalem, Thessalonica, and Antioch, it did not open until
June 22, and even then the bishops of Antioch had not arrived. But all the
time was spent in preliminary disputes, winning partisans, and working up
the populace. As Cyril had the great majority of the bishops on his side, and
as the city was already devoted to the "Mother of God." Nestorius was at a
great disadvantage, and his enemies did not hesitate to let him know it, and
to make him feel it. Cyril preached a sermon in which he paid the following
idolatrous tribute to Mary: -
"Blessed be thou, O Mother of God! Thou rich treasure of the world,
inextinguishable lamp, crown of virginity, scepter of true doctrine,
imperishable temple, habitation of Him whom no space can contain, mother
and virgin, through whom He is, who comes in the name of the Lord.
Blessed be thou, O Mary, who didst hold in thy womb the Infinite One;
thou through whom the blessed Trinity is glorified and worshiped, through
321
whom the precious cross is adored throughout the world, through whom
heaven rejoices and angels and archangels are glad, through whom the devil
is disarmed and banished, through whom the fallen creature is restored to
heaven, through whom every believing soul is saved."*416
Cyril and his party urged that the council should be opened without any
more delay. As the emperor had particularly required the presence of John
of Antioch, Nestorius insisted on waiting till he came; and Candidian
sustained Nestorius. Cyril refused, and he and his partisans assembled in the
Church of the Virgin Mary to proceed with the council. As soon as Count
Candidian learned of this, he hastened to the church to forbid it, and there
he fell into an ecclesiastical trap. He declared that they were acting in
defiance of the imperial rescript which was to guide the council. They
answered that as they had not seen the rescript, they did not know what it
required of them. The Count read it to them. This was just what they
wanted. They declared thatthe reading of the rescript legalized their
meeting! They greeted it with "loud and loyal clamors," pronounced the
council begun, and commanded the Count to withdraw from an assembly in
which he had no longer any legal place.
Candidian protested against the unfairness of the proceedings; and then, he
himself says, they "injuriously and ignominiously ejected" him. They next
expelled all the bishops, sixty-eight in number, who were known to favor
Nestorius, "and then commenced their proceedings as the legitimate Senate
of Christendom." - Milman.*417
One of Cyril's presbyters was secretary, and he formally opened the
business of the council by reading a statement of the dispute that had
brought them together. Then the emperor's letter calling the council was
read. They sent four bishops to notify Nestorius to appear. He courteously
refused to acknowledge the legality of their assembly. A second deputation
of four bishops was sent, and they returned with the word that they were not
allowed by the guard to go near him, but received from his attendants the
same answer as before. A third deputation of four was sent, and they
returned with the report that they were subjected to the indignity of being
kept standing in the heat of the sun, and receiving no answer at all. Having
made such an earnest effort to have Nestorius present, but in vain, they
"sorrowfully" commenced the proceedings without him.
The Nicene Creed was first read, and then Cyril's letter to Nestorius, with
the twelve propositions and their accompanying curses, all of which were
solemnly confirmed by all the bishops in succession.
322
Then was read the letter of Nestorius to Cyril, with the twelve counter-
propositions and their curses. One after another the bishops arose and
declared the propositions blasphemous, and vehemently uttered the
appended curses. Then when the list was completed, they all arose, and with
one mighty roar that made the arches of the great church echo and re-echo,
they bawled, "Anathema to him who does not anathematize Nestorius!
Anathema! Anathema! The whole world unites in the excommunication!
Anathema on him who holds communion with Nestorius!"*418
Next were read the letters of Celestine, condemning him, which were made
a part of the acts of the council. Then followed the reading of statements
from the writings of Athanasius, Peter of Alexandria, Julius I, Felix I of
Rome; Theophilus of Alexandria, Cyprian, Ambrose, Gregory Nazianzen,
Basil the Great, Gregory of Nyssa, Atticus of Constantinople, and
Amphilochius of Iconium, all to the effect that Mary was the Mother of
God. Then the tender-hearted, pious souls, according to their own words,
proceeded "with many tears, to this sorrowful sentence:" -
"As, in addition to other things, the impious Nestorius has not obeyed our
citation, and did not receive the holy bishops who were sent by us to him,
we were compelled to examine his ungodly doctrines. We discovered that
he had held and published impious doctrines in his letters and treatises, as
well as in discourses which he delivered in this city, and which have been
testified to. Urged by the canons, and in accordance with the letter of our
most holy father and fellow-servant Celestine, the Roman bishop, we have
come, with many tears to this sorrowful sentence against him, namely, that
our Lord Jesus Christ, whom he has blasphemed, decrees by the holy synod
that Nestorius be excluded from the episcopal dignity, and from all priestly
communion."*419
This sentence the bishops all signed, and then it was sent to Nestorius,
addressed, "To Nestorius, a second Judas." All these proceedings, from the
visit and protest of Candidian to the notice to Nestorius, were carried
through in a single day and one prolonged sitting.
It was now night. Criers were sent all through the city to post up the decrees
of the council, and to announce the joyful news that Mary was indeed the
Mother of God. Everywhere they were met with loudest shouts of joy. The
multitude rushed into the streets and poured toward the church. With lighted
torches they escorted the bishops to their abodes, the women marching
before and burning incense. The whole city was illuminated, and the songs
and exultations continued far into the night. The demonstration far outdid
323
that of their lineal ancestors, who, when they tried to kill the apostle Paul,
"all with one voice about the space of two hours cried out, Great is Diana of
the Ephesians."
Five days afterward John of Antioch with his bishops, arrived, and was
greatly surprised to learn that the council was over. He got together about
fifty bishops, who unanimously condemned the doctrines of Cyril and the
proceedings of the council, and declared accursed all the bishops who had
taken part in it. Cyril and Memnon answered with counter-curses. Letters
came from Celestine, and Cyril's council re-assembled formally to receive
them. When they were read, the whole company arose and again cried with
one voice: "The council renders thanks to the second Paul, Celestine; to the
second Paul, Cyril: to Celestine, protector of the faith; to Celestine,
unanimous with the council. One Celestine, one Cyril, one faith in the
whole council, one faith throughout the world!"*420
Cyril's council next sent messengers with overtures to John, who refused to
see them. Then the council declared annulled all the acts of John's council,
and deposed and excommunicated him and all the bishops of his party. John
threatened to elect a new bishop of Ephesus in the place of Memnon, whom
his council had deposed. A party tried to force their way into the cathedral;
but finding it defended by Memnon with a strong garrison, they retreated.
Memnon's forces made a strong sally, and drove them through the streets
with clubs and stones, dangerously wounding many.
On learning that the council had been held, and Nestorius deposed before
the arrival of John of Antioch, a letter had been sent down from the court,
but was not received till this point in the contest. This letter annulled all the
proceedings of the council, and commanded a re-consideration of the
question by the whole assembly of the bishops now present. The letter also
announced the appointment of another imperial officer, one of the highest
officials of the State, to assist Count Candidian.
The court had not made known in Constantinople the proceedings of the
council, and the deposition of Nestorius. Cyril sent away a secret message
to the monks of Constantinople, announcing that Nestorius had been
deposed and excommunicated. The object of this was by stirring up those
fanatics to influence the court. The weak-minded Theodosius II stood in
great awe of the holiness of the monks. "His palace was so regulated that it
differed little from a monastery." In 422 there died one of these who was
noted for that kind of holiness that attaches to a monk, and Theodosius
secured "his cassock of sack-cloth of hair, which, although it was
324
the opposite side of the Bosphorus. There the emperor met them. The whole
summer had been spent in these contentions of the council, and it was now
September 4, when the emperor granted them the first audience. Four times
the emperor had them appear before him, and heard them fully.
He appeared so decidedly to favor the party of Nestorius, that they thought
the victory was already won. So certain were they of this that they even sent
off letters to their party at Ephesus, instructing them to send up a message
of thanks to him for his kindness. But at the fifth meeting all their brilliant
prospects were blasted. Cyril, from his post in Alexandria, had sent up
thousands of pounds of gold, with instructions to Maximian, bishop of
Constantinople, to add to it, not only the wealth of that church, but his
utmost personal effort to arouse "the languid zeal of the princess Pulcheria
in the cause of Cyril, to propitiate all the courtiers, and, if possible, to
satisfy their rapacity." - Milman.*422
As avarice was one of the ruling passions of the eunuchs and women who
ruled Theodosius II, "Every avenue of the throne was assaulted with gold.
Under the decent names of eulogies and benedictions, the courtiers of both
sexes were bribed according to the measure of their rapaciousness. But their
incessant demands despoiled the sanctuaries of Constantinople and
Alexandria; and the authority of the patriarch was unable to silence the just
murmur of his clergy, that a debt of sixty thousand pounds had already been
contracted to support the expense of this scandalous corruption." -
Gibbon.*423
The efforts of Cyril were at last effective. The eunuch Scholasticus, one of
the chief ministers of the emperor and the supporter of the cause of
Nestorius at court, was bought; and it was this that caused the sudden
revolution in the emperor's conduct toward the party of Nestorius. In the
fifth and last audience that he gave the deputies, the emperor told them at
once that they had better abandon Nestorius, and admit both Cyril and
Memnon to their communion. They remonstrated, but he would listen to
nothing. He put an end to the hearings, and returned the next day to
Constantinople, taking with him the bishops of Cyril's party, regularly to
ordain the successor of Nestorius in the bishopric of Constantinople.
Shortly afterward an imperial edict was issued declaring Nestorius justly
deposed, re-instating Cyril and Memnon in their respective sees,
pronouncing all the other bishops alike orthodox, and giving them all leave
to return to their homes. This dissolved the council.
326
Even before the dissolution of the council the emperor had sent an order to
Nestorius, commanding him to leave Ephesus and return to the monastery
whence he had been called to the archbishopric of Constantinople. By the
persistent efforts of Celestine, bishop of Rome, and others, the emperor was
induced - A. D. 436 - to banish him and two of his friends - a count of the
empire and a presbyter of Constantinople - to Petra in Arabia. July 30, in
the same year, an imperial edict was issued, commanding all who believed
with Nestorius, to be called Simonians; that all the books by Nestorius
should be sought for and publicly burnt; forbidding the Nestorius to hold
any meetings anywhere, in city, in village, or in field; and if any such
meeting was held, then the place where it was held should be confiscated, as
also the estates of all who should attend the meeting. Nestorius was not
allowed to remain long at Petra. He was taken from there to a place away in
the desert between Egypt and Libya, and from there dragged about from
place to place till he died of the hardships inflicted, at what date is not
certainly known, but about A. D. 440.
Such was the cause and such the conduct of the first Council of Ephesus,
the third general council of the Catholic Church. And thus was established
the Catholic doctrine that the Virgin Mary was the Mother of God.
The controversy went on, however, nor did it ever logically stop until
December 8, A. D. 1854, when Pope Pius IX established the actual divinity
of the Virgin Mary, by announcing the dogma of the Immaculate
Conception, which reads as follows: -
"By the authority of our Lord Jesus Christ and of the blessed apostles Peter
and Paul, as well as by our own, we declare, promulgate, and define that the
doctrine which teaches that the most blessed Virgin Mary, at the very
instant of her conception, was kept free from every stain of original sin
solely by the grace and prerogative of the omnipotent God, in consideration
of the merits of Jesus Christ, the Saviour of mankind, was revealed by God,
and must on that account be believed firmly and continually by all the
faithful ones."*424
327
CHAPTER XVIII.
THE EUTYCHIAN CONTROVERSY.
IT having been decided that the Virgin Mary was the Mother of God, out of
that decision there now arose another question involving the nature of
Christ. That question was: How was the divine nature related to the human
so that Mary could truly be called the Mother of God? That is, Did the
divine nature become human? or was the divine nature only joined to the
human? In other words: Were there two natures in Christ? or was there but
one?
It was now A.D. 448, and the Eutychian controversy began. For a clear
understanding of the case, it will be best formally to introduce the leading
characters.
Theodosius II was still emperor of the East; Valentinian III was emperor of
the West.
Eutyches was the abbot, or superior, of a monastery close to
Constantinople. He had been the chief leader of the monks in the contest
against Nestorius. "At his bidding the swarms of monks had thronged into
the streets, defied the civil power, terrified the emperor, and contributed
more than any other cause, to the final overthrow of Nestorius. He had
grown old in the war against heresy." - Milman.*425
Flavianus was now the occupant of the episcopal seat of Constantinople.
Chrysaphius was another eunuch, who had risen to the place of chief
minister of Theodosius II, and was also the godson of Eutyches. He was
carrying on a court intrigue to break the power of Pulcheria, by exalting the
influence of Eudocia. He hoped also to place Eutyches on the episcopal
throne of Constantinople. The accession of Flavianus to that dignity had
prevented this design for the time being, but he still held it in mind. When
Flavianus was installed in the bishopric, Chrysaphius demanded that he
should make to the emperor the offering of gold that was customary on such
occasions. Instead of bringing gold, Flavianus brought only three loaves of
consecrated bread. This, Chrysaphius so employed as to prejudice the
emperor against the archbishop.
328
"Jesus Christ, only-begotten Son of God, is true God and true man, of a
reasonable soul and a body subsisting, begotten of the Father before all
time, without beginning, according to the Godhead, but in the last times, for
us men and for our salvation, born of the Virgin Mary, according to the
manhood; of one substance with the Father according to the Godhead, and
of one substance with his mother, according to the manhood. We confess
that Christ after the Incarnation consists of two natures in one hypostasis
[personality] and in one person; one Christ, one Son, one Lord. Whoever
asserts otherwise, we exclude from the clergy and the church."*427
This they all signed, and then at the suggestion of Eusebius it was sent to
those who were absent for them to sign.
The next session of the synod was held November 15, and the deputies who
had been sent to Eutyches reported that he had refused to come, for the
reason that when he became a monk, he resolved never to leave the
monastery to go to any place whatever. Besides, he told them that the synod
ought to know that Eusebius had long been his enemy, and that it was only
out of malice that he now accused him. He said he was ready to affirm and
subscribe the declarations of the Councils of Nice and Ephesus. The synod
summoned him again, and again he refused to come. Then Eusebius
declared, "The guilty have ever ways of escaping; Eutyches must now be
brought here, even against his will." The synod then summoned him the
third time.
At the next meeting a messenger came from Eutyches, saying that he was
sick. Flavianus told him the synod would wait until Eutyches got well, but
that then he must come. At the next meeting, the deputies who had been
sent with the third summons, reported that Eutyches had told them that he
had sent his messenger to the archbishop and the synod that he might in his
name give his assent to the declarations of the councils of Nice and
Ephesus, "and to all that Cyril had uttered." At this Eusebius broke in with
the declaration, "Even if Eutyches will now assent, because some have told
him that he must yield to necessity and subscribe, yet I am not therefore in
the wrong, for it is with reference, not to the future, but to the past, that I
have accused him."*428 The deputies then closed with the information that
he would come to the synod on the next Monday.
At the appointed time, Eutyches came; but he did not come alone. He came
accompanied by a messenger of the emperor's privy council, and escorted
by a great crowd composed of soldiers, and servants of the praetorian
330
prefect, and "a rout of turbulent monks." The emperor's representative bore
a letter to the synod, in which the emperor said: -
"I wish the peace of the church and the maintenance of the orthodox faith,
which was asserted by the Fathers at Nicaea and Ephesus; and because I
know that the patrician Florentius is orthodox, and proved in the faith,
therefore it is my will that he be present at the sessions of the synod, as the
faith is in question."*429
At this the bishops cried out, "Many years to the emperor, his faith is great!
Many years to the pious, orthodox, high-priestly emperor." Then the
emperor's commissioner took his place, and Eusebius and Eutyches, the
accuser and the accused, placed themselves in the midst. The first thing was
to read the proceedings from the beginning up to this point, the vital part of
which was the declarations to which they had demanded that Eutyches
should give his assent. The reader the Nicene Creed, and there was no
dissent. He read the first of Cyril's letters, yet there was no dissent. He read
the decision of the Council of Ephesus, and still there was no dissent. Then
he began the second of Cyril's letters and read: -
"We confess our Lord Jesus Christ as perfect God and perfect man, and as
of one substance with the Father according to the Godhead, and of one
substance with us according to the manhood; for a union of the two natures
has taken place, therefore we confess one Christ, one Lord, and, in
accordance with this union without confusion, we call the holy Virgin God
bearer, because God the Logos was made flesh and man, and in the
conception united the temple which he assumed from her with himself -
*430
At this point Eusebius broke in. Seeing the reading was nearly finished with
no sign of dissent, he was afraid that Eutyches would actually approve all
the declarations, which doubtless he would have done. He therefore
interrupted the reading, with the exclamation, "Certainly such is not
confessed by this man here; he has never believed this, but the contrary, and
so he has taught every one who has come to him." Florentius asked that
Eutyches might be given a chance to say for himself" whether he agreed
with what had been read." To this Eusebius vehemently objected, for the
reason, said he, "If Eutyches agrees to it, then I must appear as having been
lightly a slanderer, and shall LOSE MY OFFICE" !!
Florentius renewed his request that Eutyches might be allowed to answer;
but Eusebius strenuously objected. And he only consented at the last, on the
express condition that no prejudice should lodge against him, even though
331
Eutyches should confess all that was required. Flavianus confirmed this
condition, with the assurance that not the slightest disadvantage should
come to Eusebius. But even then Eutyches was not allowed to answer in his
own way, because the predicament in which Eusebius had found himself,
involved in a measure the whole synod also, as they had given full credit to
the charges of Eusebius, and had refused all the assurances of Eutyches that
he agreed to all the documents which they had cited. Flavianus and
Eusebius, therefore, in order to save themselves from defeat and perhaps
deposition, if the matter should come to a general council, determined if
possible to entrap Eutyches in some statement which they could condemn.
The proceedings then were as follows: -
Flavianus. - "Say now, dost thou acknowledge the union of two natures?"
Eutyches. - "I believe that Christ is perfect God and perfect man, but here I
stop, and advise you do so too."
Eusebius. "Dost thou confess the existence of two natures, even after the
incarnation, and that Christ is of one nature with us after flesh, or not?"
Eutyches. - "I have not come to dispute, but to testify to your Holiness what
I think. My view, however, is set down in this writing; command, therefore,
that it be read."
Flavianus. - "If it is thine own confession of faith, why shouldst thou need
the paper?"
Eutyches. - "That is my belief: I pray to the Father with the Son, and to the
Son with the Father, and to the Holy Ghost with the Father and Son. I
confess that his bodily presence is from the body of the holy Virgin, and
that he became perfect for our salvation. This I confess before the Father,
before the Son, and before the Holy Ghost, and before your holiness."
Flavianus. - "Dost thou confess also that the one and the same Son, our
Lord Christ, is of one substance with the Father as to his Godhead and of
one substance with his mother as to his manhood?"
Eutyches. - "I have already declared my opinion; leave me now in peace."
Flavianus. - "Dost thou confess that Christ consists of two natures?"
Eutyches. - "I have not hitherto presumed to dispute concerning the nature
of my God; but that he is of one substance with us, have I hitherto, as I
affirm never said. Up to this present day have I never said that the body of
our Lord and God is of one substance with us. I do confess, however, that
332
the holy Virgin is of one substance with us, and that our God is made of our
flesh."
Flavianus, Florentius, and Basil of Seleucia. - "If thou dost acknowledge
that Mary is of one substance with us, and that Christ has taken his
manhood from her, then it follows of itself that he, according to his
manhood, is also of one substance with us."
Eutyches. - "Consider well, I say not that the body of man has become the
body of God, but I speak of a human body of God, and say that the Lord
was made flesh of the Virgin. If you wish me to add further that his body is
of one substance with ours, then I do this; but I do not understand this as
though I denied that he is the Son of God. Formerly I did not generally
speak of a unity of substance, but now I will do so, because your Holiness
thus requires it."
Flavianus. - Thou does it then only of compulsion, and not because it is thy
faith?"
Eutyches. - "I have not hitherto so spoken, but will do now in accordance
with the will of the synod."
Florentius. - "Dost thou believe that our Lord, who was born of the Virgin,
is of one substance with us, and that after the incarnation he is of two
natures, or not?"
Eutyches. - "I confess that before the union he was of two natures, but after
the union I confess only one nature."
At this "the whole council was in an uproar, and nothing was heard but
anathemas and curses, each bishop there present striving to distinguish
himself above the rest, by being the foremost in uttering the most bitter and
severe his zeal could suggest." - Bower.*431 When the noise had ceased,
Flavianus, in the name of the synod, demanded of Eutyches a public
declaration of his faith in, and a curse upon every view that did not accept,
the doctrines which had been set forth by the synod.
Eutyches. - "I will now indeed, since the synod so requires, accept the
manner of speech in question; but I find it neither in Holy Scripture nor in
the Fathers collectively, and therefore cannot pronounce a curse upon the
non-acceptance of the question, because that would be cursing the Fathers."
All together (springing to their feet). - "Let him be accursed!"
333
Flavianus. - "What does this man deserve who does not confess the right
faith, but persists in his perverseness?"
Eutyches. - "I will now indeed accept the required manner of speaking in
accordance with the will of the synod, but cannot pronounce the curse."
Florentius. - "Dost thou confess two natures in Christ, and his unity of
substance with us?"
Eutyches. "I read the writings of St. Cyril and St. Athanasius: before the
union they speak of two natures, but after the union only of one."
Florentius. - "Dost thou confess two natures even after the union? If not,
then wilt thou be condemned."
Eutyches. - "Let the writings of Cyril and Athanasius be read."
Basil of Seleucia. - "If thou dost not acknowledge two natures after the
union also, then thou acceptest a mingling and confusion."
Florentius. - He who does not say "of two natures," and who does not
acknowledge two natures, has not the right faith."
All together. - "And he who accepts anything only by compulsion does not
believe in it. Long live the emperors!"
Flavianus, announcing the sentence. - " Eutyches, a priest and
archimandrite, has, by previous statements, and even now by his own
confessions, shown himself to be entangled in the perversity of Valentinus
and Apollinaris, without allowing himself to be won back to the genuine
dogmas by our exhortation and instruction; therefore we, bewailing his
complete perversity, have decreed, for the sake of Christ whom he has
reviled, that he be deposed from every priestly office, expelled from our
communion, and deprived of his headship over the convent. And all who
henceforth hold communion with him, and have recourse to him, must
know that they too are liable to the penalty of excommunication."*432
The sentence was subscribed by all the synod, about thirty in number, and
the synod was dissolved, November 22, A. D. 448.
It is not necessary to follow the particulars any farther; as in every other
controversy, the dispute speedily spread far and wide. The decree of the
synod was sent by Flavianus to all the other bishops for their indorsement.
As soon as the action of the synod had been announced, Dioscorus, with all
his powers, espoused the cause of Eutyches. Through Chrysaphius the
Eunuch, Eutyches was already powerful at court, and added to this the
334
disfavor in which Flavianus was already held by the emperor, the war
assumed powerful proportions at the start.
The next step was, of course, for both parties to appeal to the bishop of
Rome. Eutyches felt perfectly safe in appealing to Leo, because he had the
words of Julius, bishop of Rome, saying, "It must not be said that there are
two natures in Christ after their union; for as the body and soul form but one
nature in man, so the divinity and humanity from but one nature in
Christ."*433 This being precisely the view of Eutyches, he felt perfectly
confident in his appeal to Leo, for he could not suppose that Leo would
contradict Julius. He shortly found that such a hope was altogether vain.
The emperor also wrote to the bishop of Rome. It seems that Leo did not
make any answer to Eutyches direct. To Flavianus he sent a request for a
fuller account of the whole matter, and that it should be sent by an envoy.
To the emperor he wrote rejoicing that Theodosius "has not only the heart
of an emperor, but also that of a priest, and is rightly anxious that no discord
should arise; for then is the empire best established when the holy Trinity is
served in unity."*434
Dioscorus seeing now a chance of humbling the archbishop of
Constantinople, joined Eutyches in a request to the emperor to call a general
council. Chrysaphius, seeing again a prospect of accomplishing his favorite
project to make Eutyches archbishop of Constantinople, strongly supported
this request. But Theodosius, after his experience with the council at
Ephesus, dreaded to have anything to do with another one, and sought to
ward off another calamity of the kind. But there was no remedy; the thing
had to come.
Accordingly, March 30, A. D. 449, a message in the name of the two
emperors, Theodosius II and Valentinian III, was issued, announcing that
"as doubts and controversies have arisen respecting the right faith, the
holding of an oecumenical synod has become necessary." Therefore the
archbishops, metropolitans, and "other holy bishops distinguished for
knowledge and character," should assemble at Ephesus August 1. A special
edict was sent to Dioscorus, saying: -
"The emperor has already forbidden Theodoret of Cyrus, on account of his
writings Cyril, to take part in the synod, unless he is expressly summoned
by the synod itself. Because, however, it is to be feared that some
Nestorianizing bishops will use every means in order to bring him with
them, the emperor following the rule of the holy Fathers, will nominate
Dioscorus to be president of the synod. Archbishop Juvenal of Jerusalem
335
and Thalassius of Caesarea, and all zealous friends of the orthodox faith
will support Dioscorus. In conclusion, the emperor expresses the wish that
al who shall desire to add anything to the Nicene confession of faith, or take
anything from it, shall not be regarded in the synod; but on this point
Dioscorus shall give judgment, since it is for this very purpose that the
synod is convoked."
Leo was specially invited; and a certain Barsumas, a priest and superior of a
monastery in Syria, was called as the representative of the monks, and
Dioscorus was directed to receive him as such, and give him a seat in the
council.
Not willing to wait for the decision of the question by the coming general
council, Leo took occasion to assert his authority over all; and June 13 sent
a letter to Flavianus, in which he indorsed the action of the Synod of
Constantinople as far as it went, but reproved the synod for treating the
matter so mildly as it had done, and himself took the strongest ground
against Eutyches. In answer to the request of the emperor that he should
attend the general council, Leo declined to attend in person, but promised to
be present by Legates a Latere.
The council, composed of one hundred and forty-nine members, met in the
Church of the Virgin Mary at Ephesus, and was formally opened August 8
A. D. 449. Dioscorus, the president, was seated upon a high throne. Two
imperial commissioners, Elpidius and Eulogius, were in attendance with a
strong body of troops to keep order in the council, and preserve peace in the
city. The council was opened with the announcement by the secretary, that
"the Godfearing emperors have from zeal for religion, convoked this
assembly. Then the imperial message calling the council was read, and next
the two legates of the bishop of Rome announced that though invited by the
emperor, Leo did not appear in person, but had sent a letter. Next Elpidius,
the imperial commissioner, made a short speech, in which he said: -
"The Logos has on this day permitted the assembled bishops to give
judgment upon him. If you confess him rightly, then he also will confess
you before his heavenly Father. But those who shall prevent the true
doctrine will have to undergo a severe two-fold judgment, that of God and
that of the emperor."*435
Next was read the emperor's instructions to the two imperial commissioners,
which ran as follows: -
336
"But lately the holy Synod of Ephesus has been engaged with the affairs of
the impious Nestorius, and pronounced a righteous sentence on him.
Because, however, new controversies of faith have arisen, we have
summoned a second synod to Ephesus in order to destroy the evil to the
roots. We have therefore selected Elplidius and Eulogius for the service of
the faith in order to fulfill our commands in reference to the Synod of
Ephesus. In particular they must allow no disturbances and they must arrest
every one who arouses such, and inform the emperor of him; they must take
care that everything is done in order, must be present at the decisions, and
take care that the synod examine the matter quickly and carefully, and give
information of the same to the emperor. Those
bishops who previously sat in judgment on Eutyches (at Constantinople) are
to be present at the proceedings at Ephesus, but are not to vote, since their
own previous sentence must be examined anew. Further, no other question
is to be brought forward at the synod, and especially no question of money,
before the settlement of the question of faith. By a letter to the proconsul,
we have required support for the commissioners from the civil and military
authorities, so that they may be able to fulfill our commissions which are as
far above other business as divine above human things."*436
Following this was read a letter from the emperor to the council, in which
he said: -
"The emperor has adjudged it necessary to call this assembly of bishops,
that they might cut off this controversy and all its diabolical roots, exclude
the adherents of Nestorius from the church, and preserve the orthodox faith
firm and unshaken; since the whole hope of the emperor and the power of
the empire, depend on the right faith in God and the holy prayers of the
synod."*437
The council was now formally opened, and according to the instructions of
the emperor they proceeded first to consider the faith. But upon this a
dispute at once arose as to what was meant by the faith. Some insisted that
this meant that the council should first declare its faith; but Dioscorus
interpreted it to mean not that the faith should first be declared, for this the
former council had already done, but rather that they were to consider
which of the parties agreed with what the true faith explains. And then he
cried out: "Or will you alter the faith of the holy Fathers?" In answer to this
there were cries, "Accursed be he who makes alterations in it; accursed be
he who ventures to discuss the faith."
337
daring to teach, and his firmness in daring to defend, the true and genuine
doctrine of the Fathers. And on this occasion, those distinguished
themselves the most by their panegyrics, who had most distinguished
themselves by their invectives before." - Bower.*441
Dioscorus having everything in his own power,now determined to visit
vengeance upon the archbishop of Constantinople. Under pretense that it
was for the instruction of his colleagues, he directed that the acts of the
previous Council of Ephesus concerning the Nicene Creed, etc., should be
read. As soon as the reading was finished, he said: "You have now heard
that the first Synod of Ephesus threatens every one who teaches otherwise
than the Nicene Creed, or makes alterations in it, and raises new or further
questions. Every one must now give his opinion in writing as to whether
those who, in their theological inquiries go beyond the Nicene Creed, are to
be punished or not."*442
This was aimed directly at Flavianus and Eusebius of Dorylaeum, as they
expressed the wish that the expression "two natures" might to be inserted in
the Nicene Creed. To the statement of Dioscorus several bishops responded
at once: "Whoever goes beyond the Nicene Creed is not to be received as
Catholic." Then Dioscorus continued: "As then the first Synod of Ephesus
threatens every one who alters anything in the Nicene faith, it follows that
Flavianus of Constantinople and Eusebius of Dorylaeum must be deposed
from their ecclesiastical dignity. I pronounce, therefore, their deposition,
and every one of those present shall communicate his view of this matter.
Moreover everything will be brought to the knowledge of the emperor."
Flavianus replied: "I except against you," and, to take time by the forelock,
placed a written appeal in the hands of the legates of Leo. Several of the
friends of Flavianus left their seats, and prostrating themselves before the
throne of Dioscorus, begged him not to inflict such a sentence, and above
all that he would not ask them to sign it. He replied, "Through my tongue
were to be cut out, I would not alter a single syllable of it." Trembling for
their own fate if they should refuse to subscribe, the pleading bishops now
embraced his knees, and entreated him to spare them; but he angrily
exclaimed: "What! do you think to raise a tumult? Where are the counts?
At this the counts ordered doors to be thrown open, and the proconsul of
Asia entered with a strong body of armed troops, followed by a confused
multitude of furious monks, armed with chains, and clubs, and stones. Then
there was a general scramble of the "holy bishops" to find a refuge. Some
took shelter behind the throne of Dioscorus, others crawled under the
339
As the doctrine which the council had established was contrary to that
which Leo had published in his letter, he denounced the council as a "synod
of robbers," refused to recognize it at all, and called for another general
council. But in every respect this council was just as legitimate and as
orthodox as any other one that had been held from the Council of Nice to
that day. It was regularly called; it was regularly opened; the proceedings
were all perfectly regular; and when it was over, the proceedings were
regularly approved and confirmed by the imperial authority. In short, there
is no element lacking to make second Council of Ephesus as thoroughly
regular and orthodox as the first Council of Ephesus, which is held by the
Church of Rome to be entirely orthodox, or even as orthodox as the Council
of Nice itself.
341
CHAPTER XIX.
THE POPE MADE AUTHOR OF THE FAITH.
LEO persisted in his refusal to recognize the validity of the acts of the
second Council of Ephesus, and insisted that another general council should
be called. As it was the will of Leo alone that made, or could now make, the
late council anything else than strictly regular and orthodox according to the
Catholic system of discipline and doctrine, it is evident that if another
general council was called, it would have to be subject to the will of Leo,
and its decision upon questions of the faith would be but the expression of
the will of Leo. This is precisely what Leo aimed at, and nothing less than
this would satisfy him.
Leo had now been bishop of Rome eleven years. He was a full-blooded
Roman in all that term implies. "All that survived of Rome, of her
unbounded ambition, her inflexible perseverance, her dignity in defeat, her
haughtiness of language, her belief in her own eternity, and in her
indefeasible title to universal dominion, her respect for traditionary and
written law, and of unchangeable custom, might seem concentrated in him
alone." - Milman.*445
Yet Leo was not the first one in whom this spirit was manifested. His
aspirations were but the culmination of the arrogance of the bishopric of
Rome which had been constantly growing. To trace the subtle, silent, often
violent, yet always constant, growth of this spirit of supremacy and
encroachment of absolute authority, is one of the most curious studies in all
history; though it cannot be followed in detail in this book. Not only was
there never an opportunity lost, but opportunities were created, for the
bishop of Rome to assert authority and to magnify his power. Supremacy in
discipline and in jurisdiction was asserted by Victor and Stephen; but it was
not until the union of Church and State that the field was fully opened to the
arrogance of the bishopric of Rome. A glance at the successive bishops
from the union of Church and State to the accession of Leo, will give a
better understanding of the position and pretensions of Leo than could be
obtained in any other way.
342
MELCHIADES
was bishop of Rome from July 2, A. D. 311, to December, 314, and
therefore, as already related, was in the papal chair when the union of
Church and State was formed, and took a leading part in that evil intrigue.
And soon the bishopric of Rome began to receive its reward in imperial
favors. "The bishop of Rome sits by the imperial authority at the head of a
synod of Italian bishops, to judge the disputes of the African Donatists." -
Milman.*446 Melchiades was succeeded by -
SYLVESTER, A. D. 314-336.
In the very year of his accession, the Council of Arles bestowed upon the
bishopric of Rome the distinction and the office of notifying all the
churches of the proper time to celebrate Easter. And in 325 the general
Council of Nice recognized the bishop of Rome the first bishop of the
empire. Under him the organization of the church was formed upon the
model of the organization of the State. He was succeeded by -
MARK, A. D. 336,
whose term continued only from January till October, and was therefore so
short that nothing occurred worthy of record in this connection. He was
succeeded by -
LIBERIUS, 352-366,
who excommunicated Athanasius and then approved his doctrine, and
carried on the contest with Constantius, in which he incurred banishment
for the Catholic faith; and then became Arian, then Semi-Arian, and then
Catholic again. He was succeeded by -
343
DAMASUS, 366-384.
In his episcopate, Valentinian I enacted a law making the bishop of Rome
the judge of other bishops. A council in Rome, A. D. 378, enlarged his
powers of judging, and petitioned the emperor Gratian to exempt the bishop
of Rome from all civil jurisdiction except that of the emperor alone; to order
that he be judged by none except a council, or the emperor direct; and that
the imperial power should be exerted to compel obedience to the judgment
of the bishop of Rome concerning other bishops. Gratian granted part of
their request, and it was made to count for all. Damascus was succeeded
by–
SIRICIUS, 384-389,
who issued the first decretal. A decretal is "an answer sent by the pope to
applications to him as head of the church, for guidance in cases involving
points of doctrine or discipline." The directions of Siricius in this decretal
were to be strictly observed under penalty of excommunication. It was
dated February 11, A. D. 385. He convened a council in Rome, which
decreed that "no one should presume to ordain a bishop without the
knowledge of the apostolic see." - Bower. *448 He was succeeded by -
ANASTASIUS I, 389-402,
who, though very zealous to maintain all that his predecessors had asserted
or claimed, added nothing in particular himself. He condemned as a heretic,
Origen, who had been dead one hundred and fifty years, and who is now a
Catholic saint. He was succeeded by -
INNOCENT I, 402-417.
Innocent was an indefatigable disciplinarian, and kept up a constant
correspondence with all the West, as well as with the principal bishoprics of
the East, establishing rules, dictating to councils, and issuing decretals upon
all the affairs of the church. Hitherto the dignity of the bishopric of Rome
had been derived from the dignity of the city of Rome. Innocent now
asserted that the superior dignity of the bishopric of Rome was derived from
Peter, whom he designated the Prince of the Apostles; and that in this
344
BONIFACE I, 419-422,
who added nothing to the power or authority of the bishopric of Rome, but
diligently and "conscientiously" maintained all that his predecessors had
asserted, in behalf of what he called "the just rights of the see," in which he
had been placed. He was succeeded by -
CELESTINE I, 422-432,
345
This made his authority absolute over all the West, and now he determined
to extend it over the East, and so make it universal. As soon as he learned
the decision of the Council of Ephesus, he called a council in Rome, and by
it rejected all that had been done by the council at Ephesus, and wrote to the
emperor, Theodosius II, "entreating him in the name of the holy Trinity, to
declare null what had been done there," and set everything back as it was
before that council was called, and so let the matter remain until a general
council could be held in Italy.
Leo addressed not the emperor Theodosius alone, to have another council
called. He wrote to Pulcheria, appointing her a legate of St. Peter, and
entreated her "to employ all her interest with the emperor to obtain the
assembling of an oecumenical council, and all her authority to prevent the
evils that would be otherwise occasioned by the war which had been lately
declared against the faith of the church." - Bower.*454
In February 450, the emperor Valentinian III, with his mother Placidia and
his wife Eudocia, who was the daughter of Theodosius II, made a visit to
Rome. The next day after their arrival, they went to the Church of St. Peter,
where they were received by Leo, who, as soon as he met them, put on all
the agony he could, and with sobs, and tears, and sighs, he addressed them;
but on account of his great excess of grief, his words were so mumbled that
nothing could be made of them.
Presently the two women began to cry. This somewhat relieved the stress
upon Leo, so that with much eloquence, he represented the great danger that
threatened the church. Then he mustered up his tears again, and mixed them
with more sighs and sobs, and begged the emperor and empress, by the
apostle Peter to whom they were about to pay their respects, by their own
salvation and by the salvation of Theodosius, to write to the emperor, and
spare no pains to persuade him to nullify the proceedings of the second
Council of Ephesus, and call another general council, this time in Italy.
As soon as it was learned in the East what strenuous efforts Leo was
making to have another general council called, many of the bishops who
had condemned Flavianus began to make overtures to the party of Leo, so
that if another council should be called, they might escape condemnation.
Dioscorus learning this, called a synod of ten bishops in Alexandria, and
solemnly excommunicated Leo, bishop of Rome, for presuming to judge
anew, and annul what had already been judged and finally determined by a
general council.
347
Leo finally sent four legates to the court of Theodosius, to urge upon him
the necessity of another general council, but before they reached
Constantinople, Theodosius was dead; and having left no heir to his throne,
Pulcheria, Leo's legate, became empress. As there was no precedent in
Roman history to sanction the rule of a woman alone, she married a senator
by the name of Marcian, and invested him with the imperial robes, while
she retained and exercised the imperial authority. The first thing they did
was to burn Chrysaphius. The new authority received Leo's legates with
great respect, and returned answer that they had nothing so much at heart as
the unity of the church and the extirpation of heresies, and that therefore
they would call a general council. Not long afterward they wrote to Lee,
inviting him to assist in person at the proposed council.
No sooner was it known that Theodosius was dead, and Pulcheria and
Marcian in power, than the bishops who had indorsed and praised Eutyches,
changed their opinions and condemned him and all who held with him.
Anatolius, an defender of Eutyches, who had succeeded Flavianus as
archbishop of Constantinople, and had been ordained by Dioscorus himself,
"assembled in great haste all the bishops, abbots, presbyters, and deacons,
who were then in Constantinople, and in their presence not only received
and signed the famous letter of Leo to Flavianus, concerning the
incarnation, but at the same time anathematized Nestorius and Eutyches,
their doctrine, and all their followers, declaring that he professed no other
faith but what was held and professed by the Roman Church and by Leo." -
Bower. *455 The example of Anatolius was followed by other bishops who
had favored Eutyches, and by most of those who had acted in the late
council, "and nothing was heard but anathemas against Eutyches, whom
most of those who uttered them, had but a few months before, honored as a
new apostle, and as the true interpreter of the doctrine of the church and the
Fathers." - Bower.*456
By an imperial message dated May 17, A. D. 451, a general council was
summoned to meet at Nice in Bithynia, the first of September. The council
met there accordingly, but an invasion of the Huns from Illyricum made it
necessary for Marcian to remain in the capital; and therefore the council
was removed from Nice to Chalcedon. Accordingly at Chalcedon there
assembled the largest council ever yet held, the number of bishops being six
hundred and thirty.
Marcian, not being able to be present at the opening, appointed six of the
chief officers of the empire, and fourteen men of the Senate as
348
emperors, and was to the effect that at the late council at Ephesus,
Dioscorus "having gathered a disorderly rabble, and procured an
overbearing influence by bribes, made havoc, as far as lay in his power, of
the pious religion of the orthodox, and established the erroneous doctrine of
Eutyches the monk, which had from the first been repudiated by the holy
Fathers; "that the emperors should therefore command Dioscorus to answer
the accusation which he now made; and that the acts of the late council of
Ephesus should be read in the present council, because from these he could
show that Dioscorus was "estranged from the orthodox faith, that he
strengthened a heresy utterly impious," and that he had "wrongfully
deposed" and "cruelly outraged" him.*458
When the reading of the memorial was ended, it was decided that not only
the acts of the late council at Ephesus, but those of the original synod at
Constantinople and all the steps between, should be read.
The late council at Ephesus had excommunicated Theodoret, bishop of
Cyrus. Theodoret had appealed to Leo. Leo had re-instated him, and the
emperor Marcian had specially summoned him to this council. Theodoret
had arrived, and at this point in the proceedings, the imperial commissioners
directed that he should be admitted to the council. "The actual introduction
of Theodoret caused a frightful storm." - Hefele.*459 A faint estimate of
this frightful storm may be formed from the following account of it, which
is copied bodily from the report of the council : -
"And when the most reverend bishop Theodoret entered, the most reverend
the bishops of Egypt, Illyria, and Palestine [the party of Dioscorus] shouted
out, `Mercy upon us! the faith is destroyed. The canons of the church
excommunicate him. Turn him out! turn out the teacher of Nestorius.'
"On the other hand, the most reverend the bishops of the East, of Thrace, of
Pontus, and of Asia, shouted out, `We were compelled [at the former
council] to subscribe our names to blank papers; we were scourged into
submission. Turn out the Manicheans! Turn out the enemies of Flavian; turn
out the adversaries of the faith!'
"Dioscorus, the most reverend bishop of Alexandria, said, "Why is Cyril to
be turned out? It is he whom Theodoret has condemned.'
"The most reverend the bishops of the East shouted out, `Turn out the
murderer Dioscorus. Who knows not the deeds of Dioscorus?'
"The most reverend the bishops of Egypt, Illyria, and Palestine shouted out,
`Long life to the empress!'
350
"The most reverend the bishops of the East shouted out, `Turn out the
murderers!'
"The most reverend the bishops of Egypt shouted out, `The empress turned
out Nestorius; long life to the Catholic empress! The orthodox synod
refuses to admit Theodoret.'"
Here there was a "momentary" lull in the storm, of which Theodoret
instantly took advantage, and stepped forward to the commissioners with "a
petition to the emperors," which was really a complaint against Dioscorus,
and asked that it be read. The commissioners said that the regular business
should be proceeded with, but that Theodoret should be admitted to a seat in
the council, because the bishop of Antioch had vouched for his orthodoxy.
Then the storm again raged.
"The most reverend the bishops of the East shouted out, `He is worthy-
worthy!'
"The most reverend the bishops of Egypt shouted out, `Don't call him
bishop, he is no bishop. Turn out the fighter against God; turn out the Jew!'
"The most reverend the bishops of the East shouted out, `The orthodox for
the synod! Turn out the rebels; turn out the murderers!'
"The most reverend the bishops of Egypt, `Turn out the enemy of God. Turn
out the defamer of Christ. Long life to the empress! Long life to the
emperor! Long life to the Catholic emperor! Theodoret condemned Cyril. If
we receive Theodoret, we excommunicate Cyril.'"*460
At this stage the commissioners were enabled by a special exertion of their
authority, to allay the storm. They plainly told the loud-mouthed bishops,
"Such vulgar shouts are not becoming in bishops, and can do no good to
either party." *461
When the tumult had been subdued, the council proceeded to business. First
there were read all the proceedings from the beginning of the Synod of
Constantinople against Eutyches clear down to the end of the late Council
of Ephesus; during which there was much shouting and counter-shouting
after the manner of that over the introduction of Theodoret, but which need
not be repeated.
The first act of the council after the reading of the foregoing minutes, was to
annul the sentence which Dioscorus had pronounced against Flavianus and
Eusebius. "Many of the bishops expressed their penitence at their
concurrence in these acts; some saying that they were compelled by force to
351
Many of the party of Dioscorus now abandoned him and his cause, and
went over to the other side, exclaiming : "We have all erred, we all ask for
pardon." Upon this there was an almost unanimous demand that only
Dioscorus should be deposed.
Dioscorus. - "They are condemning not me alone, but Athanasius and Cyril.
They forbid us to assert the two natures after the incarnation."
The orientals, and other opponents of Dioscorus, all together. - "Many years
to the Senate! holy God, holy, Almighty, holy Immortal, have mercy upon
us! Many years to the emperors! The impious must ever be subdued!
Dioscorus the murderer, Christ has deposed! This is a righteous judgment, a
righteous senate, a righteous council."
Amid such cries as these, and, "Christ has deposed Dioscorus, Christ has
deposed the murderer, God has avenged his martyrs," the resolution was
adopted. Then the council adjourned.*464
The bishops. - "A written declaration of faith we do not bring forward. This
is contrary to the rule" [referring to the command of the first Council of
Ephesus].
Florentius, bishop of Sardes. - "As those who have been taught to follow the
Nicene Synod, and also the regularly and piously assembled synod at
Ephesus, in accordance with the faith of the holy Fathers Cyril and
Celestine, and also with the letter of the most holy Leo, cannot possibly
draw up at once a formula of the faith, we therefore ask for a longer delay;
but I, for my part, believe that the letter of Leo is sufficient."
Cecropius. - "Let the formulas be read in which the true faith has already
been set forth."
This suggestion was adopted. First the Nicene Creed, with its curse against
the Arian heresy, was read, at the close of which, -
The bishops, unanimously. - "That is the orthodox faith, that we all believe,
into that we were baptized, into that we also baptize; thus Cyril taught, thus
believes Pope Leo."
Next was read the Creed of Constantinople, and with similar acclamations it
was unanimously indorsed. Then were read the two letters which Cyril had
written, and which were a part of the record of the inquisition upon
Eutyches. Lastly there was read the letter of Leo. When Leo's letter was
read, it was cheered to the echo, and again roared -
The bishops. - "It is the belief of the Fathers - of the apostles - so believe we
all! Accursed be he that admits not that Peter has spoken by the mouth of
Leo! Leo has taught what is righteous and true, and so taught Cyril. Eternal
be the memory of Cyril! Why was not this read at Ephesus? It was
suppressed by Dioscorus!"
The bishops of Illyricum and Palestine, however, said that there were some
passages - three, it proved - in the letter of Leo of which they had some
doubts. The truth of those passages was confirmed by statements which
Cyril had made to the same effect.
The imperial commissioners. - "Has any one still a doubt?"
The bishops, by acclamation. - "No one doubts."
Still there was one bishop who hesitated, and requested that there might be
a few days' delay, that the question might be quietly considered and settled;
354
and as the letter of Leo had been read, that they might have a copy of the
letter of Cyril to Nestorius, that they might examine them together.
The council. - "If we are to have delay, we must request that all the bishops
in common shall take part in the desired consultation."
The commissioners. - "The assembly is put off for five days, and the
bishops shall, during that time, meet with Anatolius of Constantinople, and
take counsel together concerning the faith, so that the doubting may be
instructed."
As the council was about to be dismissed, some bishops entered a request
that the bishops who had taken a leading part in the late council of Ephesus,
should be forgiven!"
The petitioning bishops. "We petition for the Fathers that they may be
allowed again to enter the synod. The emperor and the empress should hear
of this petition. We have all erred; let all be forgiven! "
Upon this "a great commotion again arose, similar to that at the beginning
of the council over the introduction of Theodoret."
The clergy of Constantinople shouted. - "Only a few cry for this, the synod
itself says not a syllable."
The orientals cried out. - "Exile to the Egyptian!"
The Illyrians. - "We beseech you, pardon all!"
The orientals. - "Exile to the Egyptian!"
The Illyrians. -"We have all erred; have mercy on us all! These words to the
orthodox emperor! The churches are rent in pieces."
The clergy of Constantinople. - "To exile with Dioscorus; God has rejected
him. Whoever has communion with him is a Jew."
In the midst of this uproar, the imperial commissioners put an end to the
session. The recess continued only two days instead of five, for -
"I therefore pray that you will have pity upon me, and decree that all which
was done against me be declared null, and do me no harm, but that I be
again restored to my spiritual dignity. At the same time anathematize his
evil doctrine, and punish him for his insolence according to his deserts."
Following this, Dioscorus was charged with enormous crimes, with
lewdness and debauchery to the great scandal of his flock; with styling
himself the king of Egypt, and attempting to usurp the sovereignty.
Dioscorus was not present, and after being summoned three times without
appearing, Leo's legates gave a recapitulation of the crimes charged against
him, and then pronounced the following sentence: -
"Leo archbishop of the great and ancient Rome, by us and the present
synod, with the authority of St. Peter, on whom the Catholic Church and
orthodox faith are founded, divests Dioscorus of the episcopal dignity, and
declares him henceforth incapable of exercising any sacerdotal or episcopal
functions." *465
united with the archbishop of Alexandria, and therefore must await his
judgment in this matter."
This caused such an outcry in the council against them, that the thirteen
yielded so far as to pronounce openly and positively a curse upon Eutyches.
Again the legates called upon them to subscribe to the letter of Leo."
The Egyptians. - "Without the consent of our acrhbishop we cannot
subscribe."
Acacius, bishop of Ariarathia. - "It is inadmissible to allow more weight to
one single person who is to hold the bishopric of Alexandria, than to the
whole synod. The Egyptians only wish to throw everything into confusion
here as at Ephesus. They must subscribe Leo's letter or be
excommunicated."
The Egyptians. - "In comparison with the great number of the bishops of
Egypt, there are only a few of us present, and we have no right to act in
their name, to do what is here required. We therefore pray for mercy, and
that we may be allowed to follow our archbishop. Otherwise all the
provinces of Egypt will rise up against us."
Cecropius of Sebastopol. - [Again reproaching them with heresy]"It is from
yourselves alone that assent is demanded to the letter of Leo, and not in the
name of the rest of the Egyptian bishops."
The Egyptians. - "We can no longer live at home if we do this."
Leo's legate, Lucentius. - "Ten individual men can occasion no prejudice to
a synod of six hundred bishops and to the Catholic faith."
The Egyptians. - "We shall be killed, we shall be killed, if we do it. We will
rather be made away with here by you than there. Let an archbishop for
Egypt be here appointed, and then we will subscribe and assent. Have
mercy on our gray hairs! Anatolius of Constantinople knows that in Egypt
all the bishops must obey the archbishop of Alexandria. Have pity upon us;
we would rather die by the hands of the emperor, and by yours than at
home. Take our bishopries if you will, elect an archbishop of Alexandria;
we do not object."
Many bishops. -"The Egyptians are heretics; they must subscribe the
condemnation of Dioscorus."
The imperial commissioners. - "Let them remain at Constantinople until an
archbishop is elected for Alexandria."
358
The legate, Paschasinus. - [Agreeing] "They must give security not to leave
Constantinople in the meantime."
During the rest of the session matters were discussed which had no direct
bearing upon the establishment of the faith.
peace I give unto you, `so that no one might be separated from his neighbor
in the doctrines of religion, but that the preaching of the truth should be
made known to all alike. As, however, the evil one does not cease by his
tares to hinder the seed of religion, and is ever inventing something new in
opposition to the truth, therefore has God, in his care for the human race,
stirred up zeal in this pious and orthodox emperor, so that he has convoked
the heads of the priesthood in order to remove all the plague of falsehood
from the sheep of Christ, and to nourish them with the tender plants of truth.
This we have also done in truth, since we have expelled, by our common
judgment, the doctrines of error, and have renewed the right faith of the
Fathers, have proclaimed the creed of the three hundred and eighteen to all,
and have acknowledged the one hundred and fifty of Constantinople who
accepted it, as our own. While we now receive the regulations of the earlier
Ephesine Synod, under Celestine and Cyril, and its prescriptions concerning
the faith, we decree that the confession of the three hundred and eighteen
Fathers at Nicaea is a light to the right and unblemished faith, and that that
is also valid which was decreed by the one hundred and fifty fathers at
Constantinople for the confirmation of the Catholic and apostolic faith."
Here they inserted bodily the creed of the council of Nice and that of
Constantinople, found on pages 350 and 396 of this book; and then the
preamble continued as follows: -
"This wise and wholesome symbol of divine grace would indeed suffice for
a complete knowledge and confirmation of religion, for it teaches
everything with reference to the Father and the Son and the Holy Ghost, and
declares the incarnation of the Lord to those who receive it in faith: as,
however, those who would do away with the preaching of the truth devised
vain expressions through their own heresies, and, on the one side, dared to
destroy the mystery of the incarnation of our Lord and rejected the
designation of God-bearer, and, on the other side, introduced a mixture and
confusion [of the natures], and, contrary to reason, imagined only one
nature of the flesh and of the Godhead, and rashly maintained that the
divine nature of the Only-begotten was, by the mixture, become possible,
therefore the holy, great, and CEcumenical Synod decrees that the faith of
the three hundred and eighteen Fathers shall remain inviolate, and that the
doctrine afterwards promulgated by the one hundred and fifty Fathers at
Constantinople, on account of the Pneumatomachi shall have equal validity,
being put forth by them, not in order to add to the creed of Nicaea anything
that was lacking, but in order to make known in writing their consciousness
concerning the Holy Chest against the deniers of his glory.
361
And that those who shall presume to frame, or publish, or teach another
faith, or to communicate another symbol to those who are disposed to turn
to the knowledge of the truth from heathenism, or Judaism, or any other sect
- that they, if they be bishops or clerks, shall suffer deprivation. the bishops
of their episcopal, the clerks of their clerical, office; and if monks or laics,
shall be anathematized."*466
When the reading of this report of the commission was finished, the council
adjourned.
The Emperor Marcian. - "Does this formula of the faith express the view of
all?"
The six hundred bishops all shouting at once. - We all believe thus; there is
one faith, one will; we are all unanimous, and have unanimously
subscribed; we are all orthodox! This is the faith of the Fathers, the faith of
the apostles, the faith of the orthodox; this faith has saved the world.
Prosperity to Marcian, the new Constantine, the new Paul, the new David!
long years to our sovereign lord David! You are the peace of the world,
long life! Your faith will defend you. Thou honorest Christ. He will defend
thee. Thou hast established orthodoxy.... To the august empress, many
years! You are the lights of orthodoxy.... Orthodox from her birth, God will
defend her. Defender of the faith, may God defend her. Pious, orthodox
enemy of heretics, God will defend her. Thou hast persecuted all the
heretics. May the evil eye be averted from your empire! Worthy of the faith,
worthy of Christ! So are the faithful sovereigns honored. . . . Marcian is the
new Constantine, Pulcheria is the new Helena!. . . Your life is the safety of
all; your faith is the glory of the churches. By thee the world is at peace; by
thee the orthodox faith is established; by thee heresy ceases to be : Long life
to the emperor and empress!"*467
The emperor then "gave thanks to Christ that unity in religion had again
been restored, and threatened all, as well private men and soldiers as the
clergy, with heavy punishment if they should again stir up controversies
respecting the faith, " and proposed certain ordinances which were made a
part of the canons established in future sessions. As soon as he had ceased
speaking, the bishops again shouted, "Thou art priest and emperor together,
conqueror in war and teacher of the faith."
The council was sitting in the Church of St. Euphemia, and Marcian now
announced that in honor of St. Euphemia and the council, he bestowed upon
the city of Chalcedon the title and dignity of "metropolis;" and in return the
bishops all unanimously exclaimed, "This is just; an Easter be over the
whole world; the holy Trinity will protect thee. We pray dismiss us."
Instead of dismissing them, however, the emperor commanded them to
remain "three or four days longer," and to continue the proceedings. The
council continued until November 1, during which time ten sessions were
held, in which there was much splitting of theological hairs, pronouncing
curses, and giving the lie; and an immense amount of hooting and yelling in
approval or condemnation. None of it, however, is worthy of any further
notice except to say that twenty-eight canons were established, the last of
364
thought that this good regulation, like the declaration of the faith, should
proceed from thyself. But we were of an opinion that it belonged to the
CEcumenical Synod to confirm its prerogatives to the imperial city in
accordance with the wish of the emperor, assuming that when thou hadst
heard it, thou woulds regard it as thine own act. For all that the sons have
done, which is good, conduces to the honor of the fathers. We pray thee,
honor our decree also by thine assent; and as we have assented to thy good
decree, so may thy loftiness accomplish that which is meet towards the
sons. This will also please the emperors, who have sanctioned thy judgment
in the faith as law; and the see of Constantinople may well receive a reward
for the zeal with which it united itself with thee in the matter of religion. In
order to show that we have done nothing from favor or dislike towards any
one, we have brought the whole contents of what we have done to thy
knowledge, and have communicated it to thee for confirmation and assent."
This was followed up December 18, by two letters to Leo from the emperor
and the archbishop of Constantinople, Anatolius, saying that he had
constantly done all for the honor of Leo and his legates, and from reverence
for the pope, the council and himself had transmitted all to Leo for his
approval and confirmation; Marcian expressing his gladness that the true
faith had received its expression in accordance with the letter of Leo, and
both praying him to approve and confirm the decrees of the council, and
especially the canon in reference to the see of Constantinople. Leo steadily
denounced that canon, however. But as Anatolius, in a letter, April, 454,
acknowledged to Leo : "The whole force and confirmation of the decrees
have been reserved for your Holiness;" this was to yield absolutely all to
Leo, so far as it was possible for the council and its members to go.
February 7, A. D. 452, the emperor Marcian in the name of himself and
Valentinian III, issued the following edict confirming the creed of the
council: -
"That which has been so greatly and universally desired is at last
accomplished. The controversy respecting orthodoxy is over, and unity of
opinion is restored among the nations. The bishops assembled in Chalcedon
at my command from various exarchies, have taught with exactness in a
doctrinal decree what is to be maintained in respect to religion. All unholy
controversy must now cease, as he is certainly impious and sacrilegious
who, after the declaration made by so many bishops, thinks that there still
remains something for his own judgment to examine. For it is evidently a
sign of extreme folly when a man seeks for a deceptive light in broad day.
366
He who, after discovery has been made of the truth, still inquires after
something else seeks for falsehood. No cleric, no soldier, and generally no
one, in whatever position he may be must venture publicity to dispute
concerning the faith, seeking to produce confusion, and to find pretexts for
false doctrines. For it is an insult to the holy synod to subject that which it
has decreed and fundamentally established, to new examinations and public
disputes, since that which was recently defined concerning the Christian
faith is in accordance with the doctrine of the three hundred and eighteen
Fathers and the regulation of the one hundred and fifty Fathers. The
punishment of the transgressors of this law shall not be delayed, since they
are not only opponents of the lawfully established faith but also by their
contentions betray the holy mysteries to the Jews and heathen. If a cleric
ventures openly to dispute respecting religion, he shall be struck out of the
catalogue of the clergy, the soldier shall be deprived of his belt, other
persons shall be removed from the residence city, and shall have suitable
punishments inflicted upon them, according to the pleasure of the courts of
justice."
The following July 28, he issued a decree in which he forbade the
Eutychians to have any clergy; and if anybody should attempt to appoint
any, both they who should appoint and he who was appointed, should be
punished with confiscation of goods and banishment for life. They were
forbidden to hold any assemblies of any kind, or to build, or to live in,
monasteries. If they should presume to hold any kind of meeting, then the
place where it was held would be confiscated, if it was with the knowledge
of the owner. But if, without the knowledge of the owner it was rented by
some one for them, he who rented it should be punished with a beating,
with confiscation of goods, and with banishment. They were declared
incapable of inheriting anything by will, or of appointing any Eutychian an
heir. If any were found in the army, they were to be expelled from it. Those
of them who had formerly been in the orthodox faith, and also the monks of
the monastery - he called it the "stable" - of Eutyches, were to be driven
entirely beyond the boundaries of the Roman empire. All their writings
were to be burnt, whoever circulated them was to be banished and all
instruction in the Eutychian doctrine was to be "rigorously punished." And
finally, all governors of provinces with their officials, and all judges in the
cities who should be negligent in enforcing the law, were to be fined ten
pounds of gold, as despisers of religion and the laws.
At the same time that this last decree was issued, Eutyches and Dioscorus
were sentenced to banishment. Eutyches died before the sentence was
367
by his legates in his name; as the documents presented in the council were
addressed to "Leo, the most holy, blessed, and universal patriarch of the
great city of Rome, and to the holy and CEcumenical Council of
Chalcedon;" as the council distinctly acknowledged Leo as its head, and the
members of the council as members of him; as the judgments were
pronounced as his own; as his letter was made the test, and the expression
of the faith, and with that all were required to agree; as the decisions of the
council were submitted to him for approval and were practically of little or
no force until he had formally published his approval, and then only such
portion as he did approve; as, in short everything in connection with the
council sprung from his will and returned in subjection to his will, - Leo,
and in him the bishopric of Rome, thus became essentially the fountain of
the Catholic faith.
It is not at all surprising, therefore, that Leo should officially declare that
the doctrinal decrees of the Council of Chalcedon were inspired. This is
precisely what he did. In a letter to Bishop Julian of Cos CEpistle 144, he
said: "The decrees of Chalcedon are inspired by the Holy Spirit, and are to
be received as the definition of the faith for the welfare of the whole world."
And in a letter CEpistle 145 to the emperor Leo, who succeeded Marcian in
A. D. 457, he said: "The Synod of Chalcedon was held by divine
inspiration." As, therefore, the doctrinal decrees of the Council of
Chalcedon were the expression of the will of Leo; and as these decrees were
published and held as of divine inspiration; by this turn, it was a very short
cut to the infallibility of the bishop of Rome.
Now let the reader turn to pages 426 and 470 and 472, and compare the
Italicized words in the statement of Eutyches, in the statement of the
commissioners in the council, and in the creed of Chalcedon. It will be seen
that Leo and the council came so near to saying what Eutyches had said,
that no difference can be perceived. Eutyches had been condemned as a
heretic for saying that in Christ, after the incarnation, the two natures are
one. Now Leo and the council express the orthodox faith by saying that in
Christ there are two natures united in one. In other words, Eutyches was a
condemned heretic for saying that Christ is "of two natures;" while Leo and
the council were declared everlastingly orthodox for saying that Christ is "in
two natures." In Greek, the difference was expressed in the two small words
ek and en; which like the two large words Hamoousion and Hamoiousion,
in the beginning of the controversy between Alexander and Arius, differed
only in a single letter. And like that also, the meaning of the two words is so
"essentially the same," that he who believes either, believes the other. "Such
369
was the device of the envious and God-hating demon in the change of a
single letter, that, while in reality the one expression was completely
inductive of the notion of the other, skill with the generality the discrepancy
between them was held to be considerable, and the ideas conveyed by them
to be clearly in diametric opposition, and exclusive of each other; whereas
he who confesses Christ in two natures, clearly affirms him to be from two,.
. . and on the other hand, the position of one who affirms his origin from
two natures, is completely inclusive of his existence in two. . . . So that in
this case by the expression, `from two natures,' is aptly suggested the
thought of the expression, `in two,' and conversely; nor can there be a
severance of the terms." - Evagrius. *468
And that is all that there was in this dispute, or in any of those before it, in
itself. Yet out of it there came constant and universal violence, hypocrisy,
bloodshed, and murder, which speedily wrought the utter ruin of the empire,
and established a despotism over thought which remained supreme for ages,
and which is yet asserted and far too largely assented to.
The whole world having been thus once more brought to the "unity of the
faith," the controversy, the confusion, and the violence, went on worse than
before. But as the faith of Leo which was established by the Council of
Chalcedon, "substantially completes the orthodox Christology of the ancient
church," and has "passed into all the confessions of the Protestant churches"
(Schaff);*469 and as the work of these four general councils - Nice,
Constantinople, first of Ephesus, and Chalcedon - was to put dead human
formulas in the place of the living oracles of God, a woman in the place of
Christ, and a MAN IN THE PLACE OF GOD, it is not necessary to follow
any farther the course of ambitious strife and contentious deviltry.
370
CHAPTER XX.
THE CHURCH USURPS THE CIVIL
AUTHORITY.
On the other hand, there was a curious train of political events which
conspired to the same result, and which yet more fully opened the way for
the church to usurp the civil power, and for the bishop of Rome to encroach
upon the imperial authority.
Diocletian established his capital at Nicomedia, and Maximian his at Milan,
A. D. 304; and with the exception of Maxentius and Constantine, during
brief periods,never afterward was there an emperor who made Rome his
capital: and even while Constantine did so, instead of detracting from the
dignity of the bishop of Rome, it added to it; for as we have seen, the bishop
of Rome bore a leading part in the formation of the union of Church and
State, and the moment that that union was consummated, "the bishop of
Rome rises at once to the rank of a great accredited functionary. . . . So long
as Constantine was in Rome, the bishop of Rome, the head of the emperor's
religion, became in public estimation, . . . in authority and influence,
immeasurably the superior, to all of sacerdotal rank . . . As long as Rome is
the imperial residence, an appeal to the emperor is an appeal to the bishop
of Rome." - Milman.*470
Thus the presence of Constantine in Rome redounded to the importance and
dignity of the bishopric of Rome, but it was not until Constantine had
moved his capital to Constantinople, that the way was opened for the full
play of that arrogant spirit that has ever been the chief characteristic of that
dignitary. "The absence of a secular competitor allowed the papal authority
to grow up and to develop its secret strength" Milman);*471 and under the
blandishments of necessitous imperial favor he did as he pleased, and more
rapidly than ever his power grew.
It will be noticed that in the gradation of the church dignitaries the ascent
was only so far as corresponded to the four prefects in the State. There was
not above the four patriarchs a bishop over all, as above the prefects the
emperor was over all. The one great reason for this is that Constantine was
not only emperor but bishop, and as "bishop of externals" in the church, he
held the place of chief bishop, supreme pontiff - over the four patriarchs
precisely as he held as emperor the chief authority over the four prefects.
Yet, in the nature of things, it was inevitable and only a question of time
when the bishop of Rome would assert as a matter of right, his supremacy
over all others, and when this should be accomplished, the matter of the
supremacy would then lie between him and the emperor alone, which would
open the way for the bishop of Rome to encroach upon the civil and
imperial authority. This spirit showed itself in the action of the bishop of
372
This order was faithfully followed in the church at the beginning; but as the
power and influence of the bishopric grew, this office was usurped by the
bishop, and all such cases were decided by him alone. Until the union of
Church and State, however, every man had the right of appeal from the
decision of the bishop to the civil magistrate.
Very shortly after the establishment of the Catholic Church, "Constantine
likewise enacted a law in favor of the clergy, permitting judgment to be
passed by the bishops when litigants preferred appealing to them rather than
to the secular court; he enacted that their decree should be valid, and as far
superior to that of other judges as if pronounced by the emperor himself;
that the governors and subordinate military officers should see to the
execution of these decrees; and that sentence, when passed by them, should
be irreversible." – Sozomen*474.
This was only in cases, however, where the disputants voluntarily appeared
and submitted their causes to the decision of the bishops. Yet as the bishops
were ever ready to "extend their authority far beyond their jurisdiction, and
their influence far beyond their authority" (Milman),*475 they to worked
this power as to make their business as judges occupy the principle portion
of their time. "To worldly-minded bishops it furnished a welcome occasion
for devoting themselves to any foreign and secular affairs, rather than to the
appropriate business of their spiritual calling; and the same class might also
allow themselves to be governed by impure motives in the settlement of
these disputes." - Neander.*476
Some bishops extended this right into what was known as the right of
intervention, that is, the right of interceding with the secular power in
certain cases. "The privilege of interceding with the secular power for
criminals, prisoners, and unfortunates of every kind, had belonged to the
heathen priests, and especially to the vestals, and now passed to the
Christian ministry, above all to the bishops, and thenceforth became an
essential function of their office." - Schaff.*477
This office was first assumed by the heathenized bishops for this purpose,
but soon instead of interceding they began to dictate; instead of soliciting
they began to command; and instead of pleading for deserving unfortunates,
they interfered with the genuine administration of the civil magistrates. As
early as the Council of Arles, A. D. 314, the second council that was held
by the direction of Constantine, the church power began to encroach in this
matter upon the jurisdiction of the State. Canon 7 of this council, charged
the bishops to take the oversight of such of the civil magistrates within their
374
Bible as the code, the advice which Ambrose gave was the only advice
which could properly be given. But it was destructive of civil government.
And this is only to say that it was an utter perversion of the Bible to make it
the code of civil procedure. Such procedure therefore in civil government
where there was no possible means of knowing that repentance was genuine
or reformation sure, was to destroy civil government, and substitute for it
only a pretense at moral government which was absolutely impotent for any
good purpose, either moral or civil. In other words, it was only to destroy
the State, and to substitute for it, in everything, the church.
This is not saying anything against the Bible, nor against its principles. It is
only exposing the awful perversion of its principles by the church in
exalting its authority above the State. God's government is moral, and he
has made provision for maintaining his government with the forgiveness of
transgression. But he has made no such provision for civil government. No
such provision can be made, and civil government be maintained. The Bible
reveals God's method of saving those who sin against his moral
government. civil government is man's method of preserving order, and has
nothing to do with sin, nor the salvation of sinners. Civil government
prosecutes a man and finds him guilty. If before the penalty is executed he
repents, God forgives him; but the government must execute the penalty.
And this authority was carried much further than merely to advise. The
monks and clergy went so far at last as actually to tear away from the civil
authorities, criminals and malefactors of the worst sort, who had been justly
condemned. To such an extent was this carried that a law had to be enacted
in 398 ordering that "the monks and the clergy should not be permitted to
snatch condemned malefactors from their merited punishment." -
Neander.*482 Yet they were still allowed the right of intercession.
This evil led directly to another, or rather only deepened and perpetuated
itself. Ecclesiastical offices, especially the bishoprics, were the only ones in
the empire that were elective. As we have seen, all manner of vile and
criminal characters had been brought into the church. Consequently these
had a voice in the elections. It became therefore an object for the unruly,
violent, and criminal classes to secure the election of such men as would
use the episcopal influence in their interests, and shield them from justice.
"As soon as a bishop had closed his eyes, the metropolitan issued a
commission to one of his suffragans to administer the vacant see, and
prepare, within a limited time, the future election. The right of voting was
vested in the inferior clergy, who were best qualified to judge of the merit
376
of the candidates; in the senators or nobles of the city, all those who were
distinguished by their rank or property; and finally in the whole body of the
people who, on the appointed day, flocked in multitudes from the most
remote parts of the diocese, and sometimes silenced by their tumultuous
acclamations, the voice of reason and the laws of discipline. These
acclamations might accidentally fix on the head of the most deserving
competitor; of some ancient presbyter, some holy monk, or some layman,
conspicuous for his zeal and piety.
"But the episcopal chair was solicited, especially in the great and opulent
cities of the empire, as a temporal rather than as a spiritual dignity. The
interested views, the selfish and angry passions, the arts of perfidy and
dissimulation, the secret corruption, the open and even bloody violence
which had formerly disgraced the freedom of election in the
commonwealths of Greece and Rome, too often influenced the choice of the
successors of the apostles. While one of the candidates boasted the honors
of his family, a second allured his judges by the delicacies of a plentiful
table, and a third, more guilty than his rivals, offered to share the plunder of
the church among the accomplices of his sacrilegious hopes." -
Gibbon.*483
The offices of the church, and especially the bishopric, thus became
virtually political, and were made subject to all the strife of political
methods. As the logical result, the political schemers, the dishonest men, the
men of violent and selfish dispositions, pushed themselves to the front in
every place; and those who might have given a safe direction to public
affairs, were crowded to the rear, and in fact completely shut out of office
by the very violence of those who would have office at any cost.
Thus by the very workings of the wicked elements which had been brought
into the church by the political methods of Constantine and the bishops,
genuine Christianity was separated from this whole Church and State
system, as it had been before from the pagan system. The genuine
Christians, who loved the quiet and the peace which belong with the
Christian profession, were reproached by the formal, hypocritical, political
religionists who represented both the Church and the State, or rather the
Church and the State in one, - the real Christians were reproached by these
with being "righteous overmuch."
"It was natural, however, that the bad element, which had outwardly
assumed the Christian garb, should push itself more prominently to notice
377
in public life. Hence it was more sure to attract the common gaze, while the
genuinely Christian temper loved retirement, and created less sensation."
"It was natural, however, that the bad element, which had outwardly
assumed the Christian garb, should push itself more prominently to notice
in public life. Hence it was more sure to attract the common gaze, while the
genuinely Christian temper loved retirement, and created less sensation."
"At the present time, the relation of vital Christianity to the Christianity of
mere form, resembled that which, in the preceding period, existed between
the Christianity of those to whom religion was a serious concern, and
paganism, which constituted the prevailing rule of life. As in the earlier
times, the life of genuine Christians had stood out in strong contrast with
the life of the pagan world, so now the life of such as were Christians not
merely by outward profession, but also in the temper of their hearts,
presented a strong contrast with the careless and abandoned life of the
ordinary nominal Christians. By these later, the others . . . were regarded in
the same light as, in earlier times, the Christians had been regarded by the
pagans. They were also reproached by these nominal Christians, just as the
Christians generally had been taunted before by the pagans, with seeking to
be righteous overmuch." - Neander.*484
In the episcopal elections, "Sometimes the people acted under outside
considerations and the management of demagogues, and demanded
unworthy or ignorant men for the highest offices. Thus there were frequent
disturbances and collisions, and even bloody conflicts, as in the election of
Damasus in Rome. In short all the selfish passions and corrupting
influences which had spoiled the freedom of the popular political elections
in the Grecian and Roman republics, and which appear also in the republics
of modern times, intruded upon the elections of the church. And the clergy
likewise often suffered themselves to be guided by impure motives." -
Schaff.*485
It was often the case that a man who had never been baptized, and was not
even a member of the church, would be elected a bishop, and hurried
through the minor offices to this position. Such was the case with Ambrose,
bishop of Milan, in A. D. 374, and Nectarius, bishop of Constantinople, in
381, and many others. In the contention for the bishopric, there was as
much political intrigue, strife, contention, and even bloodshed, as there had
formerly been for the office of consul in the republic in the days of Pompey
and Caesar.
378
It often happened that men of fairly good character were compelled to step
aside and allow low characters to be elected to office, for fear they would
cause more mischief, tumult, and riot if they were not elected than if they
were. Instances actually occurred, and are recorded by Gregory Nazianzen,
in which certain men who were not members of the church at all, were
elected to the bishopric in opposition to others who had every churchly
qualification for the office, because "they had the worst men in the city on
their side."*486 And Chrysostom says that "many are elected on account of
their badness, to prevent the mischief they would otherwise do."*487 Such
characters as these elected to office by such characters as those, and the
office representing such authority as that did, - nothing but evil of the worst
kind could accrue either to the civil government or to society at large.
More than this, as the men thus elected were the dispensers of doctrine and
the interpreters of Scripture in all points both religious and civil; and as they
owed their position to those who elected them, it was only the natural
consequence that they adapted their interpretations to the character and
wishes of those who had placed them in their positions. For "when once a
political aspirant has bidden with the multitude for power, and still depends
on their pleasure for effective support, it is no easy thing to refuse their
wishes, or hold back from their demands." - Draper.*488
Nectarius, who has been already mentioned after he had been taken from
the praetorship and made bishop by such a method of election as the above -
elected bishop of Constantinople before he had been baptized - wished to
ordain his physician as one of his own deacons. The physician declined on
the ground that he was not morally fit for the office. Nectarius endeavored
to persuade him by saying, "Did not I, who am now a priest, formerly live
much more immorally than thou, as thou thyself well knowest, since thou
wast often an accomplice of my many iniquities?" - Schaff.*489 - The
physician still refused, but for a reason which was scarcely more honorable
than that by which he was urged. The reason was that although he had been
baptized, he had continued to practice his iniquities, while Nectarius had
quit his when he was baptized.
The bishops' assumption of authority over the civil jurisprudence did not
allow itself to be limited to the inferior magistrates. It asserted authority
over the jurisdiction of the emperor himself. "In Ambrose the sacerdotal
character assumed a dignity and an influence as yet unknown; it first began
to confront the throne, not only on terms of equality, but of superior
authority, and to exercise a spiritual dictatorship over the supreme
379
jurisdiction of the magistrate and that of the bishop? between the authority
of the Church and that of the State? The State was now a theocracy. The
government was held to be moral, a government of God; the Bible the
supreme code of morals, was the code of the government; there was no such
thing as civil government - all was moral. But the subject of morals is
involved in every action, yea, in every thought of man. The State then being
allowed to be moral, it was inevitable that the church, being the arbiter of
morals and the dispenser and interpreter of the code regulating moral action,
would interpose in all questions of human conduct, and spread her
dominion over the whole field of human action.
"In ecclesiastical affairs, strictly so called, the supremacy of the Christian
magistracy, it has been said, was admitted. They were the legislators of
discipline, order, and doctrine. The festivals, the fasts, the usages, and
canons of the church, the government of the clergy, were in their exclusive
power. The decrees of particular synods and councils possessed undisputed
authority, as far as their sphere extended. General councils were held
binding on the whole church. But it was far more easy to define that which
did belong to the province of the church than that which did not. Religion
asserts its authority, and endeavors to extend its influence over the whole
sphere of moral action, which is, in fact, over the whole of human life, its
habits, manners, conduct.
"Christianity, as the most profound moral religion, exacted the most
complete and universal obedience; and, as the acknowledged teachers and
guardians of Christianity, the clergy continued to draw within their sphere
every part of human life in which man is actuated by moral or religious
motives. The moral authority, therefore, of the religion, and consequently of
the clergy, might appear legitimately to extend over every transaction of
life, from the legislature of the sovereign, which ought, in a Christian king,
to be guided by Christian motive, to the domestic duties of the peasant,
which ought to be fulfilled on the principle of Christian love. . . .
"But there was another prolific source of difference. The clergy, in one
sense, from being the representative body, had begun to consider
themselves the church; but, in another and more legitimate sense, the State,
when Christian, as comprehending all the Christians of the empire, became
the Church. Which was the legislative body, - the whole community of
Christians? or the Christian aristocracy, who were in one sense the admitted
rulers? - Milman.*493
381
To overstep every limit and break down every barrier that seemed in theory
to be set between the civil and ecclesiastical powers, was the only
consequence that could result from such a union. And when it was
attempted to put the theory into practice, every step taken in any direction
only served to demonstrate that which the history everywhere shows, that
"the apparent identification of the State and Church by the adoption of
Christianity as the religion of the empire, altogether confounded the limits
of ecclesiastical and temporal jurisdiction." - Milman.*494
The State, as a body distinct from the Church, was gone. As a distinct
system of law and government the State was destroyed, and its machinery
existed only as the tool of the Church to accomplish her arbitrary will and to
enforce her despotic decrees.
382
CHAPTER XXI.
THE RUIN OF THE ROMAN EMPIRE.
WE have seen the church secure the enactment of laws by which she could
enforce church discipline upon all the people, whether in the church or not.
We have seen her next extend her encroachments upon the civil power, until
the whole system of civil jurisprudence, as such, was destroyed by being
made religious. We shall now see how the evils thus engendered, and like
dragon's teeth sown broadcast, with another element of the monstrous evil
planted by Constantine and the bishops, caused the final and fearful ruin of
the Roman empire.
Among the first of the acts of Constantine in his favors to the church was,
as has been shown on page 290 of this book, the appropriation of money
from the public treasury to the bishops.
Another enactment, A. D. 321, of the same character, but which was of
vastly more importance, was his granting to the church the right to receive
legacies. "This was a law which expressly secured to the churches a right
which, perhaps, they had already now and then tacitly exercised; namely,
the right of receiving legacies, which, in the Roman empire, no corporation
whatever was entitled to exercise. unless it had been expressly authorized to
do so by the State." - Neander.*495
Some estimate of this enactment may be derived from the statement that
"the law of Constantine which empowered the clergy of the church to
receive testamentary bequests, and to hold land, was a gift which would
scarcely have been exceeded if he had granted them two provinces of the
empire." - Milman.*496 That which made this still more magnificent gift to
the church was the view which prevailed, especially among the rich, that
they could live as they pleased all their lives, and then at their death give
their property to the church, and be assured a safe conduct to eternal bliss.
"It became almost a sin to die without some bequest to pious uses." -
Milman.*497
We have seen in the previous chapter what kind of characters were chosen
to the bishopric in those times; and when such a law was now made
bestowing such privileges upon such characters, it is easy to understand
what use would be made of the privilege. Not content with simply receiving
bequests that might voluntarily be made, they brought to bear every
383
possible means to induce persons to bestow their goods upon the churches.
They assumed the protectorship of widows and orphans, and had the
property of such persons left to the care of the bishop.
Now into the coffers of the bishops, as into the coffers of the republic after
the fall of Carthage, wealth came in a rolling stream of gold, and the result
in this case was the same as in that. With wealth came luxury and
magnificent display. The bishopric assumed a stateliness and grandeur that
transcended that of the chief ministers of the empire; and that of the
bishopric of Rome fairly outshone the glory of the emperor himself. He was
the chief beneficiary in all these favors of Constantine.
As already related, when the emperors in the time of Diocletian began
habitually to absent themselves from Rome. the bishop of Rome became the
chief dignitary in the city. And by the time that Constantine moved the
capital permanently from Rome, through these imperial favors the bishop of
that city had acquired such a dignity that it was easy for him to step into the
place of pomp and magnificent display that had before been shown by the
emperor. "The bishop of Rome became a prince of the empire, and lived in
a style of luxury and pomp that awakened the envy or the just indignation of
the heathen writer, Marcellinus. The church was now enriched by the gifts
and bequests of the pious and the timid; the bishop drew great revenues
from his farms in the Campagna and his rich plantations in Sicily; he rode
through the streets of Rome in a stately chariot, and clothed in gorgeous
attire; his table was supplied with a profusion more than imperial; the
proudest women of Rome loaded him with lavish donations, and followed
him with their flatteries and attentions; and his haughty bearing and profuse
luxury were remarked upon by both pagans and Christians as strangely
inconsistent with the humility and simplicity enjoined by the faith which he
professed." - Eugene Lawrence.*498
The offices of the church were the only ones in the empire that were
elective. The bishopric of Rome was the chief of these offices. As that
office was one which carried with it the command of such enormous wealth
and such display of imperial magnificence, it became the object of the
ambitious aspirations of every Catholic in the city; and even a heathen
exclaimed, "Make me bishop of Rome, and I will be a Christian!"
Here were displayed all those elements of political strife and chicanery
which were but referred to in the previous chapter. The scenes which
occurred at the election of Damasus as bishop of Rome, A. D. 366, will
illustrate the character of such proceedings throughout the empire,
384
Of the bishop of Rome at this time we have the following sketch written by
one who was there at the time, and had often seen him in his splendor: "I
must own that when I reflect on the pomp attending that dignity, I do not at
all wonder that those who are fond of show and parade, should scold,
quarrel, fight, and strain every nerve to attain it; since they are sure, if they
succeed, to be enriched with the offerings of the ladies; to appear no more
abroad on foot, but in stately chariots, and gorgeously attired; to keep costly
and sumptuous tables; nay, and to surpass the emperors themselves in the
splendor and magnificence of their entertainments." - Ammianus
Marcellinus.*500
The example of the bishop of Rome was followed by the whole order of
bishops, each according to his degree and opportunities. Chrysostom
boasted that "the heads of the empire and the governors of provinces enjoy
no such honor as the rulers of the church. They are first at court, in the
society of ladies, in the houses of the great. No one has precedence of
them." By them were worn such titles as, "Most holy," "Most reverend,"
and "Most holy Lord." They were addressed in such terms as, "Thy
Holiness," and "Thy Blessedness." "Kneeling, kissing of the hand, and like
tokens of reverence, came to be shown them by all classes, up to the
emperor himself." - Schaff.*501
The manners of the minor clergy of Rome are described by one who was
well acquainted with them. "His whole care is in his dress, that it be well
perfumed, that his feet may not slip about in a loose sandal; his hair is
crisped with a curling-pin; his fingers glitter with rings; he walks on tiptoe
lest he should splash himself with the wet soil; when you see him, you
would think him a bridegroom rather than an ecclesiastic." - Jerome.*502
Such an example being set by the dignitaries in the church, these too
professing to be the patterns of godliness, their example was readily
followed by all in the empire who were able. Consequently, "The
aristocratical life of this period seems to have been characterized by
gorgeous magnificence without grandeur, inordinate luxury without
refinement, the pomp and prodigality of a high state of civilization with
none of its ennobling or humanizing effects. The walls of the palaces were
lined with marbles of all colors, crowded with statues of inferior
workmanship, mosaics of which the merit consisted in the arrangement of
the stones; the cost, rather than the beauty and elegance, was the test of
excellency, and the object of admiration. The nobles were surrounded with
hosts of parasites, or servants. `You reckon up,' Chrysostom thus addresses
386
a patrician, `so many acres of land, ten or twenty palaces, as many baths, a
thousand or two thousand slaves, chariots plated with silver or overlaid with
gold.'
"Their banquets were merely sumptuous, without social grace or elegance.
The dress of the females, the fondness for false hair sometimes wrought up
to an enormous height, and especially affecting the golden dye, and for
paint, from which irresistible propensities they were not to be estranged
even by religion, excite the stern animadversion of the ascetic Christian
teacher. `What business have rouge and paint on a Christian cheek? Who
can weep for her sins when her tears wash her face bare and mark furrows
on her skin? With what trust can faces be lifted up towards heaven, which
the Maker cannot recognize as his own workmanship? Their necks, heads,
arms, and fingers were loaded with golden chains and rings; their persons
breathed precious odors; their dresses were of gold stuff and silk: and in this
attire they ventured to enter the church.
"Some of the wealthier Christian matrons gave a religious air to their
vanity; while the more profane wore their thin silken dresses embroidered
with hunting pieces, wild beasts, or any other fanciful device, the more
pious had the miracles of Christ, the marriage in Cana of Galilee, or the
paralytic carrying his bed. In vain the preacher urged that it would be better
to emulate these acts of charity and love, than to wear them on their
garments . . . The provincial cities, according to their natural character,
imitated the old and new Rome; and in all, no doubt, the nobility, or the
higher order, were of the same character and habits." - Milman.*503
As in the republic of old, in the train of wealth came luxury, and in the train
of luxury came vice; and as the violence now manifested in the election of
the bishops was but a reproduction of the violence by which the tribunes
and the consuls of the later republic were chosen, so the vices of these times
were but a reproduction of the later republic and early empire - not indeed
manifested so coarsely and brutally; more refined and polished, yet
essentially the same iniquitous practice of shameful vice.
Another phase of the evil: Under the law empowering the church to receive
legacies, the efforts of some of the clergy to persuade people, and especially
women, to bestow their wealth upon the church, took precedence of
everything else.
"Some of the clergy made it the whole business and employment of their
lives to learn the names of the ladies, to find out their habitations, to study
their humor. One of these, an adept in the art, rises with the sun, settles the
387
order of his visits, acquaints himself with the shortest ways, and almost
breaks into the rooms of the women before they are awake. If he sees any
curious piece of household furniture, he extols, admires, and handles it; and,
sighing that he too should stand in need of such trifles, in the end rather
extorts it by force than obtains it by good-will, the ladies being afraid to
disoblige the prating old fellow that is always running about from house to
house." - Jerome.*504
Because of the insatiable avarice of the Roman clergy, and because of the
shameful corruption that was practiced with the means thus acquired, a law
was enacted, A. D. 370. by Valentinian I, forbidding any ecclesiastics to
receive any inheritance, donation, or legacy from anybody; and to let the
world know that he did not complain of this hardship. the great bishop of
Milan exclaimed: "We are excluded by laws lately enacted from all
inheritances, donations, and legacies; yet we do not complain. And why
should we? By such laws we only lose wealth; and the loss of wealth is no
loss to us. Estates are lawfully bequeathed to the ministers of the heathen
temples; no layman is exclude, let his condition be ever so low, let his life
be ever so scandalous: clerks alone are debarred from a right common to the
rest of mankind. Let a Christian widow bequeath her whole estate to a
pagan priest, her will is good in law; let her bequeath the least share of it to
a minister of God, her will is null. I do not mention these things by way of
complaint, but only to let the world know that I do not complain." -
Ambrose.*505
The fact that such a law as this had to be enacted - a law applying only to
the clergy - furnishes decisive proof that the ecclesiastics were more vicious
and more corrupt in their use of wealth than was any other class in the
empire. This in fact is plainly stated by another who was present at the time:
"I am ashamed to say it, the priests of the idols. the stage-players,
charioteers, whores, are capable of inheriting estates, and receiving legacies;
from this common privilege, clerks alone, and monks, are debarred by law:
debarred not under persecuting tyrants, but Christian princes." -
Jerome.*506
Nor was this all. The same pagan rites and heathen superstitions and
practices, which were brought into the church when the Catholic religion
became that of the empire, not only still prevailed, but were enlarged. The
celebration of the rights of the mysteries still continued, only with a more
decided pagan character, as time, went on, and as the number of pagans
multiplied in the church. To add to their impressiveness, the mysteries in
388
the church, as in the original Eleusinia, were celebrated in the night. As the
catechumen came to the baptismal font, he "turned to the West, the realm of
Satan, and thrice renounced his power; he turned to the East to adore the
Sun of Righteousness, and to proclaim his compact with the Lord of Life." -
Milman.*507
About the middle of the fourth century there was added another form and
element of sun worship. Amongst the pagans for ages, December 25 had
been celebrated as the birthday of the sun. In the reigns of Domitian and
Trajan, Rome formally adopted from Persia the feast of the Persian sun-god,
Mithras, as the birth festival of the unconquered sun - Natales invicti Solis.
The Church of Rome adopted this festival, and made it the birthday of
Christ. And within a few years the celebration of this festival of the sun had
spread throughout the whole empire east and west; the perverse-minded
bishops readily sanctioning it with the argument that the pagan festival of
the birth of the real sun, was a type of the festival of the birth of Christ, the
Sun of Righteousness. Thus was established the church festival of
Christmas.*508
This custom, like the forms of sun worship - the day of the sun, worshiping
toward the East, and the mysteries - which had already been adopted, was
so closely followed that it was actually brought "as a charge against the
Christians of the Catholic Church that they celebrated the Solstitia with the
pagans." - Neander.*509 The worship of the sun itself was also still
practiced. Pope Leo I testifies that in his time many Catholics had retained
the pagan custom of paying "obeisance from some lofty eminence to the
sun." And that they also "first worshipped the rising sun, paying homage to
the pagan Apollo, before repairing to the Basilica of St. Peter." -
Schaff.*510
The images and pictures which had formerly represented the sun were
adopted and transformed into representations of Christ. How easily this was
accomplished can be discerned by an examination of the accompanying
illustration. And such was the origin of the "pictures of Christ;" and
especially of the nimbus or halo round the heads of them.
The martyrs, whether real or imaginary, were now honored in the place of
the heathen heroes. The day of their martyrdom was celebrated as their
birthday, and these celebrations were conducted in the same way that the
heathen celebrated the festival days of their heroes. "The festivals in honor
of the martyrs were avowedly instituted, or at least conducted, on a
sumptuous scale in rivalry of the banquets which formed so important and
389
attractive a part of the pagan ceremonial. besides the earliest Agapae, which
gave place to the more solemn Eucharist, there were other kinds of
banquets, at marriages and funerals, called likewise Agapae." -
Milman.*511
These festivals were celebrated either at the sepulchers of the martyrs or at
the churches, and the day began with hymns; the history or fables of their
lives and martyrdom was given; and eulogies were pronounced. "The day
closed with an open banquet in which all the worshipers were invited to
partake. The wealthy heathen had been accustomed to propitiate the manes
of their departed friends by these costly festivals; the banquet was almost an
integral part of the heathen religious ceremony. The custom passed into the
church; and with the pagan feeling, the festival assumed a pagan character
of gayety and joyous excitement, and even of luxury. In some places the
confluence of worshipers was so great that, as in the earlier and indeed the
more modern religions of Asia, the neighborhood of the more celebrated
churches of the martyrs became marts for commerce, and fairs were
established on those holidays.
"As the evening drew in, the solemn and religious thoughts gave way to
other emotions; the wine flowed freely, and the healths of the martyrs were
pledged, not unfrequently, to complete inebriety. All the luxuries of the
Roman banquet were imperceptibly introduced. Dances were admitted,
pantomimic spectacles were exhibited, the festivals were prolonged till late
in the evening, or to midnight, so that other criminal irregularities profaned,
if not the sacred edifice, its immediate neighborhood. The bishops had for
some time sanctioned these pious hilarities with their presence; they had
freely partaken of the banquets." - Milman.*512
So perfectly were the pagan practices duplicated in these festivals of the
martyrs, that the Catholics were charged with practicing pagan rites, with
the only difference that they did it apart from the pagans. This charge was
made to Augustine: "You have substituted your Agapae for the sacrifices of
the pagans: for their idols your martyrs, whom you serve with the very same
honors. You appease the shades of the dead with wines and feasts: you
celebrate the solemn festivals of the Gentiles, their calends and their
solstices; and as to their manners, those you have retained without any
alteration. Nothing distinguishes you from the pagans except that you hold
your assemblies apart from them." - Draper.*513 And the only defense that
Augustine could make was in a blundering casuistical effort to show a
distinction in the nature of the two forms of worship.
390
In the burial of their dead, they still continued the pagan practice of putting
a piece of mouth in the mount of the corpse with which the departed was to
pay the charges of Charon for ferrying him over the River Styx.*514
Another most prolific source of general corruption was the church's
assumption of authority to regulate, and that by law, the whole question of
the marriage relation, both in the Church and in the State. "The first
aggression . . . which the Church made on the State, was assuming the
cognizance over all questions and causes relating to marriage." -
Milman.*515
Among the clergy she attempted to enforce celibacy, that is, to prohibit
marriage altogether. Monkery had arisen to a perfect delirium of popularity,
and "a characteristic trait of monasticism in all its forms is a morbid
aversion to female society, and a rude contempt of married life. . . . Among
the rules of Basil is a prohibition of speaking with a woman, touching one,
or even looking on one, except in unavoidable cases." - Schaff.*516 As
monkery was so universally and so extremely popular among all classes
from the height of imperial dignity to the depths of the monkish degradation
itself, it became necessary for the clergy to imitate the monks in order to
maintain popularity with the people. And as monkery is only an ostentatious
display of self-righteousness, the contempt of married life was the easiest
way for the clergy to advertise most loudly their imitation of monkish
virtue.
In their self-righteousness some of the monks attained to such a "pre-
eminence" of "virtue" that they could live promiscuously with women, or
like Jerome, write "letters to a virgin." that were unfit to be written to a
harlot. The former class, in the estimation of an admirer, "bore away the
pre-eminence form all others." His account of them is as follows: -
"There are persons who, when by virtue they have attained to a condition
exempt from passion, return to the world. In the midst of the stir, by plainly
intimating that they are indifferent to those who view them with
amazement, they thus trample underfoot vain-glory, the last garment,
according to the wise Plato, which it is the nature of the soul to cast off. By
similar means they study the art of apathy in eating, practising it even, if
need be, with the petty retailers of victuals. They also constantly frequent
the public baths, mostly mingling and bathing with women, since they have
attained to such an ascendancy over their passions, as to possess dominion
over nature, and neither by sight, touch, or even embracing of the female, to
relapse into their natural condition; it being their desire to be men among
391
men, and women among women, and to participate in both sexes. In short,
by a life thus all excellent and divine, virtue exercises a sovereignty in
opposition to nature, establishing her own laws, so as not to allow them to
partake to satiety in any necessary." - Evagrius.*517
The first decretal ever issued, namely, that by Pope Siricius, A. D. 335,
commanded the married clergy to separate from their wives under sentence
of expulsion from the clerical order upon all who dared to offer resistance;
yet promising pardon for such as had offended through ignorance, and
suffering them to retain their positions, provided they would observe
complete separation from their wives - though even then they were to be
held forever incapable of promotion. The clergy finding themselves
forbidden by the pope to marry, and finding it necessary, in order to
maintain a standing of popularity, to imitate the monks, practiced the same
sort of monkish "virtue" as described above. "The clerks who ought to
instruct and awe the women with a grave and composed behavior, first kiss
their heads, and then stretching out their hands as it were to bestow a
blessing, slyly receive a fee for their salutation. The women in the
meantime, elated with pride in feeling themselves thus courted by the
clergy, prefer the freedom of widowhood to the subjection attending the
state of matrimony." - Jerome.*518
As these associations differed from those in real matrimony "only in the
absence of the marriage ceremony," it was not an uncommon thing for men
to gain admission to "holy orders" "on account of the superior opportunities
which clericature gave of improper intercourse with women." This practice
became so scandalous that in A. D. 370 Valentian I enacted a law "which
denounced severe punishment on ecclesiastics who visited the houses of
widows and virgins." - Lea.*519 The law, however, had really no effect in
stopping the wickedness, and "with the disappearance of legitimate
marriage in the priesthood, the already prevalent vice of the cohabitation of
unmarried ecclesiastics with pious widows and virgins 'secretly brought in,'
became more and more common. This spiritual marriage which had become
as a bold ascetic venture, ended only too often in the flesh, and prostituted
the honor of the church." - Schaff.*520
Again: in accordance with the rest of the theocratical legislation of
Constantine and the bishops, the precepts of the Scripture in relation to
marriage and divorce were adopted with heavy penalties, as the laws of the
empire. As the church had assumed "cognizance over all questions relating
to marriage," it followed that marriage not celebrated by the church was
392
held to be but little better than an illicit connection. Yet the weddings of the
church were celebrated in the pagan way. Loose hymns were sung to
Venus, and "the bride was borne by drunken men to her husband's house
among choirs of dancing harlots with pipes, and flutes, and songs of
offensive license." And when the marriage had been thus celebrated, and
even consummated, the marriage bond was held so loosely that it amounted
to very little, for "men changed their wives as quickly as their clothes, and
marriage chambers were set up as easily as booths in a market." -
Milman.*521
Of course there were against all these evils, laws abundant with penalties
terrible, as in the days of the Caesars. And also as in those days the laws
were utterly impotent: not only for the same great reason that then existed,
that the iniquity was so prevalent that there were none to enforce the laws;
but for an additional reason that now existed, that is, the bishops were the
interpreters of the code, and by this time through the interminable and hair-
splitting distinctions drawn against heresies, the bishops had so sharpened
their powers of interpretation that they could easily evade the force of any
law, scriptural, canonical, or statutory that might be produced.
There is yet one other element of general corruption to be noticed. As we
have seen, the means employed by Constantine in establishing the Catholic
religion and church, and in making that the prevalent religion, were such as
to win only hupocrities. This was bad enough in itself, yet the hypocrisy
was voluntary; but when through the agency of her Sunday laws and by the
ministration of Theodosius the church received control of the civil power to
compel all without distinction who were not Catholics to act as though they
were, hypocrisy was made compulsory; and every person who was not
voluntarily a church-member was compelled either to be a hypocrite or a
rebel. In addition to this, those who were of the church indeed, through the
endless succession of controversies and church councils, were forever
establishing, changing, and re-establishing the faith, and as all were
required to change or revise their faith according as the councils decreed, all
moral and spiritual integrity was destroyed. Hypocrisy became a habit,
dissimulation and fraud a necessity of life, and the very moral fiber of men
and of society was vitiated.
In the then existing order of things it was impossible that it could be
otherwise. Right faith is essential to right morals. Purity of faith is essential
to purity of heart and life. But there the faith was wrong and utterly corrupt,
and nothing but corruption could follow. More than this, the faith was
393
essentially pagan, and much more guilty than had been the original pagan,
as it was professed under the name of Christianity and the gospel, and as it
was in itself a shameful corruption of the true faith of the gospel. As the
faith of the people was essentially pagan, or rather worse, the morality of
the people could be nothing else. And such in fact it was.
"There is ample evidence to show how great had been the reaction from the
simple genuineness of early Christian belief, and how nearly the Christian
world had generally associated itself, in thought and temper, not to say in
superstitious practice, with the pagan. We must not shut our eyes to the fact
that much of the apparent success of the new religion had been gained by its
actual accommodation of itself to the ways and feelings of the old. It was
natural it should be so. Once set aside, from doubt, distaste, or any other
feeling, the special dogmas of the gospel, . . . and men will naturally turn to
compromise, to electicism, to universalism, to indifference, to unbelief. . . .
"If the great Christian doctors had themselves come forth from the schools
of the pagans, the loss had not been wholly unrequited; so complacently had
even Christian doctors again surrendered themselves to the fascinations of
pagan speculations; so fatally, in their behalf, had they extenuated Christian
dogma, and acknowledged the fundamental truth and sufficiency of science
falsely so called.
"The gospel we find was almost eaten out from the heart of the Christian
society. I speak not now of the pride of spiritual pretensions, of the
corruption of its secular politics, of its ascetic extravagances, its mystical
fallacies, of its hollowness in preaching, or its laxity in practice; of its saint
worship, which was a revival of hero-worship; its addiction to the sensuous
in outward service, which was a revival of idolatry. But I point to the fact
less observed by our church historians, of the absolute defect of all
distinctive Christianity in the utterances of men of the highest esteem as
Christians, men of reputed wisdom, sentiment, and devotion. Look, for
instance, at the remains we possess of the Christian Boethius, a man whom
we know to have been a professed Christian and churchman, excellent in
action, steadfast in suffering, but in whose writings, in which he aspires to
set before us the true grounds of spiritual consolation on which he rested
himself in the hour of his trial, and on which he would have his fellows rest,
there is no trace of Christianity whatever, nothing but pure, unmingled
naturalism.
"This marked decline of distinctive Christian belief was accompanied with a
marked decline of Christian morality. Heathenism re-asserted its empire
394
over the carnal affections of the natural man. The pictures of abounding
wickedness in the high places and the low places of the earth, which are
presented to us by the witnesses of the worst pagan degradation, are
repeated, in colors not less strong, in lines not less hideous, by the observers
of the gross and reckless iniquity of the so-called Christian period now
before us. It becomes evident that as the great mass of the careless and
indifferent have assumed with the establishment of the Christian church in
authority and honor, the outward garb and profession of Christian believers,
so with the decline of belief, the corruption of the visible church, the same
masses, indifferent and irreligious as of old, have rejected the moral
restraints which their profession should have imposed upon them. -
Merivale.*522
In short, the same corruptions that had characterized the former Rome were
reproduced in the Rome of the fifth century. "The primitive rigor of
discipline and manners was utterly neglected and forgotten by the
ecclesiastics of Rome. The most exorbitant luxury, with all the vices
attending it, was introduced among them, and the most scandalous and
unchristian arts of acquiring wealth universally practiced. They seem to
have rivaled in riotous living the greatest epicures of Pagan Rome when
luxury was there at the highest pitch. For Jerome, who was an eye witness
of what he writ, reproaches the Roman clergy with the same excesses which
the poet Juvenal so severely censured in the Roman nobility under the reign
of Domitian." - Bower.*523
The following quotation, though touching upon some points already made,
gives others of sufficient value to justify its insertion: "The mass of
professing believers were found to relapse into the grossest superstitions
and practices of the heathen. . . . The old heathen cultus, particularly that of
the sun (Sol invictus), had formerly entwined itself with the Christian
worship of God. Many Christians, before entering the Basilica of Peter,
were wont to mount the platform, in order to make their obeisance to the
rising luminary. Here was an instance of the way in which the `spirit of
paganism,' had found means of insinuating itself into the very heart of
Christianity. Leo could say, with no great exaggeration, in looking at the
moral position of the Roman Christians, `Quod temporibus nostris auctore
diabolo sic vitiata sunt omnia, ut fere nihil sit quod absque idololatria
transigatur' [In our time, by the instigation of the devil, all things have
become so corrupt that there is hardly anything that is done without
idolatry]. The weddings of the Christians could not be distinguished from,
those of the pagans. Everything was determined by auguries and auspices;
395
the wild orgies of the Bacchanalians, with all their obscene songs and
revelry, were not wanting." - Merivale.*524
And now all the evils engendered in that evil intrigue which united the State
with a professed Christianity, hurried on the doomed empire to its final and
utter ruin. "The criminal and frivolous pleasures of a decrepit civilization
left no thought for the absorbing duties of the day or the fearful trials of the
morrow. Unbridled lust and unblushing indecency admitted no sanctity in
the marriage tie. The rich and powerful established harems, in the recesses
of which their wives lingered, forgotten, neglected, and despised. The
banquet, theater, and the circus exhausted what little strength and energy
were left by domestic excesses. The poor aped the vices of the rich, and
hideous depravity reigned supreme, and invited the vengeance of heaven. -
Lea.*525
The pagan superstitions, the pagan delusions, and the pagan vices, which
had been brought into the church by the apostasy, and clothed with a form
of godliness, had wrought such corruption that the society of which it was a
part could no longer exist. From it no more good could possibly come, and
it must be swept away. "The uncontrollable progress of avarice, prodigality,
voluptuousness, theater going, intemperance, lewdness; in short, of all the
heathen vices, which Christianity had come to eradicate, still carried the
Roman empire and people with rapid strides toward dissolution, and gave it
at last into the hands of the rude, but simple and morally vigorous,
barbarians." - Schaff.*526
And onward those barbarians came, swiftly and in multitudes. For a
hundred years the dark cloud had been hanging threateningly over the
borders of the empire, encroaching slightly upon the West and breaking
occasionally upon the East. But at the close of the fourth century the
tempest burst in all its fury, and the flood was flowing ruinously. As early
as A. D. 377 a million Goths had crossed the Danube, and between that time
and A. D. 400 they had ravaged the country from Thessalonica to the
Adriatic Sea. In A. D. 400 a host of them entered the borders of Italy, but
were restrained for a season.
In 406 a band of Burgundians, Vandals, Suevi, and Alani from the north of
Germany, four hundred thousand strong, overran the country as far as
Florence. In the siege of that city their course was checked with the loss of
more than one hundred thousand. They then returned to Germany, and with
large accessions to their numbers, overran all the southern part of Gaul. The
Burgundians remained in Gaul; the Vandals, the Alani, and the Suevi
396
overran all the southern part of Spain, and carried their ravages over the
greater part of that province, and clear to the Strait of Gibraltar.
In 410 again returned the mighty hosts of the Goths, and spread over all
Italy from the Alps to the Strait of Sicily, and for five days inflicted upon
Rome such pillage as had never befallen it since the day, nearly a thousand
years before, when the Cimbri left it in ruins. They marched out of Italy and
took possession of Southeastern Gaul from the Mediterranean Sea to the
Bay of Biscay.
In May 429, the Vandals, in whose numbers of the Alani had been
absorbed, crossed the Strait of Gibraltar into Africa, and for ten years
ravaged the country from there to Carthage, of which city they took
possession with great slaughter, October 9, A. D. 439; and in 440 the
terrible Genseric, king of the Vandals, ruled the Mediterranean and sacked
the city of Rome.
In 449 the Saxons and their German neighbors invaded Britain, of which
they soon became sole possessors, utterly exterminating the native
inhabitants.
In 451-3 another mighty host, numbering seven hundred thousand, of all the
barbarous nations, led by Attila, desolated Eastern Gaul as far as Chalons,
and the north of Italy as far as the Rhone, but returned again beyond the
Danube.
And finally, in 476, when Odoacer, king of the Heruli, became king of Italy,
the last vestige of the Western empire of Rome was gone, and was divided
among the ten nations of barbarians of the North.
Wherever these savages went, they carried fire and slaughter, and whenever
they departed, they left desolation and ruin in their track, and carried away
multitudes of captives. Thus was the proud empire of Western Rome swept
from the earth; and that which Constantine and his ecclesiastical flatterers
had promised one another should be the everlasting salvation of the State,
proved its speedy and everlasting ruin.
It was impossible that it should be otherwise. We have seen to what a
fearful depth of degradation Pagan Rome had gone in the days of the
Caesars, yet the empire did not perish then. There was hope for the people.
The gospel of Jesus Christ carried in earnestness, in simplicity, and in its
heavenly power, brought multitudes to its saving light, and to a knowledge
of the purity of Jesus Christ. This was their salvation; and the gospel of
397
Christ, by restoring the virtue and integrity of the individual, was the
preservation of the Roman State.
But when by apostasy that gospel had lost its purity and its power in the
multitudes who professed it; and when it was used only as a cloak to cover
the same old pagan wickedness; when this form of godliness, practiced not
only without the power but in defiance of it, permeated the great masses of
the people, and the empire had thereby become a festering mass of
corruption; when the only means which it was possible for the Lord himself
to employ to purify the people, had been taken and made only the cloak
under which to increase unto more ungodliness, - there was no other
remedy: destruction must come.
And it did come, as we have seen, by a host wild and savage, it is true; but
whose social habits were so far above those of the people which they
destroyed, that savage as they were, they were caused fairly to blush at the
shameful corruptions which they found in this so-called Christian society of
Rome. This is proved by the best authority. A writer who lived at the time
of the barbarian invasions and who wrote as a Christian, gives the following
evidence as to the condition of things: -
`The church which ought everywhere to propitiate God, what does she, but
provoke him to anger? How many may one meet, even in the church, who
are not still drunkards, or debauchees, or adulterers, or fornicators, or
robbers, or murderers, or the like, or all these at once. without end? It is
even a sort of holiness among Christian people, to be less vicious.' From the
public worship of God, and almost during it, they pass to deeds of shame.
Scarce a rich man but would commit murder and fornication. We have lost
the whole power of Christianity, and offend God the more, that we sin as
Christians. We are worse than the barbarians and heathen. If the Saxon is
wild, the Frank faithless, the Goth inhuman, the Alanian drunken, the Hun
licentious, they are, by reason of their ignorance, far less punishable than
we, who, knowing the commandments of God, commit all these crimes." -
Salvian. *527
"He compares the Christians, especially of Rome, with the Arian Goths and
Vandals, to the disparagement of the Romans, who add to the gross sins of
nature the refined vices of civilization, passion for the theaters, debauchery,
and unnatural lewdness. Therefore has the just God given them into the
hands of the barbarians, and exposed them to the ravages of the migrating
hordes." - Schaff. *528
398
And this description, says the same author, "is in general not untrue." And
he confirms it in his own words by the excellent observation that "nothing
but the divine judgment of destruction upon this nominally Christian, but
essentially heathen, world, could open the way for the moral regeneration of
society. There must be new, fresh nations, if the Christian civilization,
prepared in the old Roman empire, was to take firm root and bear ripe
fruit." - Schaff.*529
These new, fresh nations came, and planted themselves upon the ruins of
the old. Out of these came the faithful Christians of the Dark Ages, and
upon them broke the light of the Reformation. And out of these and by this
means God produced the civilization of the nineteenth century and the new
republic of the United States of America, from which there should go once
more in its purity, as in the beginning, the everlasting gospel to every nation
and kindred and tongue and people.
399
CHAPTER XXII.
THE SUPREMACY OF THE PAPACY.
HILARY, 461-467,
was so glad to occupy the place which had been made so large by Leo, that
shortly after his election he wrote a letter to the other bishops asking them
to exult with him, taking particular care in the letter to tell them that he did
not doubt that they all knew what respect and deference was paid "in the
Spirit of God to St. Peter and his see." The bishops of Spain addressed him
as "the successor of St. Peter, whose primacy ought to be loved and feared
by all." He was succeeded by -
400
SIMPLICIUS, 467-483,
in whose pontificate the empire perished when the Heruli, under Odoacer,
overran all Italy, deposed the last emperor of the West, appropriated to
themselves one third of all the lands, and established the Herulian kingdom,
with Odoacer as king of Italy. In fact, the more the imperial power faded,
and the nearer the empire approached its fall, the more rapidly and the
stronger grew the papal assumptions. Thus the very calamities which
rapidly wrought the ruin of the empire, and which were hastened by the
union of Church and State, were turned to the advantage of the bishopric of
Rome. During the whole period of barbarian invasions from 400 to 476, the
Catholic hierarchy everywhere adapted itself to the situation, and reaped
power and influence from the calamities that were visited everywhere.
We have seen that Innocent I, upon whose mind there appears first to have
dawned the vast conception of Rome's universal ecclesiastical supremacy,
during the invasion of Italy and the siege of Rome by Alaric, headed an
embassy to the emperor to mediate for a treaty of peace between the empire
and the invading Goths. We have seen that at the moment of Leo's election
to the papal see, he was absent on a like mission to reconcile the enmity of
the two principal Roman officers, which was threatening the safety of the
empire. Yet other and far more important occasions of the same kind fell to
the lot of Leo during the term of his bishopric. In 453 Leo was made the
head of an embassy to meet Attila as he was on his way to Rome, if possible
to turn him back. The embassy was successful; a treaty was formed; Attila
retired beyond the Danube, where he immediately died; and Italy was
delivered. This redounded no less to the glory of Leo than any of the other
remarkable things which he had accomplished. He was not so successful
with Genseric two years afterward, yet even then he succeeded in mitigating
the ravages of the Vandals, which were usually so dreadful that the idea still
lives in the word "vandalism."
Moreover, it was not against religion as such that the barbarians made war,
as they themselves were religious. It was against that mighty empire of
which they had seen much, and suffered much, and heard more, that they
warred. It was as nations taking vengeance upon a nation which had been so
great, and which had so proudly asserted lordship over all other nations, that
they invaded the Roman empire. And when they could plant themselves and
remain, as absolute lords, in the dominions of those who had boasted of
absolute and eternal dominion, and thus humble the pride of the mighty
Rome, this was their supreme gratification. As these invasions were not
401
Spain, and the greater part of Gaul, and over the Burgundians too, they
deserted the Catholic god, and adopted the Arian faith.
Yet Clotilda, a niece of the Burgundian king, "was educated" in the
profession of the Catholic faith. She married Clovis, the pagan king of the
pagan Franks, and strongly persuaded him to become a Catholic. All her
pleadings were in vain, however, till A. D. 496, when in a great battle with
the Alemanni, the Franks were getting the worst of the conflict, in the midst
of the battle Clovis vowed that if the victory could be theirs, he would
become a Catholic. The tide of battle turned; the victory was won, and
Clovis was a Catholic. Clotilda hurried away a messenger with the glad
news to the bishop of Rhiems, who came to baptize the new convert.
But after the battle was over, and the dangerous crisis was past, Clovis was
not certain whether he wanted to be a Catholic. He said he must consult his
warriors; he did so, and they signified their readiness to adopt the same
religion as their king. He then declared that he was convinced of the truth of
the Catholic faith, and preparations were at once made for the baptism of
the new Constantine, Christmas day, A. D. 496. "To impress the minds of
the barbarians, the baptismal ceremony was performed with the utmost
pomp. The church was hung with embroidered tapestry and white curtains;
odors of incense like airs of paradise, were diffused around; the building
blazed with countless lights. When the new Constantine knelt in the font to
be cleansed from the leprosy of his heathenism, 'Fierce Sicambrian,' said the
bishop, `bow thy neck; burn what thou hast adored, adore what thou last
burned." Three thousand Franks followed the example of Clovis." -
Milman.*532
The pope sent Clovis a letter congratulating him on his conversion. As an
example of the real value of his religious instruction, it may be well to state
that some time after his baptism, the bishop delivered a sermon on the
crucifixion of the Saviour; and while he dwelt upon the cruelty of the Jews
in that transaction, Clovis blurted out, "If I had been there with my faithful
Franks, they would not have dared to do it." "If unscrupulous ambition,
undaunted valor and enterprise, and desolating warfare, had been legitimate
means for the propagation of pure Christianity, it could not have found a
better champion than Clovis. For the first time the diffusion of belief in the
nature of the Godhead became the avowed pretext for the invasion of a
neighboring territory." – Milman*533 "His ambitious reign was a perpetual
violation of moral and Christian duties; his hands were stained with blood
in peace as well as in war; and as soon as Clovis had dismissed a synod of
403
could, and as it went whirling through the air, he exclaimed, "There, on that
spot where my Francesca shall fall, will I erect a church in honor of the holy
apostles." Gribbon.*537
War was declared; and as Clovis marched on his way, he passed through
Tours, and turned aside to consult the shrine of St. Martin of Tours, for an
omen. "His messengers were instructed to remark the words of the Psalm
which should happen to be chanted at the precise moment when they
entered the church." And the oracular clergy took care that the words which
he should "happen" to hear at that moment - uttered not in Latin, but in
language which Clovis understood - should be the following from Psalm
xviii: "Thou hast girded me, O Lord, with strength unto the battle; thou hast
subdued unto me those who rose up against me. Thou hast given me the
necks of mine enemies, that I might destroy them that hate me." The oracle
was satisfactory, and in the event was completely successful. "The
Visigothic kingdom was wasted and subdued by the remorseless sword of
the Franks." - Gibbon.*538
Nor was the religious zeal of Clovis confined to the overthrow of the
Arians. There were two bodies of the Franks, the Salians and the
Ripuarians. Clovis was king of the Salians, Sigebert of the Ripuarians.
Clovis determined to be king of all; he therefore prompted the son of
Sigebert to assassinate his father, with the promise that the son should
peaceably succeed Sigebert on the throne; but as soon as the murder was
committed, Clovis commanded the murderer to be murdered, and then in a
full parliament of the whole people of the Franks, he solemnly vowed that
he had had nothing to do with the murder of either the father or the son; and
upon this, as there was no heir, Clovis was raised upon a shield, and
proclaimed king of the Ripuarian Franks; - all of which Gregory, bishop of
Tours, commended as the will of God, saying of Clovis that "God thus daily
prostrated his enemies under his hands, and enlarged his kingdom, because
he walked before him with an upright heart, and did that which was well
pleasing in his sight." - Milman.*539
Thus was the bloody course of Clovis glorified by the Catholic writers, as
the triumph of the orthodox doctrine of the Trinity over Arianism. When
such actions as these were so lauded by the clergy as the pious acts of
orthodox Catholics, it is certain that the clergy themselves were no better
than were the bloody objects of their praise. Under the influence of such
ecclesiastics, the condition of the barbarians after their so-called conversion,
could not possibly be better, even if it were not worse than before. To be
405
converted to the principles and precepts of such clergy was only the more
deeply to be damned. In proof of this it is necessary only to touch upon the
condition of Catholic France under Clovis and his successors.
Into the "converted" barbarians, the Catholic system instilled all of its
superstition, and its bigoted hatred of heretics and unbelievers. It thus
destroyed what of generosity still remained in their minds, while it only
intensified their native ferocity; and the shameful licentiousness of the papal
system likewise corrupted the purity, and the native respect for women and
marriage which had always been a noble characteristic of the German
nations. "It is difficult to conceive a more dark and odious state of society
than that of France under her Merovingian kings, the descendants of Clovis,
as described by Gregory of Tours . . . Throughout, assassinations,
parricides, and fratricides intermingle with adulteries and rapes.
"The cruelty might seem the mere inevitable result of this violent and
unnatural fusion; but the extent to which this cruelty spreads throughout the
whole society almost surpasses belief. That king Chlotaire should burn alive
his rebellious son with his wife and daughter, is fearful enough; but we are
astounded, even in these times, that a bishop of Tours should burn a man
alive to obtain the deeds of an estate which he coveted. Fredegonde sends
two murderers to assassinate Childebert, and these assassins are clerks. She
causes the archbishop of Rouen to be murdered while he is chanting the
service in the church; and in this crime a bishop and an archdeacon are her
accomplices. She is not content with open violence; she administers poison
with the subtlety of a Locusta or a modern Italian, apparently with no
sensual design, but from sheer barbarity."
"As to the intercourse of the sexes, wars of conquest, where the females are
at the mercy of the victors, especially if female virtue is not in much
respect, would severely try the more rigid morals of the conqueror. The
strength of the Teutonic character, when it had once burst the bonds of
habitual or traditionary restraint, might seem to disdain easy and effeminate
vice, and to seek a kind of wild zest in the indulgence of lust, by mingling it
up with all other violent passions, rapacity and inhumanity. Marriage was a
bond contracted and broken on the slightest occasion. Some of the
Merovingian kings took as many wives, either together or in succession, as
suited either their passions or their politics."
The papal religion "hardly interferes even to interdict incest. King Chlotaire
demanded for the fisc the third part of the revenue of the churches; some
bishops yielded; one, Injuriosus, disdainfully refused, and Chlotaire
406
emperor at its head, came forth to meet him with tapers and torches, as far
as ten miles beyond the gates. The emperor knelt at his feet, and implored
his benediction. On Easter day, March 30, 525, he performed the service in
the great church, Epiphanius the bishop ceding the first place to the holy
stranger." - Milman.*557 Such an embassy could have no other result than
more than ever to endanger the kingdom of Theodoric. Before John's return,
the conspiracy became more manifest; some senators and leading men were
arrested. One of them, Boethius, though denying his guilt, boldly confessed,
"Had there been any hopes of liberty, I should have freely indulged them;
had I known of a conspiracy against the king, I should have answered in the
words of a noble Roman to the frantic Caligula, You would not have known
it from me."*558 Such a confession as that was almost a confession of the
guilt which he denied. He and his father-in-law were executed. When the
pope returned, he was received as a traitor, and put in prison, where he died,
May 18, 526.
He was no sooner dead than violent commotion and disturbances again
arose amongst rival candidates for the vacant chair. "Many candidates
appeared for the vacant see, and the whole city, the Senate as well as the
people and clergy, were divided into parties and factions, the papal dignity
being now as eagerly sought for, and often obtained by the same methods
and arts as the consular was in the times of the heathen." - Bower.*559
Theodoric now, seventy-four years old, fearing that these contentions would
end in murder and blood-shed again, as they had at the election of
Symmachus, suffered his authority to transcend his principles, and
presumed, himself, to name a bishop of Rome. The whole people of the
city, Senate, clergy, and all, united in opposition. But a compromise was
effected, by which it was agreed that in future the election of the pope
should be by the clergy and people, but must be confirmed by the sovereign.
Upon this understanding, the people accepted Theodoric's nominee; and
July 12, 526, Felix III was installed in the papal office.
The noble Theodoric died August 30, 526, and was succeeded by his
grandson Athalaric, about ten years old, under the regency of his mother
Amalasontha. Justin died, and was succeeded by -
ears; to promote the temporal and spiritual interests of the church was the
serious business of his life; and the duty of father of his country was often
sacrificed to that of defender of the faith." - Gibbon.*560 "The emperor
Justinian unites in himself the most opposite vices, - insatiable rapacity and
lavish prodigality, intense pride and contemptible weakness, unmeasured
ambition and dastardly cowardice. . . . In the Christian emperor, seem to
meet the crimes of those who won or secured their empire by assassination
of all whom they feared, the passion for public diversions without the
accomplishments of Nero or the brute strength of Commodus, the dotage of
Claudius." - Milman.*561
Pope Felix was succeeded by Boniface II, A. D. 530-532, who was chosen
amidst the now customary scenes of disturbance and strife, which in this
case were brought to an end, and the election of Boniface secured, by the
death of his rival, who after his death was excommunicated by Boniface.
On account of the shameful briberies and other methods of competition
employed in the election of the popes, the Roman Senate now enacted a law
"declaring null and execrable all promises,bargains, and contracts, by
whomsoever or for whomsoever made, with a view to engage suffrages in
the election of the pope; and excluding forever from having any share in the
election, such as should be found to have been directly or indirectly
concerned either for themselves or others, in contracts or bargains of that
nature." - Bower.*562 Laws of the same import had already been enacted
more than once, but they amounted to nothing; because as in the days of
Caesar, everybody was ready to bribe or be bribed. Accordingly, at the very
next election, in 532, "Votes were publicly bought and sold; and
notwithstanding the decree lately issued by the Senate, money was offered
to the senators themselves, nay, the lands of the church were mortgaged by
some, and the sacred utensils pawned by others or publicly sold for ready
money." - Bower.*563 As the result of seventy-five days of this kind of
work, a certain John Mercurius was made pope, and took the title of John II,
December 31, 532.
In the year 532, Justinian issued an edict declaring his intention "to unite all
men in one faith." Whether they were Jews, Gentiles, or Christians, all who
did not within three months profess and embrace the Catholic faith, were by
the edict "declared infamous, and as such excluded from all employments
both civil and military; rendered incapable of leaving anything by will; and
all their estates confiscated, whether real or personal." As a result of this
cruel edict, "Great numbers were driven from their habitations with their
wives and children, stripped and naked. Others betook themselves to flight,
417
carrying with them what they could conceal, for their support and
maintenance; but they were plundered of what little they had, and many of
them inhumanly massacred." - Bower.*564
There now occurred a transaction which meant much in the supremacy of
the papacy. It was brought about in this way: Ever since the Council of
Chalcedon had "settled" the question of the two natures in Christ, there had
been more, and more violent, contentions over it than ever before; "for
everywhere monks were at the head of the religious revolution which threw
off the yoke of the Council of Chalcedon." In Jerusalem a certain
Theodosius was at the head of the army of monks, who made him bishop,
and in acts of violence, pillage, and murder, he fairly outdid the perfectly
lawless bandits of the country. "The very scenes of the Saviour's mercies
ran with blood shed in his name by his ferocious self-called disciples." -
Milman.*565
In Alexandria "the bishop was not only murdered in the baptistery, but his
body was treated with shameless indignities, and other enormities were
perpetrated which might have appalled a cannibal." And the monkish horde
then elected as bishop one of their own number, Timothy the Weasel, a
disciple of Dioscorus. - Milman.*566
Soon there was added to all this, another point which increased the fearful
warfare. In the Catholic churches it was customary to sing what was called
the Trisagion, or Thrice-Holy. It was, originally, the "Holy, holy is the Lord
of Hosts" of Isaiah vi, 3; but at the time of the Council of Chalcedon, it had
been changed, and was used by the council thus: "Holy God, Holy Mighty,
Holy Immortal, have mercy on us." At Antioch, in 477, a third monk, Peter
the Fuller, "led a procession, chiefly of monastics, through the streets,"
loudly singing the Thrice-Holy, with the addition, "Who wast crucified for
us." It was orthodox to sing it as the Council of Chalcedon had used it, with
the understanding that the three "Holies" referred respectively to the three
persons of the Trinity. It was heresy to sing it with the later addition.
In A. D. 511, two hordes of monks on the two sides of the question met in
Constantinople. "The two blackcowled armies watched each other for
several months, working in secret on their respective partisans. At length
they came to a rupture. . . . The Monophysite monks in the Church of the
Archangel within the palace, broke out after the `Thrice-Holy' with the
burden added at Antioch by Peter the Fuller, "who wast crucified for us.'
The orthodox monks, backed by the rabble of Constantinople, endeavored
to expel them from the church; they were not content with hurling curses
418
against each other, sticks and stones began their work. There was a wild,
fierce fray; the divine presence of the emperor lost its awe; he could not
maintain the peace. The bishop Macedonius either took the lead, or was
compelled to lead the tumult. Men, women, and children poured out from
all quarters; the monks with their archimandrites at the head of the raging
multitude, echoed back their religious war-cry." - Milman.*567
These are but samples of the repeated - it might almost be said the
continuous - occurrences in the cities of the East. "Throughout Asiatic
Christendom it was the same wild struggle. Bishops deposed quietly; or
where resistance was made, the two factions fighting in the streets, in the
churches: cities, even the holiest places, ran with blood. . . . The hymn of
the angels in heaven was the battle cry on earth, the signal of human
bloodshed." - Milman.*568
In A. D. 512 one of these Trisagion riots broke out in Constantinople,
because the emperor proposed to use the added clause. "Many palaces of the
nobles were set on fire, the officers of the crown insulted, pillage,
conflagration, violence, raged through the city." In the house of the favorite
minister of the emperor there was found a monk from the country. He was
accused of having suggested the use of the addition. His head was cut off,
and raised high on a pole, and the whole orthodox populace marched
through the streets singing the orthodox Trisagion, and shouting, "Behold
the enemy of the Trinity."*569
In A. D. 519, another dispute was raised, growing out of the addition to the
Trisagion. That was, "Did one of the Trinity suffer in the flesh? or did one
person of the Trinity suffer in the flesh?" The monks of Scythia affirmed
that one of the Trinity suffered in the flesh, and declared that to say that one
person of the Trinity suffered in the flesh, was absolute heresy. The
question was brought before Pope Hormisdas, who decided that "one person
of the Trinity suffered in the flesh" was the orthodox view; and denounced
the monks as proud, arrogant, obstinate, enemies to the church, disturbers of
the public peace, slanderers, liars, and instruments employed by the enemy
of truth to banish all truth, to establish error in its room, and to sow among
the wheat the poisonous seeds of diabolical tares.
Now, in 533, this question was raised again, and Justinian became involved
in the dispute.
This time one set of monks argued that "if one of the Trinity did not suffer
on the cross, then one of the Trinity was not born of the Virgin Mary, and
therefore she ought no longer to be called the Mother of God." Others
419
argued: "If one of the Trinity did not suffer on the cross, then Christ who
suffered was not one of the Trinity." Justinian entered the lists against both,
and declared that Mary was "truly the Mother of God;" that Christ was "in
the strictest sense one of the Trinity;" and that whosoever denied either the
one or the other, was a heretic. This frightened the monks, because they
knew Justinian's opinions on the subject of heretics were exceedingly
forcible. They therefore sent off two of their number to lay the question
before the pope. As soon as Justinian learned this,h e too decided to apply
to the pope. He therefore drew up a confession of faith that "one of the
Trinity suffered in the flesh," and sent it by two bishops to the bishop of
Rome. To make his side of the question appear as favorable as possible to
the pope, he sent a rich present of chalices and other vessels of gold,
enriched with precious stones; and the following flattering letter: -
"Justinian, pious, fortunate, renowned, triumphant; emperor, consul, etc., to
John, the most holy Archbishop of our city of Rome, and patriarch: -
"Rendering honor to the apostolic chair, and to your Holiness, as has been
always and is our wish, and honoring your Blessedness as a father, we have
hastened to bring to the knowledge of your Holiness all matters relating to
the state of the churches. It having been at all times our great desire to
preserve the unity of your apostolic chair, and the constitution of the holy
churches of God which has obtained hitherto, and still obtains.
"Therefore we have made no delay in subjecting and uniting to your
Holiness all the priests of the whole East.
"For this reason we have thought fit to bring to your notice the present
matters of disturbance; though they are manifest and unquestionable, and
always firmly held and declared by the whole priesthood according to the
doctrine of your apostolic chair. For we cannot suffer that anything which
relates to the state of the church, however manifest and unquestionable,
should be moved, without the knowledge of your Holiness, who are THE
HEAD OF ALL THE HOLY CHURCHES; for in all things, we have
already declared, we are anxious to increase the honor and authority of your
apostolic chair."*570
All things were now ready for the deliverance of the Catholic Church from
Arian dominion. Since the death of Theodoric, divided councils had crept in
amongst the Ostrogoths, and the Catholic Church had been more and more
cementing to its interests the powers of the Eastern throne. "Constant
amicable intercourse was still taking place between the Catholic clergy of
the East and the West; between Constantinople and Rome; between
420
Justinian and the rapid succession of pontiffs who occupied the throne
during the ten years between the death of Theodoric and the invasion of
Italy." - Milman.*571
The crusade began with the invasion of the Arian kingdom of the Vandals
in Africa, of whom Gelimer was the king, and was openly and avowedly in
the interests of the Catholic religion and church. For in a council of his
ministers, nobles, and bishops, Justinian was dissuaded from undertaking
the African war. He hesitated, and was about to relinquish his design, when
he was rallied by a fanatical bishop, who exclaimed: "I have seen a vision!
It is the will of heaven, O emperor, that you should not abandon your holy
enterprise for the deliverance of the African church. The God of battle will
march before your standard and disperse your enemies, who are the enemies
of his Son."*572
This persuasion was sufficient for the "pious" emperor, and in June 533,
"the whole fleet of six hundred ships was ranged in martial pomp before the
gardens of the palace," laden and equipped with thirty-five thousand troops
and sailors, and five thousand horses, all under the command of Belisarius.
He landed on the coast of Africa in September; Carthage was captured on
the 18th of the same month; Gelimer was disastrously defeated in
November; and the conquest of Africa, and the destruction of the Vandal
kingdom, was completed by the capture of Gelimer in the spring of 534
*573 During the rest of the year, Belisarius "reduced the islands of Corsica,
Sardinia, Majorica, Minorica, and whatever else belonged to the Vandals,
either on the continent or in the islands." - Bower.*574
Belisarius dispatched to Justinian the news of his victory. "He received the
messengers of victory at the time when he was preparing to publish the
Pandects of the Roman law; and the devout or jealous emperor celebrated
the divine goodness and confessed, in silence, the merit of his successful
general. Impatient to abolish the temporal and spiritual tyranny of the
Vandals, he proceeded, without delay, to the full establishment of the
Catholic Church. Her jurisdiction, wealth, and immunities, perhaps the most
essential part of episcopal religion, were restored and amplified with a
liberal hand; the Arian worship was suppressed, the Donatist meetings were
proscribed; and the Synod of Carthage, by the voice of two hundred the
seventeen bishops, applauded the just measure of pious retaliation." –
Gibbon *575
As soon as this pious work had been fully accomplished in Africa, the arms
of Justinian were turned against Italy and the Arian Ostrogoths. In 534
421
Amalasontha had been supplanted in her rule over the Ostrogoths by her
cousin Theodotus. And "during the short and troubled reign of Theodotus -
534 to 536 - Justinian received petitions from all parts of Italy, and from all
persons, lay as well as clerical, with the air and tone of its sovereign." -
Milman.*576
Belisarius subdued Sicily in 535, and invaded Italy and captured Naples in
536. As it was now about the first of December, the Gothic warriors decided
to postpone, until the following spring, their resistance to the invaders. A
garrison of four thousand soldiers was left in Rome, a feeble number to
defend such a city at such a time in any case, but these troops proved to be
even more feeble in faith than they were in numbers. They threw over all
care of the city, and "furiously exclaimed that the apostolic throne should no
longer be profaned by the triumph or toleration of Arianism; that the tombs
of the Caesars should no longer be trampled by the savages of the North;
and, without reflecting that Italy must sink into a province of
Constantinople, they fondly hailed the restoration of a Roman emperor as a
new era of freedom and prosperity. The deputies of the pope and clergy, of
the Senate and people, invited the lieutenant of Justinian to accept their
voluntary allegiance, and to enter into the city whose gates would be thrown
open to his reception." - Gibbon.*577
Belisarius at once marched to Rome, which he entered December 10, 536.
But this was not the conquest of Italy or even of Rome. "From their rustic
habitations, from their different garrisons, the Goths assembled at Ravenna
for the defense of their country: and such were their numbers that after an
army had been detached for the relief of Dalmatia, one hundred and fifty
thousand fighting men marched under the royal standard" in the spring, A.
D. 537; and the Gothic nation returned to the siege of Rome and the defense
of Italy against the invaders. "The whole nation of the Ostrogoths had been
assembled for the attack, and was almost entirely consumed in the siege of
Rome," which continued above a year, 537-538. "One year and nine days
after the commencement of the siege, an army so lately strong and
triumphant, burnt their tents, and tumultuously repassed the Milvian
bridge," and Rome was delivered,
March 538. The remains of the kingdom were soon afterward destroyed.
"They had lost their king (an inconsiderable loss), their capital, their
treasures, the provinces from Sicily to the Alps, and the military force of
two hundred thousand barbarians, magnificently equipped with horses and
422
The contest began even with Justinian, who had done so much to exalt the
dignity and clear the way of the papacy. Justinian soon became proud of his
theological abilities, and presumed to dictate the faith of the papacy, rather
than to submit, as formerly, to her guidance. And from A. D. 542 to the end
of his long reign in 565, there was almost constant war, with alternate
advantage, between Justinian and the popes. But as emperors live and die,
while the papacy only lives, the real victory remained with her.
In A. D. 568 the Lombards invaded Italy, and for nearly twenty years
wrought such devastation that even the pope thought the world was coming
to an end. The imperial power of the East was so weak that the defense of
Italy fell exclusively to the exarch of Ravenna and the pope. And as "the
death of Narses had left his successor, the exarch of Ravenna, only the
dignity of a sovereignty which he was too weak to exercise for any useful
purpose of government " (Milman*581), the pope alone became the chief
defender of Italy. In 580 Gregory I - the Great - became pope, and
concluded a treaty of peace with the Lombards, and "the pope and the king
of the Lombards became the real powers in the north and center of Italy."
-Encyclopedia Britan.*582
The wife of the king of the Lombards was a Catholic, and by the influence
of Gregory, she "solemnly placed the Lombard nation under the patronage
of St. John the Baptist. At Monza she built in his honor the first Lombard
church, and the royal palace near it." - Id. From this the Lombards soon
became Catholic; but though this was so, they would not suffer the
priesthood to have any part in the affairs of the kingdom. They "never
admitted the bishops of Italy to a seat in their legislative councils." -
Gibbon.*583 And although under the Lombard dominion "the Italians
enjoyed a milder and more equitable government than any of the other
kingdoms which had been founded on the ruins of the empire," this
exclusion of the clergy from affairs of the State was as much against them
now, though Catholic, as their Arianism had been against them before; and
the popes ever anxiously hoped to have them driven entirely from Italy.
In 728 the edict of the Eastern emperor abolishing the images, was
published in Italy. The pope defended the images, of course,and "the
Italians swore to live and die in defense of the pope and the holy images." -
Gibbon.*584 An alliance was formed between the Lombards and the
papacy for the defense of the images. The alliance, however, did not last
long. Both powers being determined to possess as much of Italy as possible,
425
has heard us in the day of tribulation, the God of Jacob has protected
us."*586
The embassadors and the letters of the pope "were received by Charles with
decent reverence; but the greatness of his occupations and the shortness of
his life, prevented his interference in the affairs of Italy, except by friendly
and ineffectual mediation." - Gibbon.*587 But affairs soon took such a turn
in France that the long-cherished desire of the papacy was rewarded with
abundant fruition. Charles Martel was simply duke or mayor of the palace,
under the sluggard kings of France. He died October 21, 741. Gregory III
died November 27, of the same year, and was succeeded by Zacharias. No
immediate help coming for France, Zacharias made overtures to the
Lombards, and a treaty of peace for twenty years was concluded between
the kingdom of Lombardy and "the dukedom of Rome."
Charles Martel left two sons, Carloman and Pepin; but Carloman being the
elder, was his successor in office. He had been in place but a little while,
before he resigned it to his brother, and became a monk, A. D. 747. The
events in Italy, and the prestige which the pope had gained by them, exerted
a powerful influence in France, and as the pope had already desired a league
with Charles Martel, who although not possessing the title, held all the
authority, of a king, Pepin, his successor, conceived the idea that perhaps he
could secure the papal sanction to his assuming the title of king with the
authority which he already possessed. Pepin therefore sent two ecclesiastics
to consult the pope as to whether he might not be king of France, and
Zacharias returned answer "that the nation might lawfully unite, in the same
person, the title and authority of king; and that the unfortunate Childeric, a
victim of the public safety, should be degraded, shaved, and confined in a
monastery for the remainder of his days. An answer so agreeable to their
wishes was accepted by the Franks as the opinion of a casuist, the sentence
of a judge, or the oracle of prophet; . . . and Pepin was exalted on a buckler
by the suffrage of a free people, accustomed to obey his laws, and to march
under his standard;" and March 7, 752, was proclaimed king of the Franks. -
Gibbon. *588
Zacharias died March 14 the same year, and was succeeded by Stephen II,
who died the fourth day afterward, and before his consecration, and Stephen
III became pope, March 26. Astolph was now king of the Lombards. He had
openly declared himself the enemy of the pope, and was determined to
make not only the territories of the exarchate, but those of the pope, his
own. "In terms of contumely and menace, he demanded the instant
427
the keys of the shrine of St. Peter, "as a pledge and symbol of sovereignty;"
and a "holy" banner which it was their "right and duty to unfurl" in the
defense of the church and city of Rome.
Meantime Astolph had persuaded Carloman to leave his monastery, and go
to the court of Pepin to counteract the influence of the pope, and if possible
to win Pepin to the cause of the Lombards. But the unfortunate Carloman
was at once imprisoned "for life," and his life was ended in a few days. In
September and October 753, Pepin and the pope marched to Italy against
Astolph, who took refuge in Pavia. They advance to the walls of that city;
and Astolph was glad to purchase an ignominious peace, by pledging
himself, on oath, to restore the territory of Rome.
Pepin returned to his capital; and Stephen retired to Rome. But Pepin was
no sooner well out of reach, than Astolph was under arms again, and on his
way to Rome. He marched to the very gates of the city, and demanded the
surrender of the pope. "He demanded that the Romans should give up the
pope into his hands, and on these terms only would he spare the city.
Astolph declared he would not leave the pope a foot of land." -
Milman.*591
Stephen hurried away messengers with a letter to Pepin in which the pope
reminded him that St. Peter had promised him eternal life in return for a
vow which he had made to make a donation to St. Peter. He told Pepin that
he risked eternal damnation in not hastening to fulfill his vow; and that as
Peter had Pepin's handwriting to the vow, if he did not fulfill it, the apostle
would present it against him in the day of judgment. Pepin did not respond,
and a second letter was dispatched in which the pope "conjured him, by
God and his holy mother, by the angels in heaven, by the apostles St. Peter
and St. Paul, and by the last day," to hasten to the rescue of his holy mother
the church, and promised him if he would do so, "victory over all the
barbarian nations, and eternal life." But yet Pepin did not respond, and as
Astolph was pressing closer and harder, the pope determined to have St.
Peter himself address the dilatory king. Accordingly, he sent now the
following letter: -
"I, Peter the apostle, protest, admonish, and conjure you, the most Christian
kings, Pepin, Charles, and Carloman, with all the hierarchy, bishops, abbots,
priests, and all monks; all judges, dukes, counts and the whole people of the
Franks. The Mother of God likewise adjures you, and admonishes and
commands you, she as well as the thrones and dominions, and all the hosts
of heaven to save the beloved city of Rome from the detested Lombards. If
429
ye hasten, I, Peter the apostle, promise you my protection in this life and in
the next, will prepare for you the most glorious mansions in heaven, will
bestow on you the everlasting joys of paradise. Make common cause with
my people of Rome, and I will grant whatever ye may pray for. I conjure
you not to yield up this city to be lacerated and tormented by the Lombards,
lest your own souls be lacerated and tormented in hell, with the devil and
his pestilential angels. Of all nations under heaven, the Franks are highest in
the esteem of St. Peter; to me you owe all your victories. Obey, and obey
speedily, and, by my suffrage, our Lord Jesus Christ will give you in this
life length of days, security, victory; in the life to come, will multiply his
blessings upon you, among his saints and angels."*592
This aroused Pepin to the most diligent activity. Astolph heard he was
coming, and hastened back to his capital; but scarcely had he reached it
before Pepin was besieging him there. Astolph yielded at once, and gave up
to Pepin the whole disputed territory. Representatives of the emperor of the
East were there to demand that it be restored to him; but "Pepin declared
that his sole object in the war was to show his veneration for St. Peter;" and
as the spoils of conquest, he bestowed the whole of it upon the pope - A. D.
755. "The representatives of the pope, who, however, always speak of the
republic of Rome, passed through the land, receiving the homage of the
authorities, and the keys of the cities. The district comprehended Ravenna,
Rimini, Pesaro, Fano, Cesena, Sinigaglia, Iesi, Forlimpopoli, Forli with the
Castle Sussibio, Montefeltro, Acerra, Monte di Lucano, Serra, San Marino,
Bobbio, Urbino, Cagli, Luciolo, Gubbio, Comachio, and Narni, which was
severed from the dukedome of Spoleto."
Astolph was soon afterward killed while hunting. The succession was
disputed between Desiderius and Rachis. Desiderius secured the throne by
courting the influence of the pope, and in return the pope compelled him to
agree to surrender to the papacy five cities, and the whole duchy of Ferrara
besides. The agreement was afterward fulfilled, and these territories were
added to the kingdom of the pope.
Stephen III died April 26, 757, and was succeeded by his brother Paul. Paul
glorified Pepin as a new Moses, who had freed Israel from the bondage of
Egypt. As Moses had confounded idolatry, so had Pepin confounded
heresy; and he rapturously exclaimed, "Thou, after God, art our defender
and aider. If all the hairs of our heads were tongues, we could not give you
thanks equal to your deserts."
430
All the donations which Pepin had bestowed upon the papacy were received
and held by the popes, under the pious fiction that they were for such holy
uses as keeping up the lights in the churches, and maintaining the poor. But
in fact they were held as the dominions of the new sovereign State
descended from the Roman republic, the actual authority of which had now
become merged in the pope, and by right of which the pope had already
made Charles a Roman consul, and Pepin a patrician. All these territories
the pope ruled as sovereign. He "took possession as lord and master; he
received the homage of the authorities and the keys of the cities. The local
or municipal institutions remained; but the revenue, which had before been
received by the Byzantine crown, became the revenue of the church: of that
revenue the pope was the guardian, distributor, possessor." -Milman.*593
In A.D. 768, Pepin died, was succeeded by his two sons, Charles and
Carloman. In 771 Carloman died, leaving Charles sole king, who by his
remarkable ability became Charles the Great, - Charlemagne, - and reigned
forty-six years, - forty-three from the death of Carloman, - thirty-three of
which were spent in almost ceaseless wars.
Charlemagne was a no less devout Catholic than was Clovis before him. His
wars against the pagan Saxons were almost wholly wars of religion; and his
stern declaration that "these Saxons must be Christianized or wiped out,"
expresses the temper both of his religion and of his warfare. He completed
the conquest of Lombardy, and placed upon his own head the iron crown of
the kingdom, and confirmed to the papacy the donation of territory which
Pepin had made. He extinguished the exarchate of Ravenna, and its territory
"by his grant was vested, either as a kind of feud or in absolute perpetuity,
in the pope." -Milman.*594
It seems almost certain that Charlemagne really aspired to consolidate the
territories of the West into a grand new Roman empire. Saxony, Bohemia,
Bavaria, Pannonia, the Lombard kingdom of Italy as far as the duchy of
Beneventum, that part of Spain between the Pyrenees and the river Ebro,
Burgundy, Allemannia, and all Gaul, were subject to his sway. In addition
to the kingship of all the Frankish dominions, he wore the iron crown of
Lombardy. The next step was to be emperor indeed; and that was soon
brought about. Leo III was pope. In 799 he made a journey to France, and
was royally received and entertained by Charlemagne. At an imperial
banquet, the king and the pope quaffed together their rich wines with
convivial glee."- Milman.*595 In 800 Charlemagne made a journey to
431
Rome. He arrived in the city November 23, and remained there through the
month of December.
On Christmas day magnificent services were held. Charlemagne appeared
not in the dress of his native country, but in that of a patrician of Rome,
which honor he had inherited from his father, who had received it from the
pope. Thus arrayed, the king with all his court, his nobles, and the people
and the whole clergy of Rome, attended the services. "The pope himself
chanted the mass; the full assembly were wrapped in profound devotion. At
the close the pope rose, advanced toward Charles with a splendid crown in
his hands, placed it upon his brow, and proclaimed him Caesar Augustus."
The dome of the great church "resounded with the acclamations of the
people, `Long life and victory to Charles, the most pious Augustus,
crowned by God the great an pacific emperor of the Romans.'" Then the
head and body of Charlemagne were anointed with the "holy oil" by the
hands of the pope himself, and the services were brought to a close.*596 In
return for all this, Charlemagne swore to maintain the faith, the power, and
the privileges of the church; and to recognize the spiritual dominion of the
pope, throughout the limits of his empire.
Thus had the papacy arrogated to itself all the authority of the ancient
Roman empire, and with this the prerogative of bestowing upon whom she
would, the dignities, titles, and powers of that empire. And now, as the
representative of God, the pope had re-established that empire by bestowing
upon Charlemagne the dignity and titles of Caesar, Augustus, and emperor.
Such was the origin, and thus was established, the doctrine of "divine right"
in rulers. Thus was established the doctrine of the supremacy of the bishop
of Rome over all things earthly, to whom it "belongs" to set up and to pull
down kings and emperors. Thus did the papacy become the dispenser of
kingdoms and empires, the disposer of peoples, and the distributor of
nations. As she had already, and for a long while, asserted supreme
authority over all things spiritual, in heaven and hell, as well as upon earth,
and now by this transaction was enabled to assert supremacy over
kingdoms, and empires, and their rulers, henceforth the papacy recognized
no limits to her dominion over heaven, earth, and hell.
Ever since that Christmas day, A. D. 800, Leo and all his successors have
spent their lives, and exercised their boundless ambition, in making felt to
the uttermost this blasphemous claim; and for ages, nations groaned and
people perished, under the frightful exercise of this infernal power. Under it
the famous and the infamous Hildebrand punished Henry IV, emperor of
432
represents the divine authority; and when he speaks or acts officially, his
speech or act is that of God. But to make a man thus the representative of
God, is only to clothe human passions with divine power and authority. And
being human, he is bound always to act unlike God; and being clothed with
irresponsible power, he will often act like the devil. Consequently, in order
to make all his actions consistent with his profession, he is compelled to
cover them all with the divine attributes, and make everything that he does
in his official capacity the act of God. This is precisely the logic and the
profession of papal infallibility. It is not claimed that all the pope speaks is
infallible; it is only what he speaks officially - what he speaks ex cathedra,
that is, from the throne. The decree of infallibility is as follows: -
"We teach and define that it is a dogma divinely revealed, that the Roman
pontiff, when he speaks ex cathedra, that is, when in discharge of the office
of pastor and doctor of all Christians, by virtue of his supreme apostolic
authority, he defines a doctrine regarding faith or morals to be held by the
universal church, by the divine assistance promised to him in blessed Peter,
is possessed of that infallibility with which the divine Redeemer willed that
his church should be endowed for defining doctrines regarding faith or
morals; and that therefore such definitions of the Roman pontiff are
irreformable of themselves, and not from the consent of the church.
"But if any one - which may God avert - presume to contradict this our
definition, let him be anathema.
"Given at Rome in public session solemnly held in the Vatican Basilica in
the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and seventy, on the
eighteenth day of July, in the twenty-fifth year of our pontificate."*598
Under this theory, he sits upon that throne as the head of the government of
God, and he sits there as God indeed. For the same pope that published this
dogma of infallibility, published a book of his speaches, in th preface to
which, in the official and approved edition, he is declared to be "The living
Christ," "The voice of God; " "He is nature that protests; he is God that
condemns."*599 Thus, in the papacy there is fulfilled to the letter, in
completest meaning, the prophecy - 2 Thess. ii, 1-9- - of "the falling away"
and the revealing of "that man of sin," "the son of perdition, who opposeth
and exalteth himself above all that is called God, or that is worshiped; so
that he as God sitteth in the temple of God, showing himself that he is God."
Therefore, sitting in the place of God, ruling from that place as God, that
which he speaks from the throne is the word of God, and must be infallible.
This is the inevitable logic of the false theocratical theory. And if it be
434
denied that the theory is false, there is logically no escape from accepting
the whole papal system.
Thus so certainly and so infallibly is it true that the false and grossly
conceived view of the Old-Testament theocracy. contains within it the germ
of THE ENTIRE PAPACY.*600
435
CHAPTER XXIII.
PROTESTANTISM - TRUE AND FALSE.
THEN came the Reformation, protesting against the papal system, and
asserting again the rights of the individual conscience, declaring for a
separation between Church and State, and that to Caesar is to be rendered
only that which is Caesar's, while men are left free to render to God,
according to the dictates of their own conscience, that which is God's.
To Luther more than to any other one, there fell the blessed task of opening
up the contest with the papacy, and of announcing the principles of
Protestantism. It is not without cause that Luther stands at the head of all
men in the great Reformation and in the history of Protestantism: for he
alone of all the leaders in the Reformation times held himself and his cause
aloof from the powers of this world, and declined all connection of the State
with the work of the gospel, even to support it. After he had burnt the pope's
bull, Aleander, the pope's nuncio, at the coronation of Charles V at
Cologne, addressed the elector, Frederick of Saxony, whose subject Luther
was, in these words: -
"See the immense perils to which this man exposes the Christian
commonwealth. If a remedy is not speedily applied, the empire is destroyed.
What ruined the Greeks, if it was not their abandonment of the pope? You
cannot remain united to Luther without separating from Jesus Christ. In the
name of his Holiness, I ask of you two things: first, to burn the writings of
Luther; secondly, to punish him according to his demerits, or at least to give
him up a prisoner to the pope. The emperor, and all the princes of the
empire, have declared their readiness to accede to our demands; you alone
still hesitate." *601
The elector answered just then, that this was a matter of too much
importance to be decided upon the spur of the moment, and at a later time
he would give a definite answer. At this time Luther wrote to Spalatin, the
elector's chaplain, these words: -
"If the gospel was of a nature to be propagated or maintained by the power
of the world, God would not have intrusted it to fishermen. To defend the
gospel appertains not to the princes and pontiffs of this world. They have
enough to do to shelter themselves from the judgments of the Lord and his
436
"As to his adherents, you will seize them, suppress them, and confiscate
their goods.
"As to his writings, if the best food becomes the terror of all mankind as
soon as a drop of poison is mixed with it, how much more ought these
books, which contain a deadly poison to the soul, to be not only rejected,
but also annihilated! You will therefore burn them, or in some other way
destroy them entirely.
"As to authors, poets, printers, painters, sellers or buyers of placards,
writings, or paintings against the pope or the church, you will lay hold of
their persons and their goods, and treat them according to your good
pleasure.
"And if any one, whatever be his dignity, shall dare to act in contradiction
to the decree of our imperial majesty, we ordain that he shall be placed
under the ban of the empire.
"Let every one conform hereto." *603
Luther remained in the Wartburg until March 3, 1522, when without
permission from anybody, he left and returned to Wittemberg. Knowing
that his leaving the Wartburg without saying anything to the elector, would
be ungrateful, and knowing also that his returning at all was virtually
disclaiming the elector's protection, he addressed to him, the third day of his
journey, the following letter: -
"Grace and peace from God our Father, and from the Lord Jesus Christ.
"Most serene elector, gracious lord: What has happened at Wittemberg, to
the great shame of the gospel, has filled me with such grief, that if I were
not certain of the truth of our cause, I would have despaired of it.
"Your Highness knows - or if not, please to be informed - I received the
gospel not from men, but from heaven, by our Lord Jesus Christ. If I have
asked for conferences, it was not because I had doubts of the truth, but from
humility, and for the purpose of winning others. But since my humility is
turned against the gospel, my conscience now impels me to act in a
different manner. I have yielded enough to your Highness in exiling myself
during this year. The devil knows it was not from fear I did it. I would have
entered Worms, though there had been as many devils in the town as there
were tiles on the roofs. Now Duke George, with whom your Highness tries
so much to frighten me, is far less to be feared than a single devil. Had that
which has taken place at Wittemberg taken place at Leipsic (the duke's
438
residence), I would instantly have mounted my horse and gone thither, even
though (let your Highness pardon the expression) for nine days it should
have done nothing but rain Duke Georges, and every one of them been nine
times more furious than he is. What is he thinking of in attacking me? Does
he take Christ, my Lord, for a man of straw? The Lord be pleased to avert
the dreadful judgment which is impending over him.
"It is necessary for your Highness to know that I am on my way to
Wittemberg, under a more powerful protection than that of an elector. I
have no thought of soliciting the assistance of your Highness; so far from
desiring your protection, I would rather give you mine. If I knew that your
Highness could or would protect me, I would not come to Wittemberg. No
sword can give any aid to this cause. God alone must do all without human
aid or co-operation. He who has most faith is the best protector. Now, I
observe that your Highness is still very weak in the faith.
"But since your Highness desires to know what to do, I will answer with all
humility. Your electoral Highness has already done too much, and ought to
do nothing at all. God does not wish, and cannot tolerate, either your cares
and labors, or mine. Let your Highness, therefore, act accordingly.
"In regard to what concerns myself, your Highness must act as elector. You
must allow the orders of his Imperial Majesty to be executed in your towns
and rural districts. You must not throw any difficulty in the way, should it
be wished to apprehend or slay me; for none must oppose the powers that
be, save He who established them. "Let your Highness, then, leave the gates
open, and respect safe-conducts, should my enemies themselves, or their
envoys, enter the States of your Highness in search of me. In this way you
will avoid all embarrassment and danger.
"I have written this letter in haste, that you may not be disconcerted on
learning my arrival. He with whom I have to deal is a different person from
Duke George. He knows me well, and I know something of Him.
"Your electoral Highness's most humble servant,
"MARTIN LUTHER. *604
"Borna, the Conductor Hotel, Ash-Wednesday, 1552."
During his absence, fanatical spirits had arisen, and extreme and somewhat
violent steps had been taken, and amongst the first words which he spoke
upon his arrival in Wittemberg were these: -
439
"It is by the word that we must fight; by the word overturn and destroy what
has been established by violence. I am unwilling to employ force against the
superstitious or the unbelieving. Let him who believes approach; let him
who believes not stand aloof. None ought to be constrained. Liberty is of
the essence of faith." *605
In 1524 the Swabian peasants revolted, and in January, 1525, Luther
addressed to them the following words: -
"The pope and the emperor have united against me; but the more the pope
and the emperor have stormed, the greater the progress which the gospel has
made. . . Why so? Because I have never drawn the sword, nor called for
vengeance; because I have not had recourse either to tumult or revolt. I have
committed all to God, and awaited his strong hand. It is neither with the
sword nor the musket that Christians fight, but with suffering and the cross.
Christ, their captain, did not handle the sword; he hung upon the tree." *606
And when, June 25, A. D. 1530, the memorable confession of Protestantism
was made at Augsburg, that confession, framed under the direction of
Luther, though absent, accordingly announced for all future time the
principles of Protestantism upon the subject of Church and State. Upon this
question that document declared as follows: -
"ARTICLE XXVIII.
"OF ECCLESIASTICAL POWER.
"There have been great controversies touching the power of the bishops, in
which some have in an unseemly manner mingled together the ecclesiastical
power, and the power of the sword. And out of this confusion there have
sprung very great wars and tumults, while the pontiffs, trusting in the power
of the keys, have not only instituted new kinds of service, and burdened
men's consciences by reserving of cases, and by violent excommunications;
but have also endeavored to transfer worldly kingdoms from one to another,
and to despoil emperors of their power and authority. These faults godly
and learned men in the church have long since reprehended; and for that
cause ours were compelled, for the comforting of men's consciences, to
show the difference between the ecclesiastical power and the power of the
sword. And they have taught that both of them, because of God's command,
are dutifully to be reverenced and honored, as the chief blessings of God
upon earth.
440
"Now, their judgment is this: that the power of the keys, or the power of the
bishops, according to the gospel, is a power or command from God, of
preaching the gospel, of remitting or retaining sins, and of administering the
sacraments. For Christ sends his apostles forth with this charge: `As my
Father hath sent me, even so send I you. Receive ye the Holy Ghost:
Whosesoever sins ye remit, they are remitted unto them; and whosesoever
sins ye retain, they are retained.' John xx, 21-23. `Go, and preach the gospel
to every creature,' etc. Mark xvi, 15.
"This power is exercised only by teaching or preaching the gospel, and
administering the sacraments, either to many, or to single individuals, in
accordance with their call. For thereby not corporeal, but eternal things are
granted; as, an eternal righteousness, the Holy Ghost, life everlasting. These
things cannot be obtained but by the ministry of the word and of the
sacraments; as Paul says, `The gospel is the power of God unto salvation to
every one that believeth.' Rom. i, 16. Seeing, the, than the ecclesiastical
power bestows things eternal, and is exercised only by the ministry of the
word, it does not hinder the civil government any more than the art of
singing hinders civil government. For the civil administration is occupied
about other matters, than is the gospel. The magistracy does not defend the
souls, but the bodies, and bodily things, against manifest injuries; and
coerces men by the sword and corporal punishments, that it may uphold
civil justice and peace.
"Wherefore the ecclesiastical and the civil power are not to be confounded.
The ecclesiastical power has its own command, to preach the gospel and to
administer the sacraments. Let it not by force enter into the office of
another; let it not transfer worldly kingdoms; let it not abrogate the
magistrates' laws; let it not withdraw from them lawful obedience; let it not
hinder judgments touching any civil ordinances or contracts; let it not
prescribe laws to the magistrate touching the form of the State; as Christ
says, `My kingdom is not of this world.' John xviii, 36. Again: `Who made
me a judge or a divider over you?' Luke xii, 14. And Paul says, `Our
conversation is in heaven.' Phil. iii, 20. `The weapons of our warfare are not
carnal, but mighty through God, to the pulling down of strongholds; casting
down imaginations,' etc. 2 Cor. x. 4, 5.
"In this way ours distinguish between the duties of each power, one from
the other, and admonish all men to honor both powers, and to acknowledge
both to be the gifts and blessings of God.
441
"If the bishops have any power of the sword, they have it not as bishops by
the command of the gospel, but by human law given unto them by kings
and emperors, for the civil government of their goods. This, however, is
another function than the ministry of the gospel.
"When, therefore, the question is concerning the jurisdiction of bishops,
civil government must be distinguished from ecclesiastical jurisdiction.
Again, according to the gospel, or, as they term it, by divine right, bishops,
as bishops, that is, those who have the administration of the word and
sacraments committed to them, have no other jurisdiction at all, but only to
remit sin, also to inquire into doctrine, and to reject doctrine inconsistent
with the gospel, and to exclude from the communion of the church wicked
men, whose wickedness is manifest, without human force, but by the word.
And herein of necessity the churches ought by divine right to render
obedience unto them; according to the saying of Christ, `He that heareth
you, heareth me.' Luke x, 16. But when they teach or determine anything
contrary to the gospel, then the churches have a command of God which
forbids obedience to them: `Beware of false prophets.' Matt. vii, 15.
`Though an angel from heaven preach any other gospel, let him be
accursed.' Gal. i, 8. `We can do nothing against the truth, but for the truth.' 2
Cor. xiii, 8. Also,`This power the Lord hath given me to edification, and not
to destruction.' 2 Cor. xiii, 10."
This confession is a sound exposition of the doctrine of Christ concerning
the temporal and the spiritual powers. It clearly and correctly defines the
jurisdiction of the State to be only in things civil; that the sword which is
wielded by the powers that be, is to preserve civil justice and peace; and
that the authority of the State is to be exercised only over the bodies of men
and the temporal concerns of life, that is, of the affairs of this world. This
shuts away the State from all connection or interference with things spiritual
or religious. It separates entirely religion and the State.
While doing this for the State, it also clearly defines the place of the church.
While the State is to stand entirely aloof from spiritual and religious things
and concern itself only with the civil and temporal affairs of men, the
church on its part is to stand aloof from the affairs of the State, and is not to
interfere in the civil and temporal concerns of men. The power of the church
is not to be mingled with the power of the State. The power of the church is
never to invade the realm, or seek to guide the jurisdiction, of the State. The
duty of the clergy is to minister the gospel of Christ and not the laws of
men. In dealing with its membership in the exercise of discipline, the
442
church authorities are to act without human power, and solely by the word
of God. The ministry of the gospel is with reference only to eternal things,
and is not to trouble itself with political administration.
This is Protestantism. This is Christianity. Wherever these principles have
been followed, there is Protestantism exemplified in the Church and the
State. Wherever these principles have not been followed, there is the
principle of the papacy, it matters not what the profession may have been.
State and of the Church, . . . at once the head of the State and general of the
army - this double, this triple, part of the Reformer was the ruin of the
Reformation and of himself." For when war came on in Switzerland,
Zwingle girded on his sword, and went with the troops to battle. "Zwingle
played two parts at once - he was a reformer and a magistrate. But these are
two characters that ought no more to be united than those of a minister and
of a soldier. We will not altogether blame the soldiers and the magistrates:
in forming leagues and drawing the sword, even for the sake of religion,
they act according to their point of view, although it is not the same as ours;
but we must decidedly blame the Christian minister who becomes a
diplomatist or a general."
He who took the sword, perished by the sword. In the first battle that was
fought - October 11, A. D. 1531 - twenty-five of the Swiss reform preachers
were slain, the chief of whom was Zwingle, who fell stricken with many
blows. "If the German Reformer had been able to approach Zwingle at this
solemn moment and pronounce those oft-repeated words, `Christians fight
not with sword and arquebuse, but with sufferings and with the cross,'
Zwingle would have stretched out his dying hand and said, `Amen.'" -
D'Aubidgne. *609
crowd. Such was the first news which England received of the
Reformation." - D'Aubigne. *610
But Henry was not content with this; nor even with opposing the
Reformation in his own dominions. He wrote to the Archduke Palatine of
Germany, in the following words: -
"This fire, which has been kindled by Luther, and fanned by the arts of the
devil, is raging everywhere. If Luther does not repent, deliver him and his
audacious treatises to the flames. I offer you my royal co-operation, and
even, if necessary, my life." *611
Nor did he stop here. He entered the lists as a theologian, and wrote against
Luther a book entitled the "Defense of the Seven Sacraments Against
Martin Luther, by the Most Invincible King of England, France, and
Ireland, Henry, Eighth of the Name." In the book he set himself forth as a
sacrifice for the preservation of the church, and also proclaimed the papal
principles, in the following words: -
"I will throw myself before the church, I will receive in my breast the
poisoned darts of the enemy who is assailing her. To this the present state of
affairs calls me. Every servant of Jesus Christ, whatever be his age, rank, or
sex, must bestir himself against the common enemy of Christendom.
"Let us arm ourselves with double armor - with heavenly weapons, that by
the arms of truth we may vanquish him who combats with the arms of error.
But let us also arm ourselves with terrestrial armor, in order that, if he
proves obstinate in his wickedness, the hand of the executioner may
constrain him to silence; and he may thus, for once at least, be useful to the
world by his exemplary punishment." *612
He denounced Luther as "an infernal wolf, a venomous viper, a limb of the
devil," and other such handsome things. By his partisans and flatterers,
Henry's book was extolled to the skies. It was declared "the most learned
work that ever the sun saw," and, appropriately enough indeed, it was
compared with the works of St. Augustine. Henry himself they pronounced
a Constantine, a Charlemagne, and even a second Solomon. Henry was no
less pleased in fact with his performance, than the others pretended to be.
He had his embassador at Rome deliver to the pope in person a copy of the
book; and the embassador, in presenting it to the pope, who received him in
full consistory, said: "The king, my master, assures you that, after refuting
the errors of Luther with his pen, he is ready to combat his adherents with
the sword." *613
445
The grateful pope, as was to be expected, struck even yet a higher note of
praise to Henry. Leo X replied that the book of the king of England could
only have been composed with the aid of the Holy Spirit, and in return gave
the embassador both his foot and his cheek to be kissed, saying, "I will do
for your master's book as much as the church has done for St. Jerome and
St. Augustine." To his cardinals Leo said, "We must honor those noble
champions who show themselves prepared to cut off with the sword the
rotten members of Jesus Christ. What title shall we give to the virtuous king
of England?" One suggested, "Protector of the Roman Church," another,
"Apostolic King;" as the final result, a bull was issued by the pope,
proclaiming Henry VIII "Defender of the Faith," and granting ten years'
indulgence to all who would read the king's book.
The bull was promptly sent by a messenger to Henry, who of course was
overjoyed when he received it. A moment after Henry received the bull, the
king's fool entered the room. Henry's joy was so marked that the fool asked
him the cause of it. The king replied, "The pope has just made me
`Defender of the Faith.'" The fool being the only wise man in the whole
transaction, replied, "Ho! ho! good Harry, let you and me defend one
another; but take my word for it, let the faith alone to defend itself." Henry
decided that the new dignity thus bestowed upon him should be publicly
proclaimed. "Seated upon an elevated throne, with the cardinal at his right
hand, he caused the pope's letter to be read in public. The trumpets sounded;
Wolsey said mass; the king and his court took their seats around a
sumptuous table, and the heralds-at-arms proclaimed, "Henricus Dei gratia
Rex Angliae et Franciae, Defensor Fidei et Dominus Hibernaie!" - "Henry,
by the grace of God king of England and France, defender of the faith, and
lord of Ireland." *614
Thus was acquired by the sovereign of England, the title and dignity of
"Defender of the Faith," which has been worn by all the successors of
Henry, and is held to-day by Queen Victoria.
Luther was not the man to keep silence, not even when kings spoke. He had
faced the emperor; he had defied the pope; and now he both contemns and
defies Henry, and all the rest of the papal brood together. Besides meeting
and overthrowing the king's arguments in detail, his ringing words of
defiance of the papacy, and his faith in the word of God only and its power,
were a call to all Europe to take refuge under the standard of the
Reformation, and are worthy forever to be held in remembrance. The
opening and the closing of his reply to Henry is as follows: -
446
"I will not deal mildly with the king of England; it is in vain (I know it is) to
humble myself, to yield, beseech, and try the ways of peace. I will at length
show myself more terrible than the ferocious beasts who are constantly
butting me with their horns. I will let them feel mine: I will preach and
irritate Satan until he wears himself out, and falls down exhausted. `If this
heretic retracts not,' says the new Thomas, Henry VIII, `he must be burnt.'
Such are the weapons now employed against me; first, the fury of stupid
asses and Thomastical swine, and then the fire. Very well! Let these swine
come forward, if they dare, and burn me! Here I am, waiting for them. My
wish is, that my ashes, thrown, after my death, into a thousand seas, may
arise, pursue, and engulf this abominable crew. Living, I will be the enemy
of the papacy; burnt, I will be its destruction. Go, swine of St. Thomas; do
what seemeth to you good. You shall ever find Luther as a bear in your
way, and a lion in your path. He will thunder upon you from all quarters,
and leave you no peace until he has brayed your brains of iron, and ground
to powder your foreheads of brass. For me, I cease not to cry, `The gospel!
the gospel! Christ! Christ!' while my opponents cease not to reply,
`Customs! customs! ordinances! ordinances! Fathers! Fathers!' `Let your
faith,' says St. Paul, `stand not in the wisdom of men, but in the power of
God,' And the apostle, by this thunderbolt from heaven, overthrows and
scatters, like the dust before the wind, all the silly crotchets of this Henry.
To all the sayings of Fathers, men, angels, devils, I oppose not the antiquity
of custom, not the multitude, but the word of the Eternal Majesty, the
gospel, which they themselves are constrained to approve. By it I hold; on it
I rest; in it I glory, triumph, and exult over papists, Thomists, Henrys, and
all the hellish sty. The King of heaven is with me, and therefore I fear
nothing, even should a thousand Augustines, a thousand Cyprians, and a
thousand churches, of which Henry is defender, rise up against me. It is a
small matter for me to despise and lash an earthly king, who himself has not
feared, in his writing, to blaspheme the King of heaven, and profane his
holiness by the most audacious falsehood.
Papists! Will you not desist from your vain pursuits? Do as you please, the
result, however, must be, that before the gospel which I, Martin Luther,
have preached, popes, bishops, priests, monks, princes, devils, death, sin,
and whatever is not Jesus Christ or in Jesus Christ, shall fall and perish."
*615
Soon, however, Henry wanted a divorce from his wife, Catherine, that he
might marry Anne Boleyn. The pope, Clement VII, proposed to grant him
his wish, and actually signed a "decretal by which he himself annulled the
447
Elizabeth, when the polity of the Church of England became fixed, and
thenceforward, it constantly, and at times almost universally, prevailed.
In short, the example set by Henry has been so well and so persistently
followed through the ages that have since passed, that, although the Church
of England still subsists, and, although the sovereign of England still
remains the head of the Church of England and Defender of the Faith, both
the office and the title are of so flexible a character that they easily adapt
themselves to the headship and defense of the faith of Episcopalianism in
England and of Presbyterianism in Scotland. And yet even more and far
better than this, the present sovereign of England, Queen Victoria, has
distinctly renounced the claim of right to rule in matters of faith. In 1859
Her Majesty issued a royal proclamation to her subjects in India, in which
she said these words: -
"Firmly relying, ourselves, on the truth of Christianity, and acknowledging
with gratitude the solace of religion, we disclaim alike the right and the
desire to impose our convictions on any of our subjects. We declare it to be
our royal will and pleasure that none be in any wise favored, none molested
or disquieted, by reason of their religious faith or observances, but that all
shall alike enjoy the equal and impartial protection of the law; and we do
strictly charge and enjoin all those who may be in authority under us that
they abstain from all interference with the religious belief or worship of any
of our subjects, on pain of our highest displeasure.
"And it is our further will that, so far as may be, our subjects, of whatever
race or creed, be freely and impartially admitted to offices in our service,
the duties of which they may be qualified by their education, ability, and
integrity to discharge."
CALVINISM IN GENEVA.
The views of Calvin on the subject of Church and State, were as thoroughly
theocratic as the papal system itself. Augustine was his master and model
throughout. When at the age of twenty-eight, at the urgent call of Farel,
Calvin settled in Geneva, he drew up a condensed statement of Christian
doctrine, in fact a synopsis of his "Institutes," consisting of twenty-one
articles which all the citizens were called up in bunches of ten each, "To
profess and swear to, as the confession of their faith." This method of
making a Calvinistic city was gone through with, Calvin himself said, "with
much satisfaction." This oath and confession of faith were made as citizens,
450
not particularly as church members. They were not asked whether they were
converted; they were not required to be church members; but simply as men
and citizens, were required to take the oath and accept this as the confession
of their faith.
In fact, the oath of allegiance as a citizen, and the confession of faith as a
Christian, were identical. This was at once to make the Church and the State
one and the same thing with the Church above the State. Yea, more than
this, it was wholly to swallow up the civil in the ecclesiastical power; for
the preachers were supreme. It was but another man-made theocracy, after
the model of the papacy. Indeed, according to Calvin's "Institutes," the very
reason of existence of the State, is only as the support and the servant of the
church; and accordingly, when the magistrate inflicts punishment, he is to
be regarded as executing the judgment of God. "What we see on the banks
of the Leman is a theocracy; Jehovah was its head, the Bible was the
supreme code, and the government exercised a presiding and paternal
guardianship over all interests and causes, civil and spiritual." - Wylie. *621
Serious difficulty, however, arose, when it came to enforcing the strictness
of scriptural morality, and the Calvinistic restrictions regarding the dress
and manner of life of the citizens which the two preachers had adopted.
*622 All who had been made Christian citizens by the machine method
before mentioned, resented it, and desired that the strictness of discipline
should be modified. This the preachers looked upon as an attempt of the
civil power to dictate in spiritual matters, and they refused to yield in the
least degree. The people insisted, and the preachers stood firm. The
dissension soon grew so violent that the preachers refused to administer the
sacraments to the people; then the people rose up and banished them from
the city, A. D. 1539.
Calvin went to Strasburg, where he remained two years, during which time
much disorder prevailed in Geneva, and the friends of Calvin insisted all the
time that if only he were recalled, order could be restored. In 1541 the
decree of banishment was revoked, and at "the earnest entreaties of the
Genevese, Calvin returned." He was no less determined than before to have
his own way, and to make his will absolute; and the circumstances under
which he returned, paved the way for him to execute his will as he was not
suffered to do before. "He entered upon his work with a firm determination
to carry out those reforms which he had originally purposed, and to set up in
all its integrity that form of church policy which he had carefully matured
during his residence at Strasburg." The town was divided into parishes, with
451
CALVINISM IN SCOTLAND.
It was stated above that before his death Calvin had the satisfaction of
knowing that his system of church polity had been adopted in Scotland. No
doubt this furnished him much satisfaction indeed. But if he could only
have lived to see the time when that system was being worked in Scotland
according to its perfect ideal, we may well believe that he would have fairly
wept in the fullness of his unspeakable joy.
From A. D. 1638 to 1662, under the Convenanters, the Calvinistic system
was supreme in Scotland; and "the arrogance of the ministers' pretensions
and the readiness with which these pretensions were granted; the appalling
conceptions of the Deity which were inculcated, and the absence of all
contrary expression of opinion; the intrusions on the domain of the
magistrate; the vexatious interference in every detail of family and
commercial life, and the patience with which it was borne, are to an English
reader alike amazing. `We acknowledge,' said they, `that according to the
latitude of the word of God (which is our theame), we are allowed to treate
in an ecclesiastical way of greatest and smallest, from the king's throne that
should be established in righteousness, to the merchant's balance that should
be used in faithfulness.' The liberality of the interpretation given to this can
only be judged of after minute reading." - Encyclopedia Britannica. *626
In fact it was "one of the most detestable tyrannies ever seen on the earth.
When the Scotch Kirk was at the height of its power, we may search history
in vain for any institution which can compete with it, except the Spanish
Inquisition. Between these two, there is a close and intimate analogy. Both
were intolerant, both were cruel, both made war upon the finest parts of
human nature, and both destroyed every vestige of religious freedom." -
Buckle.*627
between them. "The chief scene of these disturbances was Frankfort." John
Knox took the leadership of those who were inclined to Calvinism, while
Cox, who afterward became bishop of Ely, was the chief of those who
defended the forms of the Church of England. Those who maintained the
English form of worship were called Conformists, and those who advocated
Calvinistic forms, were called Non-Conformists. The contentions finally
grew so bitter that the Conformists drove the Non-Conformists out of the
city.
At the accession of Elizabeth, November, 1558, the exiles returned to
England carrying their differences with them. There the Non-Conformists
acquired the nick-name of "Puritans." "A Puritan, therefore, was a man of
severe morals, a Calvinist in doctrine, and a Non-Conformist to the
ceremonies and discipline of the Church [of England], though they did not
totally separate from it." – Neal*628. Yet more than this: they were not only
not separate from the Church of England, but it was not the purpose of the
Puritans to separate from either the church, or the government, of England.
It was their set purpose to remain in, and a part of, both, to "reform" both,
and create and establish instead a Puritan Church of England, and a Puritan
government of England.
The controversy, as already stated, turned upon the forms of worship -
whether the clergy should wear vestments, whether the church should be
governed by bishops, about cathedral churches, and the archdeacons, deans,
canons, and other officials of the same; about festivals and holy-days; the
sign of the cross, god-fathers, god-mothers, etc. The Conformists held
firmly to the form of worship as established under Edward VI; the Puritans
insisted on going the full length in renouncing all the remaining forms and
ceremonies. The queen was not in favor of adopting even the system
established under Edward, but inclined yet more toward the papal system.
Under the circumstances, she rather connived at the efforts of the Puritan
party until she had made herself secure on the throne. In addition to this,
many seeing the queen herself neglecting the forms enjoined by statute, did
the same thing. The result was that the Puritan principles so grew in favor
that in the convocation of 1562, when a motion was made to abolish most of
the usages in dispute, it was lost by only a single vote, the vote standing
fifty-eight for the motion and fifty-nine against it. *629
As Elizabeth saw that the Puritan party was rapidly growing, she thought to
check it by enforcing uniformity according to the established usage. In this
she was zealously supported, if not rather led, by the archbishop of
455
kirk and kingdom in that state which he intended not to alter any ways, his
subjects living in peace." - Neal. *636
This, however, as well as the speech before quoted, was but a piece of that
"kingcraft" upon which James prided himself. He had been brought up
under Calvinistic discipline in Scotland, and had enough of it; and as a
matter of fact, he was only too glad of the opportunity to break loose from
all Presbyterian and Puritan influence; and this opportunity he used to the
full when he reached London. He called a conference of the two church
parties, at which he openly took his stand for Episcopacy and the Church of
England as it was, and renounced all connection with the Puritans, or favor
for them. He told the Puritans in the conference, "If this be all your party
have to say, I will make them conform, or I will harrie them out of the land,
or else worse - hang them, that's all." Not long afterward, he declared in his
council of State, that "his mother and he from their cradles had been
haunted with a Puritan devil, which he feared would not leave him to his
grave; and that he would hazard his crown but he would suppress those
malicious spirits." - Bancroft.*637 Accordingly he issued a proclamation
commanding all Puritans to conform or suffer the full extremity of the laws,
and the archbishop of Canterbury followed it up "with unrelenting rigor."
Meanwhile, some of the Puritans seeing that the prospect from new
Presbytery, was but the same as from old priest, only writ large, drew off
from the Puritan party, as well as from the Church of England, and
advocated a complete separation from both systems as to church
government. They held that each church or assembly of worshipers is
entirely independent of all others, and self-governing; that all points of
doctrine or discipline are to be submitted to the congregation for discussion
and final decision; and that each congregation should elect its own pastor,
etc. For this reason they were called Independents or Congregationalists,
and were nicknamed Separatists.
Upon these the wrath of both Puritans and Conformists was poured with
about equal virulence. As early as 1567, one of these Congregations was
formed in London; but it was forcibly broken up, thirty-one of its members
being imprisoned for nearly a year. Persecution, however, only caused their
numbers to grow, and by 1576 they formed a distinct sect under the
leadership of Robert Brown, from whom they were again nicknamed
Brownists. And still they were subject to the enmity of both old
ecclesiastical parties. Their meetings were broken up by mobs, and the
result to individuals is described as follows, by one who wrote at the time
459
people, led by Francis Higginson, were sent over, and Endicott became
governor of the whole colony.
A Puritan or Calvinistic government was at once established and put into
working order. A church was immediately organized according to the
Congregational form, with Higginson and Samuel Skelton as the ministers.
All, however, were not inclined to Puritanism. Two persons of the former
company at Salem, John and Samuel Browne, took the the lead in
worshiping according to their own wish, conducting their service after the
Episcopal order, using the book of common prayer. Their worship was
forbidden. The Brownes replied, "You are Separatists, and you will shortly
be Anabaptists." The Puritans answered, "We separate, not from the Church
of England, but from its corruptions. We came away from the common
prayer and ceremonies, in our native land, where we suffered much for non-
conformity; in this place of liberty we cannot, we will not, use them. Their
imposition would be a sinful violation of the worship of God." *640 In
return the Brownes were rebuked as Separatists; their defense was
pronounced sedition; their worship was declared mutiny; and they were sent
back to England as "factious and evil-conditioned men," Endicott declaring
that "New England was no place for such as they."
Higginson died in the winter of 1629-30. In 1630 there came over another
company led by John Winthrop and Thomas Dudley, who were the
governor and deputy-governor to succeed Endicott. "Their embarkation in
1630 was the signal of a general movement on the part of the English
Puritans. Before Christmas of that year seventeen ships had come to New
England, bringing more than one thousand passengers." - Fiske. *641
Dudley's views of toleration and liberty of conscience are expressed in the
following lines, which he wrote: -
And Winthrop's estimate of the preachers is seen in his declaration that "I
honored a faithful minister in my heart, and could have kissed his feet."
*643 It was therefore not at all strange that under the government of
Winthrop and Dudley in 1631, the following law should be enacted: -
461
"To the end this body of the commons may be preserved of honest and good
men, it is ordered and agreed that, for the time to come, no man shall be
admitted to the freedom of this body politic but such as are members of
some of the churches within the limits of the same."
"Thus the polity became a theocracy; God himself was to govern his people;
and the `saints by calling,'. . . were, by the fundamental law of the colony,
constituted the oracle of the divine will. . . . Other States have confined
political rights to the opulent, to free-holders, to the first-born; the
Calvinists of Massachusetts, refusing any share of civil power to the clergy,
established the reign of the visible church, a commonwealth of the chosen
people in covenant with God." - Bancroft. *644 This was the Calvinistic
system precisely. The preachers were not to hold office in itself, but they
were to be the rulers of all who did. For, as no man could be a citizen unless
he was a member of the church; and as none could become members of the
churches or even "propounded to the congregation, except they be first
allowed by the elders;" this was to make the preachers supreme. This is
exactly the position they occupied. They were consulted in everything, and
everything must be subject to their dictation.
Other companies of immigrants continued to come, and the colony rapidly
grew. In 1634 there were nearly four thousand in the colony.
In 1631 Roger Williams landed in Boston, and as the death of Higginson
had left a vacancy in the church at Salem, the church called Williams to fill
his place; but as Winthrop and his "assistants" objected, Williams went to
Plymouth Colony.
The leading minister in Massachusetts Colony at this time was John Cotton.
He distinctly taught the blessedness of persecution in itself, and in its
benefit to the State, in the following words: -
"But the good brought to princes and subjects by the due punishment of
apostate seducers and idolaters and blasphemers, is manifold.
"First, it putteth away evil from among the people, and cutteth off a
gangrene, which would spread to further ungodliness. . . . .
"Secondly, it driveth away wolves from worrying and scattering the sheep
of Christ. For false teachers be wolves, . . . and the very name of wolves
holdeth forth what benefit will redound to the sheep, by either killing them
or driving them away.
462
"Thirdly, such executions upon such evil doers causeth all the country to
heare and feare and doe no more such wickednesse. . . . Yea, as these
punishments are preventions of like wickednesse in some, so are they
wholesome medicines, to heale such as are curable of these eviles. . . .
"Fourthly, the punishments executed upon false prophets and seducing
teachers, doe bring downe showers of God's blessings upon the civill state .
...
"Fifthly, it is an honour to God's justice that such judgments are executed.
*645. . . .
And Samuel Shepard, a minister of Charlestown, preached an election
sermon entitled "Eye Salve," in which he set forth the following views: -
"Men's lusts are sweet to them, and they would not be disturbed or
disquieted in their sin. Hence there be so many such as cry up tolleration
boundless and libertinism so as (if it were in their power) to order a total
and perpetual confinement of the sword of the civil magistrate unto its
scabbard (a motion that is evidently diestructive to this people, and to the
publick liberty, peace, and prosperity of any instituted churches under
heaven).
"Let the magistrate's coercive power in matters of religion, therefore, be still
asserted, seeing he is one who is bound to God more than any other man to
cherish his true religion; . . . and how wofull would the state of things soon
be among us, if men might have liberty without controll to profess, or
preach, or print, or publish what they list, tending to the seduction of
others." *646
In accordance with these principles, every inhabitant of the colony was
obliged to attend the services of the Established Church on Sunday under
penalty of fine or imprisonment. The fine was not to exceed five shillings,
equal to about five dollars of the present day, for every absence.
About 1633 Roger Williams was called a second time to the ministry of the
Salem church. This time he was allowed to take the place; but it was not
long before he was again in trouble with the theocrats. He denounced their
laws making church membership a qualification for office, and all their
laws enforcing religious observances.
He declared that the worst law in the English code was that by which they
themselves when in England had been compelled to attend the parish
463
conscience that ever I pleaded for turns upon these two hinges, that none of
the Papists, Protestants, Jews, or Turks be forced to come to the ship's
prayers or worship, nor compelled from their particular prayers or worship,
if they practice any." *650 "The removal of the yoke of soul-oppression, as
it will prove an act of mercy and righteousness to the enslaved nations, so it
is of binding force to engage the whole and every interest and conscience to
preserve the common liberty and peace." *651
He also denied the right of the compulsory imposition of an oath. The
magistrates had decided to require an oath of allegiance to Massachusetts,
instead of to the king of England. Williams would not take the oath, and his
influence was so great that so many others refused also that the government
was compelled to drop the project. This caused them to raise a charge
against him as the ally of a civil faction. The church at Salem stood by him,
and in the face of the enmity of the theocrats elected him their teacher. This
was no sooner done than the preachers met together and declared that any
one who should obstinately assert that "the civil magistrate might not
intermeddle even to stop a church from apostasy and heresy," was worthy of
banishment. A committee of their order was appointed to go to Salem and
deal with Williams and the church "in a church way."
Meantime the people of Salem were punished for choosing him for their
teacher, by the withholding of a tract of land to which they had laid claim.
Williams was ready to meet the committee at every point in expressing and
defining his doctrines, and in refuting all their claims. After the committee
had returned, the church by Williams wrote letters to all the churches of
which any of the magistrates were members, "that they should admonish the
magistrates of their injustice." By the next general court the whole of Salem
was disfranchised until they should apologize for these letters. The town
and the church yielded. Roger Williams stood alone. He was able and
willing to do it, and at once declared his "own voluntary withdrawing from
all these churches which were resolved to continue in persecuting the
witnesses of the Lord," and "hoped the Lord Jesus was sounding forth in
him the blast which should in his own holy season cast down the strength
and confidence of those inventions of men." In October, 1635, he was
summoned before the chief representatives of the State. He went and
"maintained the rocky strength" of his position, and declared himself "ready
to be bound and banished, and even to die in New England," rather than to
renounce his convictions.
465
ffurther, it is ordered, that noe peson, being a member of any churche which
shall hereafter be gathered without the approbacon of the magistrates, & the
greater pte of the said churches, shall be admitted to the freedom of this
comonwealthe." *653
In May, 1636, Henry Vane was elected governor. Some time before this
Anne Hutchinson, with her family, had come over from Lincolnshire, being
followed later by her brother-in-law, John Wheelwright. She was an
excellent woman, and made many friends, and at her house held religious
meetings for women. The object of these meetings. was to talk over the
sermons for mutual edification; but as was natural, they drifted into the
discussion of the ministers rather than their sermons. In one of these
meetings Mrs. Hutchinson happened to remark that of the ministers "none
did preach the covenant of free grace but Master Cotton," and that they "had
not the seal of the Spirit, and so were not able ministers of the New
Testament." This remark soon got into circulation among the preachers, and
of course was not at all palatable.
As Cotton was named as the one exemplary minister, in October the
ministers went in a body to his house to call him to account. Cotton
proposed that the other ministers and Mrs. Hutchinson should have a
friendly interview at his house, in order to come to an understanding. She,
suspecting a trap, was rather wary at first, and declined to commit herself to
any definite statement upon the point at issue, but being urged by the "Rev."
Hugh Peters to deal fairly and honestly with them, she allowed herself at
last to be persuaded to say that the report was in substance true, and that she
did in truth see a wide difference between Cotton's preaching and theirs;
"that they could not preach a covenant of grace so clearly as he, because
they had not the seal of the Spirit."
Instead of the preachers' being reconciled to Mrs. Hutchinson's view, or to
Cotton, their enmity was deepened. The matter spread more and more, and
the colony was divided into two parties; and at the head of the Hutchinson
party was Vane, the governor.
In January 1637, on a fast-day, John Wheelwright preached in Boston to the
effect that "it maketh no matter how seemingly holy men be according to
the law, if . . . they are such as trust to their own righteousness they shall
die, saith the Lord. Do ye not after their works; for they say and do not.
They make broad their phylacteries, and enlarge the borders of their
garments; and love the uppermost rooms at feasts, and the chief seats in the
synagogues; and greetings in the market place, and to be called of men,
467
Rabbi, Rabbi. But believe on the Lord Jesus Christ, and ye shall be saved,
for being justified by faith we have peace with God through our Lord Jesus
Christ. And the way we must take if so be we will not have the Lord Jesus
Christ taken from us is this: we must all prepare a spiritual combat, we must
put on the whole armor of God, and must have our loins girt up and be
ready to fight; . . . because of fear, in the night, if we will not fight, the Lord
Jesus Christ may come to be surprised." *654
This brought matters to a crisis. In March the legislature met, and a court
was appointed, composed of Henry Vane, twelve magistrates, twelve
preachers, and thirty-three deputies. Wheelwright was arraigned before the
court. His sermon was brought forth, and an attempt was made to have him
admit that when he spoke in the sermon of those under a covenant of works,
he meant his brother ministers in the colony. Of course it was easy for him
to throw the matter on them. He demanded that they controvert his doctrine.
He said he was ready to prove by the Scriptures that the doctrine was true.
As to who was meant in the sermon, he told them that "if he were shown
any that walked in such a way as he had described to be a covenant of
works, them did he mean." The rest of the ministers were asked by the court
if they "did walk in such a way." "They all acknowledged that they did,"
except Cotton, who declared that "Brother Wheelwright's doctrine was
according to God in the parts controverted, and wholly and altogether."
By hard work the opposition succeeded in having Wheelwright convicted of
sedition; but they were not able to secure sentence at once, and had him
remanded to the next session. As soon as the decision was known, more
than sixty of the leading citizens of Boston signed a petition to the court in
behalf of Wheelwright, in which they referred to the persecution as a
restriction of the right of free speech, and among other things said: -
"Paul was counted a pestilent fellow, or a mover of sedition, and a
ringleader of a sect, . . . and Christ himselfe, as well as Paul, was charged to
bee a teacher of new doctrine. . . . Now wee beseech you, consider whether
that old serpent work not after his old method, even in our dailies. . . .
Thirdly, if you look at the effects of his doctrine upon the hearers, it hath
not stirred up sedition in us, not so much as by accident; wee have not
drawn the sword, as sometimes Peter did, rashly, neither have wee rescued
our innocent brother, as sometimes the Israelites did Jonathan; and yet they
did not seditiously. The covenant of free grace held forth by our brother
hath taught us rather to become humble suppliants to your worships, and if
468
wee should not prevaile, wee would rather with patience give our cheekes to
the smeiters." *655
It is not necessary to follow particulars farther; the question was made the
issue at the next election. Wheelwright's enemies carried the day, electing
Winthrop governor. At the next session held in November, he was
summoned to appear, and was ordered to submit, or prepare for sentence.
He maintained that as he had preached only the truth of Christ, he was
guilty of neither sedition nor contempt. The court replied that they had not
censured his doctrine, but had left that as it was; but the censure was upon
the application by which "he laid the magistrates and ministers and most of
the people in this church under a covenant of works." He was sentenced to
be disfranchised and banished, and he was given fourteen days to leave
Massachusetts. Like Roger Williams, he was compelled to go forth alone in
the bitterness of the New England winter.
Wheelwright was no sooner out of the way than they proceeded to try his
friends who had presented the petition, and these men who had not only in
the petition disclaimed any thought of sedition, but had said that if their
petition was not heard, they "would rather with patience give their cheekes
to the smiters," were held to be public enemies. "Such scruples, however,
never hampered the theocracy. Their justice was trammeled neither by
judges, by juries, nor by laws." - Adams. *656
This accomplished, they next proceeded to execute vengeance on Anne
Hutchinson, the chief traitor, and the cause of all their dissension. In
November, 1637, "she was brought to trial before that ghastliest den of
human iniquity, an ecclesiastical criminal court. The ministers were her
accusers, who came burning with hate to testify to the words she had
spoken to them at their own request, in the belief that the confidence she
reposed was to be held sacred. She had no jury to whose manhood she could
appeal, and John Winthrop, to his lasting shame, was to prosecute her from
the judgment seat. She was soon to become a mother, and her health was
feeble; but she was made to stand till she was exhausted; and yet abandoned
and forlorn, before those merciless judges, through two long, weary days of
hunger and of cold, the intrepid woman defended her cause with a skill and
courage which even now, after two hundred and fifty years, kindles the
heart with admiration.
"The case for the government was opened by John Winthrop, the presiding
justice, the attorney-general, the foreman of the jury, and the chief
magistrate of Massachusetts Bay. He upbraided the prisoner with her many
469
evil courses, with having spoken things prejudicial to the honor of the
ministers, with holding an assembly in her house, and with divulging the
opinions held by those who had been censured by that court." - Adams.
*657. The proceedings then continued after the following order: -
Governor Winthrop. - "We have thought good to send for you, . . . that if
you be in an erroneous way, we may reduce you that so you may become a
profitable member here among us; otherwise if you be obstinate, . . . that
then the court may take such course that you may trouble us no further.
Therefore I would entreat you. . . whether you do not justify Mr.
Wheelwright's sermon and the petition?"
Mrs. Hutchinson. - "I am called here to answer before you, but I hear no
things laid to my charge."
Gov. - "I have told you some already, and more I can tell you."
Mrs. H. - "Name one, sir."
Gov. - "Have I not named some already?"
Mrs. H. - "What have I said or done?". . .
Gov. - "You have joined with them in faction."
Mrs. H.- "In what faction have I joined them?"
Gov. - "In presenting the petition." . . .
Mrs. H. "But I had not my hand to the petition."
Gov. - "You have counseled them."
Mrs. H. - Wherein?"
Gov. - "Why, in entertaining them."
Mrs. H. - "What breach of law is that, sir?"
Gov. - "Why, dishonoring of parents." . . .
Mrs. H. - "I may put honor upon them as the children of God, and as they
do honor the Lord."
Gov. - "We do not mean to discourse with those of your sex, but only this:
you do adhere unto them, and do endeavor to set forward this faction, and
so you do dishonor us."
Mrs. H. - "I do acknowledge no such thing, neither do I think that I ever put
any dishonor upon you."
470
Gov. - . . . "I see a marvelous providence of God to bring things to this pass.
. . . God by a providence hath answered our desires, and made her to lay
open herself and the ground of all these disturbances to be by revelations." .
..
Court. - "We all consent with you."
Gov. - "Ey, it is the most desperate enthusiasm in the world." . . .
Mr. Endicott. - "I speak in reference to Mr. Cotton. . . . Whether do you
witness for her or against her?"
Mr. C. - "This is that I said, sir, and my answer is plain, that if she doth look
for deliverance from the hand of God by his providence, and the revelation
be . . . according to a word [of Scripture], that I cannot deny."
Mr. Endicott. - "You give me satisfaction."
Dep.Gov. - "No, no; he gives me none at all."
Mr. C. - "I pray, sir, give me leave to express myself. In that sense that she
speaks I dare not bear witness against it."
Mr. Nowell. - "I think it is a devilish delusion."
Gov. - "Of all the revelations that ever I read of, I never read the like ground
laid as is for this. The enthusiasts and Anabaptists had never the like." . . .
Mr. Peters. - "I can say the same; . . . and I think that is very disputable
which our Brother Cotton hath spoken." . . .
Gov. - "I am persuaded that the revelation she brings forth is delusion."
All the court (except two or three ministers). - "We all believe it, we all
believe it." . . .
Coddington. - "I beseech you do not speak so to force things along, for I do
not for my own part see any equity in the court in all your proceedings.
Here is no law of God that she hath broken, nor any law of the country that
she hath broke, and therefore deserves no censure; and if she say that the
elders preach as the apostles did, why they preached a covenant of grace,
and what wrong is that to them? . . . Therefore I pray consider what you do,
for here is no law of God or man broken."
Mr. Peters. - "I confess I thought Mr. Cotton would never have took her
part."
474
"And all this time she had been alone; her friends were far away. That no
circumstance of horror might be lost, she and one of her most devoted
followers, Mary Dyer, were nearing their confinements during this time of
misery. Both cases ended in misfortunes over whose sickening details
Thomas Welde and his reverend brethren gloated with a savage joy,
declaring that `God himselfe was pleased to step in with his casting vote . . .
as clearly as if he had pointed
with his finger.' Let posterity draw a veil over the shocking scene." -Adams.
*661
Happily she escaped with her life. A few days after her condemnation, the
governor sent her a warrant banishing her from the territory of
Massachusetts. At the solicitation of Roger Williams, she and her friends
went to Narragansett Bay. Miantonomoh made them a present of the island
of Rhode Island, where they settled.
In 1636 about a hundred people, under the leadership of Thomas Hooker, a
minister second only to Cotton in the estimate of the colonists, removed
from Massachusetts Colony to the valley of the Connecticut, and
established there the towns of Springfield, Windsor, Hartford, and
Wethersfield; and January 14, 1639, Springfield preferring to remain in the
jurisdiction of Massachusetts, the three remaining towns established a form
of government under eleven "fundamental orders," the preamble of which is
as follows: -
"Forasmuch as it hath pleased the Almighty God by the wise disposition of
his divine providence so to order and dispose of things that we, the
inhabitants and residents of Windsor, Hartford, and Wethersfield are now
cohabiting and dwelling in and upon the river of Connecticut and the lands
thereunto adjoining; and well knowing where a people are gathered
together, the word of God requires that to maintain the peace and union of
such a people there should be an orderly and decent government established
according to God, to order and dispose of the affairs of the people at all
seasons as occasion shall require; do therefore associate and conjoin
ourselves to be as one public state or commonwealth; and do for ourselves
and our successors and such as shall be adjoined to us at any time hereafter,
enter into combination and confederation together, to maintain and pursue
the liberty and purity of the gospel of our Lord Jesus which we now profess,
as also the discipline of the churches which according to the truth of the
said gospel is now practiced amongst us; as also in our civil affairs to be
476
guided and governed according to such laws, rules, orders, and decrees as
shall be made, ordered, and decreed." *662
Order number four was to the effect that the governor should "be always a
member of some approved congregation, and formerly of the magistracy
within this jurisdiction." The oath of office for the governor was as follows:
-
"I, ________, being now chosen to be governor within this jurisdiction, for
the year ensuing, and until a new be chosen, do swear by the great and
dreadful name of the everliving God, to promote the public good and peace
of the same, according to the best of my skill; as also will maintain all
lawful privileges of this commonwealth; as also that all wholesome laws
that are or shall be made by lawful authority here established, be duly
executed; and will further the execution of justice according to the rule of
God's word; so help me God in the name of the Lord Jesus Christ."*663
The oath of the magistrate was substantially the same. Unlike
Massachusetts, church membership was not required in order to be a voter.
Persons became citizens by vote of the major part of the town where they
lived, or the major part of such as should be then present and taking the
"oath of fidelity."
In 1637 a colony of Puritan immigrants with John Davenport as their pastor,
arrived in Boston, and remained until the spring of 1638, then founded the
town and colony of New Haven. In 1639 a colony from New Haven settled
the town of Milford, and another company from England settled the town of
Guilford. In the same year a form of government was established, and "by
the influence of Davenport it was resolved that the Scriptures are the perfect
rule of the commonwealth; that the purity and peace of the ordinances to
themselves and their posterity were the great end of civil order; and that
church members only should be free burgesses." - Bancroft.*664 A
committee of twelve was appointed to nominate seven men to become
magistrates. In August the seven met together to put into working order the
forms of the new government. "Abrogating every previous executive trust,
they admitted to the court all church members; the character of civil
magistrates was next expounded `from the sacred oracles; ' and the election
followed. Then Davenport, in the words of Moses to Israel in the
wilderness, gave a charge to the governor to judge righteously; `The cause
that is too hard for you,' such was part of the minister's text, `bring it to me,
and I will hear it.' Annual elections were ordered; and God's word
established as the only rule in public affairs." The other towns followed this
477
example, and thus "the power of the clergy reached its extreme point in
New Haven, for each of the towns was governed by seven ecclesiastical
officers known as `pillars of the church.' These magistrates served as
judges, and trial by jury was dispensed with, because no authority could be
found for it in the laws of Moses." - Fiske.*665
In 1643 the four colonies of Massachusetts, Plymouth, Connecticut, and
new Haven formed a league called the United Colonies of New England,
the purpose of which was defined as follows: -
"Whereas wee all came into these parts of America with one and the same
end and ayme; namely, to advaunce the kingdome of our Lord Jesus Christ
and to enjoy the liberties of the gospell in puritie with peace; And, whereas,
in our settleinge (by a wise Providence of God) wee are further dispersed
vpon the sea coasts and riuers than was at first intended, so that wee cannot
according to our desire with convenience communicate in one govurnment
and jurisdiccon, . . . we therefore doe conceiue it our bounden dutye without
delay to enter into a present consotiation amongst our selues for mutuall
help and strength in all our future concernments: That as in nation and
religion so in other respects wee bee and continue one according to the
tenor and true meaneing of the ensuing articles: Wherefore it is fully agreed
and concluded by and between the parties of jurisdiccons aboue named, and
they jointly and seuerally doe by these presents agree and conclude that
they all bee and henceforth bee called by the name of The United Colonies
of New England.
"1. The said United Colonies for themselves and their posterities do joyntly
and seuerally hereby enter into a firme and perpetuall league of friendship
and amytie for offence and defence, mutuall advise, and succour vpon all
just occasions both for prescrueing and propagateing the truth and liberties
of the gospell and for their owne mutuall safety and wellfare. . . .
"6. It is also agreed that for the managing and concluding of all affaires
proper and concerning the whole Confederacon two commissioners shall be
chosen by and out of eich of these foure jurisdiccons; namely, two for the
Massachusetts, two for Plymouth, two for Connectacutt, and two for New
Haven, being all in church fellowship with us which shall bring full power
from their seueral generall courts respectively to heare examine, weigh, and
determine all affairs," etc.*666
The population of the four colonies was about twenty-four thousand,
Massachusetts having about fifteen thousand, and the other three colonies
about three thousand each. The Federal Commissioners formed an advisory
478
arrest "certain erroneous persons being strangers." The three ministers were
carried off at once to the tavern, and were notified that they must attend
worship at the parish church in the afternoon. They protested, saying that if
they were forced into the meeting-house, they should be obliged to dissent
from the service. The constable told them that was nothing to him. He was
ordered to bring them to church, and to church they must go. As they
entered the meeting-house, the congregation was at prayers, and the three
prisoners took off their hats; but as soon as the prayer was over, they put on
their hats again, and began reading in their seats. The officers were ordered
to take off their hats again.
When the service was over, Elder Clarke asked permission to speak. His
request was granted on condition that he would not speak about what he had
just heard preached. He began to explain why he had put on his hat, saying
that he "could not judge that they were gathered according to the visible
order of the Lord." He was allowed to proceed no further, and the three
were shut up for the night. The following Tuesday they were taken to
Boston and put in prison. July 31, they were tried before the court of
assistants, and were fined, Clarke twenty pounds, Holmes thirty, and John
Crandall five, "or each to be well whipped." At the beginning of the trial
Elder Clarke had asked that they be shown the law under which they were
being tried, and now he made the same request again, but Endicott broke in,
"You have deserved death. I will not have such trash brought into our
jurisdiction. You go up and down, and secretly insinuate things into those
that are weak, but you cannot maintain it before our ministers; you may try
a dispute with them."
As they were sent away from the court to prison, Elder Holmes says, "As I
went from the bar, I exprest myself in these words: `I blesse God I am
counted worthy to suffer for the name of Jesus; whereupon John Wilson
(their pastor, as they call him) strook me before the judgment-seat, and
cursed me, saying, `The curse of God . . . goe with thee;' so we were carried
to the prison."
The Baptists were ready to defend their doctrines as well as to attack the
popish ceremonies of the Puritans; therefore Elder Clarke, as soon as they
had arrived at the prison, wrote a letter to the court, and proposed to debate
the Baptist principles with any of their ministers. He was asked in reply
what the Baptist principles were that he would debate. Clarke drew up four
propositions, the first stating their faith in Christ; second, that baptism, or
dipping in water, is one of the commandments of the Lord Jesus Christ, and
481
that a visible believer or disciple of Christ Jesus (that is, one who manifests
repentance toward and faith in Jesus Christ) is the only person to be
baptized or dipped in water etc.; third, that every such believer in Christ
may in point of liberty, and ought in point of duty, to improve that talent
which the Lord had given him, and in the congregation may ask for
information to himself; or if he can, may speak by way of prophecy, for
edification, and upon all occasions and in all places as far as the jurisdiction
of his Lord extends, may and ought to walk as a child of light; and, fourth,
"I testify that no such believer or servant of Christ Jesus hath any liberty,
much less authority, from his Lord, to smite his fellow-servant, nor with
outward force, or arm of flesh to constrain, or restrain, his conscience, nor
his outward man for conscience' sake, or worship of his God, where injury
is not offered to any person, name, or estate of others, every man being such
as shall appear before the judgment-seat of Christ, and must give an account
of himself to God; and, therefore, ought to be fully persuaded in his own
mind for what he undertakes, because he that doubteth is damned if he eat,
and so also if he act, because he doth not eat or act in faith, and what is not
of faith is sin."
There was at first some talk, or rather a bluff, that Cotton would debate with
him; but after consulting together, Cotton declined, and as Elder Clarke's
fine had been paid by his friends, he was released, and ordered to go out of
the colony as soon as possible. They all three refused to pay the fine that
was imposed. Crandall was admitted to bail, but they resolved to hold Elder
Holmes, and make him an example. What happened to him he himself tells
in a letter to his brethren in London, as follows: -
"I desired to speak a few words: but Mr. Nowel answered, `It is not now a
time to speak,' whereupon I took leave, and said. 'Men, brethren, fathers,
and countrymen, I beseech you to give me leave to speak a few words, and
the rather because here are many spectators to see me punished, and I am to
seal with my blood, if God give strength, that which I hold and practice in
reference to the word of God and the testimony of Jesus. That which I have
to say, in brief, is this although I am no disputant, yet seeing I am to seal
with my blood what I hold, I am ready to defend by the word, and to dispute
that point with any that shall come forth to withstand it.' Mr. Nowel
answered, now was no time to dispute; then said I, 'I desire to give an
account of the faith and order which I hold,' and this`I desired three times;
but in comes Mr. Flint, and saith to the executioner, `Fellow, do thine
office, for this fellow would but make a long speech to delude the people,'
so I, being resolved to speak, told the people, `That which I am to suffer for
482
is the word of God, and testimony of Jesus Christ.' `No,' saith Mr. Nowel,
`it is for your error, and going about to seduce the people; 'to which I
replied, `Not for error, for in all the time of my imprisonment, wherein I
was left alone, my brethren being gone, which of all your ministers came to
convince me of error? And, when upon the governor's words, a motion was
made for a public dispute, and often renewed upon fair terms, and desired
by hundreds, what was the reason it was not granted?' Mr. Nowel told me, it
was his fault who went away and would not dispute; but this the writings
will clear at large. Still Mr. Flint calls to the man to do his office; so before,
and in the time of his pulling off my clothes, I continued speaking, telling
them that I had so learned that for all Boston I would not give my body into
their hands thus to be bruised upon another account, yet upon this I would
not give an hundredth part of a wampum peague to free it out of their hands;
and that I made as much conscience of unbuttoning one button, as I did of
paying the thirty pounds in reference thereunto. I told them, moreover, that
the Lord having manifested his love towards me in giving me repentance
towards God, and faith in Christ, and so to be baptized in water by a
messenger of Jesus, in the name of the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit,
wherein I have fellowship with him in his death, burial and resurrection, I
am now come to be baptized in afflictions by your hands, that so I may have
further fellowship with my Lord, and am not ashamed of his sufferings, for
by his stripes am I healed. And as the man began to lay the strokes upon my
back, I said to the people. `Though my flesh should fail, and my spirit
should fail, yet God would not fail;' so it pleased the Lord to come in, and to
fill my heart and tongue as a vessel full, and with an audible voice I break
forth, praying the Lord not to lay this sin to their charge, and telling the
people that now I found he did not fail me, and therefore now I should trust
him forever who failed me not; for in truth, as the strokes fell upon me. I
had such a spiritual manifestation of God's presence, as I never had before,
and the outward pain was so removed from me, that I could well bear it,
yea, and in a manner felt it not, although it was grievous, as the spectators
said, the man striking with all his strength, spitting in his hand three times,
with a three-corded whip, giving me therewith thirty strokes. When he had
loosed me from the post, having joyfulness in my heart, and cheerfulness in
my countenance, as the spectators observed, I told the magistrates, `You
have struck me with roses;' and said, moreover, `Although the Lord hath
made it easy to me, yet I pray God it may not be laid to your charge."
When the whipping was over, two men, John Hazel and John Spur, went up
to the suffering man, and shook hands with him, Hazel not speaking
483
anything at all, and Spur simply saying, "Blessed be the Lord;" yet both
were fined forty shillings, with the choice of paying the fine or being
whipped. They both refused to pay the fine, but a friend paid Spur's, and
after imprisonment for a week, another paid Hazel's. The whipping of
Holmes was thirty lashes with a three-thonged whip of knotted cord wielded
with both hands, and was so severe that when taken back to prison, his
lacerated body could not bear to touch the bed. For many days he was
compelled to rest propped up on his hands and knees. In prison an old
acquaintance came "with much tenderness like the good Samaritan," to
comfort him and dress his wounds, and even against him information was
given, and inquiry made as to who was the surgeon. When Elder Holmes's
letter reached his friends in London, they published it, upon which Sir
Richard Saltonstall wrote to the Boston preachers the following letter: -
"Reverend and dear friends, whom I unfeignedly love and respect: It doth
not a little grieve my spirit to hear what sad things are reported daily of your
tyranny and persecution in New England; that you fine, whip, and imprison
men for their consciences. First, you compel such to come into your
assemblies as you know will not join with you in worship, and when they
show their dislike thereof, or witness against it, then you stir up your
magistrates to punish them for such (as you conceive) their public affronts.
Truly, friends, this practice of compelling any in matters of worship to do
that whereof they are not fully persuaded, is to make them sin, for so the
apostle tells us (Rom. xiv, 23); and many are made hypocrites thereby,
conforming in their outward man for fear of punishment. We pray for you
and wish your prosperity every way; hoped the Lord would have given you
so much light and love there, that you might have been eyes to God's people
here, and not to practice those courses in a wilderness, which you went so
far to prevent. These rigid ways have laid you very low in the hearts of the
saints. I do assure you I have heard them pray in public assemblies, that the
Lord would give you meek and humble spirits, not to strive so much for
uniformity as to keep the unity of the Spirit in the bond of peace. When I
was in Holland, about the beginning of our wars,I remember some
Christians there, that then had serious thoughts of planting in New England,
desired me to write to the governor thereof, to know if those that differ from
you in opinion, yet holding the same foundation in religion, as Anabaptists,
Seekers, Antinomians, and the like, might be permitted to live among you;
to which I received this short answer from your then governor, Mr. Dudley:
`God forbid,' said he, `our love for the truth should be grown so cold that we
should tolerate errors.'
484
It is important to know what answer was made to this, and to know the
arguments that were used by the New England theocracy to justify these
wicked persecutions. The preachers answered Sir Richard's letter, by the
hand of their chief, John Cotton. And the letter runs as follows: -
"Honored and dear Sir: My Brother Wilson and self do both of us
acknowledge your love, as otherwise formerly, so now in late lines we
received from you, that you grieve in spirit to hear daily complaints against
us; it springeth from your compassion for our afflictions therein, wherein
we see just cause to desire you may never suffer like injury in yourself, but
may find others to compassionate and condole with you. For when the
complaints you hear of are against our tyranny and persecution in fining,
whipping, and imprisoning men for their consciences, be pleased to
understand we look at such complaints as altogether injurious in respect of
ourselves, who had no hand or tongue at all to promote either the coming of
the persons you aim at into our assemblies, or their punishment for their
carriage there. Righteous judgments will not take up reports, much less
reproaches against the innocent. The cry of the sins of Sodom was great and
loud, and reached unto heaven; yet the righteous God (giving us an example
what to do in the like case) he would first go down to see whether their
crimes were altogether according to the cry, before he would proceed to
judgment. Gen. xviii, 20, 21. And when he did find the truth of the cry, he
did not wrap up all alike promiscuously in the judgment, but spared such as
he found innocent. We are amongst those (if you knew us better) you would
account of as (as the matron of Abel spake of herself) peaceable in Israel. 2
Sam. xx, 19. Yet neither are we so vast in our indulgence or toleration as to
think the men you speak of suffered an unjust censure. For one of them,
Obadiah Holmes, being an excommunicate person himself, out of a church
in Plymouth patent, came into this jurisdiction and took upon him to
baptize, which I think himself will not say he was compelled here to
perform. And he was not ignorant that the rebaptizing of an elder person,
and that by a private person out of office and under excommunication, are
all of them manifest contestations against the order and government of our
churches, established, we know, by God's law, and he knoweth by the laws
of the country. And we conceive we may safely appeal to the ingenuity of
your own judgment. whether it would be tolerated in any civil state, for a
stranger to come and practise contrary to the known principles of the church
estate? As for his whipping, it was more voluntarily chosen by him than
inflicted on him. His censure by the court was to have paid, as I know,
thirty pounds, or else to be whipt: his fine was offered to be paid by friends
485
for him freely; but he chose rather to be whipt; in which case, if his
sufferings of stripes was any worship of God at all, surely it could be
accounted no better than will worship. The other, Mr. Clarke, was wiser in
that point, and his offense was less, so was his fine less, and himself, as I
hear, was contented to have it paid for him, whereupon he was released. The
imprisonment of either of them was no detriment. I believe they fared
neither of them better at home; and I am sure Holmes had not been so well
clad for years before.
"But be pleased to consider this point a little further: You think to compel
men in matter of worship is to make them sin, according to Rom. xiv, 23. If
the worship be lawful in itself, the magistrate compelling to come to it,
compelleth him not to sin, but the sin is in his will that needs to be
compelled to a Christian duty. Josiah compelled all Israel, or, which is all
one, made to serve the Lord their God. 2 Chron. xxxiv, 33. Yet his act
herein was not blamed, but recorded among his virtuous actions. For a
governor to suffer any within his gates to profane the Sabbath, is a sin
against the fourth commandment, both in the private householder and in the
magistrate; and if he requires them to present themselves before the Lord,
the magistrate sinneth not, nor doth the subject sin so great a sin as if he did
refrain to come. But you say it doth but make men hypocrites, to compel
men to conform the outward man for fear of punishment. If it did so, yet
better be hypocrites than profane persons. Hypocrites give God part of his
due, the outward man; but the profane person giveth God neither outward
nor inward man. Nevertheless, I tell you the truth, we have tolerated in our
church some Anabaptists, some Antinomians, and some Seekers, and do so
still at this day.*669
In 1655 Thomas Gould of Charlestown refused to have his baby sprinkled
and christened. The regular preacher ordered the church "to lay him under
admonition, which the church was backward to do." Not long afterward he
was at church as the law required him to be, and when the time of
sprinkling the children came, he went out. He was spoken to about it, but
told them he could not stay because he "lookt upon it as no ordinance of
Christ. They told me that now I had made known my judgment, I might
stay. . . . So I stayed, and sat down in my seat, when they were at prayer and
administering the service to infants. Then they dealt with me for my
unreverent carriage." Their dealing with him was to admonish him and
exclude him from the communion.
486
In October, 1656, he was accused before the county court for denying
baptism to his child. Of course he was convicted. He was admonished and
given till the next term to consider his ways. During this time they made it
so unpleasant for him that he ceased attending the church at Charlestown,
and went to church at Cambridge instead. But this, being an apparent slight
upon the minister, was only a new offense. Although not actually punished,
he was subjected to petty annoyances, being again and again summoned
both to the church and to the court to be admonished, until in May 28, 1665,
he withdrew entirely from the Congregational Church, and with eight others
formed a Baptist church. This being "schismatical," was counted as open
rebellion, and Gould and his brethren were summoned to appear before the
church the next Sunday. They told the magistrates that they could not go at
that time, but the following Sunday they would be there; but the minister
refused to wait, and in his sermon "laid out the sins of these men, and
delivered them up to Satan."
They were called before one court after another, until their case reached the
general court in October. Those among them who were freeman were
disfranchised, and if they should be convicted again of continued schism,
were to be imprisoned until further order. In April, 1666, they were fined
four pounds, and were imprisoned until September, when they were ordered
to be discharged upon payment of fines and costs. In April, 1668, they were
ordered by the governor and council to appear at the meeting-house at nine
o'clock on the morning of April 14, to meet six ministers who would debate
with them. The debate, however, did not amount to much except that it gave
to the ministers an opportunity to denounce the Baptists as they wished. The
Baptists, asking for liberty to speak, were told that they stood there as
delinquents, and ought not to have liberty to speak. Two days were spent in
this way, when at the end of the second day, "Rev." Jonathan Mitchell
pronounced the following sentence from Deut. xvii, 9-12: -
"And thou shalt come unto the priests and the Levites, and unto the judge
that shall be in those days, and inquire; and they shall show thee the
sentence of judgment: And thou shalt do according to the sentence, which
they of that place which the Lord shall choose, shall show thee; and thou
shalt observe to do according to all that they inform thee. According to the
sentence of the law which they shall teach thee, and according to the
judgment which they shall tell thee, thou shalt do; thou shalt not decline
from the sentence which they shall show thee, to the right hand nor to the
left. And the man that will do presumptuously, and will not hearken unto
487
the priest that standeth to minister there before the Lord thy God, or unto
the judge, even that man shall die; and thou shalt put away evil from Israel.
May 27, Gould and two of his brethern as "obstinate and turbulent
Anabaptists," were banished under penalty of perpetual imprisonment. They
remained. Accordingly they were imprisoned. By this persecution much
sympathy was awakened in the community, and a petition in their behalf
was signed by sixty-six of the inhabitants of Charlestown, among whom
were some of the most prominent citizens. The petition was to the
legislature, and prayed for mercy upon the prisoners, saying, "They be aged
and weakly men; . . .the sense of this their . . . most deplorable and afflicted
condition hath sadly affected the hearts of many . . . Christians, and such as
neither approve of their judgment or practice; especially considering that the
men are reputed godly, and of a blameless conversation. . . We therefore
most humbly beseech this honored court, in their Christian mercy and
bowels of compassion, to pity and relieve these poor prisoners." *670 The
petition was by vote declared scandalous and reproachful. The two persons
who had taken the lead in getting it up, were fined, one ten and the other
five pounds, and all the others who had signed the petition were compelled
to sign a document expressing their sorrow for giving the court such just
grounds of offense.
Report of these proceedings having reached England, thirteen of the
Congregational ministers wrote, by the hand of Robert Mascall, a letter to
their brethren in New England, in which they said: -
"O, how it grieves and affects us, that New England should persecute! Will
you not give what you take? Is liberty of conscience your due? And is it not
as due unto others who are sound in the faith? Amongst many Scriptures,
that in the fourteenth of Romans much confirms me in liberty of conscience
thus stated. To him that esteemeth anything unclean, to him it is unclean.
Therefore though we approve of the baptism of the immediate children of
church members, and of their admission into the church when they evidence
a real work of grace, yet to those who in conscience believe the said
baptism to be unclean, it is unclean. Both that and mere ruling elders,
though we approve of them, yet our grounds are mere interpretations of, and
not any express scripture. I cannot say so clearly of anything else in our
religion, neither as to faith or practice. Now must we force our
interpretations upon others, pope-like? How do you cast a reproach upon us
who are Congregational in England, and furnish our adversaries with
weapons against us! We blush and are filled with shame and confusion of
488
face, when we hear of these things. Dear brother, we pray that God would
open your eyes, and persuade the heart of your magistrates, that they may
no more smite their fellow-servants, nor thus greatly injure us their
brethren, and that they may not thus dishonor the name of God. My dear
brother, pardon me, for I am affected; I speak for God, to whose grace I
commend you all in New England; and humbly craving your prayers for us
here, and remain your affectionate brother, ROBERT MASCALL.
"Finsbury, near Morefield, March 25, 1669."*671
It seems that the imprisoned Baptists were by some means released after
about a year's confinement, but the next year afterward Gould and Turner
were arrested and imprisoned "a long time."
The cases which we have cited are not by any means all the persecutions
and oppressions that fell upon the Baptists; but these are sufficient to show
that the persecution was shameful enough, even had these been all the cases
that ever occurred. The persecution continued even beyond the date which
we have now reached, but the Baptists were assisted in their splendid fight
for freedom of thought and of worship, and relief came the quicker to them,
by the no less heroic and more fearfully persecuted Quakers.
with them, a board was nailed up before the window of the jail." *672
August 18, the following order was issued to the jailer: -
To the Keeper of the Boston Jail: -
You are by virtue hereof to keep the Quakers formerly committed to your
custody as dangerous persons, industrious to improve all their abilities to
seduce the people of this jurisdiction, both by words and letters, to the
abominable tenets of the Quakers, and to keep them close prisoners, not
suffering them to confer with any person, nor permitting them to have paper
or ink.
"Signed, EDWARD RAWSON, "Sec. of the Boston Court.
August 18, 1656."*673 They were not only denied food by the authorities,
but "liberty was denied even to send them provisions." "Seeing they were
not provided with victuals, Nicholas Upshal, one who lived long in Boston,
and was a member of the church there," bought of the jailer for five
shillings a week the privilege of furnishing them with food. September 7,
another order was issued to the jailer, commanding him "to search as often
as he saw meet, the boxes, chests, and things of the Quakers formerly
committed to his custody, for pen, ink, and paper, papers and books, and to
take them from them." *674
"After having been about five weeks prisoners, William Chichester, master
of a vessel, was bound in one hundred pound bond to carry them back, and
not suffer any to speak with them, after they were put on board; and the
jailer kept their beds . . . and their Bible, for his fees." *675 During the
imprisonment they were frequently examined by the ministers with a view
to getting some hold on them by which they might be dealt with for the
heresy of schism, or some other such crime, but all in vain. It was well for
the two women that they happened to be sent away when they were, for not
long afterward Endicott returned, and was not a little displeased with
Bellingham, the deputy-governor, for dealing so gently with them, declaring
that if he had been there, he "would have had them well whipped," although
as yet the colony had no law at all concerning Quakers.
These two women had not been long gone before eight other Quakers
arrived in Boston. They were subjected to the same sort of treatment to
which the other two had been. In the same month of September, the
Commissioners of the United Colonies met at Plymouth, and the Boston
court called upon them to stir up Plymouth Colony to vigilance, especially
against the Quakers. The letter ran as follows: -
490
"Having heard some time since that our neighboring colony of Plymouth,
our beloved brethren, in great part seem to be wanting to themselves in a
due acknowledgment and encouragement of the ministry of the gospel, so
as many pious ministers have (how justly we know not) deserted their
stations, callings, and relations; our desire is that some such course may be
taken, as that a pious orthodox ministry may be restated among them, that
so the flood of errors and principles of anarchy may be prevented. Here hath
arrived amongst us several persons professing themselves Quakers, fit
instruments to propagate the kingdom of Satan, for the securing of our
neighbors from such pests, we have imprisoned them all till they be
dispatched away to the place from whence they came." *676
"The commissioners gave advice accordingly," but Bradford, who was
governor of Plymouth, would not take any such steps. After his death,
however, severe measures were adopted.
October 14, 1656, the general court of Massachusetts enacted the following
law: -
"Whereas there is an accursed sect of heretics lately risen in the world,
which are commonly called Quakers, who take upon them to be
immediately sent of God and infallibly assisted by the Spirit, to speak and
write blasphemous opinions, despising governments, and the order of God
in the church and commonwealth, speaking evil of dignities, reproaching
and reviling magistrates and ministers, seeking to turn the people from the
faith, and gain proselytes to their pernicious ways: This court taking into
consideration the premises, and to prevent the like mischief as by their
means is wrought in our land, doth hereby order, and by the authority of this
court be it ordered and enacted that what master or commander of any ship,
bark, pink, or catch, shall henceforth bring into any harbor, creek, or cove,
within this jurisdiction, any Quaker or Quakers, or other blasphemous
heretics, shall pay, or cause to be paid, the fine of one hundred pounds to
the treasurer of the county, except it appear he want true knowledge or
information on their being such, and in that case he hath liberty to clear
himself by his oath, when sufficient proof to the contrary is wanting. And
for default of good payment, or good security for it, he shall be cast into
prison, and there to continue till the said sum be satisfied to a treasurer as
aforesaid. And the commander of any catch, ship, or vessel, being legally
convicted, shall give in sufficient security to the governor, or any one or
more of the magistrates, who have power to determine the same, to carry
them back to the place whence he brought them, and on his refusal to do so,
491
the governor or any one or more of the magistrates, are hereby empowered
to issue out his or their warrants to commit such master or commander to
prison, there to continue till he give in sufficient security to the content of
the governor, or any of the magistrates as aforesaid. And it is hereby further
ordered and enacted, that what Quaker soever shall arrive in this country
from foreign parts, or shall come into this jurisdiction from any parts
adjacent, shall be forthwith committed to the house of correction, and at
their entrance to be severely whipped, and by the master thereof to be kept
constantly to work, and none suffered to converse or speak with them
during the time of their imprisonment, which shall be no longer than
necessity requires. And it is ordered, if any person shall knowingly import
into any harbor of this jurisdiction any Quaker's books or writings
concerning their devilish opinions,he shall pay for such book or writing,
being legally proved against him or them, the sum of five pounds; and
whosoever shall disperse or sell any such book or writing, and it be found
with him or her, or in his or her house, and shall not immediately deliver the
same to the next magistrate, shall forfeit or pay five pounds for the
dispersing or selling of every such book or writing. And it is hereby further
enacted that if any person within this colony shall take upon them to defend
the heretical opinions of the Quakers, or any of their books or papers as
aforesaid, being legally proved, shall be fined for the first time forty
shillings; and if they persist in the same, and shall again defend it the
second time, four pounds; if they shall again defend and maintain said
accursed heretical opinions, they shall be committed to the house of
correction till there be convenient passage to send them out of the land,
being sentenced to the court of assistants to banishment. Lastly, it is hereby
ordered that what person or persons soever shall revile the person of
magistrates or ministers as is usual with the Quakers, such person or
persons shall be severely whipped, or pay the sum of five pounds." *677
When this law was published, Nicholas Upshal, the kind and Christian old
gentleman who had bought the privilege of feeding Mary Fisher and Anne
Austin, when they were in prison, "publicly testified against it." The next
morning he was summoned to answer before the general court. He told
them that "the execution of that law would be a forerunner of a judgment
upon their country, and therefore in love and tenderness which he bare to
the people and the place, desired them to take heed, lest they were found
fighters against God." He was fined twenty pounds, although a member of
one of the churches. And then having absented himself from church on
492
account of these things, he was fined three pounds, and banished, although
winter was now come, and he "a weakly, ancient man." *678
Notwithstanding these laws and penalties, and the spirit to inflict the
penalties in the severest way, the Quakers continued to come. In fact,
wherever such laws were, that was the very place where the Quakers wished
to be, because they were opposed to every kind of soul-oppression and
every form of the union of Church and State. Not only in this, but in almost
everything else, their views made them objects of special hatred to the
theocrats of Massachusetts. They recognized no such distinction among
Christians as clergy and laity, and could neither be coaxed nor forced to pay
tithes. They refused to do military service, and would not take an oath. They
would not take their hats off either in church or in court. "In doctrine their
chief peculiarity was the assertion of an `inward light,' by which every
individual is to be guided in his conduct of life." And "the doctrine of the
`inward light,' or of private inspiration, was something especially hateful to
the Puritan." - Fiske. *679 Another thing no less hateful to the Puritan than
this, was their refusal to keep Sunday in the Puritan way. They called "in
question the propriety of Christians turning the
Lord's day into a Jewish Sabbath." - Fiske. *680 They were denounced as
infidels, blasphemers, agents of the devil, and were counted as easily guilty
of every heresy and every crime in the Puritan theoretical catalogue.
Admission to the confederacy of the New England colonies had been
absolutely refused Rhode Island, on account of its principles of liberty of
conscience; but hatred of the Quakers led Massachusetts colony in 1657 to
ask Rhode Island to join the confederacy in the endeavor to save New
England from the Quakers. "They sent a letter to the authorities of that
colony, signing themselves their loving friends and neighbors, and
beseeching them to preserve the whole body of colonists against `such a
pest,' by banishing and excluding all Quakers, a measure to which `the rule
of charity did oblige them.'" - Fiske. *681
But Roger Williams was still president of Rhode Island, and, true to his
principles, he replied: "We have no law amongst us whereby to punish any
for only declaring by words their minds and understandings concerning
things and ways of God as to salvation and our eternal condition. As for
these Quakers, we find that where they are most of all suffered to declare
themselves freely and only opposed by arguments in discourse, there they
least of all desire to come. Any breach of the civil law shall be punished,
but the freedom of different consciences shall be respected." *682
493
the former laws against Quakers, that every such person or persons,
professing any of their pernicious ways by speaking, writing, or by meeting
on the Lord's day, or at any other time, to strengthen themselves, or seduce
others to their diabolical doctrines, shall, after due means of conviction,
incur the penalty ensuing; that is, every person so meeting, shall pay to the
country for every time ten shillings; and every one speaking in such
meeting, shall pay five pounds apiece; and in case any such person, after
having been punished by scourging or whipping for such, according to the
former law, shall be still kept at work in the house of correction, till they put
in security with two sufficient men, that they shall not any more vent their
hateful errors, nor use their sinful practices, or else shall depart this
jurisdiction at their own charges, and if any of them return again, then each
such person shall incur the penalty of the law formerly made for strangers."
*685
In 1658 "Rev." John Norton, supported by the rest of the clergy, circulated a
petition praying that the penalty of death should be visited upon all Quakers
who should return after having been banished. The Board of Commissioners
of the United Colonies met in Boston in September. The petition was
presented to the Board, which in response advised the general court of each
colony to enact such a law. Accordingly, October 16, the general court of
Massachusetts enacted the following law: -
"Whereas there is a pernicious sect, commonly called Quakers, lately risen
up, who by word and writing have published and maintained many
dangerous and horrid tenets, and do take upon them to change and alter the
received and laudable customs of our nation, not giving civil respects to
equals, or reverence to superiors; whose actions tend to undermine civil
government, and to destroy the order of the churches, by denying all
established forms of worship, and by withdrawing from orderly church
fellowship, allowed and proved by all orthodox professors of truth, and
instead thereof, and in opposition thereto, frequently meet by themselves,
insinuating themselves into the minds of the simple, or such as are least
affected to the order and government of the church and commonwealth,
whereby diverse particular inhabitants have been infected, notwithstanding
all former laws made, have been upon the experience of their arrogant and
bold determinations, to disseminate their practice amongst us, prohibiting
their coming into this jurisdiction, they have not been deterred from their
impious attempts to undermine our peace and hazard our ruin:
495
"For prevention thereof, this court doth order and enact that every person or
persons, of the accursed sect of Quakers, who is not an inhabitant of, but is
found within,this jurisdiction, shall be apprehended without warrant, where
no magistrate is at hand, by any constable, commissioner, or selectman, and
conveyed from constable to constable, to the next magistrate who shall
commit the said person to close prison, there to remain (without bail) till the
next court of assistants, where they shall have a legal trial: and being
convicted [Note: - "For which conviction, it was counted sufficient that they
appeared with their hats on and said `thee' and `thou'] to be of the sect of the
Quakers, shall be sentenced to be banished upon pain of death: and that
every inhabitant of this jurisdiction being convicted to be of the aforesaid
sect, either by taking up, publishing, or defending the harrid opinion of the
Quakers, or stirring up of mutiny, sedition, or rebellion against the
government, or by taking up their abusive and destructive practices, viz.,
denying civil respect to equals and superiors, and withdrawing from our
church assemblies, and instead thereof frequenting meetings of their own ;in
opposition to our church order, or by adhering to, or approving of, any
known Quaker, and the tenets practiced, that are opposite to the orthodox
received opinions of the godly, and endeavoring to disaffect others to civil
government and church order, or condemning the practice and proceedings
of this court against the Quakers, manifesting thereby their plotting with
those whose design is to overthrow the order established in Church and
State, every such person convicted before the said court of assistants, in
manner aforesaid, shall be committed to close prison for one month, and
then,`unless they choose voluntarily to depart this jurisdiction, shall give
bond for their good behavior, and appear at the next court, where continuing
obstinate, and refusing to retract and reform their aforesaid opinions, they
shall be sentenced to banishment upon pain of death; and any one
magistrate upon information given him of any such person, shall cause him
to be apprehended, and shall commit any such person, according to his
discretion, till he comes to trial as aforesaid."*686
Nor were any of these laws in any sense a dead letter. They were enforced
in the regular Puritan way. In 1657 the following order was issued by
Governor Endicott: -
"To the marshall general of h;is deputy: You are to take with you the
executioner, and repair to the house of correction, and there see him cut of
the right ears of John Copeland, Christopher Holder, and John Rouse,
Quakers, in execution of the sentence of the court of assistants for the
breach of the law instituted, `Quakers.'"*687
496
In the latter of the same year the following order was issued by the court: -
"Whereas Daniel Southwick and Provided Southwick, son and daughter of
Lawrence Southwick,absenting themselves from the public ordinances,
have been fined by the courts of Salem and Ipswich, pretending they have
no assistance, and resolving not to work, the court, upon perusal of the law,
which was made upon account of the dates, in answer to what should be
done for the satisfaction of the fines, resolves that the treasurers of the
several counties are and shall be fully empowered to sell said persons to any
of the English nation, at Virginia or Barbadoes, to answer the said
fines.*688
With this latter sentence there is connected an important series of events. As
stated in this order, these two persons were son and daughter of Lawrence
Southwick. Lawrence Southwick and his wife Cassandra, were an aged
couple who had been members of the Salem church until about the close of
1656. They had three children, Joseph, who was a man grown, and the two
mentioned above, who were but mere youth. The old gentleman and his
wife were arrested at the beginning of the year 1657, upon a charge of
harboring Quakers. The old gentleman was released, but as a Quaker tract
was found upon his wife, she was imprisoned seven weeks and fined forty
shillings. If they were not Quakers before, this made them such, and
likewise some of their friends. A number of them now withdrew from the
Salem church, and worshiped by themselves. All were arrested. Lawrence
and Cassandra Southwick and their son Joseph, were taken to Boston to be
dealt with. Upon their arrival there, February 3, without even the form of a
trial they were whipped and imprisoned eleven days, the weather being
extremely cold. In addition to this, they were fined four pounds and thirteen
shillings, for six weeks' absence from church on Sun days, and their cattle
were seized and sold to pay this fine.
The following summer two Quakers, William Leddra and William Brend,
went to Salem. They with five others, among whom were the Southwicks
who before had suffered, were arrested for meeting together. They were all
taken to Boston, and put all together in a room in the prison, of which the
windows were boarded up close. Food was denied them unless they would
work to pay for it. "To work when wrongfully confined, was against the
Quaker's conscience." - Adams."*689 They therefore went five days
without anything to eat. This, however, was only a part of their sufferings,
for on the second day of their imprisonment, they all were severely
whipped, and then with raw wounds were thrown back into the close dark
497
room, in the July heat, with nothing to lie upon but the bare boards. On the
second day afterwards they were informed that they could go if they would
pay the constables and jail fees. They refused to pay anything. The next day
the jailer, in order to force them to yield, took Brend, and with irons bound
his neck and heels together, and kept him that way for sixteen hours, from
five o'clock in the morning till me nine o'clock at night.
The next day Brend was put to the mill and ordered to work. He could not
have worked if he would, as he could scarcely move; but he would not have
worked if he could and so he refused. Then in a rage 'the gaoler took a
pitched rope, about an inch thick, and gave him twenty blows over his back
and arms with; all his strength, till the rope untwisted; then he fetched
another rope, thicker and stronger, and told Brend that he would cause him
to bow to the law of the country, and make him work. Brend thought this in
the highest degree unreasonable, since he had committed no evil, and was
wholly unable to work, having been kept five days without eating, and
whipped also, and now thus unmercifully beaten. Yet in the morning the
gaoler relented not, but began to beat again with his pitched rope on the
poor man's bruised body, and foaming at the mouth like a madman, with
violence laid four score and seventeen more blows upon him, as other
prisoners, who beheld this cruelty with grief and passion reported. And if
his strength and his rope had not failed him, he would have laid on more.
He thought also to give him the next morning as many blows more . . . . To
what condition these blows must have brought the body of Brend, who had
nothing on but a serge cossack over-shirt, may easily be conceived. His
back and arms were bruised and bleeding, and the blood hanging, as it were,
in bags under his arms, and so into one was his flesh beaten that the sign of
a particular blow could not be seen. His body being thus cruelly tortured, he
lay down upon the boards so extremely weakened that the natural parts
decaying, and his strength failing, his body turned cold ; there seemed, as it
were, a struggle between life and death; his senses were stopped, and he had
for some time neither seeing, feeling, nor hearing; till at length a divine
power prevailing, life broke through death, and the breath of the Lord was
breathed in his nostrils."*690
The people now, horrified at the outrage, would bear no more. A cry was
raised, they rushed to the jail, and rescued the tortured prisoner. This rather
frightened the government. Endicott sent his own family doctor to succor
Brend, but the surgeon pronounced the case hopeless - that the flesh would
"rot from off his bones ,"and he must die. The cry of the people grew
louder, and their indignation more fierce. They demanded that the barbarous
498
He then sentenced them one by one to be hanged. October 27 was the day
set for the execution. For fear the people might effect a rescue, a guard was
put upon the prison. As the day drew near, the dissatisfaction of the people
became more marked, and when the time came, it was deemed necessary to
have a company of two hundred armed men, to make sure that the theocrats
might accomplish the hanging. The three prisoners marched hand in hand to
the scaffold on Boston Common, with drums beating before them to drown
any words that they might speak. As the procession moved along, "Rev."
John Wilson, the Boston preacher, with others of the clergy, stood ready to
join in the march. Wilson tauntingly cried out, "Shall such jakes as you
come in before authority, with your hats on?" Robinson replied, "Mind you,
mind you,it is for not putting off the hat we are put to death." When they
reached the gallows, Robinson attempted to speak to the people, but Wilson
interrupted him with, "Hold your tongue, be silent; thou art going to die
with a lie in thy mouth." The two men were then bound and hanged. The
rope was placed round Mrs. Dyer's neck, but her son just then arrived from
Rhode Island, and upon his earnest entreaty and promise to take her away,
they let her go. The bodies of the two men were tumbled into a hole in the
ground, and left exposed with no sort of burial. The next spring, however,
Mrs. Dyer returned again. June 1, she was again marched to the gallows. At
the last moment she was told that see might go if she would promise to stay
away. She answered, "In obedience to the will of the Lord, I came, and in
his will I abide faithful unto death." And so they hanged her.*697
In November, William Leddra, who had been banished, returned to Boston.
He was at once arrested, but public opinion was now so strong against the
persecution that the government made every effort to persuade him to go
away. But he would not go. He was kept in prison four months, and at last,
in March, he was sentenced to be hanged. A few days before his execution,
he was called before the court, and as he was being questioned, Wenlock
Christison, another Quaker who had that moment returned from
banishment, walked into the court room, and , standing before the judges
with uplifted hand, said: "I am come here to warn you that ye shed no more
innocent blood." He was arrested and taken at once to jail.
Leddra was hanged, but Christison remained; and as he had openly rebuked
the judges, his case was the more notorious. But as the discountented
murmurings of the people grew louder and louder, the government hesitated
to proceed. The theocrats, however, were not yet ready to yield, and so they
brought him to trial before the general court, both the governor and the
deputy-governor being present.
501
and Dedham. "The peculiar atrocity of flogging from town to town lay in
this: that the victim's wounds became cold between the times of
punishment, and in the winter sometimes frozen, which made the torture
intolerably agonizing." - Adams. *701
In response to their sentence, Joseph Southwick said: "Here is my body; if
you want a further testimony of the truth I profess, take it and tear it in
pieces. . . . It is freely given up, and as for your sentence, I matter it not."
Then "they tied him to a cart, and lashed him for fifteen miles and while he
`sang to the praise of God,' his tormentor swung with all his might a
tremendous two-handed whip, whose knotted thongs were made of twisted
cat-gut; thence he was carried fifteen miles from any town into the
wilderness." - Adams. *702 And there they left him.
In the middle of the winter of 1661-62, a Quaker woman, Elizabeth Hooton,
was subjected to the same torture, being whipped through Cambridge,
Watertown, and Dedham.
In 1662 three Quaker women fell under the notice of "Rev." John Rayner;
"and as the magistrate was ignorant of the technicalities of the law, the elder
acted as clerk, and drew up for him the following warrant: -
"To the constables of Dover, Hampton, Salisbury, Newbury, Rowley,
Ipswich, Wenham, Linn Boston, Roxbury, Dedham, and untill these
vagabond Quakers are carried out of this jurisdiction: -
"You and every one of you are required, in the king's majesty's name, to
take these vagabond Quakers, Anne Coleman, Mary Tomkins, and Alice
Ambrose,and make them fast to the cart's tail, and driving the crat through
your several towns, to whip them on their backs, not exceeding ten stripes
apiece on each of them in each town, and so to convey them from constable
to constable, till they come out of this jurisdiction, as you will answer it at
your peril: and this shall be your warrant. Per me, "RICHARD WALDEN.
"At Dover, dated December the 22d, 1662."
"The Rev. John Rayner pronounced judgement of death by flogging; for the
weather was bitter, the distance to be walked was eighty miles, and the
lashes were given with a whip, whose three-twisted, knotted thongs cut to
the bone.
"`So, in a very cold day, your deputy, Walden, caused these women to be
stripp'd naked from the middle upward, and tyed to a cart,and after awhile
cruelly whipp'd them whilst the priest [John Rayner], stood and looked, and
504
laughed at it. . . . They went with the executioner to Hampton, and through
dirt and snow at Salisbury, half way the leg deep, the constable forced them
after the cart's tayl at which he whipp'd them.'
"Had the Rev. John Rayner but followed the cart, to see that his three
hundred and thirty lashes were all given with the same ferocity which
warmed his heart to mirth at Dover, before his journey's end he would
certainly have joyed in giving thanks to God over the women's gory
corpses, freezing amid the snow. His negligence saved their lives, for when
the ghastly pilgrims passed through Salisbury, the people, to their eternal
honor, set the captives free." - Adams. *703
There are many other instances of these horrible tortures to both men and
women; but these, without any mention of the hanging of witches, are
enough to explain and to justify the deserved and scathing sentence of the
historian of the United States, that "the creation of a national and
uncompromising church led the Congregationalists of Massachusetts to the
indulgence of the passions which disgraced their English persecutors, and
Laud was justified by the men whom he had wronged." - Bancroft. *704
Yet it must not be supposed that the legislation with respect to the views of
the Baptists and the Quakers was exceptional in its nature or even its
severity; only , as the laws regarding them were more openly disregarded,
the penalties were inflicted upon them in greater measure than upon any
others. There was a law running as follows: -
"Albeit faith is not wrought by the word, nevertheless, seeing that
blasphemy of the true God cannot be excused by an ignorance or infirmity
of human nature,' therefore, `no person in this jurisdiction, whether
Christian or pagan, shall wittingly and willingly presume to blaspheme his
holy Name, either by willful or obstinate denying the true God, or his
creation or government of the world, or shall curse God, or reproach the
holy religion of God, as if it were but a public device to keep ignorant men
in awe, nor shall utter any other eminent kind of blasphemy of like nature or
degree,' under penalty of death."
Another law subjected to fine, whipping, banishment, and finally to death,
"any who denied the received books of the Old and New, Testaments to be
the infallible word of God." - Hildreth. *705
Another and about the mildest form of punishment is shown by the
following law, enacted in 1646:-
505
"It is therefore ordered and decreed, that if any Christian (so-called) within
this jurisdiction shall contemptuously behave himself towards the word
preached or the messenger thereof called to dispense the same in any
congregation, when he faithfully executes his service and office therein
according to the will and word of God, either by interrupting him in his
preaching, or by charging him falsely with an error which he hath not taught
in the open face of the church, or like a son of Korah, cast upon his true
doctrine or himself any reproach, to the dishonor of the Lord who hath sent
him, and to the disparagement of that his holy ordinance, and making God's
ways contemptible or ridiculous, that every such person or persons
(whatsoever censure the church may pass) shall for the first scandal, be
convented and reproved openly by the magistrate, at some lecture,and
bound to their good behavior; and if a second time they break forth into the
like contemptuous carriages, they shall either pay five pounds to the public
treasure, or stand two hours openly upon a block or stool four foot high,
upon a lecture day, with a paper fixed on his breast, written with capital
letters, `A WANTON GOSPELLER:' that others may fear and be ashamed
of breaking out into the like wickedness."*706
Yet Massachusetts, though the worst, was not by any means the only one, of
the colonies that had an established religion, and that per-consequence
persecuted. The other Puritan colonies were of the same order. Plymouth
and New Haven were second only to Massachusetts, and Connecticut was
not far behind. New Haven had a law against Quakers, ordering that: -
"Every Quaker that comes into this jurisdiction shall be severely
whipped, and be kept at work in the house of correction; and the second
time, be branded in one hand, and kept at work as aforesaid; the third time
be branded in other hand, and the fourth time, to be bored through the
tongue with a red-hot iron."
That the law was by no means a nullity, is seen by the fact that Humphrey
Norton, merely passing through Southbold on his way to one of the Dutch
plantations, was apprehended, without being asked whither he was going,
and committed to the marshall, conveyed to New Haven, and there cast into
prison, chained to a post,and none suffered to visit him in the bitter cold
winter. . . . At length, he was had before the court, where was their priest
[minister], John Davenport, to whom Humphrey Norton had sent some
religious queries; and the priest having spoken what he pleased in answer to
those queries, Humphrey attempted to reply, but was prevented by their
tying a great iron key across his mouth, so that he could not speak. After
506
that he was had again to prison, and after ten days more, sentenced to be
severely whipped, and burned in the hand with the letter `H' for heresy, and
to be sent out of the colony, and not to return upon pain of the utmost
penalty they could inflict by law, and to pay ten pounds towards the charge
of the court and colony. And they ordered this sentence to be executed the
same day. Accordingly, the drum was beat, and the people gathered; `the
poor man was fetched, and stripped to the waist, and set with his back
towards the magistrates, and had given, in their view, thirty-six cruel
stripes, and then turned, and his face set towards them, his hand made fast
in the stocks, where they had set his body before, and burned very deep
with a red-hot iron: then he was sent to prison again, and there kept, till a
Dutchman, a stranger to him, paid down twenty nobles for his fine and fees.
It was remarkable that as soon as he had suffered this cruel sentence, and
was let loose from the stocks, he knelt down, and prayed to the Lord, to the
astonishment of his persecutors."*707
The "Blue Laws" of Connecticut are proverbial; yet they were copied
almost bodily from the Massachusetts code. For instance, the "Wanton
Gospeller" statute of Massachusetts was adopted by Connecticut, word fro
word, with only the change of the inscription to "An Open and Obstinate
Contemner of God's Holy Ordinances."
Nor was it alone in New England that Church and State were united. It was
so to a greater or less extent in every one of the thirteen original colonies in
America, except Rhode Island. In New England the established religion was
Congregationalism, while in all the colonies south from New York to
Georgia, except only Pennsylvania, the Church of England was the favored
one. In Pennsylvania there was no union with any particular denomination
as such, but no one could hold office or even vote except "such as possess
faith in Jesus Christ." And protection from compulsory religious
observances was guaranteed to no one, except those "who confess and
acknowledge one almighty and eternal
God to be the Creator, Upholder, and Ruler of the world." As all were thus
required to be religious, and to possess faith in Jesus Christ, it was therefore
required "that according to the good example of the primitive Christians,
every first day of the week, called the Lord's day, people shall abstain from
their common daily labor, that they may the better dispose themselves to
worship God according to their understandings." *708
Maryland, while held by the Roman Catholics, was freer than any other
colony, except Rhode Island; yet even there, as in Pennsylvania, it was only
507
CHAPTER XXIV.
THE NEW REPUBLIC.
THEN came the American Revolution, overturning all the principles of the
papacy, and establishing for the enlightenment of all nations, THE NEW
REPUBLIC, - the first national government upon the earth that accords with
the principles announced by Jesus Christ for mankind and for civil
government.
The American Revolution did not consist in the establishment of a
government independent of Great Britain, but in the ideas concerning man
and government that were proclaimed and established by it. This Revolution
is the expression of two distinct ideas. First, that government is of the
people; and, second, that government is of right entirely separate from
religion.
The first decided step in this grand revolution was taken when the
Declaration of Independence was signed. That immortal document
declares:-
"We hold these truths to be self-evident, that all men are created equal; that
they are endowed by their Creator with certain unalienable rights; that
among these are life, liberty, and the pursuit of happiness. That to secure
these rights governments are instituted among men, deriving their just
powers from the consent of the governed; that whenever any form of
government becomes destructive of these ends, it is the right of the people
to alter or to abolish it, and to institute a new government, laying its
foundation on such principles, and organizing its powers in such form, as to
them shall seem most likely to effect their safety and happiness."
Thus in two sentences was annihilated the despotic doctrine which,
springing from the usurped authority of the papacy, to sit in the place of
God and to set up and pull down kings, and to bestow kingdoms and
empires at its will, had now become venerable, if not absolutely hallowed,
by the precedents of a thousand years - the doctrine of the divine right of
kings; and in the place of the old, false, despotic theory of the sovereignty
of the government and the subjection of the people, there was declared the
self-evident truth, the subjection of government, and the sovereignty of the
people.
511
In declaring the equal and inalienable right of all men to life, liberty, and
the pursuit of happiness, and that governments derive their just powers from
the consent of the governed, there is not only declared the sovereignty of
the people, but also the entire capability of the people. The declaration, in
itself, presupposes that men are men indeed, and that as such they are fully
capable of deciding for themselves as to what is best for their happiness,
and how they shall pursue it, without the government's being set up as a
parent or guardian to deal with them as with children.
In declaring that governments are instituted, by the governed, for certain
ends, and that when any government becomes destructive of these ends, it is
the right of the people to alter or to abolish it, and to institute a new
government, in such form as to them shall seem most likely to effect their
safety and happiness, it is likewise declared that instead of the people's
needing to be cared for by the government, the government must be cared
for by the people.
This is confirmed by the national Constitution, which is but the complement
of the Declaration. Thus says -
THE PREAMBLE:
"We, the people of the United States, in order to form a more perfect union,
establish justice, insure domestic tranquillity, provide for the common
defense, promote the general welfare, and secure the blessings of liberty to
ourselves and our posterity, do ordain and establish this Constitution for the
United States of America."
And Article IX of Amendments says: -
"The enumeration in the Constitution of certain rights shall not be construed
to deny or disparage others retained by the people.
And Article X of Amendments says: -
"The powers not delegated to the United States by this Constitution, nor
prohibited by it to the States, are reserved to the States respectively, or to
the people."
In declaring the objects of government to be to secure to the people the
rights which they already possess in full measure and inalienable degree,
and to effect their safety and happiness in the enjoyment of those rights; and
in declaring the right of the people, in the event named, to alter or abolish
512
the government which they have, and institute a new one on such principles
and in such form as to them seems best; there is likewise declared not only
the complete subordination but also the absolute impersonality of
government. It is therein declared that the government is but a device, a
piece of political machinery, framed and set up by the people, by which
they would make themselves secure in the enjoyment of the inalienable
rights which they already possess as men, and which they have by virtue of
being men in society and not by virtue of government; - the right which was
theirs before government was; which is their own in the essential meaning
of the term; and "which they do not hold by any sub-infeudation, but by
direct homage and allegiance to the Owner and Lord of all" (Stanley
Matthews*711), their Creator, who has endowed them with those rights.
And in thus declaring the impersonality of government, there is wholly
uprooted every vestige of any character of paternity in the government.
In declaring the equality of all men in the possession of these inalienable
rights, there is likewise declared the strongest possible safeguard of the
people. For this being the declaration of the people, each one of the people
stands thereby pledged to the support of the principle thus declared.
Therefore, each individual is pledged, in the exercise of his own inalienable
right to life, liberty, and the pursuit of happiness, so to act as not to interfere
with any other person in the free and perfect exercise of his inalienable right
to life, liberty, and the pursuit of happiness. Any person who so acts as to
restrict or interfere with the free exercise of any other person's right to life,
or liberty, or the pursuit of happiness, denies the principle, to the
maintenance of which he is pledged, and does in effect subvert the
government. For, rights being equal, if one may so act, every other one may
do so; and thus no man's right is recognized, government is gone, and only
anarchy remains. Therefore, by every interest, personal as well as general,
private as well as public, every individual among the people is pledged in
the enjoyment of his right to life, or liberty, or the pursuit of happiness, so
to conduct himself as not to interfere in the least degree with the equal right
of every other one to the free and full exercise of his enjoyment of life,
liberty, and the pursuit of happiness. "For the rights of man, as man, must
be understood in a sense that can admit of no single exception; for to allege
an exception is the same thing as to deny the principle. We reject, therefore,
with scorn, any profession of respect to the principle which, in fact, comes
to us clogged and contradicted by a petition for an exception. . . . To profess
the principle and then to plead for an exception, let the plea be what it may,
is to deny the principle, and it is to utter a treason against humanity. The
513
rights of man must everywhere all the world over be recognized and
respected." - Isaac Taylor.*712
The Declaration of Independence, therefore, announces the perfect principle
of civil government. If the principle thus announced were perfectly
conformed to by all, then the government would be a perfect civil
government. It is but the principle of self-government - government of the
people, by the people, and for the people. And to the extent to which this
principle is exemplified among the people, to the extent to which the
individual governs himself, just to that extent and no further will prevail the
true idea of the Declaration, and the republic which it created.
Such is the first grand idea of the American Revolution. And it is the
scriptural idea, the idea of Jesus Christ and of God. Let this be
demonstrated.
The Declaration holds that all men are endowed by their Creator with
certain inalienable rights, and that to secure these rights, governments are
instituted among men deriving their just powers from the consent of the
governed. Now the Creator of all men is the God and Father of our Lord
Jesus Christ, and "is he the God of the Jews only? is he not also of the
Gentiles? Yes, of the Gentiles also." And as he "hath made of one blood all
nations of men for to dwell on all the face of the earth" (Acts xvii, 26),
"there is no respect of persons with God." Rom. ii, 11. Nor is this the
doctrine of the later scripture only; it is the doctrine of all the Book. The
most ancient writings in the Book have these words: "If I did despise the
cause of my man-servant or of my maid-servant when they contended with
me; what then shall I do when God riseth up? and when he visiteth, what
shall I answer him? Did not he that made me in the womb, make him?" Job
xxx, 13- 15. And, "The Lord your God is God of gods, and Lord of lords, a
great God, a mighty and a terrible, which regardeth not persons, nor taketh
reward: he doth execute the judgment of the fatherless and widow, and
loveth the stranger in giving him food and raiment. Love ye therefore the
stranger." "The stranger that dwelleth with you, shall be unto you as one
born among you, and thou shalt love him as thyself." Deut. x, 17-19; Lev.
xix, 34.
All men are indeed created equal, and are endowed by their Creator with
certain inalienable rights.
As to civil government, the Scripture commands, "Render to Caesar the
things which are Caesar's;" and Christ himself paid tribute to Caesar, "thus
recognizing the rightfulness of civil government to be." But more than this,
514
it is plainly declared, "The powers that be are ordained of God." Rom. xiii,
1. This scripture has long been used to sustain the papal fable of the divine
right of kings, but such use was always only a perversion. It is proper and
interesting to have a scriptural answer to the question. How then are the
powers that be ordained of God? And to this question, the Scriptures do
give a clear answer.
Let us read: "In the beginning of the reign of Jehoiakim, the son of Josiah
king of Judah, came this word unto Jeremiah from the Lord, saying, Thus
saith the Lord to me: Make thee bonds and yokes, and put them upon thy
neck, and send them to the king of Edom, and to the king of Moab, and to
the king of the Ammonites, and to the king of Tyrus, and to the king of
Zidon, by the hand of the messengers which come to Jerusalem unto
Zedekiah king of Judah, and command them to say unto their masters, Thus
saith the Lord of hosts, the God of Israel: Thus shall ye say unto your
masters: I have made the earth, the man and the beasts that are upon the
ground, by my great power and by my outstretched arm, and have given it
unto whom it seemed meet unto me. And now have I given all these lands
into the hand of Nebuchadnezzar the king of Babylon, my servant; and the
beasts of the field have I given him also to serve him. And all nations shall
serve him, and his son, and his son's son, until the very time of his land
come, and then many nations and great kings shall serve themselves of him.
And it shall come to pass that the nation and kingdom which will not serve
the same Nebuchadnezzar the king of Babylon, and that will not put their
neck under the yoke of the king of Babylon, that nation will I punish, saith
the Lord, with the sword, and with the famine, and with the pestilence, until
I have consumed them by his hand."
In this scripture it is clearly shown that the power of Nebuchadnezzar, king
of Babylon, was ordained of God; nor to Nebuchadnezzar alone, but to his
son and his son's son: which is to say that the power of the Babylonian
empire, as an imperial power, was ordained of God. Nebuchadnezzar was
plainly called by the Lord, "My servant;" and the Lord says, "And now have
I given all these lands into the hand of Nebuchadnezzar the king of
Babylon." He further says that whatever "nation and kingdom which will
not serve the same Nebuchadnezzar the king of Babylon, and that will not
put their neck under the yoke of the king of Babylon, that nation will I
punish."
Another instance: In the above scripture it is stated that the power of
Babylon should continue through Nebuchadnezzar and his son and to his
515
son's son, and that all nations should serve Babylon until that time, and that
then nations and kings should serve themselves of him. Other prophecies
show that Babylon was then to be destroyed. Jer. li, 28 says that the king of
the Medes, and all his land, with the captains and rulers, should be prepared
against Babylon to destroy it. Isa. xxi, 2 shows that Persia (Elam) should
accompany Media in the destruction of Babylon. Isa. xlv, 1-4 names Cyrus
as the leader of the forces, more than a hundred years before he was born,
and one hundred and seventy-four years before the time. And of Cyrus, the
prophet said from the Lord, "I have raised him up in righteousness, and I
will direct all his ways; he shall build my city, and he shall let go my
captives, not for price, nor reward, saith the Lord of hosts." Isa. xlv, 13. But
in the conquest of Babylon, Cyrus was only the leader of the forces. The
kingdom and rule were given to Darius the Mede; for, said Daniel to
Belshazzar, on the night when Babylon fell, "Thy kingdom is divided, and
given to the Medes and Persians." Then the record proceeds: "In that night
was Belshazzar the king of the Chaldeans slain. And Darius the Median
took the kingdom." Of him we read in Dan. xi, 1, the words of the angel
Gabriel to the prophet: "I, in the first year of Darius the Mede, even I, stood
to confirm and to strengthen him."
There can be no dispute, therefore, that the power of Babylon, as exercised
by Nebuchadnezzar and his successors, and that of Medo-Persia as
exercised by Darius and Cyrus and their successors, was ordained of God. It
would be easy to follow the same truth onward to the power of Grecia, in
Alexander and his successors, and to Rome, as indeed it was Nero who was
emperor when this letter was written to the Christians at Rome, in which is
this declaration that "the powers that be are ordained of God."
Was then the power exercised by Nebuchadnezzar and his successors unto
Nero - was this power bestowed upon any of these directly, or in a
miraculous way?
Did God send a prophet or a priest to anoint any of these rulers to be king or
emperor? or did he send a heavenly messenger, as he did to Moses and to
Gideon? - Neither. Nebuchadnezzar was king because he was the son of his
father, who had been king. How then did his father become king? In 625 B.
C., Babylonia was but one province of the empire of Assyria; Media was
another. Both revolted, and at the same time. The king of Assyria gave
Nabopollasar command of a large force, and sent him to Babylonia to quell
the revolt, while he himself led other forces into Media, to put down the
insurrection there. Nabopollasar did his work so well in Babylonia that the
516
king of Assyria rewarded him with the command of that province, with the
title of king of Babylon.
Thus Nabopollasar received his power from the king of Assyria. The king
of Assyria received his from his father, Asshur-bani-pal; Asshur-bani-pal
received his from his father, Esar-haddon; Esar-haddon received his from
his father, Sennacherib; Sennacherib received his from his father, Sargon;
and Sargon received his from the troops in the field, that is, from the
people; for the army of Assyria was not a standing army, as those of modern
nations are, but it was the male portion of the nation itself, at war. Thus it
was, and thus only, that the power of Nebuchadnezzar and his son and his
son's son, was ordained of God. It was simply providential, and was brought
about and worked out as is anything and everything else in the realm of the
providence of God. It was so, likewise, with all the others. And it has
always been so in every case, in every government, that ever was on earth,
except only in the nation of Israel.
Yet more than this, except in the nation of Israel, it is not, and never has
been, personal sovereigns in themselves that have been referred to in the
statement that "the powers that be are ordained of God." It is not the persons
that be in power, but the powers that be in the person, that are ordained of
God. The inquiry of Rom. xiii, 3, is not, Wilt thou then not be afraid of the
person? But it is, "Wilt thou then not be afraid of the power?" It is not the
person, therefore, but the power that is represented in the person, that is
under consideration here. And that person derives his power from the
people, as is clearly proved by the scriptural examples and references given.
And this is the American doctrine, - the doctrine of the Declaration of
Independence. In the discussions which brought forth the Declaration and
developed the Revolution, the doctrine found expression in the following
forceful and eloquent words: "Government is founded not on force, as was
the theory of Hobbes; nor on compact, as was the theory of Locke and of
the revolution of 1688; nor on property, as was asserted by Harrington. It
springs from the necessities of our nature, and has an everlasting foundation
in the unchangeable will of God. Man came into the world and into society
at the same instant. There must exist in every earthly society a supreme
sovereign, from whose final decision there can be no appeal but directly to
heaven. This supreme power is originally and ultimately in the people; and
the people never did in fact freely, nor can rightfully, make an unlimited
renunciation of this divine right. Kingcraft and priestcraft are a trick to gull
517
the vulgar. The happiness of mankind demands that this grand and ancient
alliance should be broken off forever.
"The omniscient and omnipotent Monarch of the universe has, by the grand
charter given to the human race, placed the end of government in the good
of the whole. The form of government is left to the individuals of each
society; its whole superstructure and administration should be conformed to
the law of universal reason. There can be no prescription old enough to
supersede the law of nature and the grant of God Almighty, who has given
all men a right to be free. If every prince since Nimrod had been a tyrant, it
would not prove a right to tyrannize. The administrators of legislative and
executive authority, when they verge toward tyranny, are to be resisted; if
they prove incorrigible, are to be deposed.
"The first principle and great end of government being to provide for the
best good of all the people, this can be done only by a supreme legislative
and executive, ultimately in the people, or whole community, where God
has placed it; but the difficulties attending a universal congress, gave rise to
a right of representation. Such a transfer of the power of the whole to a few
was necessary; but to bring the powers of all into the hands of one or some
few, and to make them hereditary, is the interested work of the weak and
the wicked. Nothing but life and liberty are actually hereditable. The grand
political problem is to invent the best combination of the powers of
legislation and execution! They must exist in the State, just as in the
revolution of the planets; one power would fix them to a center, and another
carry them off indefinitely; but the first and simple principle is,
EQUALITY and THE POWER OF THE WHOLE. . . .
"The British colonists do not hold their liberties or their lands by so slippery
a tenure as the will of the prince. Colonists are men, the common children
of the same Creator with their brethren of Great Britain. The colonists are
men: the colonists are therefore freeborn; for, by the law of nature, all men
are freeborn, white or black. No good reason can be given for enslaving
those of any color. Is it right to enslave a man because his color is black, or
his hair short and curled like wool, instead of Christian hair? Can any
logical inference in favor of slavery be drawn from a flat nose or a long or
short face? The riches of the West Indies, or the luxury of the metropolis,
should not have weight to break the balance of truth and justice. Liberty is
the gift of God, and cannot be annihilated.
"Nor do the political and civil rights of the British colonists rest on a charter
from the crown. Old Magna Charta was not the beginning of all things, nor
518
did it rise on the borders of chaos out of the unformed mass. A time may
come when Parliament shall declare every American charter void; but the
natural, inherent, and inseparable rights of the colonists, as men and as
citizens, can never be abolished. . . . The world is at the eve of the highest
scene of earthly power and grandeur that has ever yet been displayed to the
view of mankind. Who will win the prize, is with God. But human nature
must and will be rescued from the general slavery that has so long
triumphed over the species." - James Otis.*713
Thus spoke an American "for his country and for the race," bringing to "the
conscious intelligence of the people the elemental principles of free
government and human rights." Outside of the theocracy of Israel, there
never has been a ruler or an executive on earth whose authority was not,
primarily or ultimately, expressly or permissively, derived from the people.
It is not particular sovereigns whose power is ordained of God, nor any
particular form of government. It is the genius of government itself. The
absence of government is anarchy. Anarchy is only governmental
confusion. But says the scripture, "God is not the author of confusion." God
is the God of order. He has ordained order, and he has put within man
himself that idea of government, of self-protection, which is the first law of
nature, and which organizes itself into forms of one kind or another,
wherever men dwell on the face of the earth. And it is for men themselves
to say what shall be the form of government under which they will dwell.
One people has one form; another has another. This genius of civil order
springs from God; it matters not whether it be exercised through one form
of government or through another, the governmental power and order thus
exercised is ordained of God. If the people choose to change their form of
government, it is still the same power; it is to be respected still, because in
its legitimate exercise, it is still ordained of God.
It is demonstrated, therefore, that where the Declaration of Independence
says that governments derive their just powers from the consent of the
governed, it asserts THE ETERNAL TRUTH OF GOD.
The second grand idea of the American Revolution - that government is of
right entirely separate form religion - is the logical sequence of the first.
RELIGION is defined as "the recognition of God as an object of worship,
love, and obedience." And again, as "man's personal relation of faith and
obedience to God." And the first governmental definition of the word in the
United States, declared that "religion" is "the duty which we owe to our
Creator, and the manner of discharging it."
519
Now governments deriving their just powers from the consent of the
governed, can never of right exercise any power not delegated by the
governed. But religion pertaining solely to man's relation to God, and the
duty which he owes to his Creator, in the nature of things can never be
delegated. It is utterly impossible for any person ever, in any degree, to
transfer to another any relationship to God or any duty which he owes to his
Creator. To attempt to do so would be to deny God and renounce religion,
and even then the thing would not be done - his relationship to God would
still abide as firmly as ever.
Logically and rightfully, therefore, the government of the United States
disavows any jurisdiction or power in things religious. Religion is not, and
never can rightly be made, in any sense a requisite to the governmental
authority of the United States, because the supreme law declares that -
"No religious test shall ever be required as a qualification to any office or
public trust under the United States."*714
The government cannot rightly legislate in any sense upon matters of
religion, because the supreme law says that -
"Congress shall make no law respecting an establishment of religion or
prohibiting the free exercise thereof."*715
By this clause, Congress is forbidden to make any law looking toward any
establishment of a national religion, or approving or disapproving any
religion already established in any State - as several of the States had
established religious when this amendment was adopted. By it likewise
Congress is forbidden to make any law prohibiting the free exercise of
religion by any individual in all the land. That is to say that Congress is
forbidden to make any law bearing in any way whatever on the subject of
religion; for it is impossible to make a law on the subject of religion without
interfering with the free exercise of religion. No law can ever be made even
in favor of any religion without prohibiting the free exercise of that religion.
No man can ever sanction legislation in favor of the religion in which he
believes without robbing himself of the free exercise of that religion.
Congress, therefore, is absolutely forbidden ever to make any law on the
subject of religion in any way whatever.
Consistently with all this, and as the crown of all, religion is not in any
sense a requisite to the citizenship of the United States, for again the
supreme law declares: -
520
"The government of the United States is not in any sense founded on the
Christian religion."*716
Thus logically by the Declaration and explicitly by the Constitution, the
government of the United States is completely separated from religion. And
such is the second grand idea of the American Revolution.
And it is also the scriptural idea, the idea of Jesus Christ, and of God. Let
this be demonstrated, and it will be proved that the American system of
government is complete and the idea perfect. And demonstrated it can
easily be.
To the definition that religion is the recognition of God, as an object of
worship, love, and obedience, the scripture responds: "It is written, as I live,
saith the Lord, every knee shall bow to me, and every tongue shall confess
to God. So then every one of us shall give account of himself to God." Rom.
xiv, 11, 12.
And, to the statement that religion is man's personal relation of faith and
obedience to God, the scripture responds: "Hast thou faith? Have it to
thyself before God." Rom. xiv, 22. "For we must all appear before the
judgment-seat of Christ; that every one may receive the things done in his
body, according to that he hath done, whether it be good or bad." 2 Cor. v,
10.
No government can ever account to God for any individual. No man nor
any set of men can ever have faith for another. No government will ever
stand before the judgment-seat of Christ to answer even for itself; much less
for the people or for any individual. Therefore, no government can ever of
right assume any responsibility in any way in any matter of religion.
As to religion and government, Christ commanded, "Render to Caesar the
things which are Caesar's, and to God the things that are God's." To Caesar -
to government - there is to be rendered only that which is Caesar's; while
that which is God's is to be rendered to God alone. Men are not to render to
Caesar that which is God's, nor are they to render to God by Caesar that
which is God's. That which is Caesar's is to be rendered to him alone. That
which is God's is to be rendered to him alone. Now, as religion pertains to
man's relations to God, it is to be rendered to God alone. It does not pertain
to government; it never can be rendered to government. Christ has
forbidden that it should be so rendered. Therefore, the word of Jesus Christ
does distinctly and decidedly separate religion from earthly government.
Nor is this the only passage of Scripture on this subject. It is the doctrine of
521
the Book. In the former part of this chapter, we have shown by the
Scriptures that earthly governments - the powers that - are ordained of God.
By the scriptures cited, we have seen that the power of Babylonia, as
represented by Nebuchadnezzar, and the power of Media and Persia, as
represented by Darius and Cyrus, was distinctly declared to be ordained of
God. Now it is important to inquire, Unto what was this power ordained?
Was there any limit set to it? In short, Was this power which was ordained
of God, ordained to be exercised in things pertaining to God, that is, in
matters of religion? These questions are clearly answered in the Scriptures.
In the third chapter of Daniel we have the record that Nebuchadnezzar made
a great image of gold, set it up in the plain of Dura, and gathered together
the princes, the governors, the captains, the judges, the treasurers, the
counselors, the sheriffs, and all the rulers of the provinces, to the dedication
of the image; and they stood before the image that had been set up. Then a
herald from the king cried aloud: "To you it is commanded, O people,
nations, and languages, that at what time ye hear the sound of the cornet,
flute, harp, sackbut, psaltery, dulcimer, and all kinds of music, ye fall down
and worship the golden image that Nebuchadnezzar the king hath set up;
and whoso falleth not down and worshipeth shall the same hour be cast into
the midst of a burning fiery furnace."
In obedience to this command, all the people bowed down and worshiped
before the image, except three Jews, Shadrach, Meshach, and Abed-nego.
This disobedience was reported to Nebuchadnezzar, who commanded them
to be brought before him, when he asked them if they had disobeyed his
order intentionally. He himself then repeated his command to them.
These men knew that they had been made subject to the king of Babylon by
the Lord himself. It had not only been prophesied by Isaiah (chap. xxxix),
but also by Jeremiah. At the final siege of Jerusalem by Nebuchadnezzar,
the Lord, through Jeremiah, told the people to submit to the king of
Babylon, and that whosoever would do it, it should be well with them;
whosoever would not do it, it should be ill with them. Yet these men,
knowing all this, made answer to Nebuchadnezzar thus: "O
Nebuchadnezzar, we are not careful to answer thee in this matter. If it be so,
our God whom we serve is able to deliver us from the burning fiery furnace,
and he will deliver us out of thy hand, O king. But if not, be it known unto
thee, O king, that we will not serve thy gods, nor worship the golden image
which thou hast set up."
522
Then the three men were cast into the fiery furnace, heated seven times
hotter than it was wont to be heated; but suddenly Nebuchadnezzar rose up
in haste and astonishment, and said to his counselors, "Did we not cast three
men bound into the midst of the fire?" They answered, "True, O king." But
he exclaimed, "Lo, I see four men loose, walking in the midst of the fire,
and they have no hurt; and the form of the fourth is like the Son of God."
The men were called forth. "Then Nebuchadnezzar spake and said, Blessed
be the God of Shadrach, Meshach, and Abed-nego, who hath sent his angel
and delivered his servants that trusted in him, and have changed the king's
word, and yielded their bodies, that they might not serve nor worship any
god, except their own God."
Here stand the following facts: First, God gave power to the kingdom of
Babylon; second, he suffered his people to be subjected as captives to that
power; third, by a wonderful miracle he defended his people from a certain
exercise of that power. Did God contradict or oppose himself? - Far from it.
What, then, do these facts show? - They show conclusively that this was an
undue exercise of the power which God had given. By this it is
demonstrated that the power of the kingdom of Babylon, although ordained
of God, was not ordained unto any such purpose as that for which it was
exercised; that though ordained of God, it was not ordained to be exercised
in things pertaining to God, or men's rights of religion; and it was written
for the instruction of future ages, and for our admonition upon whom the
ends of the world are come.
Another example: Darius, king of Media and Persia, made Daniel prime
minister of his dominion. But a number of the presidents and princes,
envious of the position given to Daniel, attempted to undermine and
displace him. After earnest efforts to find occasion against him in matters
pertaining to the kingdom, they were forced to confess that there was
neither error nor fault anywhere in his conduct. Then said these men, "We
shall not find any occasion against this Daniel, except we find it against him
concerning the law of his God." They therefore assembled together to the
king, and told him that all the presidents of the kingdom, and the governors,
and the princes, and the captains, had consulted together to establish a royal
statute, and to make a decree that whoever should ask a petition of any god
or man, except the king, for thirty days, should be cast into the den of lions.
Darius, not suspecting their object, signed the decree.
Daniel knew that the decree had been made, and signed by the king. It was
hardly possible for him not to know it, being prime minister. Yet
523
notwithstanding his knowledge of the affair, he went into his chamber, and
his windows being open toward Jerusalem, he kneeled upon his knees three
times a day, and prayed and gave thanks before God, as he did aforetime.
He did not even close the windows. He simply paid no attention at all to the
decree that had been made, although it forbade his doing as he did, under
the penalty of being thrown to the lions.
As was to be expected, the men who had secured the passage of the decree,
"found" him praying and making supplications before his God. They went
at once to the king, and asked him if he had not signed a decree that every
man who should ask a petition of any god or man within thirty days except
of the king, should be cast into the den of lions. The king replied that this
was true, and that, according to the law of the Medes and Persians, it could
not be altered. Then they told him that Daniel did not regard the king, nor
the decree that he had signed, but made his petition three times a day.
The king realized in a moment that he had been entrapped; but there was no
remedy. Those who were pushing the matter, held before him the law, and
said, "know, O king, that the law of the Medes and Persians is, That no
decree or statute which the king establisheth may be changed." Nothing
could be done; the decree, being law, must be enforced. Daniel was cast to
the lions. In the morning the king came to the den and called to Daniel, and
Daniel replied, "O king, live forever; my God hath sent his angel, and hath
shut the lion's mouths, that they have not hurt me; forasmuch as before him
innocency was found in me; and also before thee, O king, I have done no
hurt."
Thus again God has shown that although the powers that be are ordained of
God, they are not ordained to act in things that pertain to men's relationship
to God. God declares the man innocent, who disregards or violates the law
that interferes with man's relationship to God, or that presumes to dictate in
matters of religion.
These cases show plainly that, according to the mind of God, religion and
earthly government are to be entirely separated. It follows, therefore, that
the Constitution of the United States is in harmony with the will of God as
expressed in the Scriptures of truth, upon the subject of religion and the
State.
Yet, for reasons which will appear later, there is now an attempt to make it
appear that this was the result of forgetfulness, if not rather hostility to the
Christian religion. But nothing could be farther from the truth than both of
these suggestions. So far from its having been the result of forgetfulness, it
524
was by direct design: and so far from its having resulted from hostility to
Christianity, it was out of respect for it and for the rights of men which that
religion inculcates.
It is impossible for it to have been in any way a matter of forgetfulness,
because the Constitution speaks expressly upon the subject. Yet, though the
Constitution had been wholly silent on the question, the fact could not be
justly attributed to forgetfulness or carelessness; because the work of the
Convention was not the adoption of the Constitution. After the Convention
had finished its labors, that which they had done was submitted for approval
to the thirteen States, every one of which was most vigilantly wakeful to
detect every possible defect in it; and as we shall presently see, this point
was discussed by the States when the proposed Constitution came before
them for approval.
And that the Constitution was made as it is, in this matter entirely out of
respect to religion and to Christianity in particular, is susceptible of the
strongest proof. In fact, Christian churches were the chief factors in the
movement. We have already shown that the Constitution is the complement
of the Declaration of Independence; and that this phase of the Constitution
is but the logical sequence of the Declaration. Nor is this all; it is the direct
fruit of the Declaration. The history of this matter is worth reviving.
June 12, 1776, a convention of the Colonial House of Burgesses of Virginia,
adopted a Declaration of Rights, composed of sixteen sections, every one of
which, in substance, afterward found a place in the Declaration of
Independence and the national Constitution. The sixteenth section reads as
follows: -
"That religion, or the duty which we owe to our Creator, and the manner of
discharging it, can be directed only by reason and conviction, not by force
or violence, and therefore all men are equally entitled to the free exercise of
religion, according to the dictates of conscience; and that it is the mutual
duty of all to practice Christian forbearance, love, and charity toward each
other."*717
This was followed, July 4, by the Declaration of Independence, written by
Thomas Jefferson of Virginia. The Declaration of Independence had no
sooner been published abroad, than the Presbytery to Hanover in Virginia,
at its very first meeting, openly took its stand in the recognition of the new
and independent nation, and addressed to the Virginia House of Assembly
the following memorial: -
525
"To the Honorable, the General Assembly of Virginia: The memorial of the
Presbytery of Hanover humbly represents: That your memorialists are
governed by the same sentiments which have inspired the United States of
America, and are determined that nothing in our power and influence shall
be wanting to give success to their common cause. We would also represent
that dissenters from the Church of England in this country have ever been
desirous to conduct themselves as peaceable members of the civil
government, for which reason they have hitherto submitted to various
ecclesiastic burdens and restrictions that are inconsistent with equal liberty.
But now when the many and grievous oppressions of our mother country
have laid this continent under the necessity of casting off the yoke of
tyranny, and of forming independent governments upon equitable and
liberal foundations, we flatter ourselves that we shall be freed from all the
incumbrances which a spirit of domination, prejudice, or bigotry has
interwoven with most other political systems. This we are the more strongly
encouraged to expect by the Declaration of Rights, so universally applauded
for that dignity, firmness, and precision with which it delineates and asserts
the privileges of society, and the prerogatives of human nature; and which
we embrace as the Magna Charta of our commonwealth, that can never be
violated without endangering the grand superstructure it was designed to
sustain. Therefore, we rely upon this Declaration as well as the justice of
our honorable legislature, to secure us the free exercise of religion
according to the dictates of our own consciences: and we should fall short in
our duty to ourselves, and the many and numerous congregations under our
care, were we, upon this occasion, to neglect laying before you a statement
of the religious grievances under which we have hitherto labored, that they
may no longer be continued in our present form of government.
"It is well known that in the frontier counties, which are justly supposed to
contain a fifth part of the inhabitants of Virginia, the dissenters have borne
the heavy burdens of purchasing glebes, building churches, and supporting
the established clergy, where there are very few Episcopalians, either to
assist in bearing the expense, or to reap the advantage; and that throughout
other parts of the country there are also many thousands of Zealous friends
and defenders of our State, who, besides the invidious and disadvantageous
restrictions to which they have been subjected, annually pay large taxes to
support an establishment from which their consciences and principles oblige
them to dissent; all which are confessedly so many violations of their
natural rights, and, in their consequences, a restraint upon freedom of
inquiry and private judgment.
526
"In this enlightened age, and in a land where all of every denomination are
united in the most strenuous efforts to be free, we hope and expect that our
representatives will cheerfully concur in removing every species of
religious as well as civil bondage. Certain it is, that every argument for civil
liberty gains additional strength when applied to liberty in the concerns of
religion; and there is no argument in favor of establishing the Christian
religion but may be pleaded, with equal propriety, for establishing the tenets
of Mohammed by those who believe the Alcoran; or, if this be not true, it is
at least impossible for the magistrate to adjudge the right of preference
among the various sects that profess the Christian faith, without erecting a
claim to infallibility, which would lead us back to the Church of Rome.
"We beg leave farther to represent, that religious establishments are highly
injurious to the temporal interests of any community. Without insisting
upon the ambition and the arbitrary practices of those who are favored by
government or the intriguing, seditious spirit which is commonly excited by
this, as well as by every other kind of oppression, such establishments
greatly retard population, and, consequently, the progress of arts, sciences,
and manufactures. Witness the rapid growth and improvement of the
Northern provinces compared with this. No one can deny that the more
early settlements and the many superior advantages of our country, would
have invited multitudes of artificers, mechanics, and other useful members
of society, to fix their habitation among us, who have either remained in
their place of nativity, or preferred worse civil governments, and a more
barren soil, where they might enjoy the rights of conscience more fully than
they had a prospect of doing in this; from which we infer that Virginia
might have now been the capital of America, and a match for the British
arms, without depending on others for the necessaries of war, had it not
been prevented by her religious establishment.
"Neither can it be made to appear that the gospel needs any such civil aid.
We rather conceive that, when our blessed Saviour declares his kingdom is
not of this world, he renounces all dependence upon State power; and as his
weapons are spiritual, and were only designed to have influence on the
judgment and heart of men, we are persuaded that if mankind were left in
quiet possession of their inalienable religious privileges, Christianity, as in
the days of the apostles, would continue to prevail and flourish in the
greatest purity by its own native excellence, and under the all-disposing
providence of God.
527
"We would also humbly represent, that the only proper objects of civil
government are the happiness and protection of men in the present state of
existence, the security of the life, liberty, and property of the citizens, and to
restrain the vicious and encourage the virtuous by wholesome laws, equally
extending to every individual; but that the duty which we owe to our
Creator, and the manner of discharging it, can only be directed by reason
and conviction, and is nowhere cognizable but at the tribunal of the
universal Judge.
"Therefore we ask no ecclesiastical establishments for ourselves; neither
can we approve of them when granted to others. This, indeed, would be
giving exclusive or separate emoluments or privileges to one set of men,
without any special public services, to the common reproach and injury of
every other denomination. And for the reason recited, we are induced
earnestly to entreat that all laws now in force in this commonwealth, which
countenance religious domination, may be speedily repealed; that all of
every religious sect may be protected in the full exercise of their several
modes of worship; exempted from all taxes for the support of any church
whatsoever, farther than what may be agreeable to their own private choice
or voluntary obligation. This being done, all partial and invidious
distinction will be abolished, to the great honor and interest of the State, and
every one be left to stand or fall according to his merit, which can never be
the case so long as any one denomination is established in preference to the
others.
"That the great Sovereign of the universe may inspire you with unanimity,
wisdom, and resolution, and bring you to a just determination on all the
important concerns before you, is the fervent prayer of your
memorialists."*718
The Presbytery of Hanover was immediately joined in the good work by the
Baptists and the Quakers, who sent up petitions to the same purpose. The
Episcopalian was the established church of Virginia, and had been ever
since the planting of the colony. The Episcopalians and the Methodists sent
up counter-memorials, pleading for a continuance of the system of
established religion. Two members of the assembly, Messrs. Pendleton and
Nicolas, championed the establishment, and Jefferson, as ever, espoused the
cause of liberty and right. After nearly two months of what Jefferson
pronounced the severest contest in which he was ever engaged, the cause of
freedom prevailed, and December 6, 1776, the Assembly passed a law
repealing all the colonial laws and penalties prejudicial to dissenters,
528
will follow that they may revive the old establishment in its former extent,
or ordain a new one for any sect they may think proper; they are invested
with a power not only to determine, but it is incumbent on them to declare
who shall preach, what they shall preach, to whom, when, and in what
places they shall preach; or to impose any regulations and restrictions upon
religious societies that they may judge expedient. These consequences are
so plain as not to be denied, and they are so entirely subversive of religious
liberty, that if they should take place in Virginia, we should be reduced to
the melancholy necessity of saying with the apostles in like cases, `Judges
ye whether it is best to obey God or men,' and also of acting as they acted.
"Therefore, as it is contrary to our principles and interest, and, as we think,
subversive of religious liberty, we do again most earnestly entreat that our
legislature would never extend any assessment for religious purposes to us
or to the congregations under our care."*719
In 1779 they defeated the bill, which had been ordered to a third reading.
But in the first Assembly after the war was over, in 1784, it was brought up
again, this time with Patrick Henry as its leading advocate. It was entitled
"A Bill Establishing a Provision for Teachers of the Christian Religion."
James Madison stood with Jefferson. As the bill was about to pass, they
succeeded in carrying a motion to postpone it till the next session, but in the
meantime, to have it printed and generally circulated. As soon as this had
been accomplished, Madison wrote, also for general circulation and
signature, a Memorial and Remonstrance, to be presented to the next
Assembly, in opposition to the bill. This document reads as follows:-
"We, the subscribers, citizens of the said commonwealth, having taken into
serious consideration a bill printed by order of the last session of General
Assembly, entitled, `A Bill Establishing a Provision for Teachers of the
Christian Religion,' and conceiving that the same, if finally armed with the
sanctions of law, will be a dangerous abuse of power, are bound as faithful
members of a free State to remonstrate against it, and to declare the reasons
by which we are determined. We remonstrate against the said bill -
"1. Because we hold it for a fundamental and undeniable truth `that religion,
or the duty which we owe to our Creator, and the manner of discharging it,
can be directed only by reason and conviction, not by force or violence.'
The religion, then, of every man must be left to the conviction and
conscience of every man; and it is the right of every man to exercise it as
these may dictate. This right is in its nature an unalienable right. It is
unalienable, because the opinions of men, depending only on the evidence
530
contemplated in their own minds, cannot follow the dictates of other men. It
is unalienable, also, because what is here a right towards men is a duty
towards the Creator. It is the duty of every man to render to the Creator
such homage, and such only, as he believes to be acceptable to him. This
duty is precedent, both in order of time and in degree of obligation, to the
claims of civil society. Before any man can be considered as a member of
civil society, he must be considered as a subject of the Governor of the
universe: and if a member of civil society who enters into any subordinate
association must always do it with a reservation of his duty to the general
authority much more must every man who becomes a member of any
particular civil society do it with a saving of his allegiance to the universal
Sovereign. We maintain, therefore, that in matters of religion no man's right
is abridged by the institution of civil society and that religion is wholly
exempt from its cognizance. True it is, that no other rule exists by which
any question which may divide a society can be ultimately determined than
the will of the majority; but it is also true that the majority may trespass
upon the rights of the minority.
"2. Because, if religion be exempt from the authority of the society at large,
still less can it be subject to that of the legislative body. The latter are but
the creatures and vicegerents of the former. Their jurisdiction is both
derivative and limited. It is limited with regard to the co-ordinate
departments: more necessarily is it limited with regard to the constituents.
The preservation of a free government requires not merely that the metes
and bounds which separate each department of power be invariably
maintained, but more especially that neither of them be suffered to overleap
the great barrier which defends the rights of the people. The rulers who are
guilty of such an encroachment exceed the commission from which they
derive their authority, and are tyrants. The people who submit to it are
governed by laws made neither by themselves nor by any authority derived
from them, and are slaves.
"3. Because it is proper to take alarm at the first experiment upon our
liberties. We hold this prudent jealousy to be the first duty of citizens, and
one of the noblest characteristics of the late Revolution. The freemen of
America did not wait till usurped power had strengthened itself by exercise,
and entangled the question in precedents. They saw all the consequences in
the principle, and they avoided the consequences by denying the principle.
We revere this lesson too much, soon to forget it. Who does not see that the
same authority which can establish Christianity, in exclusion of all other
religions, may establish, with the same ease, any particular sect of
531
Christians, in exclusion of all other sects? that the same authority which can
force a citizen to contribute three pence only, of his property, for the
support of any one establishment, may force him to conform to any other
establishment in all cases whatsoever?
"4. Because the bill violates that equality which ought to be the basis of
every law, and which is more indispensable in proportion as the validity or
expediency of any law is more liable to be impeached. `If all men are by
nature equally free and independent,' all men are to be considered as
entering into society on equal conditions: as relinquishing no more, and
therefore, retaining no less, one than another, of their natural rights. Above
all, are they to be considered as retaining an `equal title to the free exercise
of religion according to the dictates of conscience.' Whilst we assert for
ourselves a freedom to embrace, to profess, and to observe, the religion
which we believe to be of divine origin, we cannot deny an equal freedom
to them whose minds have not yet yielded to the evidence which has
convinced us. If this freedom be abused, it is an offense against God, not
against man. To god, therefore, not to man, must an account of it be
rendered. As the bill violates equality by subjecting some to peculiar
burdens, so it violates the same principle by granting to others peculiar
exemptions. Are the Quakers and Menonists the only sects who think a
compulsive support of their religions unnecessary and unwarrantable? Can
their piety alone be intrusted with the care of public worship? Ought their
religions to be endowed above all others with extraordinary privileges by
which proselytes may be enticed from all others? We think too favorably of
the justice and good sense of these denominations to believe that they either
covet pre-eminences over their fellow-citizens, or that they will be seduced
by them from the common opposition to the measure.
"5. Because the bill implies either that the civil magistrate is a competent
judge of religious truths, or that he may employ religion as an engine of
civil policy. The first is an arrogant pretension, falsified by the
contradictory opinions of rulers in all ages and throughout the world; the
second, an unhallowed perversion of the means of salvation.
"6. Because the establishment proposed by the bill is not requisite for the
support of the Christian religion. To say that it is, is a contradiction to the
Christian religion itself, for every page of it disavows a dependence on the
powers of this world. It is a contradiction to fact; for it is known that this
religion both existed and flourished, not only without the support of human
laws, but in spite of every opposition from them; and not only during the
532
period of miraculous aid, but long after it had been left to its own evidence
and the ordinary care of providence. Nay, it is a contradiction in terms; for a
religion not invented by human policy must have pre-existed and been
supported before it was established by human policy. It is, moreover, to
weaken in those who profess this religion a pious confidence in its innate
excellence and the patronage of its Author; and to foster in those who still
reject it a suspicion that its friends are too conscious of its fallacies to trust
it to its own merits.
"7. Because experience witnesseth that ecclesiastical establishments, instead
of maintaining the purity and efficacy of religion, have had a contrary
operation. During almost fifteen centuries has the legal establishment of
Christianity been on trial. What have been its fruits? More or less, in all
places, pride and indolence in the clergy; ignorance and servility in the
laity; in both superstition, bigotry, and persecution. Inquire of the teachers
of Christianity for the ages in which it appeared in its greatest luster; those
of every sect point to the ages prior to its incorporation with civil policy.
Propose a restoration of this primitive state, in which its teachers depended
on the voluntary rewards of their flocks; - many of them predict its
downfall. On which side ought their testimony to have greatest weight; -
when for, or when against, their interest?
"8. Because the establishment in question is not necessary for the support of
civil government. If it be urged as necessary for the support of civil
government only as it is a means of supporting religion, and it be not
necessary for the latter purpose, it cannot be necessary for the former. If
religion be not within the cognizance of civil government, how can its legal
establishment be necessary to civil government? What influence, in fact,
have ecclesiastical establishments had on civil society? In some instances
they have been seen to erect a spiritual tyranny on the ruins of civil
authority; in many instances they have been seen upholding the thrones of
political tyranny; in no instance have they been seen the guardians of the
liberties of the people. Rulers who wished to subvert the public liberty may
have found in established clergy convenient auxiliaries. A just government,
instituted to secure and perpetuate it, needs them not. Such a government
will be best supported by protecting every citizen in the enjoyment of his
religion with the same equal hand which protects his person and his
property; by neither invading the equal right of any sect, nor suffering any
sect to invade those of another.
533
that it may be imparted to the whole race of mankind. Compare the number
of those who have as yet received it with the number still remaining under
the dominion of false religions, and how small is the former? Does the
policy of the bill tend to lessen the disproportion? No; it at once discourages
those who are strangers to the light of revelation from coming into the
region of it, and countenances by example the nations who continue in
darkness in shutting out those who might convey it to them. Instead of
leveling, as far as possible, every obstacle to the victorious progress of
truth, the bill, with an ignoble and unchristian timidity, would circumscribe
it with a wall of defense against the encroachments of error.
"Because attempts to enforce, by legal sanctions, acts obnoxious to so great
a proportion of citizens, tend to enervate the laws in general, and to slacken
the bands of society. If it be difficult to execute any law which is not
generally deemed necessary or salutary, what must be the case where it is
deemed invalid and dangerous? And what may be the effect of so striking
an example of impotency in the government on its general authority?
"Because a measure of such singular magnitude and delicacy ought not to
be imposed without the clearest evidence that it is called for by a majority
of citizens; and no satisfactory method is yet proposed by which the voice
of the majority in this case may be determined, or its influence secured.
`The people of the respective counties are, indeed, requested to signify their
opinion respecting the adoption of the bill, to the next session of the
Assembly.' But the representation must be made equal before the voice
either of the representatives or of the counties will be that of the people. Our
hope is, that neither of the former will, after due consideration, espouse the
dangerous principle of the bill. Should the event disappoint us, it will still
leave us in full confidence that a fair appeal to the latter will reverse the
sentence against our liberties.
"Because finally, `The equal right of every citizen to the free exercise of his
religion, according to the dictates of conscience,' is held by the same tenure
with all our other rights. If we recur to its origin, it is equally the gift of
nature; if we weigh its importance, it cannot be less dear to us; if we consult
the declaration of those rights 'which pertain to the good people of Virginia
as the basis and foundation of government,' it is enumerated with equal
solemnity, or rather with studied emphasis. Either, then, we must say that
the will of the legislature is the only measure of their authority, and that in
the plenitude of that authority they may sweep away all our fundamental
rights, or that they are bound to leave this particular right untouched and
535
sacred. Either we must say that they may control the freedom of the press,
may abolish the trial by jury, may swallow up the executive and judiciary
powers of the State; nay, that they may despoil us of our very right of
suffrage, and erect themselves into an independent and hereditary assembly,
or we must say that they have no authority to enact into a law the bill under
consideration.
"We the subscribers, say that the General Assembly of this commonwealth
have no such authority. And in order that no effort may be omitted on our
part against so dangerous an usurpation, we oppose to ti this remonstrance;
earnestly praying, as we are in duty bound, that the Supreme Lawgiver of
the universe, by illuminating those to whom it is addressed, may, on the one
hand, turn their councils from every act which would affront his holy
prerogative, or violate the trust committed to them; and, on the other, guide
them into every measure which may be worthy of his blessing, redound to
their own praise, and establish more firmly the liberties, the prosperity, and
the happiness of the commonwealth."*720
This incomparable remonstrance was so generally signed that the bill for a
general assessment was not only defeated, but in its place there was passed,
December 26, 1785, "An Act for Establishing Religious Freedom," written
by Thomas Jefferson, and reading as follows: -
"Well aware that Almighty God hath created the mind free; that all attempts
to influence it by temporal punishments or burdens, or by civil
incapacitations, tend only to beget habits of hypocrisy and meanness, and
are a departure from the plan of the holy Author of our religion, who being
Lord both of body and mind, yet chose not to propagate it by coercions on
either, as was in his almighty power to do; that the impious presumption of
legislators and rulers, civil as well as ecclesiastical, who being themselves
but fallible and uninspired men, have assumed dominion over the faith of
others, setting up their own opinions and modes of thinking as the only true
and infallible, and as such endeavoring to impose them on others, hath
established and maintained false religions over the greatest part of the
world, and through all time; that to compel a man to furnish contributions of
money for the propagations of opinions which he disbelieves, is sinful and
tyrannical; that even the forcing him to support this or that teacher of his
own religious persuasion, is depriving him of the comfortable liberty of
giving his contributions to the particular pastor whose morals he would
make his pattern, and whose powers he feels most persuasive to
righteousness, and is withdrawing from the ministry those temporal rewards
536
of the natural rights of mankind, and that if any act shall be hereafter passed
to repeal the present or to narrow its operation, such act will be an
infringement of natural right."*721
Now during this very time events were shaping and plans were being laid
for the formation of a federal government for the American Union, to take
the place of the helpless Confederation of States, and it is not too much to
say that to James Madison, more than to any other single individual, except
perhaps George Washington, is due the credit of bringing it all to a happy
issue. And these contests in Virginia, by which there had been severed the
illicit and corrupting connection between religion and the State, had
awakened the public mind and prepared the way for the formation of a
Constitution which would pledge the nation to a complete separation from
all connection with religion in any way. Accordingly, the Constitution, as
originally proposed by the convention, declared on this point that "no
religious test shall ever be required as a qualification to any office or public
trust under the United States." Yet this was not allowed by the people of the
States to be enough. One of the objections that was urged oftenest and
strongest was that it did not make the freedom of religion secure enough.
In the Virginia Convention for the ratification of the Constitution, Madison
said: -
"There is not a shadow of right in the general government to intermeddle
with religion. Its least interference with it would be a most flagrant
usurpation. I can appeal to my uniform conduct on this subject, that I have
warmly supported religious freedom. It is better that this security should be
depended upon from the general legislature, than from one particular State.
A particular State might concur in one religious project."*722
In the Massachusetts Convention, there was objection made to the clause
prohibiting a religious test, that "there is no provision that men in power
should have any religion; a papist or an infidel is as eligible as Christians."
To this a minister replied, "No conceivable advantage to the whole will
result from a test." Another said, "It would be happy for the United States if
our public men were to be of those who have a good standing in the
church." Again, a minister replied, "Human tribunals for the consciences of
men are impious encroachments upon the prerogatives of God. A religious
test, as a qualification for office, would have been a great blemish."*723
And Elder Isaac Backus, the Baptist minister, whose "Church History of
New England" we have quoted in this book, said: -
538
"Mr. President, I have said very little to this honorable convention; but I
now beg leave to offer a few thoughts upon some points in the Constitution
proposed to us, and I shall begin with the exclusion of any religious test.
Many appear to be much concerned about it; but nothing is more evident,
both in reason and the Holy Scriptures, than that religion is ever a matter
between God and individuals; and, therefore, no man or men can impose
any religious test without invading the essential prerogatives of our Lord
Jesus Christ. Ministers first assumed this power under the Christian name;
and then Constantine approved of the practice when he adopted the
profession of Christianity as an engine of State policy. And let the history of
all nations be searched from that day to this, and it will appear that the
imposing of religious tests has been the greatest engine of tyranny in the
world. And I rejoice to see so many gentlemen who are now giving in their
rights of conscience in this great and important matter. Some serious minds
discover a concern lest if all religious test should be excluded, the Congress
would hereafter establish popery, or some other tyrannical way of worship.
But it is most certain that no such way of worship can be established
without any religious test." *724
New York, Pennsylvania, New Hampshire, Virginia, and North Carolina,
all proposed amendments more fully to secure religious rights. The first
Congress under the Constitution met March 4, 1789, and in September of
the same year the first Amendment was adopted, declaring that "Congress
shall make no law respecting an establishment of religion, or prohibiting the
free exercise thereof." And in 1797 the treaty with Tripoli was framed by an
ex-Congregational clergyman, signed by President Washington, and
approved by the Senate of the United States, declaring that "the government
of the United States is not, in any sense, founded on the Christian religion."
This completed the testimony of the supreme law of the land, expressive of
the will of the American people that the government of the United States is,
and of right ought to be FREE AND INDEPENDENT OF ALL
ECCLESIASTICAL OR RELIGIOUS CONNECTION, INTERFERENCE,
OR CONTROL. And the proof is abundant and absolutely conclusive, that
it was all intentional, and that it was altogether out of respect for
Christianity and the inalienable rights of men.
Much has been said - none too much - of the wisdom of our fathers who set
to the world this glorious example. Yet in this particular thing it would be
an impeachment of their common sense to suppose they could have done
otherwise. They had before them the history of the world, pagan, papal, and
Protestant, from the cross of Christ to the Declaration of Independence, and,
539
its purest forms, - when it came to establish a government for the United
States, refused to treat faith as a matter to be regulated by a corporate body,
or having a headship in a monarch or a State.
"Vindicating the right of individuality even in religion, and in religion
above all, the new nation dared to set the example of accepting in its
relations to God the principle first divinely ordained of God in Judea. It left
the management of temporal things to the temporal power; but the
American Constitution, in harmony with the people of the several States,
withheld from the Federal government the power to invade the home of
reason, the citadel of conscience, the sanctuary of the soul; and not from
indifference, but that the infinite Spirit of eternal truth might move in its
freedom and purity and power."*725
Thus with "perfect individuality extended to conscience," the Constitution
of the United States as it is, stands as the sole monument of all history
representing the principle which Christ established for earthly government.
And under it, in liberty, civil and religious, in enlightenment, and in
progress, this nation has deservedly stood as the beacon light of the world,
for more than a hundred years.
541
CHAPTER XXV.
THE GREAT CONSPIRACY.
IT would seem that all people in the United States would be glad of the
opportunity to rejoice evermore that by its supreme law this nation is
pledged to religious freedom. It would seem that everybody ought to be
glad of the opportunity to herald to all the world the fame of a nation under
whose protection all people might dwell wholly unmolested in the full
enjoyment of religious rights and the liberty to worship or not to worship
according to the dictates of their own consciences.
Such, however, is not the case. As religious bigotry knows no such thing as
enlightenment or progress; as ecclesiastical ambition never can be content
without the power to persecute; so from the beginning, complaint has been
made against the character of the United States Constitution as it respects
religion, and constant effort has been made to weaken its influence,
undermine its authority, and subvert its precepts.
From the very beginning, this feature of the Constitution has been
denounced as foolish, atheistical, the strictly national sin, and the cause of
epidemics, etc., particularly by ministers of such religion as had not
sufficient power of truth to support itself, and doctors of a divinity so weak
and sickly that it could not protect itself, much less protect and bless its
worshipers or anybody else.
October 27, 1789, "The First Presbytery Eastward in Massachusetts and
New Hampshire," sent to President Washington an address in which they
complained because there was no "explicit acknowledgment of the only true
God and Jesus Christ whom he has sent, inserted somewhere in the Magna
Charta of our country." September 20, 1793, in a sermon preached in New
York City on a fast day on account of the yellow fever in Philadelphia, and
entitled "Divine Judgments," Dr. John M. Mason magnified the "irreligious"
feature of the Constitution as one of the chief causes of the calamities of
which he was speaking. He solemnly observed that had "such momentous
business" as forming a Constitution, been transacted by Mohammedans, or
even the savages, they would have done it "in the name of God" or "paid
some homage to the Great Spirit." Yes, that is all true enough; and their god
would have been as cruel and savage as the Mohammedan and other
national gods have always been. But happily for us and all the rest of the
542
world, the noble men who framed the Constitution were neither
Mohammedans nor savages. They were men enlightened by the principles
and precepts of Christianity, and by a knowledge of history; and were
endowed with respect for the rights of men.
In 1803 Samuel B. Wylie, D. D., of the University of Pennsylvania,
preached a sermon in which he inquired: "Did not the framers of this
instrument . . . in this resemble the fool mentioned in Ps. xiv, 1, 3, who said
in his heart, 'There is no God'?" In 1811 Samuel Austin, D. D., a New
England Congregationalist, afterward president of the University of
Vermont, preached a sermon in Worcester, Mass., in which he declared that
this "capital defect" in the national Constitution "will issue inevitably in the
destruction" of the nation.
In 1812 President Dwight of Yale College preached a sermon in the college
chapel, in which he lamented the failure of the Constitution to recognize a
God, declaring that "we commenced our national existence, under the
present system, without God." The next year he recurred to the same thing,
saying that "the grossest nations and individuals, in their public acts and in
their declarations, manifestoes, proclamations, etc., always recognize the
superintendency of a Supreme Being. Even Napoleon did it." Of course
Napoleon did it. It is such characters as he that are most likely to do it; and
then, having covered himself with the hypocritical panoply, to ruin
kingdoms, desolate nations, and violate every precept of morality and every
principle of humanity. Yes, Napoleon did it; and so did Charlemagne before
him, and Clovis, and Justinian, and Theodosius, and Constantine, to say
nothing of hundreds of the popes. But the fathers of this republic were not
such as any of these, the noblest pledge of which is the character of the
Constitution as it respects religion, for all of which every Christian can most
reverently thank the God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ.
In 1819, on a thanksgiving day appointed by the governor of Pennsylvania,
Dr. Duffield preached a sermon at Carlisle, in which he declared the
Constitution "entirely atheistical." Other such testimonies as the foregoing
might be given to a wearisome extent, but with one more these must
suffice.*726 In 1859 Prof. J. H. McIlvaine, D. D., of the College of New
Jersey, afterward of Princeton College, published an article in the Princeton
Review for October, in which he really lamented that "the practical effect"
of the Constitution as it is, with respect to religion, "is the neutrality of the
government with respect to all religion; " and seemed much to be grieved
"that no possible governmental influence can be constitutionally exerted for
543
or against any form of religious belief." If only our fathers in forming the
national government and making the Constitution, had created a national
god and established its worship under penalties of fine, imprisonment,
whipping, branding, banishment, or death, and had drawn up a national
creed so that the question of orthodoxy, with all its riotous and bloody
accompaniments, could have been the grand issue in every congressional or
presidential election, no doubt all these distressed doctors of divinity would
have been delighted. Fortunately for the country and for the human race, the
noble men who established this government had in view the protection and
preservation of the inalienable rights of all the people, rather than the
clothing of religious bigots with governmental power to force upon others
their false religious views.
So far, however, all these criticisms and denunciations had been merely
individual. Though they were strongly seconded by the legislative, judicial,
and executive authorities in almost all the States, there was as yet no
organized attack upon the Constitution, or regular war upon its principles.
But in 1863 such an organization was effected and such a war was begun. In
February of that year, " A convention for prayer and Christian conference"
was held in Xenia, Ohio, to consider in particular the state of the country. It
was composed of representatives of eleven different religious
denominations from seven States. The convention met February 3, and on
the fourth, Mr. John Alexander, a United Presbyterian and covenanter, then
of Xenia, later and now (1891) of Philadelphia, presented for the
consideration of the Convention, a paper in which he bewailed the "human
frailty and ingratitude" of the makers of the Constitution, and deplored the
national sin of which they and all their posterity were guilty, because they
had "well-nigh legislated God out of the government;" and closed with the
following words: -
"We regard the Emancipation Proclamation of the President and his
recommendation to purge the Constitution of slavery, as among the most
hopeful signs of the times.
"We regard the neglect of God and his law, by omitting all acknowledgment
of them in our Constitution, as the crowning, original sin of the nation, and
slavery as one of its natural outgrowths. Therefore the most important step
remains yet to be taken, - to amend the Constitution so as to acknowledge
God and the authority of his law; and the object of this paper is to suggest to
this convention the propriety of considering this subject, and of preparing
544
"'And further: that such changes with respect to the oath of office, slavery,
and all other matters, should be introduced into the body of the constitution,
as may be necessary to give effect to these amendments in the preamble.
And we, your humble petitioners, will ever pray,'" etc.
"Resolved, That a special committee be appointed to carry the Memorial to
Washington, lay it before the President, and endeavor to get a special
message to Congress on the subject, and to lay said Memorial before
Congress."
The Prof. J. H. Mc Ilvaine, D. D., LL. D., before referred to, was made
chairman of this special committee; and, as may well be supposed, was a
diligent agent in this particular office, as well as an earnest worker for the
bad cause, till the day of his death.
At this Allegheny meeting a permanent organization was effected, called
"The National Association to Secure the Religious Amendment of the
Constitution of the United states," with Mr. John Alexander as the first
president, and Zadok Street, a Quaker, as vice-president. *727
It is not necessary to trace the particulars of the thing any further; suffice it
to say that a national convention has been held each year since in the
principal eastern cities - Pittsburg, New York, Philadelphia, Washington,
and as far west as Cincinnati. The official organ of the Association is the
Christian Statesman, established in 1867, and published in Philadelphia. In
the latest official manual of the association - 1890 - we find that the
president is Hon. Felix R. Brunot, of Pittsburg, who has held the office
since 1869; that there are one hundred and twenty-five vice-presidents, from
thirty States, the District of Columbia, and Utah, among whom are eleven
bishops, twelve college presidents and three ex-college presidents, eleven
college professors, four ex-governors, three editors, - Drinkhouse of the
Methodist-Protestant, Baltimore; Fitzgerald of the Christian Advocate,
Nashville;*728 and Howard of the Cumberland Presbyterian, Nashville, -
and such a store of Reverends, D. D.'s, LL. D.'s and Rev. D. D.'s and Rev.
D. D. LL. D.'s, that we cannot take the time or space to designate them;
though it may not be amiss to mention such well-known names as Joseph
Cook of Boston; President Seelye of Amherst, Dr. T. L. Cuyler of
Brooklyn, and Herrick Johnson of Chicago. Besides all these, there is an
executive committee of eighteen, and seven district secretaries. Article II of
the constitution of the association reads as follows: -
"The object of this society shall be to maintain existing Christian features in
the American government; to promote needed reforms in the action of the
546
government touching the Sabbath, the institution of the family, the religious
element in education, the oath, and public morality as affected by the liquor
traffic and other kindred evils; and to secure such an amendment to the
Constitution of the United States as will declare the nation's allegiance to
Jesus Christ, and its acceptance of the moral laws of the Christian religion,
and so indicate that this is a Christian nation, and place all the Christian
laws, institutions, and usages of our government on an undeniable legal
basis in the fundamental law of the land."
Now it is evident that were these principles adopted as the legal basis of the
government, none but professed Christians could hold any office or place of
trust under the government. And it is just as certainly evident that the
consequence would be that every political hack, every demagogue, every
unprincipled politician, in the United States would become a professed
Christian; and every popular religious body would be joined by a horde of
hypocrites. But instead of trembling at such a prospect, the National
Reformers actually rejoice at it. In the National Reform Convention held at
Cincinnati, January 31 to February 1, 1872, "Rev." T. P. Stevenson,
corresponding secretary of the Association and editor of the Christian
Statesman, delivered an address in which he said: -
"The acknowledgment, in the terms of the proposed Amendment or any
similar terms, of the revealed will of God as of supreme authority, would
make the law I have quoted from the Bible [Ex. xviii, 21], supreme law in
this land, and candidates and constituencies would govern themselves
accordingly. If it be objected that men would become hypocrites to obtain
office, we can only say that the hypocrisy which abstains from blasphemy
and licentiousness, and conforms the outward life to the morality of the
Christian religion, is a species of hypocrisy which we are exceedingly
anxious to cultivate, and which all our laws restraining immorality are
adapted and intended to produce."
And in the Christian Statesman, of November 1, 1883, "Rev." W. J.
Coleman, one of the principal exponents of the National Reform religion,
replied to some questions that had been put by a correspondent who signed
himself "Truth Seeker." We copy the following: -
"What effect would the adoption of the Christian Amendment, together with
the proposed changes in the Constitution, have upon those who deny that
God is the Sovereign, Christ the Ruler, and the Bible the law? This brings
up the conscience question at once. . . . The classes who would object are as
'Truth Seeker' has said, Jews, infidels, atheists, and others. These classes are
547
perfectly satisfied with the Constitution as it is. How would they stand
toward it f recognized the authority of our Lord Jesus Christ? To be
perfectly plain, I believe that the existence of a Christian Constitution
would disfranchise every logically consistent infidel."
Notice, it is only the logically consistent dissenter that would be
disfranchised. By the same token, then, the logically inconsistent could all
be citizens. That is, the man of honest intention, of firm conviction, and of
real principle, who valued his principles more than he did political
preference, would be disfranchised; while the time-servers, the men of no
convictions and of no principle, could all be acceptable citizens. In other
words, the honest man, if he be a dissenter, could not be a citizen; but every
hypocrite could be a citizen. Therefore the inevitable result of the National
Reform theory and purpose is to put a premium upon hypocrisy. *729 And
through it the professed Christian churches of the country would become, in
fact, that which the Revelation has shown in prophecy, " a hold of every
foul spirit, and a cage of every unclean and hateful bird." Rev. xviii, 2.
The word of God says, "Whatsoever is not of faith is sin." Rom. xiv, 23.
Even the voluntary doing of any duty toward God, without faith, is sin; and
to compel men to do it is nothing else than to compel them to commit sin.
More than this, to proffer obedience to God, from interested motives, is sin
and hypocrisy. Now the National Reform scheme proposes to offer political
inducements to men to proffer obedience to God. The National Reform
scheme does propose to have every member of the State proffer service to
God, and conform to religious observances, from none other than interested
motives. For men to tender obedience or homage to God, while they have
no love for him in their hearts, is both to dishonor him and to do violence to
their own nature. And to bribe or compel men to do this very thing, is the
direct aim of the National Reform Association. Its success therefore would
so increase hypocrisy and multiply sin, under the cloak of godliness, that
national ruin would as certainly follow as it did the same system practiced
upon the Roman empire.
From the proposition made in the memorial to Congress - to change the
body of the Constitution so as to fit their proposed preamble - it will be seen
that if their purpose could be made effective, there would not be left enough
of the Constitution as it now is to be of any use to anybody. According to
their purpose, the Bible, as the revealed will of Christ who is to be made the
Ruler, is to be the supreme law. That in effect, then would become the
Constitution. Then this supreme law would necessarily need to be
548
authoritatively interpreted. They are all ready for this, however. They have
the whole scheme completed. They know that the changes which they
propose, mean much: but above all things else that they intend that these
changes shall bring about, is the putting of the clergy in the place of the
supreme interpreter of the new supreme law of the land. In the Christian
Statesman of February 21, 1884, one of their leaders, the Rev. J. C. K.
Milligan, announced the following program: -
"The changes will come gradually, and probably only after the whole
frame-work of bible legislation has been thoroughly canvassed by Congress
and State legislatures, by the Supreme Courts of the United States and of
the several States, and by lawyers and citizens generally; an outpouring of
the Spirit might soon secure it. The churches and the pulpits have much to
do with shaping and forming opinions on all moral questions, and with
interpretations of Scripture on moral and civil, as well as on theological and
ecclesiastical points; and it is probable that in the almost universal gathering
of our citizens about these, the chief discussions and the final decision of
most points will be developed there. 'Many nations shall come, and say,
Come, and let us go up to the mountain of the Lord, and to the house of the
God of Jacob; and he will teach us of his ways, and we will walk in paths;
for the law shall go forth of Zion.' There certainly is no class of citizens
more intelligent, patriotic, and trustworthy than the leaders and teachers in
our churches."
This passage, the expressions of which might easily be paralleled to any
extent from the columns of the Christian Statesman, simply puts in
condensed form the plans and ultimate aims of the National Reform
Association. And by it, it is seen at once that it is a revival of the original
scheme of John Calvin, and is the very image of the papal scheme of the
fourth century.
According to this National Reform scheme, it is intended once more to
destroy all distinction between moral and civil affairs. Once more all things
pertaining to the government are to be made moral, with the clergy in the
place of interpreters on all points. In the same article from which the above
quotation is taken, there was also written the following concerning their
proposed amendment: -
"In brief, its adoption will at once make the morality of the ten
commandments to be the supreme law of the land, and anything in the State
Constitutions and laws that is contrary to them will become
unconstitutional."
549
Now the ten commandments are for the universe, the supreme standard of
morals. They are the law of God, the supreme moral Governor. Every duty
enjoined in the Bible - that is to say, every duty of man - finds its spring in
some one of the ten commandments. This law takes cognizance of the
thoughts and intents of the heart. To violate that law, even in thought, is sin.
For said Christ: "Ye have heard that it was said by them of old time, Thou
shalt not commit adultery; but I say unto you, That whosoever looketh on a
woman to lust after her hath committed adultery with her already in his
heart." And again: "Ye have heard that it was said by them of old time,
Thou shalt not kill, and whosoever shall kill shall be in danger of the
judgment; but I say unto you, That whosoever is angry with his brother
without a cause shall be in danger of the judgment; and whosoever shall say
to his brother, Raca, shall be in danger of the council; but whosoever shall
say, Thou fool, shall be in danger of hell fire." Matt. v, 27, 28, 21, 22. And
"whosoever hateth his brother is a murderer." 1 John iii, 15.
This is sufficient to show that the ten commandments deal with the
thoughts, with the heart, with the conscience. By this law is the knowledge
of sin (Rom. iii, 20); in fact, the inspired definition of sin is, "Sin is the
transgression of the law." 1 John iii, 4. And as already shown, the law may
be transgressed by thinking harshly or impurely of another; it is immoral to
do so.
But it is the government of God alone which has to do with the thoughts and
intents of the hearts, and with the eternal interests of men. Governments of
men have to do only with the outward acts and the temporal affairs of men,
and this without reference to any question of God or religion. The law of the
government of God is moral: the laws of the governments of men are only
civil.
The moral law is thus defined: "The will of God, as the supreme moral
ruler, concerning the character and conduct of all responsible beings; the
rule of action as obligatory on the conscience or moral nature." "The moral
law is summarily contained in the decalogue, written by the finger of God
on two tables of stone, and delivered to Moses on Mount Sinai."
This definition is evidently according to Scripture. The Scriptures show that
the ten commandments are the law of God; that they express the will of
God; that they pertain to the conscience, and take cognizance of the
thoughts and intents of the heart; and that obedience to these
commandments is the duty that man owes to God.
550
Says the scripture, "Fear God, and keep his commandments; for this is the
whole duty of man. For God will bring every work into judgment, with
every secret thing, whether it be good, or whether it be evil." Eccl xii, 13,
14.
This quotation with the ones above given from the sermon on the Mount,
are sufficient to show that obedience to the moral law, from the heart and in
the very thought, - that this only is morality; which is therefore correctly
defined as, "The relation of conformity or non-conformity to the true moral
standard or rule. . . . The conformity of an act to the divine law." The moral
law being the law of God, morality being conformity to that law, and that
law pertaining to the thoughts and intents of the heart, it follows that in the
very nature of the case, the enforcement of that law, or the requirement of
conformity thereto, lies beyond the jurisdiction, and even the reach of, any
human government.
Under the law of God, to hate is murder; to covet is idolatry; to think
impurely of a woman, is adultery. These things are all equally immoral,
equally violations of the moral law; but no civil government seeks to punish
on account of them. A man may hate his neighbor all his life; he may covet
everything on earth; he may think impurely of every woman that he sees, -
he may keep this up all his days: but so long as these things are confined to
his thought, the civil power cannot touch him. It would be difficult to
conceive of a more immoral person than such a man would be; yet the State
cannot punish him. It does not attempt to punish him. This is simply
because that with such things - with morality or immorality - the State can
have nothing to do.
But let us carry this further. Only let a man's hatred lead him even by a sign,
to attempt an injury to his neighbor, and the State will punish him; only let
his covetousness lead him to lay hands on what is not his own, in an attempt
to steal, and the State will punish him; only let his impure thought lead him
to attempt violence to any woman, and the State will punish him. Yet let it
be borne in mind that even then the State does not punish him for his
immorality, but for his incivility. The immorality lies in the heart, and can
be measured by God only. The incivility is in the outward action, and may
be measured by men. It is not with questions of moral right or wrong, but
with civil rights and wrongs that the State has to do.
The correctness of this distinction is further shown in the term by which
government by men - State or national government - is designated. It is
called civil government, and the term "civil" is thus defined: "Pertaining to
551
has expiated his crime with his life. But the slightest sin, even if it is no
crime at all, as for example the anger of a man against his brother, an anger
which does not utter itself in the form of violent deeds, but is pent up in the
heart, - such noncriminal sin will banish the soul forever from heaven,
unless it is made naught by sincere repentance."*730
This position is yet further strengthened by the fact that morality and
religion are inseparable. Indeed, this is seen by a mere glance at the
definitions already given. The moral law is defined to be, "The will of God,
as supreme moral ruler, concerning the character and conduct of all
responsible beings; the rule of action as obligatory on the conscience, or
moral nature." This is, in very substance, identical with the definitions of
religion as being man's personal relation of faith and obedience to God, and
the recognition of him as an object of worship, love, and obedience. Again;
the moral law is correctly stated to be summarily contained in the
decalogue: and the scripture declares that of fear God and keep these
commandments is the whole duty of man, which shows that this embraces
all of man's relationship to God.
The statement of these principles without any further argument, is sufficient
to demonstrate that governments of men are civil governments, not moral.
Governors of men are civil governors, not moral. The laws of States and
nations are civil laws, not moral. To the authorities of civil government,
pertains the punishment of incivility, that is, the violation of civil rights, or
civil law. It is not theirs to punish immorality. That pertains solely to the
Author of the moral law and of the moral sense, who is the sole judge of
man's moral relations. All this must be manifest to every one who will think
candidly upon the subject.*731
As God is the only moral governor, as his law is the only moral law, and as
it pertains to him alone to punish immorality, so likewise the promotion of
morality pertains to him alone. Morality is conformity to the law of God; it
is obedience to God. But obedience to God must spring from the heart in
sincerity and truth. This it must do, or it is not obedience; because the law
of God takes cognizance of the thoughts and intents of the heart. But "all
have sinned, and come short of the glory of God." By transgression, all men
have made themselves immoral, and by the moral law are found "guilty
before God." "Therefore by the deeds of the law [by obedience] there shall
no flesh be justified [accounted righteous, or made moral] in his sight."
Rom. iii, 20. None can ever become moral by the law, because it is that very
law that declares all men immoral. The demands of the moral law must be
553
satisfied before any man can ever be accepted as moral by either the law or
its author. But these demands never can be satisfied by man himself,
because by his transgressions he has made himself immoral.
It is certain, therefore, that if ever men become moral, it must be by some
other means than even the moral law, and much less could this result ever
be brought about by civil law or any other human process. Yet such means
has been supplied, not by man, but by the Author and Source of morality.
For, "Now the righteousness [the morality] of God without the law is
manifested, being witnessed by the law and the prophets; even the
righteousness [the morality] of God which is by faith of Jesus Christ unto
all and upon all them that believe; for there is no difference; for all have
sinned [made themselves immoral], and come short of the glory of God."
Rom. iii, 21-23. It is by the morality of Christ alone that men can be made
moral. And this morality of Christ is the morality of God, which is imputed
to us for Christ's sake; and we receive it by faith in him who is both the
author and finisher of faith. Then by the Spirit of God the moral law is
written anew in the heart and in the mind, sanctifying the soul unto
obedience - unto morality. Thus, and thus alone, can men ever attain to
morality; and that morality is morality of God which is by faith of Jesus
Christ; and there is no other in this world. Therefore, as morality springs
from God, and is planted in the heart by the Spirit of God, through faith in
the Son of God, it is demonstrated by proofs of Holy Writ itself, that to God
alone pertains the promotion of morality.
It is by the gospel and not by the law that men are made moral, and that
morality is promoted in the world. And this work is committed by Jesus
Christ, not to the State, nor to the Church by means of the State, but to the
Church alone by the power of God. To the Church, and not to the State, he
said, "Go and teach all nations whatsoever I have commanded you, and lo, I
am with you." Upon the Church, not upon the State, he poured the Spirit of
God, by which is manifested the power of God that enables men to act in
conformity with the divine will. By his Spirit it is that God worketh in men,
both to will and to do of his good pleasure. It is by the church, through the
preaching of Jesus Christ, that the gospel is "made known to all nations for
the obedience of faith." There is no obedience but the obedience of faith;
there is no morality but the morality of faith. Therefore it is proved that to
the Church, and not to the State, is committed the conservation of morality
in the world. This at once settles the question as to whether the State shall
teach morality or religion. The State cannot teach morality or religion. It has
not the credentials for it. The Spirit of God and the gospel of Christ are both
554
those moral principles that pertain to its own sphere of justice and right, in
her schools and everywhere else, and do her own work as she shall answer
to God himself, as she is the creature of his ordaining.'" [Applause.]
It is yet more fully expressed in a speech by "Rev." T. H. Tatlow in a
convention at Sedalia, Mo., May 23, 24, 1889, as follows: -
"To these crafty and carnal assumptions, the spiritual man, firm in Christian
principle and the integrity of his convictions, replies: God's jurisdiction over
man is before and above all others: and is wisely adapted to man's entire
existence in all its diversified relationships, both as spiritual and secular.
That this jurisdiction is not only universal but also special, including all the
agencies as parts of the greater; just as all its parts are included in the
whole. That God has given to man in the present world, a two-fold life, one
part spiritual, and the other part secular; and has so blended them together
that the secular life, embracing man's civil, social, and earthly good, is
subordinate to his spiritual life and spiritual good. Therefore, since God's
law, and his administration of it, apply to man's spiritual life, it must also
necessarily apply to man's civil, social, and business life, as subordinate
parts of his higher spiritual life. This spiritual life, therefore, is the
fundamental, or constitutional, life of man; and God's law, as expressive of
his will regarding this dual life of man, and as found in the ten
commandments, is the constitutional law of God's jurisdiction over man,
and is therefore irreparable.
"In administering this one constitutional law to the good of this two-fold life
of man, God has ordained two administrative agencies, one of them the
Church, as the spiritual agency in the realm of man's spiritual life, and the
other the State as his Secular agency in the realm of man's secular life. And
although these agents are two and not one, and are diverse in their nature,
and occupy separate and diverse realms of authority, yet they are both of
them subject to the same law, and are ordained for the purpose of
ministering to man's good through this one and same law. And therefore it
is, that civil government, of wherever abstract form it be, as "an ordinance
of God." and the civil ruler as "a minister of God," are both alike subject to
the ten commandments. And not only are they subject, but are ministers of
God to man for good. They are also his agents for applying these
commandments to man's good within the realm of man's secular life, as far
as the commandments have secular application. This is admitted to be so as
far as these commandments apply to murder, adultery, theft, and slander;
and they also in like manner apply to the worship of God, and the worship
556
of the Sabbath as far as these come within the province of the civil power.
These things being so, neither the civil power "as God's ordinance," nor the
civil ruler, "as God's minister," within their special province, have any
authority as such to make void any of the ten commandments, whether by
neglect in enforcing them, or by indifference to their authority and claims.
"At this point, the party of civil policy protests and cries out that this is
uniting Church and State. The Christian replies: It is indeed a union, but
only so far as two separate jurisdictions, the one spiritual and primary, and
the other secular and secondary, exercise each one its own appropriate
authority within its own individual province, to secure a two-fold good to
the two-fold life of man. This union, therefore, is like the union of the
spiritual in man, acting conjointly with the body in man; the body being
brought under and kept in subjection to the spiritual. It is like the union of
the spiritual life in man acting conjointly with man's domestic life; all the
members of the family being loved less than Christ; and all made subject to
his claims."
Let us analyze this: (a) Man is composed of two parts, spiritual and secular;
(b) The ten commandments, as expressive of the whole duty of man to God,
are likewise composed of two parts - the spiritual and the secular; (c) There
are two agencies employed for applying the two-fold nature of this law to
the two-fold nature of man; these two agencies are the Church and the State;
(d) Throughout, the secular is subordinate, and must be held in subjection to
the spiritual; (e) Therefore, The State as the secular and subordinate agency
must be "brought under," held "in subjection" to, the Church, just as the
body, the secular part of man, must be brought under and kept in subjection
to the mind, the spiritual part of man.
In perfect accord, therefore, with this logical deduction from the two
preceding extracts, one of the oldest district secretaries of the National
Reform Association, "Rev." J. M. Foster, in the Christian Cynosure, of
October 17, 1889, said: -
"According to Scriptures, the State and its sphere exist for the sake of, and
to serve the interests of, the Church." "The true State will have a wise
reference to the Church's interests in all its legislative, executive, and
judicial proceedings. . . . The expenses of the church, in carrying on her
public, aggressive work, it meets in whole or in part out of the public
treasury. Thus the Church is protected and exalted by the State.
From these declarations it is clear that the National Reform view of the
relationship between the Church and the State, is identical with the old
557
Cartwright an Calvinistic one - the original papal view - that the State exists
only as subordinate to the church, to serve the interests of the church, and, if
need be, to lick the dust off the feet of the church.
Again: after the manner of the clergy of the fourth century, the purpose in
this is to turn the government of the United States into a kingdom of God.
This is evident from their proposed preamble to the Constitution, and the
other quotations given, but they say it so plainly in words that the
statements are worth quoting. Like the original scheme, this also proceeds
upon the theory of a theocracy. In the Cincinnati National Reform
Convention, January 31 to February 1, 1872, "Rev." Prof. J. R. W. Sloane,
D. D. said: -
"Every government, by equitable laws, is a government of God; a republic
thus governed is of him, through the people, and is as truly and really a
theocracy as the commonwealth of Israel. The refusal to acknowledge this
fact is as much a piece of foolish impiety as that of the man who persists in
refusing to acknowledge that God is the author of his existence."
The qualifying phrase, "by equitable laws," confines this statement to
National Reform governments, because all others, as the United States for
instance, are not governments by equitable laws, but are "atheistic"
governments. The argument, therefore, is flatly that the National Reform
idea of earthly government is as truly and really falsely theocratically as it
that of the papacy itself.*733
In the National Reform convention of 1873, held in New York City,
February 26, 27, one of the speakers, "Rev." J. Hogg, said: -
"The nation that takes hold upon God and the Lord Jesus Christ, shall never
die. . . . Let us acknowledge God as our Father and sovereign, and source of
all good, and his blessing will be upon us. Crime and corruption will come
to an end, and the benign reign of Jesus, our rightful Lord, will be
established." [Applause.]
In the same convention, another speaker, "Rev." J. P. Lytle, likening the
National Reform movement to a train of cars going up a steep grade, said: -
"When we reach the summit, . . . the train will move out into the mild yet
glorious light of millennial days, and the cry will be raised, 'The kingdoms
of this world have become the kingdoms of out Lord, and of his Christ.'"
[Applause.]
In the same convention, another, "Rev." A. M. Milligan, D. D., said: -
558
"Like Pontius Pilate, we have a person on our hands, and like him we may
ask, 'What shall I do with Jesus who is called Christ?' We must either
crucify or crown him; and like the Jewish nation, our decision will seal our
future destiny. Either like them we will reject him and perish, or, becoming
a kingdom of our Lord and his Christ, we shall fill the earth, and endure
forever."
In the annual convention of the Association for 1887, "Rev." W. T.
McConnel, of Youngstown, Ohio, proposed the formation of -
"A praying league, to be composed of all who are interested in this
movement, to covenant together to offer a prayer at the noon hour, wherever
they may be, every day till our prayer is answered in the abolition of the
liquor traffic, and till this nation is made God's kingdom."
The proposition was heartily and unanimously indorsed by the convention,
and Mr. Mc Connel was given charge of the concern.
And that no element might be lacking to the perfect likeness of the original
papal theory, the Christian Nation, which is second only to the Christian
Statesman in National Reform propensities, in an editorial, June 15, 1887,
put the finishing touch to the picture, in the following words: -
"When the State becomes positively Christian in Constitution, and Christian
men are elected to make law, something like this will be done: A street-car
company's charter will be granted, conditioned upon the running of cars free
on Sabbath for the accommodation of Christian people on errands of
worship, of necessity, and of mercy, even as bridge toll is at present
remitted on the Sabbath in some places. To this it will be objected that
others than Christians will ride for other than Christian purposes, which is
very true; but the sin will be upon their own souls. The company will suffer
no hardships, the men employed will be God's messengers for good, and 'in
that day there shall be upon the bells of the horses, holiness unto the
Lord,'"*734
The likeness being so close in theory, between this and the papacy, it were
only to be expected that the likeness would be just as close in practice if the
National Reformers should only secure the power to put the theory into
practice. This also is abundantly shown in the published words and
speeches of the chiefest representatives of the Association. The National
Reform Sunday-school lessons for 1884, published in the Christian
Statesman, were written by David Gregg, D. D., then of New York City,
later pastor of Park Street Church, Boston, and now (1891), successor to Dr.
559
land, and in the name of the devil, and for the sake of the devil, subdue it,
and set up a government of their own on infidel and atheistic ideas; and then
if they can stand it, stay there till they die."
Yet more than this: In the National Reform convention for 1873, held in
New York City, Jonathan Edwards, D. D., a vice-president and a leading
spirit of the Association, made a speech in which he said: -
"We want State and religion, and we are going to have it. It shall be that so
far as the affairs of State require religion, it shall be revealed religion - the
religion of Jesus Christ. The Christian oath and Christian morality shall
have in this land 'an undeniable legal basis.' We use the word 'religion' in its
proper sense, as meaning a man's personal relation of faith and obedience to
God."
Then according to their own definition, the National Reform Association
intends that the State shall obtrude itself into every man's personal relation
of faith and obedience to God. Mr. Edwards proceeds: -
"Now, we are warned that to engraft this doctrine upon the Constitution will
be oppressive; that it will infringe the rights of conscience; and we are told
that there are atheists, deists, Jews, and Seventh-day Baptists who would be
sufferers under it."
He then defines the terms "atheist," "deist," "Jew," and "Seventh-day
Baptist," and counts them all atheists as follows: -
"The atheist is a man who denies the being of God and a future life. To him,
mind and matter are the same, and time is the be-all and end-all of
consciousness and of character.
"The deist admits God, but denies that he has any such control over human
affairs as we call providence, or that he ever manifests himself and his will
in a revelation.
"The Jew admits God, providence, and revelation, but rejects the entire
scheme of gospel redemption by Jesus Christ as sheer imagination, or,
worse, sheer imposture.
"The Seventh-day Baptists believe in God and Christianity, and are
conjoined with the other members of this class by the accident of differing
with the mass of Christians upon the question of what precise day of the
week shall be observed as holy.
561
"These all are, for the occasion, and as far as our Amendment is concerned,
one class. They use the same arguments and the same tactics against us.
They must be counted together, which we very much regret, but which we
cannot help. The first-named is the leader in the discontent and the outery -
the atheist, to whom nothing is higher or more sacred than man, and nothing
survives the tomb. It is his class. Its labors are almost wholly in his interest;
its success would be almost wholly his triumph. The rest are adjuncts to him
in this contest. They must be named from him: they must be treated as, for
this question, one party."
What, then, are the rights of these "atheists" according to the National
Reform view? Mr. Edwards asks the question, and answers it thus: -
"What are the rights of the atheist? I would tolerate him as I would tolerate
a poor lunatic; for in my view his mind is scarcely sound. So long as he
does not rave, so long as he is not dangerous, I would tolerate him. I would
tolerate him as I would a conspirator. The atheist is a dangerous man."
Now a lunatic may be harmless, and be suffered to go about as he chooses;
yet he is kept under constant surveillance, because there is no knowing at
what moment the demon in him may carry him beyond himself, and he
become dangerous. Thus the National Reformers propose to treat those who
disagree with them. So long as dissenters allow themselves to be cowed
down like a set of curs, and submit to be domineered over by those self-
exalted despots, all may go well; but if a person has the principle of a man,
and asserts his convictions as a man ought to, then he is "raving," then he
becomes "dangerous," and must be treated as a raving, dangerous lunatic.
Next, dissenters are to be tolerated as conspirators are. A political
conspirator is one who seeks to destroy the government itself; he virtually
plots against the life of every one in the government; and in that, he has
forfeited all claims to the protection of the government or the regard of the
people. And this is the way in which these would-be guardians of the Lord
propose to treat dissenters, should they possess the power, even though the
dissent might be caused merely by "the accident of differing from the mass
of Christians upon the question of what precise day of the week" should be
observed as holy.
Mr. Edwards proceeds: -
"Yes, to this extent I will tolerate the atheist; but no more. Why should I?
The atheist does not tolerate me. He does not smile either in pity or in scorn
upon my faith. He hates my faith, and he hates me for my faith."
562
Let it be borne in mind that these are the men who propose to make this a
Christian nation. These are the ones who propose to put themselves in the
place of supreme interpreters of the Scriptures, and supreme expositors of
the moral law, for the nation. But where is the harmony between this and
the sermon on the mount? Did the Saviour say, Hate them that hate you;
despise them that will not tolerate you; and persecute them that do not smile
upon your faith? Is that the doctrine of Christ? Nay, nay, everybody knows
it is the opposite. Jesus said, "Love your enemies bless them that curse you,
do good to them that hate you, and pray for them which despitefully use
you, and persecute you; that ye may be the children of your Father which is
in heaven;" while the National Reform style of religion would have it: "Hate
your enemies; oppress them that hate you; and persecute them who will not
smile, either in pity or in scorn, upon your faith," And this is the way in
which they propose to convert men to the Christian religion. This is the way
in which they propose to exemplify the sublime Christian principle of
brotherly love and the means which they will employ that brotherly love
may continue! This is the way in which they are going to bring about the
reign of universal peace, even, as they say, the millennium itself. By a like
scheme of the Christian endeavor of the "Society of Jesus," there was peace
once in the fair Waldensian Valleys. By like exertions, Innocent III
succeeded in creating peace amidst "the graceful scenery, the rich fields,
and the splendid cities of Languedoc and Provence."
As the delicious prospect enlarges upon his vision, the zealous Doctor
warms to his work, and worthily rises to the hight of his subject as follows:
-
"I can tolerate difference and discussion; I can tolerate heresy and false
religion; I can debate the use of the Bible in our common schools, the
taxation of church property, the propriety of chaplaincies and the like, but
there are some questions past debate. Tolerate atheism, sir? There is nothing
out of hell that I would not tolerate as soon! The atheist may live, as I have
said; but, God helping us, the taint of his destructive creed shall not defile
any of the evil institutions of all this fairland! Let us repeat: atheism and
Christianity are contradictory terms. They are incompatible systems. They
cannot dwell together on the same continent!"
In order perfectly to complete the very image of the papacy in its fullness,
there remains to be taken the step whereby they would place themselves
above God, and propose to re-enact his laws. This is a further step to be
taken, and it is taken. It is done in this same speech, as follows: -
563
"Now if there be anything in the laws of Moses which the coming of Christ
and the subsequent overthrow of Judaism did not abrogate, let them be
pointed out, - there cannot be many of them, - and we are prepared to accept
them AND HAVE THEM RE-ENACTED."
To any one who has any respect for God or his word, it would seem that
anything which God had once ordained and had not abrogated, would be of
sufficient authority as it stands. But to the proposed National Reform
hierarchy, such statutes are counted of no force until it shall have set to
them its seal of orthodoxy by having them re-enacted. So that the Lord
himself must needs take a secondary place in the presence of the arrogance
of these would-be legislators.*735
There is but one more step that could possibly be taken to complete the
infamy of the thing, and that would be to form an alliance with the papacy
itself. And even this step has been taken so far as it can be taken without the
consent of the papacy; that is, as far as the National Reformers alone can
go. The Christian Statesmen of December 11, 1884, said: -
"Whenever they [the Roman Catholics] are willing to co-operate in resisting
the progress of political atheism, we will gladly join hands with them."
Further: at a National Reform conference - not convention - of ministers of
a number of different denominations, held at Saratoga, New York, August
15-17, 1887, "Rev." T. P. Stevenson, editor of the Christian Statesman, and
corresponding secretary of the National Reform Association, opened the
discussion of the subject of religion in the public schools, under the title of
"secularism in Education." The Christian Statesman of September 1, in
reporting the proceedings, says: -
"The speaker argued against the secular program: 1. That it does not satisfy
the Roman Catholics or conciliate them to our school system. The special
outcry is against the atheistic tendencies of public education, and the
exclusion of religious worship and instruction from the schools only gives
color to the charge."
In the course of the discussion, "Rev." S. V. Leech, D. D., of Saratoga, who
had been for seven years chaplain of the New York Senate, asked the
corresponding secretary to state how National Reformers would answer this
argument: -
"If we put the Protestant Bible in the schools where Protestants are in the
majority, how could we object to the Douay Version [the Catholic Bible] in
schools where Roman Catholics are in the majority?"
564
Dr. Price. - "I wish to move that the National Reform Association be
requested by this Conference to bring this matter to the attention of
American educators and of Roman Catholic authorities, with a view tot
securing such a basis of agreement, if possible"*736
The motion was seconded and adopted.
Thus the National Reform Association, which exists for the sole purpose of
turning this government into a "kingdom of God," for the purpose of
making the ecclesiastical independent of and superior to the civil power in
this government, for the purpose of establishing a new theocracy here, not
only officially declares itself ready gladly to join hands with the papacy to
accomplish that bad purpose, but officially bears a commission to secure a
basis of agreement with the papacy "if possible," by which the Association
may have the co-operation of the papacy in effecting its declared purpose to
subvert the Constitution of the United States as it respects religion and
religious legislation.
Nor is it at all unlikely that this aim may prove successful; for in his
Encyclical of 1885, Pope Leo XIII addressed to Catholics everywhere the
following words: -
"We exhort all Catholics who would devote careful attention to public
matters, to take an active part in all municipal affairs and elections, and to
further the principles of the church in all public services, meetings, and
gatherings. All Catholics must make themselves felt as active elements in
daily political life in the countries where they live. They must penetrate
wherever possible in the administration of civil affairs; must constantly
exert their utmost vigilance and energy to prevent the usages of liberty from
going beyond the limits fixed by God's law. All Catholics should do all in
their power to cause the Constitutions of States, and legislation, to be
modeled in the principles of the true church. All Catholic writers and
journalists should never lose for an instant from view, the above
prescriptions. All Catholics should redouble their submission to authority,
and unite their whole heart, soul, and body, and mind, in the defense of the
church."
And very opportunely with the Saratoga National Reform Conference, there
was held at Baltimore a conference of Catholic prelates to discuss the plans
of the new Catholic University at Washington, D. C., to whom the pope
addressed a letter, in which he said: -
567
"It was your secretary's privilege this year again to attend the national
convention. A place was kindly given for an address in behalf of the
National Reform Association, and thanks were returned by a vote of the
convention. A resolution was adopted expressing gratitude to the National
Reform Association, 'for its advocacy of a suitable acknowledgment of the
Lord Jesus Christ in the fundamental law of this professedly Christian
nation.'"
And again: -
"In the series of monthly readings for the use of local unions as a responsive
exercise, prepared or edited by Miss Willard, the reading for last July
[1886] was on 'God in Government;' that for August was 'Sabbath
Observance' (prepared by Mrs. Bateham), and that for September, 'Our
National Sins.' Touching the first and last named readings, your secretary
had correspondence with their editor before they appeared. A letter has been
prepared to Woman's Christian Temperance Union workers and speakers,
asking them in their public addresses to refer to and plead for the Christian
principles of civil government. The president of the National Union allows
us to say that this letter is sent with her sanction, and by her desire."
In that same National Reform Convention, which was held in Pittsburg. Pa.,
May 11, 12, 1887, in the discussion of a resolution complimentary to the
Woman's Christian Temperance Union, one speaker declared: -
"This movement is bound to succeed through the influence of the Woman's
Christian Temperance Union."
Another expressed the National Reform hopes thus: -
"When we get woman and Christ in politics, - and they will both go in
together, - we shall have every reform, and Christ will be proclaimed King
of kings and Lord of lords."
And the chairman closed the debate on this resolution by saying: -
"When woman undertakes anything good, she will do it. And if she attempts
anything bad, she will accomplish that. What Ahab would not do. Jezebel
did. And what Herod would not do to John the Baptist otherwise, his wife
caused him to do."
No one attempted to explain just exactly where, in this observation, there
lay the compliment to the Woman's Christian Temperance Union. It seemed
to the author of this book who was present, that the compliment was rather
back-handed. And yet he could not help wondering whether in the end the
569
observation might not prove true and the examples appropriate, even though
the statement be not preeminently complimentary as it stands.
Miss Frances E. Willard, president of the National Union; Mrs. J. C.
Bateham and Mrs. Woodbridge, of the National Union; Miss Mary A. West,
editor of the Union Signal; Mrs. Hoffman, president of the Missouri State
Union; Mrs. Sibley, president of the Georgia Union; Mrs. Lathrap, president
of the Michigan Union; Mrs. Burt, president of the New York Union; Mrs.
J. Ellen Foster, president of the Iowa Union; all these are vice-presidents of
the National Reform Association, according to the latest printed list (that of
1890-91), and have been such for the last three or four years. And District
Secretary M. A. Gault, reporting his work in the Christian Statesman of
November 15, 1888, said: -
"The four weeks I spent recently in the eight Wisconsin district,, lecturing
under the auspices of the Woman's Christian Temperance Union, were
among the most pleasant weeks since I went into the lecture field. The
weather was unusually fine, and there were but very few meetings in which
everything was not in apple-pie order. Ladied wearing the significant white
ribbon met me at the train, and took me often to the most elegant home in
the town . . . The Woman's Christian Temperance Union affords the best
facilities for openings for such workers more than any other organization. It
is in sympathy with the movement to enthrone Christ in our government."
In the monthly reading for September 1886, before referred to, regarding
which the secretary of the National Reform Association had correspondence
with Miss Willard before it appeared, one of the responses is as follows: -
"A true theocracy is yet to come, . . . and humanity's weal depends upon the
enthronement of Christ in law and law makers: hence I pray devoutly, as a
Christian patriot, for the ballot in the hands of women and rejoice that the
National Woman's Christian Temperance Union has so long championed
this cause."
Nor is it simply as an ally as such, of the National Reform Association, that
the Union works for these bad principles. In its own separate and organized
capacity, the Union advocates the whole National Reform scheme, At the
annual convention of the National Union for 1887, held in Nashville, the
president, Miss Frances E. Willard, in her annual address, officially
reported in the Union Signal of December 1, declared the purpose of the
Union, as follows: -
570
"Our prayers are prophets, and predict this day of glad deliverance as being
at the door. The man who, in presence of such possibilities, says, `I don't
want throw away my vote.' is quite likely to throw away something even
more valuable - and that is the voter himself. For, as Miss West has said,
'To-day Christ sits over against the ballot-box, as of old he sat over against
the treasury, and judges men by what they cast therein.'"
The official report cordially announces that by an "almost unanimous vote"
of the whole delegation assembled, this address "was accepted as expressing
the principles of the National Woman's Christian Temperance Union," and
"the audience manifested its appreciation of this grand address by universal
hand-clapping and waving of handkerchiefs."
Although Christ himself has plainly declared that his kingdom is not of this
world, these "devout and honorable women" (Acts xiii, 50), like those
people of old, seem determined to take him by force and make him king. No
one should be surprised, therefore, that he should do now as he did then - he
"departed" from them. It is well to remember also that although "the ascetic
in the olden time shut himself away from the world," he was always ready,
upon any question of orthodoxy, to return to the world, and pour out upon it
all the pent-up passions of years. Many a time did these also march in great
armies up to the polls, not to worship God, but to "blaspheme his name, and
his tabernacle and them which dwell in heaven," and to outrage every
principle not only of Christianity, but of humanity. *737
In a convention of the eighth district of the Woman's Christian Temperance
Union of Wisconsin, held at Augusta, October 2-4, 1888, and representing
fifteen counties, there was passed "without a dissenting voice" the following
preamble and resolution: -
"Whereas, God would have all men honor the Son, even as they honor the
Father ; and, -
"Whereas, The civil law which Christ gave from Sinai as the only perfect
law, and the only law that will secure the rights of all classes; therefore, -
"Resolved, That civil government should recognize Christ as the moral
Governor, and his law as the standard of legislation."
And the national convention of the Woman's Christian Temperance Union
for the same year, held in the Metropolitan Opera House, New York City,
the nineteenth to the twenty-third of the same month, confirmed this action
and the principle of it, by passing the following resolution, the first in the
572
Is there any one so dull as to be unable to see that in this scheme there lies
the whole theory and practice of the papacy? In this way precisely the
"gospel" "was brought to the masses" in the fourth century. *739 In this
way precisely, then, God and his name were put into the thought and upon
the lip, clubs and stones into the hands, and murder in the heart, of every
man; and so there was, then, added to the church daily such as should be
______. And, by the way, the women were among the leaders and were the
main help in bringing about that grand triumph of the "gospel" among the
masses. And "history repeats itself," even to the part the women would play
in the political project of bringing "the gospel to the masses."*740
To propose a political campaign managed by ambitious clerics, political
hypocrisies, ward politicians, and city bosses, and call that the bringing of
the gospel of Christ to the masses, and the means of adding to the church
daily such as shall be saved, is certainly a conception of the gospel that is
degraded enough in all conscience. But when, to cap such conception, it is
avowed that such would be the lifting up of Christ even as the serpent was
lifted up in the wilderness, and the fulfillment of the promise that he will
draw all men unto him, the whole idea becomes one that is vastly nearer to
open blasphemy than it is to any proper conception of what the gospel of
Christ is. Yet such, and of such, is the gospel of the National Reform
Woman's Christian Temperance Union combination. Instead of lifting up
Christ, it tramples him under foot. Instead of treasuring the gospel as the
pearl of great price, it casts it to swine to be trampled under their feet.
Instead of honoring Christ, it puts him to an open shame. Instead of the
gospel being held forth as the mystery of godliness, it is supplanted by the
mystery of iniquity. For the testimony of history is unanimous in
confirmation of the truth that "men will fight to the death, and persecute
without pity, for a creed whose doctrines they do not understand and whose
precepts they habitually disobey."
Before leaving this division of the subject, it is but justice to all concerned
to say that there are none who have more respect or more good wishes for
the Woman's Christian Temperance Union, in the line of its legitimate
work, than have the author of this book and the Christian people with whom
he has the honor to be connected. We thoroughly believe in Christian
temperance. Not only do we believe in it, but we practice it. We practice
Christian temperance more strictly than the Woman's Christian Temperance
Union even preaches it. But believing in it as thoroughly as we do, and
endeavoring to practice it as strictly as we believe in it, we would never lift
a hand nor open our lips in any effort compel men to practice the Christian
574
the party, and its chief workers in many States. Efficient service has been
rendered by Secretary Weir, in parts of Pennsylvania and Ohio. The friends
of the cause have everywhere remarked with gratitude that the county
conventions for Washington, Lancaster, and Chester counties, Pa., and
Belmont county, Ohio, incorporated in their platforms distinct
acknowledgments of the Lordship of Jesus Christ; the States of
Massachusetts, Pennsylvania, New Jersey, Ohio, Maryland, Illinois,
Missouri, Michigan, Colorado, and Texas, made devout acknowledgment of
God; the States of Connecticut Pennsylvania, Ohio, Illinois, Missouri, and
others, declared in favor of the maintenance of our Sabbath laws, while the
States of Ohio and Connecticut declared for the reformation of our marriage
and divorce laws in accordance with the law of God. Other similar
declarations in other States may have escaped notice."
The California State Prohibition convention held in April, 1888, proposed
as the preamble of its platform, these words: -
"The prohibition party of the State of California, in convention assembled,
reverently recognize Almighty God as the Supreme Ruler, to whose laws all
human should conform."
And when objection was made by one of the delegates that this was entering
upon dangerous ground, and tended to a union of Church and State, he was
met with such a storm of "yells and hisses" that he could proceed no further,
and the preamble was adopted with but two or three dissenting votes.
The National Prohibition convention, held the same year at Indianapolis,
likewise said: -
"The Prohibition party in national convention assembled, acknowledging
Almighty God as the source of all power in government, do hereby
declare,:" etc.
"Sam" Small was secretary of this convention, and his views in this
connection were declared in a "revival sermon" delivered in Kansas City, in
the January preceding, and repeated by him in a letter to the Voice of
August 8, 1889, as follows: -
"I want to see the day come in the history of our country when the voice of
the church of Christ will be heard and respected upon all vital moral issues.
I shall ever hope for and patiently expect the day when legislation, State,
national, and municipal, will be projected in harmony with the eternal
principle of justice and righteousness, revealed by Christ and proclaimed by
his church. Happy will be the day . . . when the harmonious judgment of the
576
"If you will give me a united church that will recognize that the Lord Jesus
Christ is king, and he only is king; and that will think and talk and preach
and pray and vote in his name; then victory shall come, and the Kingdoms
of this world shall become the kingdoms of God and his Christ. And then
when this is done, the millennium will come.
These evidence are sufficient to show that with the leadership of the Third-
party Prohibition party, the principle of prohibition is entirely subordinate to
the scheme for securing religious legislation, and to the setting up of the
ecclesiastical power above the civil; and that the alliance with the National
Reform Association is not an accident. There is a civil basis for prohibition,
and upon that basis we favor it; but prohibition on the religious basis, as
advocated by the Thirdparty Prohibition party, if successful, would be far
worse than ever was or ever could be the evil against which they profess to
be working. The world has been without prohibition for more than forty-
three hundred years, but in no instance has this lack ever wrought anything
like so much evil as did the religious despotism of the fourth century and
onwards, of which this movement is so exact an image.
A third ally of the National Reform Association is -
When the said General Conference met, the petition was presented by
"Rev." J. H. Knowles, editor of the Pearl of Days. The petition was referred
to the "Committee on the State of the Church." May 15 this committee
made the your committee recommend the following for adoption by the
General Conference: -
"Resolved, 1. That the General Conference of the Methodist Episcopal
Church, in response to a petition signed by the officers of Sabbath
association of this country, and by more than six hundred other petitioners
of different evangelical denominations, take the initiative in forming a
National Sabbath Committee.
"2. That this General Conference invite all other evangelical denominations
to appoint representatives to serve on this Committee.
"3. That the basis of representation on the Committee for each
denomination be one representative for each one hundred thousand or major
fraction thereof.
"4. That the following persons be designated to serve on this Committee
during the coming quaderennium, with power to complete the full quota for
the Methodist Episcopal Church, and to fill vacancies - the first-named to
communicate the action of this body to the official representatives of other
denominations, and to be the convener of the Committee for its first
meeting."
This prompt and hearty action of the Methodist Episcopal General
Conference, was made the basis of a plea for similar action on the part of
other church organizations which met the same year. Upon the strength of
this action, the originator of the petition visited, and secured the
indorsement of, the Presbyterian General Assemblies both North and South;
the Baptist Home Missionary convention; the Synod of Reformed Church;
and the General Assembly of the United Presbyterian Church. Then,
November 13, there was held in the parlors of Col. Elliott F. Shepard, New
York City, a meeting of eight preachers, one Ph.D., and Mr. Shepard, and
the organization was effected, with a Constitution as to name, basis, and
object as follows: -
"I. - NAME.
"The American Sabbath Union.
579
"II. - BASIS.
"The basis of the Union is the divine authority and universal and perpetual
obligation of the Sabbath, as manifested in the order and constitution
of nature, declared in the revealed will of God, formulated in the fourth
commandment of the moral law, interpreted and applied by our Lord and
Saviour Jesus Christ. transferred to the Christian Sabbath, or Lord's day, by
Christ and his apostles, and approved by its beneficial influence upon
national life.
"III. - OBJECT.
"The object of this Union is to preserve the Christian Sabbath as a day of
rest and worship.
Col. Shepard was made president; "Rev." J. H. Knowles was made general
secretary and editor of Publications, and of the Pearl of Days which was
made the official organ of the Association; the whole United States was
divided into ten "Districts," and "Rev." W. F. Crafts was made Field
Secretary, for organizing the work in the said districts, and for carrying on
the work at large. When this organization was just one month old, there was
held at Washington, D. C., a convention composed of themselves, National
Reformers, and Woman's Christian Temperance Union managers, for the
purpose of urging upon Congress, by every means they could employ,
religious legislation, which if secured, would commit the nation to the
whole National Reforms scheme.
In April, 1889, the Field Secretary of the Sabbath Union was an important
part of the annual National Reform Convention; shortly afterward one of the
district secretaries of the National Reform Association, "Rev." James P.
Mills, was made secretary of the Ohio branch of American Sabbath Union,
and another, "Rev." M. A. Gault, was made district secretary of the Sabbath
Union for the Omaha District; and in the West, especially in the Omaha
District, the conventions of the Sabbath Union were simply joint
conventions of the Woman's Christian Temperance Union and National
Reform workers, directed by the Secretary. The convention at Sedalia, Mo.,
for instance, was a convention of all the allies of the National Reform
Association.
We have seen that the first definite step toward the organization of the
American Sabbath Union, was in presenting to the Methodist Episcopal
580
"Governments do not derive their just powers from the consent of the
governed. God is the only law-giver. His laws are made clear and plain in
his word, so that all nations may know what are the laws which God
ordained to be kept."
Nothing more need be said to demonstrate that the religio-political
movement represented in the National Reform Association, the Woman's
Christian Temperance Union, the Third-party Prohibition Party, and the
American Sabbath Union, is a gigantic conspiracy to turn the United States
government into a new theocracy in the living image of that of the papacy.
In 1829-30 the United States Senate was called upon to consider a certain
phase of this question, and in the report that was made, the Senate truthfully
and warningly observed that -
"The Jewish government was a theocracy, which enforced religious
observances; and though the committee would hope that no portion of the
citizens of our country would willingly introduce a system of religious
coercion in our civil institutions, the example of other nations should
admonish us to watch carefully against its earliest indication, . . . Among all
the religious persecutions with which almost every page of modern history
is stained, no victim ever suffered but for the violation of what government
denominated the law of God. To prevent a similar train of evils in this
country, the Constitution has wisely withheld from our government the
power of defining the divine law. It is a right reserved to each citizen; and
while he respects the rights of others, he cannot be held amenable to any
human tribunal for his conclusions.
"Extensive religious combinations to effect a political object, are, in the
opinion of the committee, always dangerous. This first effort of the kind
calls for the establishment of a principle, which, in the opinion of the
committee, would lay the foundation for dangerous innovations upon the
spirit of the Constitution, and upon the religious rights of the citizens. If
admitted, it may be justly apprehended that the future measures of the
government will be strongly marked, if not eventually controlled, by the
same influence. All religious despotism commences by combination and
influence, and when that influence begins to operate upon the political
institutions of a country, the civil power soon bends under it; and the
catastrophe of other nations furnishes an awful warning of the
consequence."
Extensive religious combinations for political purposes are indeed always
dangerous. The movement under consideration in this chapter is not only an
584
CHAPTER XXVI.
THE BOND OF UNION.
her time. She knows as well as they that "it is one of the necessities of the
situation." She knows full well that without her consent they never can
secure the religious legislation which they want, and she is determined, here
as ever, to have all the tokens of surrender come from them. The author of
this book personally knows a gentleman who, riding on a railroad in
California in 1886, fell into conversation with a Catholic priest, and finally
said to him, "What is your church going to do with the religious amendment
movement? are you going to help if forward? are you going to vote for it?"
"Oh," said the priest, "we have nothing to do with that. We leave that to the
Protestants; we let them do all that. They are coming to us, and we only
have to wait."
Rome therefore waited; and as she waited, the National Reform movement
rapidly grew in influence, especially by its alliances. And when in 1888, by
the organization of the American Sabbath Union the movement for religious
legislation had become about as strong as it could be expected to grow on
the so-called Protestant side; and when the Field Secretary and chief
originator of that organization personally addressed to the head of the
papacy in this country - Cardinal Gibbons - a letter asking him to join hands
with them in petitioning Congress to pass the bill for the enactment of a
national law to "promote" the observance of Sunday "as a day religious
worship;" the Cardinal promptly announced himself as "most happy" to do
so, in the following letter: -
"CARDINAL'S RESIDENCE, 408 N. CHARLES STREET,
"Baltimore December 4, 1888.
"REV. DEAR SIR: I have to acknowledge your esteemed favor of the 1st
instant in reference to the proposed passage of a law by Congress `against
Sunday work in the government's mail and military service,' etc.
"I am most happy to add my name to those of the millions of others who are
laudably contending against the violation of the Christian Sabbath by
unnecessary labor, and who are endeavoring to promote its decent and
proper observance by legitimate legislation. As the late Plenary Council of
Baltimore has declared, the due observance of the Lord's day contributes
immeasurably to the restriction of vice and immorality, and to the
promotion of peace, religion, and social order, and cannot fail to draw upon
the nation the blessing and protection of an overruling Providence. If
benevolence to the beasts of burden directed one day's rest in every week
under the old law, surely humanity to man ought to dictate the same
measure of rest under the new law.
587
Archbishop of Baltimore."*744
And although in this particular instance the Cardinal spoke only for himself,
the anxious zeal of these professed Protestants to secure an alliance with the
papacy, hurried them into counting every Catholic man, woman, and child
in the United States, under the census of 1880, as having actually signed the
petition. This was done at the convention of the National Reform allies,
held in Washington, D. C., under the auspices of the American Sabbath
Union, December 11-13, 1888. In the announcements of the convention it
had been stated that the church in which the convention was to meet would
be festooned with the names of six million petitioners; but at the very
beginning of the first meeting, it was stated that there were fourteen million
of them. A question was sent up asking how the number could have grown
so much larger so suddenly. Mrs. Bateham was recalled to the platform to
answer the question, and when she answered it, the cause of such a sudden
and enormous growth was explained by the fact that Cardinal Gibbons had
written the above letter saying he was most happy to add his name to the
others, and solely upon the strength of his name, seven million two hundred
thousand Catholics were counted as petitioners.
Thus matters stood for about one year, until November 12, 1889, when the
"Congress of Catholic Laymen of the United States" was held in Baltimore,
"to celebrate the one hundredth anniversary of the establishment of the
American hierarchy. In that Congress there was a paper read by Mr. Manly
B. Tello, editor of the Catholic Universe, of Cleveland, Ohio, in which it
was said: -
"What we should seek is an en rapport with the Protestant Christians who
desire to keep Sunday holy. . . . We can bring the Protestant masses over to
the reverent moderation of the Catholic Sunday."
And the platform which was adopted as the result of the discussions in the
congress, declared upon this point as follows: -
"There are many Christian issues to which Catholics could come together
with non-Catholics, and shape civil legislation for the public weal. In spite
of rebuff and injustice and overlooking zealotry, we should seek alliance
with non-Catholics for proper Sunday observance. Without going over to
588
the Judaic Sabbath, we can bring the masses over to the moderation of the
Christian Sunday."
This was one of the "planks" of the platform which was "received with the
greatest demonstrations;" and the whole platform was adopted "without
discussion" and "without a dissenting voice." As all the papers that were
read in the congress, as well as the platform, had to pass the inspection of
the hierarchy before they were presented in public, these statements are
simply the expression of the papacy in official response to the overtures
which the so called Protestant theocrats had been so long making to the
papacy. As was only to be expected, it was received by them with much
satisfaction. The American Sabbath Union joyously exclaimed: -
"The National Lay Congress of Roman Catholics, after correspondence and
conference with the American Sabbath Union, passed its famous resolution
in favor of co-operation with Protestants in Sabbath reform. . . . This does
not mean that the millennium is to be built in a day. This is only a proposal
of courtship; and the parties thus far have approached each other shyly."
And in a temperance speech in a temperance convention in New York City,
reported in the National Temperance Advocate, for May, 1891, Archbishop
Ireland thanked God that "Protestants and Catholics" "stand together in
demanding the faithful observance of Sunday."
When a union so long desired as this has been, has reached the stage of
courtship, actual marriage cannot be very far off. Yes, that marriage is
certainly coming; and like every other great feature of the papacy, it is
contrary to nature - one woman (church) marrying another in order that both
may more readily form an adulterous connection with the State. And the
fruit of the confused relationship will be just that which is pictured in the
Scripture - a hideous nondescript monster, breathing out persecution and
death. Rev. xiii, 11-17.
Thus are the leaders of professed Protestantism in the United States joining
heart and hand with the papacy, with the sole purpose of creating in this
government an order of things identical with that which created the papacy
at the first. It is most appropriate, therefore, that the bond of union which
unites them in the evil work, should be the very thing - the day of the sun -
by means of which the papacy secured control of the civil power to compel
those who did not belong to the church to submit to the dictates of the
church, and to act as though they did belong to it. It was by means of
Sunday laws that the church secured control of the civil power for the
furtherance of her ends when the
589
papacy was made. It is appropriate that the same identical means should
employed by an apostate Protestantism to secure control of the civil power
for the furtherance of her ends, and to compel those who do not belong to
the church to submit to the dictates of the church, and to act as those do who
do belong to the church. And as that evil intrigue back there made the
papacy, so will this same thing here make the living image of the papacy.
Two things that are so alike in the making will as surely be as much alike
when they are made.
What Rome means by the transaction is shown by a letter from Cardinal
Gibbons upon the subject of the authority for Sunday observance, written
but a little while before the "Congress of Catholic Laymen" was held. The
letter was written to Mr. E. E. Franke, then of Pittsburg, now of
Williamsport, Pa., and is as follows: -
"CARDINAL'S RESIDENCE,
"408 NORTH CHARLES ST., BALTIMORE, MD.,
"October 3, 1889.
church, and as the church wants to use the civil power for this purpose, it
follows that these church leaders of our day, like those of the fourth century,
are determined to make use of the power of the State to further their own
aims.
"It is the test of all religion," says Dr. Everts. Then what can ever the
enforcement of it be but the enforcement of a religious test? That is
precisely what it is. Again the same speaker said: -
"The people who do not keep the Sabbath have no religion."
Let this be admitted, then the antithesis of it must also be admitted: the
people who do keep the Sabbath have religion. Therefore this demand for
laws to compel men to keep the Sabbath, is only a demand for laws to
compel people to have religion.
Again Dr. Everts said: -
"He who does not keep the Sabbath, does not worship God; and he who
does not worship God, is lost."
Admitted. Therefore this demand for laws to compel men to keep the
Sabbath, is only a demand for laws to compel them to worship.
Nor is Mr. Everts alone in this. Joseph Cook, in the Boston Monday
lectureship of 1887, said: -
"The experience of centuries shows that you will in vain endeavor to
preserve Sunday as a day of rest, unless you preserve it as a day of
worship."
And when the American Sabbath Union was asked the question, "Could not
this weekly rest-day be secured without reference to religion?" the answer
of the Union many times repeated and published, was as follows: -
"A weekly day of rest has never been permanently secured in any land
except on the basis of religious obligation. Take the religion out, and you
take the rest out. Greed is so strong that nothing but God and conscience
can keep him from capturing all the days for toil."
As it is only on the basis of religious obligation that the weekly rest can be
secured, when laws are demanded enforcing a day of weekly rest, it is plain
that such laws must rest upon a religious basis only, enforcing a religious
obligation, and so cannot be anything else than religious laws.
592
Again: as taking the religion out of the day takes the rest out, it follows that
religion is essential to the rest; that if religion is not in it, there is no rest in
it. Therefore, when laws compel men to take the rest, in so doing they
compel men to take religion. When laws compel men to recognize and use
the day as one of rest, such laws do compel the recognition and use of the
day as one of religion.
And again: as nothing but God and conscience can preserve the day from
greed, it follows that such laws are expected to perform the part of God and
the conscience. And as the State is to enact and enforce the laws, it follows
that the State is required to put itself in the place of God, and deal with the
consciences of men. The demand for such laws does demand that the State
shall invade the realm of conscience, and rule there in the place of God.
This is yet further shown by other official declarations. In the Washington,
D. C., convention, December 11-13, 1888, the president of the American
Sabbath Union said: -
"You have to say yes or no, whether you will stand by the decalogue,
whether you will stand by the Lord God Almighty, or whether you will turn
your back upon him. The work, therefore, of this society is only just begun.
We would not put this work upon mere human reasoning, for all that can be
overthrown by human reason: we rest it wholly on the divine
commandment."
In the Sedalia, Mo., convention, May 23, 24, 1889, "Rev." John A. Brooks,
in the speech before referred to, said: -
"If there is one thing that I want above another, it is a quiet Lord's day. If
there is one thing that I prize above another, it is the day consecrated to the
worship of God, and the rest of his people upon this earth. If there is one
thing I prize above another, it is that. And I enter my solemn protest against
this desecration of this day. You and I as private citizens, answer, It is the
business of the officers to lift up their hands to God, and swear that they
will enforce the laws of this country and the Constitution of the United
States and the State of Missouri as an officer of this great State. Why do n't
they do it? Why do n't they do it? There are several reasons why, in my
judgment, they do not do it. In the first place, the Christian people of this
country do not raise such a protest as to compel them to do it, because you
are silent upon these political questions; because the church of God has
nothing to do with the political questions of this country. Yes, shame!
shame! eternal shame that such a though should fall from the lips of such a
man who calls himself a servant of the most high God. If the preachers
593
would speak out on this question, I believe these officials would be more
faithful than they are. And if we have not officers in power who will
enforce the law, let us elect men who will enforce the law; and to do that let
us kick out of the traces, and vote for men who are for truth and God and
right, and let parties go to perdition, where they ought to go."
And in the same convention, "Rev." M. A. Gault, speaking for the whole
National Reform combination, said: -
"Now we take the ground that governments should appeal to divine
authority on this question; governments should say to the people, You must
keep the Sabbath, and have the Sabbath's rest secured to all classes, not
merely because it is good for you, but because God says so; because there is
a divine appointment behind this question. The point may be illustrated by
the story of a man who had a melon patch, and who put up at one end of the
patch the sign which reads as follows: 'Boys, don't steal these melons: for
they are green, and God sees you.' That is, that farmer appealed to divine
authority. He gave the boys to understand that they must not steal melons,
not merely because it would injure them, but because God saw them. And in
that way he reached their consciences. Well, that simple idea of the farmer
expresses the philosophy that underlies this whole question. I believe that
government can reach the conscience of the people. A man without a God is
a man without a conscience; and a government without a God is a
government without a conscience. A government has no right to enforce a
law upon the conscience of man without recognizing the idea of a supreme
being, the Almighty God, as revealed in Jesus Christ."
These plain and positive declarations of the chief leaders and the strongest
representatives of the combination are sufficient to show that the movement
is not and cannot be anything else than religious. Now, to the church and to
her alone, God has committed the power by which alone religion can be
promoted, religious obligations fulfilled, and religious observances secured:
that is, by the persuasive power of the gentle influences of the Holy Spirit
speaking to an abiding faith in Jesus Christ. This power belongs to the
church of Christ. So long as any church has this power, she needs no other,
and she will never ask for any other. But having lost the power to persuade
men, she will invariably grasp for the power to compel them. It has ever
been so, and it will ever be so. Therefore by this so widely prevalent
movement on the part of the churches to secure the power of the State by
which to promote religion and religious observances, it is proved that the
professed Protestant church of the United States has lost the power of
594
confusion of all civil and religious relations, only adds hypocrisy to guilt,
and increases unto more ungodliness.
The Illinois Association is not the only that testifies to this. The Kings
county (N. Y.) Sabbath Association, in its annual report for 1889, said: -
"The delivery of ice-cream after ten o'clock Sunday morning, has proven a
source of annoyance to many sections of the city, and has disturbed public
worship in many of our churches."
The report also states that the ice-cream dealers had been remonstrated with
both by the Association and the police, but in vain. And the reason of this
was given as follows: -
"We regret to state that many church people absolutely ignore their duty in
these premises by requiring ice-cream to be delivered to them for their
Sunday dinner. It is safe to say that many professedly Christian people
require ice-cream dealers to keep their places of business open and scores of
employees to do work on Sunday, contrary to law, besides requiring the
services of horses and wagons, merely to gratify a selfish appetite, and
serve mere personal gratification."
And the American Sabbath Union, by its Field Secretary, reported in the
Christian Statesman Supplement, December 4, 1890, as follows: -
"I believe the chief difficulty is that in the Christian descendants the
Puritans on both sides of the sea, conscience is no longer regnant, but
indulgence reigns in its stead. Christians break the Sabbath chiefly because
it seems pleasanter or more profitable to do so than to do right. Even church
committees receive men into church membership who are doing needless
work on the Sabbath, and intend to continue so doing, sanctioning the
excuse that otherwise a salary will have to be sacrificed. That is, a man
ought to do right except when it will cost him something. With such a
fountain the subsequent Christian life cannot be expected to rise above the
idea that the Sabbath is to be kept only when it is perfectly convenient to do
so. [The preachers ought not to blame the people for that, for it is the
preachers who have taught the people so. - A. T. J.] Thus convenience has
displaced conscience in thousands of Christians.
" 'What shall we do with our Presbyterian elders?' said a pastor to me
recently. 'One of my elders owns the motor line, and another the electric
cars that carry the people to Sunday picnics and base ball. Half the railroads
of the country, I believe, after abundant opportunity to inquire, are owned
by men who are devoutly singing, 'O day of rest and gladness,' in the
596
churches, while their employees are toiling and cursing on their Sunday
trains. The General Assembly of the Presbyterian Church is itself a
stockholder in a liquor-selling, Sabbath-breaking railroad. Some
commissioner should raise the question whether it ought not to follow the
example of its illustrious adherent, Hon. Wm. E. Dodge, and refuse to share
the 'wages of unrighteousness.' Sunday camp-meetings, which the New
England Conference calls' the scandal of Methodism,' are not yet wholly
abolished, nor that other scandal, the use of Sunday trains by some
presiding elders.
"In one of our great cities, a leading officer of a Congregationalist Church
devoutly worships every Sabbath morning, while his employees indevoutly
work, driving all over the city to furnish the people that necessity of life,
ice-cream. One Easter Sabbath I looked into a post-office and saw those
who had been learning of the spiritual resurrection in flowers and songs and
sermons, with prayer-books and hymn books in hand, and one in a Quaker
bonnet, getting their letters and bills and newspapers, so as to bury the risen
Lord again.
"Taking a swift run from city to city, let us see who are the owners or
controllers of the Sunday papers. In this first city a Baptist trustee, in this
next a Methodist steward, in this next a Presbyterian elder, in this next the
editors of both Sunday papers are Methodists, and so following.
"Who owns that little store that sells candies and cigarettes and firecrackers
to little embezzlers on their way to Sabbath-school? - A Covenanter, who is
very particular that no one should call the Sabbath Sunday, but allows it to
be heathenized in her own buildings rather than risk the rent.
" 'Judgment must indeed begin at the house of God,' which means
discipline. Candidates for the ministry and for membership should be
examined as to their Sabbath observance, that they may start right, and then
be admonished at the first open violation of their vows in this line. 'I
commanded the Levites,' said Nehemiah, 'that they should purify
themselves, and that they should come and keep the gates to sanctify the
Sabbath day.' "
From these evidences it appears that the churches are filled with people who
have little respect for the rules or discipline of the churches to which they
belong, and less respect for Sunday. These evidence likewise demonstrate
that the main object of Sunday-laws is the enforcement of church discipline
not only upon the church members, but upon the people who do not belong
to the church at all. That is the secret of all the Sunday laws that ever have
597
been. It was the object of the first Sunday law that ever was made. This
lengthy extract from the chief worker for Sunday laws, shows that the logic
of Sunday laws is that there are hosts of people in the church who profess to
be what they are not, and therefore these laws are demanded in order that
they may compel everybody else to be just what these are.
Of course, no one can justly blame anybody for not observing Sunday;
indeed, it is far better not to observe it than to observe it. Yet every person
has a perfect right to observe Sunday if he chooses, as also a person has a
right not to observe it at all if he does not wish to. But when men professing
to believe that the day ought to be observed, and professing to be observers
of the day, attach themselves to a church whose rules require its observance,
then it is not too much to insist that they ought to be honest enough to stand
by their professions. And if they are not honest enough to be indeed what
they profess to be, then when laws are obtained and enforced, compelling
other people to act as they do, the only possible fruit of the enforcement of
such laws can be but multiply hypocrites.
From the first sentence of the foregoing extract it appears that Mr. Crafts's
object is, by means of Sunday laws, to create in the church members
sufficient conscience to lead them to do what their church obligations
already require that they shall do.*745 Because, he says, "in the Christian
descendants of the Puritans, conscience is no longer regnant, but indulgence
reigns instead." This, in fact, is the tone of the article all the way through.
He complains against the Sunday newspaper because that by it "families are
solicited all the week to violate conscience by announcements that the best
articles are being held back for Sunday readers." But whether or not he
expects Sunday laws to cultivate conscience where there is little, and create
it where there is none, this much is certain: this statement shows as plainly
as words can, that the intent of Sunday laws is that they shall have to do
with the conscience of men.
This need of State laws to cultivate conscience where there is little, and
create it where there is none, on the subject of Sunday observance, is caused
by the absence of any command of God for its observance. The word of
God alone speaks to the conscience, and where there is no command of
God, there can be no appeal to the conscience. And these organizations that
are so determined to have Sunday laws, know as well as Cardinal Gibbons
does that there is no authority in the Scripture for Sunday observance. They
know as well as he does that there is no other basis for it than tradition, and
no other authority for it than the authority of "the church." The American
598
they know that Cardinal Gibbons states the exact truth when he tells them
that it is the Catholic Church that has changed the day of rest from the
seventh day of the week to the first, and that the original and only authority
for Sunday observance is the authority of the papacy. This they know, and
therefore they realize that their efforts are impotent to persuade the
consciences of men in the matter of Sunday observance. Mr. Elliott himself
has borne conclusive testimony to this in the same book above referred to
(p. 263), as follows: -
"To make the Lord's day only an ecclesiastical contrivance, is to give no
assurance to the moral reason, and to lay no obligation upon a free
conscience. The church cannot maintain this institution by its own edict.
Council, assembly, convocation, and synod can impose a law on the
conscience only when they are able to back their decree with `Thus saith the
Lord."
To make Sunday observance only an ecclesiastical contrivance is all that he
or anybody else has ever been able to do. That is just what these official
statements of those organizations show that they know it to be. The only
edicts they are able to show for it, are the edicts of Constantine and his
successors, who in every instance did only the bidding of the church. These
are confessedly the only authority by which they would lay the observance
of Sunday as a law upon the consciences of men. They cite no "Thus saith
the Lord" for the institution, nor for its observance. On the contrary, they
confess that "there is no such command;" they confess that there is no
command "enjoining the abandonment of the seventh day Sabbath and its
observance on the first day of the week;" they confess "complete silence of
the New Testament" so far as concerns any command to observe Sunday, or
rules as to how it should be observed; they confess that they have only
"presumption," and "probability," and a "spontaneous growth out of the
hearts of believers," for its origin and basis, and the church as "a dominant
power" issuing "the famous Edict of Constantine" for its authority.
Therefore, by their own showing and upon their own confession, the
observance of Sunday is of "no obligation upon a free conscience." Yet
council, assembly, convocation, and synod have decreed that Sunday shall
be observed by all; and as they are not able to back their decree with a
"Thus saith the Lord," they are determined now, as those others were at the
first, to back it with the Thus saith the State, and lay it as an obligation upon
- not free, but enslaved consciences, compelling men to do homage to the
authority of the papacy.
602
Sunday train in the nineteenth century can hurry to perdition any one who
does not ride on it. And if any are hurried to perdition by this means, who is
to blame : the Sunday train, or the ones who ride on it? Doctor Johnson's
complaint that the Sunday paper is worse than the saloon or the house of ill-
fame, because these cannot get into the home, while the paper can be put
into the pocket and taken into the home, is of the same flimsy piece. The
saloon can be taken into the home, if a person will but put it into his pocket,
and the house of ill-fame can be taken into the parlor, if a man will put it
under his cloak ; and if the Sunday paper gets there by being put into the
pocket, where lies the blame : upon the paper, or upon the one who puts it
into his pocket? Right here lies the secret of the whole evil now, as it did in
the fourth century : they blame everybody and everything else, even to
inanimate things, for the irreligion, the infidelity, and the sin that lie in their
own hearts.
Yet in the face of all this testimony and ever so much more to the same
effect, and in the face of the whole history of the Sunday institution, they
have the effrontery to present the plea that it is only a "civil" Sunday
observance that they want to enforce!*748 They therefore pass resolutions
such as that by the Elgin convention, given on page 764, and adopt planks
such as the following from the National Prohibition platform of 1887 : -
"10. For the preservation and defense of the Sabbath as a civil institution,
without oppressing any who religiously observe the same or any other day
than the first day of the week."
None of those Prohibitionists, however, have attempted to explain just why,
in their efforts to preserve and defend the Sabbath as a civil institution, they
should refrain from oppressing only those who "religiously observe"
Sunday or some other day. This betrays a lurking consciousness of the fact
that such legislation is oppressive. It likewise reveals the utter impossibility
of either defining or defending such a thing as a civil Sabbath. There is no
such thing as a civil Sabbath, and these organizations mean no such thing as
a civil Sunday. The whole subject is religious from beginning to end. There
never was a law enacted, nor a single step taken, in favor of Sunday that had
not a religious purpose and intent; and there can never be any such thing
without such purpose; for the institution is religious in itself.
In this connection it will not be amiss to remember that it was altogether for
"civil" reasons that Roger Williams was banished, that the Baptists and the
Quakers were dealt with as they were by the New England theocracy; and
that it was for the good of the State and to preserve the State, - that is, for
605
"civil" reasons, - that the emperor Justin compelled all to be Catholics, and
that the alliance was first formed with the church and such legislation
enacted.*749
Like the original Sunday-law workers, these now do not propose to be
content with a little - except at first. In a ministers' meeting in behalf of
Sunday legislation, held in San Diego, Cal., in September, 1888, it was
stated that "too much must not be asked for at first. Ask just what public
sentiment will bear, and when you get that, ask for more." And at the
national capital, before the Senate Committee, April 6, 1888, and repeated
in the same place, December 13 of the same year in behalf of a bill to enact
a national Sunday law, Mr. Crafts, of the American Sabbath Union, said : -
"We will take a quarter of loaf, half a loaf, or a whole loaf. If the
government should do nothing more than forbid the opening of the post-
offices at church hours, it would be a national tribute to the value of
religion, and would lead to something more satisfactory."
Then in telling what would be more satisfactory, he said: -
"The law allows the local postmaster, if he chooses (and some of them do
choose), to open the mails at the very hour of church, and so make the post-
office the competitor of the churches."
This same trouble was experienced in the fourth century also, between the
circus or the theater, and the church. The church could not stand
competition; she would be content with nothing less than a monopoly, and
she got it, precisely as these church managers are trying to get it. More than
this, they want now, as they did then, the government to secure them in the
enjoyment of a perpetual monopoly. For said Mr. Crafts in the same speech
:-
"It should not be possible for any postmaster in this country to run the
United States post-office as a rival and competition and antagonist of the
churches."
At another point in the same speech, Mr. Crafts referred to the proposed law
as one for "protecting the church services from post-office competition."
And in explaining how this could be done, he said : -
"A law forbidding the opening between ten and twelve, would accomplish
this, and would be better than nothing; but we want more."
And, -
606
"A law forbidding any handling of Sunday mail at such hours as would
interfere with church attendance on the part of the employees, would be
better than nothing; but we want more than this.
He continues : -
"Local option in deciding whether a local post-office shall be opened at all
on Sunday, we should welcome as better than nothing; . . . but we desire
more than this."
How much more ? Still he continues : -
"A law forbidding all carrier delivery of mail on Sunday, would be better
than nothing; but we want more than that."
And when will they ever get enough? It is precisely as it was when, at the
request of the church managers, the emperor Constantine ordered "a
suppression of business at the courts and other civil offices" on Sunday.
That was an imperial tribute to the "value of religion," and led to
"something more satisfactory" - to the church managers.*750
And when they shall have secured the help of the government in carrying
their monopolizing ambition thus far, will they be content ? - Not at all.
Nothing short of a complete and perpetual monopoly will satisfy them. This
is proved by Dr. McAllister's words in National Reform Woman's Christian
Temperance Union convention at Lakeside, Ohio, July, 1887, as follows: -
"Let a man be he may, - Jew, seventh-day observer of some other
denomination, or those who do not believe in the Christian Sabbath, - let the
law apply to every one, that there shall be no public desecration of the first
day of the week, the Christian Sabbath, the day of rest for the nation. They
may hold any other day of the week as sacred, and observe it; but that day
which is the one day in seven for the nation at large, let that not be publicly
desecrated by any one, by officer in the government, or by private citizen,
high or low, rich or poor."
It is not without cause they have written on their banners, "Always
encouraged, NEVER SATISFIED;" for this has been the very spirit of the
movement from the day that Paul saw the mystery of iniquity working, until
now. There is much being said of the grasping, grinding greed of
monopolies of many kinds; but of all monopolies on earth, the most
grinding, the most greedy, the most oppressive, the most conscienceless, is
a religious monopoly.
The Christian Statesman from its earliest days has ever insisted that -
607
Puritanism," all the way from six weeks to three months. Dr. Herrick
Johnson, in his noted philippic against the Sunday newspaper, exclaims:
"Oh, for a breath of the old Puritan !" And Mr. Crafts adopts as his own the
words of another upon this point, to the following effect: -
"In the words of Dr. Lyman Abbott: 'We run up the Puritan flag, and
emblazon on it the motto of a modern and modified Puritanism ; a State
Christian, but not ecclesiastical; with faith, but no creed; reverence, but no
ritual; a recognized religion, but no established church."
And to show how fully he means this, and to cap the whole longing for the
Puritan ideal, he has invented and published the placard on the opposite
page, which, after the manner of the ancient and unmodified Puritanism, is
"to be hung on the breasts" of those not on conforming to the dictates of the
preachers.*751 Please observe that the impression which is plainly
conveyed is, not that it should be, nor that it ought to be, but that it is "to be,
hung on the breast of every person who buys postage stamps, provisions,
cigars, clothing, or what not," on Sunday. At this rate, how long will it be
before they will be proposing to paint hobgoblins and devils upon the hats
and garments, and to brand with the letter S the foreheads, of those who do
not keep Sunday? Neither the spirit nor the principle of this proposal is
removed a single degree from that which did paint such devices upon the
garments, and did brand the foreheads, of people in times past.
And the libelous thing is for sale by the hundred ! And why for sale, unless
it is expected that they will be used? And how can it be expected that they
will be used, unless it is first presumed that the American people are of so
loathsome a disposition as willingly to engage in such an infamous
undertaking? Such a presumption is an open insult to the civilization, and an
outrage upon the Christian sentiment, of the American people. But it shows
the disposition of the leadership of the national Sunday-law movement.
Having so explicitly declared their intentions in merely working for their
much-desired laws, it were almost superfluous to inquire whether there will
not be persecution, were it not for the singular apathy, and the overweening
confidence, of the people generally with regard to the scheme. To ask the
question, however, is only to ask whether they may be expected to use the
power for which they are grasping, should they succeed in their designs.
And to this it would seem to be a sufficient answer, merely again to ask, If
they do not intend to use the power, then why are they making such
strenuous efforts to get it? For an answer we might cite the reader to pages
722-726 of this book. But in addition to that, this question has been asked to
609
themselves, and they have answered it. At the Lakeside, Ohio, convention,
there was asked the following question: -
"Will not the National Reform movement result in persecution against those
who on some points believe differently from the majority, even as the
recognition of the Christian religion by the Roman power resulted in
grievous persecution against true Christians?"
The answer given by Dr. Mc Allister is as follows: -
"Now notice the fallacy here. The recognition of Roman Catholic religion
by the State, made that State a persecuting power. Why? - Because the
Roman Catholic religion is a persecuting religion. If true Christianity is a
persecuting religion, then the acknowledgment of our principles by the State
will make the State a persecutor. But if the true Christian religion is a
religion of liberty, a religion that regards the rights of all, then the
acknowledgment of those principles by the State will make the State the
guardian of all men, and the State will be no persecutor. True religion never
persecutes."
There is indeed a fallacy here, but it is not in the question; it is in the
answer. That which made the Roman State a persecuting power, says the
Doctor, was its recognition of the Catholic religion, "which is a persecuting
religion." But the Roman Catholic religion is not the only persecuting
religion that has been in the world. Presbyterianism persecuted while John
Calvin ruled in Geneva; it persecuted while the Covenanters ruled in
Scotland ;it persecuted while it held the power in England.
Congregationalism persecuted while it had the power in New England.
Episcopalianism persecuted in England and in Virginia. Every religion that
has been allied with the civil power, or that has controlled the civil power,
has been a persecuting religion; and such will always be the case. Dr.
McAllister's implied statement is true, that "true Christianity never
persecutes:" but it is true only because true Christianity never will allow
itself to be allied in any way with the civil power, or to receive any support
from it. The National Reform Association does propose to "enforce upon
all, the laws of Christian morality;" it proposes to have the government
adopt the National Reform religion, and then "lay its hand upon any religion
that does not conform to it;" and it asserts that the civil power has the right
"to command the consciences of men." The whole Sunday-law movement
does propose to enforce the observance of the Christian Sabbath, or the
Lord's day. Now any such thing carried into effect, as is here plainly
proposed by the Associations, can never be anything else than persecution.
610
exceptions, those who were held for trial were held without bail, - simply on
their own recognizance, - and the cases were both dismissed ; while in
every case of a Seventh-day Adventist, the least bail that was accepted was
$110; the most of them were held under bonds for $250, and some for as
high as $500. There was not a single case dismissed, and in all the cases
there never was a complaint made of that which was done having disturbed
the worship or the rest of any one. But the indictments were all for the
crime of "Sabbath-breaking" by the performance of labor on Sunday.
If there had been arrests of other people for working on Sunday, in anything
like the numbers that there were of seventh-day observers, had the law been
enforced upon all alike, then the iniquity would not have been so apparent;
or if those who were not seventh-day observers, and who were arrested, had
been convicted, even then the case would not have been so clearly one of
persecution. But when in all the record of the whole two years' existence of
the law in this form, there was not a solitary saloon-keeper arrested, there
was not a person arrested who did not observe the seventh day, with the two
exceptions named, then there could be no clearer demonstration that the law
was used only as a means to vent religious spite against a class of citizens
guiltless of any crime, but only of professing a religion different from that
of the majority. Nothing could be more clearly demonstrated than is this:
that the only effect of the repeal of that exemption clause was to give power
to a set of bigots to oppress those whose religion they hated.
If anything was needed to make the demonstration more clear, it is found in
the method of the prosecutions: Mr. Swearingen and his son were convicted
upon the testimony of a witness who swore that the work for which he was
convicted was done on a day which proved to be seventeen days before the
law was enacted, thus by its enforcement making the law ex post facto. The
Constitution of the United States forbids the making of ex post facto laws.
But when a law not being ex post facto in itself, is made so by its
enforcement, it would seem that something ought to be done to enlighten
those courts upon that subject; yet even this would certainly be vain,
because religious bigotry knows no such thing as enlightenment. On the
other hand, several cases were tried and the men convicted and fined after
the law was repealed, but for work done before.
In almost every case the informer or the prosecuting witness, or perhaps
both in one, was a man who was doing work or business on the same day,
and often with the very persons accused; yet the man who kept the seventh
day was convicted in every instance, while the man who did not keep the
614
seventh day, but did work or business with him who was prosecuted, was
left entirely unmolested, and his evidence was accepted in court to convict
the other man.
For instance: Millard Courtney, who was the prosecuting witness against
both J. A. Armstrong and F. N. Elmore, took a man with him to where these
men were working, and there made a contract for roofing a school-house;
and yet this man's evidence convicted these two men of Sabbath-breaking at
the very time at which he was doing business with them.
J. L. Shockey was convicted of Sabbath-breaking in the first instance upon
the testimony of D. B. Sims, who was hunting stock when he saw Mr.
Shockey plowing and in the second instance upon the testimony of P.
Hammond, who went where Shockey was at work, and bought of him a
Plymouth Rock rooster.
J. L. James, who worked in the rain for nothing, that a poor widow, a
member of another church, might be sheltered, was convicted of Sabbath-
breaking upon the evidence of a man who carried wood and chopped it up
within seven rods of the man who was convicted by his testimony.
Wm. La Fever and his wife went to Allen Meeks' house on Sunday to visit.
They found Meeks planting potatoes. Meeks stopped planting potatoes, and
spent the rest of the day visiting with them; and yet Meeks was convicted
and fined upon the evidence of La Fever. And in the second case of this
same Mr. Meeks, Riley Warren went to his house on Sunday, to see him
about hiring a teacher for the public school. In the social, neighborly
conversation that passed between them, Meeks incidentally mentioned that
he had mended his wagon-brake that morning; and yet he was convicted of
Sabbath-breaking by the evidence of that same Riley Warren.
Mr. Reeves's boys were hauling wood on Sunday. In the timber where they
got the wood, they met another boy, John A. Meeks, hunting squirrels. They
joined him in the hunt, scaring the squirrels around the trees so he could
shoot them. Then the squirrels having been divided between the Meeks boy
and the Reeves boys, the Meeks boy was indicted, prosecuted, and
convicted of Sabbath-breaking, upon the evidence of the father of those
boys who were hauling wood, and who helped to kill the squirrels.
John Neusch, for picking peaches, was convicted of Sabbath-breaking on
the evidence of one Hudspeth, who had gone to where he was picking the
peaches, to plead for a Sunday peach thief, and who offered pay for the
stolen peaches to shelter the thief. James M. Pool, for hoeing in his garden
615
"Let me, sir, illustrate the operation of the present law by one or two
examples. A Mr. Swearingen came from a Northern State and settled on a
farm in ____ county. His farm was four miles from town, and far any from
baby house of religious worship. He was a member of the Seventh-day
Adventist Church, and after having sacredly observed the Sabbath of his
people (Saturday) by abstaining from all secular work, he and his son, a lad
of seventeen, on the first day of the week went quietly about their usual
avocations. They disturbed no one - interfered with the rights of no one. But
they were observed, and reported to the Grand Jury, indicted, arrested, tried,
convicted, fined, and having no money to pay the fine, these moral,
Christian citizens of Arkansas were dragged to the county jail and
imprisoned like felons for twenty-five days - and for what ? - For what ? -
For daring, in this so-called land of liberty, in the year of our Lord 1887, to
worship God.
"Was this the end of the story? - Alas, no sir ! They were turned out; and the
old man's only horse, his sole reliance to make bread for his children, was
levied on to pay the fine and costs, amounting to thirty eight dollars. The
horse sold at auction for twenty-seven dollars. A few days afterward the
sheriff came again, and demanded thirty-six dollars, eleven dollars balance
due on fine and costs, and twenty-five dollars for board for himself and son
while in jail. And when the poor old man - a Christian, mind you - told him
with tears that he had no money, he promptly levied on his only cow, but
was persuaded to accept bond, and the amount was paid by contributions
from his friends of the same faith. Sir, my heart swells to bursting with
indignation as I repeat to you the infamous story."
Nor did the unjust proceeding stop here. The Supreme Court confirmed the
judgments which sanctioned these iniquitous proceedings, and it confirmed
them under a Constitution which declares: -
"All men have a natural and indefeasible right to worship Almighty God
according to the dictates of their own consciences; no man can of right be
compelled to attend, erect, or support any place of worship, or to maintain
any ministry against his consent. No human authority can, in any case or
manner whatsoever, control or interfere with the right of conscience; and no
preference shall ever be given by the law to any religious establishment,
denomination, or mode of worship, above any other."
The concluding portion of the decision reads as follows: -
"The appellant's argument, then, is reduced to this: That because he
conscientiously believes he is permitted by the law of God to labor on
617
and State; consequently, Sunday laws never have been, and never can be,
sustained upon American principles.
That this indictment of the Supreme Court of Arkansas is not unjust, we
have the clearest proof. The three judges who then composed the Supreme
Court, were all members of the Bar Association of the State. In less than
three months after this decision was rendered, the Bar Association
unanimously made a report to the State on "law and law reform," an official
copy of which we have in our possession. In that report, under the heading
"Sunday Laws," is the following: -
"Our statute as it stands in Mansfield's Digest, provides that 'persons who
are members of any religious society who observe as Sabbath any other day
of the week than the Christian Sabbath, or Sunday, shall not be subject to
penalties of this act [the Sunday law], so that they observe one day in seven,
agreeably to the faith and practice of their church or society.' - Mans. Dig.,
sec. 1886.
"This statute had been in force from ;the time of the organization of the
State government; ;but it was unfortunately repealed by act of March 3,
1885. - Acts 1885, p. 37.
"While the Jews adhere, of course, to the letter of the original command to
remember the seventh day of the week, there is also in the State a small but
respectable body of Christians who consistently believe that the seventh day
is the proper day to be kept sacred; and in the case of Scoles vs. State, our
Supreme Court was compelled to affirm a judgment against a member of
one of these churches, for worshiping God according to the dictated of his
own conscience, supported, as he supposed, by good theological arguments.
It is very evident that the system now in force, savoring as it does very
much of religious persecution is a relic of the Middle Ages, when it was
thought that men could be made orthodox by an act of parliament. Even in
Massachusetts, where Sabbatarian laws have always been enforced with
unusual vigor, exceptions are made in favor of persons who religiously
observe any other day in the place of Sunday. We think that the law as it
stood in Manfield's Digest, should be restored, with such an amendment as
would prevent the sale of spirits on Sunday, as that was probably the object
of repealing the above section."
Now the Arkansas Constitution says, "All men have a natural and
indefeasible right to worship Almighty God according to the dictates of
their own consciences." This report of the Bar Association says,"In the case
of Scoles vs. State, our Supreme Court was compelled to affirm a judgment
619
in its leading editorial, stirring up the people of Michigan to sow "the good
seed" of Sunday-law enforcement, referred to these persecutions, and
soothingly remarked that "these instances have occurred in three States
only," and that then only one person "ever died from such a cause."
And as for the decision of the Arkansas Supreme Court, it has abundant
precedent in the decisions of the Supreme Courts of Massachusetts, New
York, Pennsylvania, and others of the original thirteen States, ;which have
perpetuated the colonial Sunday legislation, which was copied from the
British system, which was derived directly from the papal system, and
which in turn has been copied in the legislation, and perpetuated by the
decisions, of the Supreme Courts of all the younger States of the Union.
And now, instead of following the splendid example of California and
lifting the legislation of the States up to the level of the national principles,
the great effort is to bring down the national principles and procedure to the
level of those of the States, and so to turn this nation into the Romish tide,
and commit it to papal principles, to the support of papal institutions, and to
the enforcement of the chief of all papal observances.
Religious bigotry is ever the same everywhere. And the movement to secure
the enactment of National Sunday laws is simply an attempt to spread ;over
the whole nation the same wicked persecutions that have appeared in these
localities.
The national religious combination has repeatedly stated that their object in
securing a national Sunday law is only to make the State Sunday laws more
effective. There is now no lack of Sunday laws, both city and State,
throughout the whole land, with but two exceptions; but both the principles
and the precepts of the national Constitution, as well as the national
sentiment, are clearly against it all. Therefore the most strenuous efforts of
the national religious combination, are being put forth to secure legislation
or constitutional amendment, or both, which shall commit the national
government to the declaration of the sanctity of Sunday, and to the
enforcement of its observance. And just as certainly as Congress shall ever
enact any of the Sunday measures which this religious combination
proposes, and thus lend the national sanction to the sacredness of Sunday,
and pledge the national power to its support, just so certainly will the
history of Arkansas from 1885 to 1887 be repeated throughout the length
and breadth of the nation. Are the people ready to have it done?
NOTE. - Since this chapter was electrotyped. United States District Judge
E. S. Hammond, Memphis, Tenn., in Ex parte king, has confirmed the
622
CHAPTER XXVII.
WILL IT SUCCEED?
He observed likewise that the precedent was " not likely to be rescinded, "
which has not only proven true, but the precedent has been made the basis
of this loud demand for a religious government altogether.
That it is contrary both to the letter and the spirit of the Constitution, is
made clear by the qualifications that are required as essential to an
appointment to a chaplaincy.
The following is an official statement received from the War Department,
concerning the rank and pay of chaplains, and the qualifications required to
become a chaplain : -
"The attention of applicants is directed to the following laws from the
Revised Statutes of the United States : -
" SECTION 1121. The President may, by and with the advice and consent
of the Senate, appoint a chaplain for each regiment of colored troops, and
thirty post chaplains . . .
" SECTION 1122. Chaplains shall have the rank of captain of infantry,
without command, and shall be on the same footing with other officers of
the army, as to tenure of office, retirement, and pensions.
" SECTION 1123. No person shall be appointed as regimental or post
chaplain until he shall furnish proof that he is a regularly ordained minister
of some religious denomination, in good standing at the time of his
appointment, together with a recommendation for such appointment from
some authorized ecclesiastical body, or from not less than five accredited
ministers of said denomination.
"SECTION 1261. The officers of the army shall be entitled to the pay
herein stated after their respective designations.
"Chaplain : Fifteen hundred dollars a year.
"SECTION 1262. There shall be allowed and paid to each commissioned
officer below the rank of brigadier-general, including chaplains and others
having assimilated rank or pay, ten per centum of their current yearly pay
for each term of five years of service."
Here is a distinctly religious qualification required. The applicant shall
prove that he is a regularly ordained minister of some religious
denomination and must be recommended by some authorized ecclesiastical
body. It is true that he is not required directly by this law, to declare that he
believes in the Trinity, or the communion of saints, or the resurrection of
625
the dead. It is true he is not required to pass such a direct test as that. But he
is required to be religious and to belong to a religious denomination. If he is
not this, he cannot be appointed. This is nothing else than a religious test as
a qualification for office under the United States, and is clearly a violation
of that clause of the Constitution which declares that "No religious test shall
ever be required as a qualification of any office of public trust under the
United States."
More than this: although, as stated above, no direct test as to a belief in the
Trinity, etc., is required, the same thing is done indirectly. For in order to be
an ordained minister in good standing in some religious denomination, he
must necessarily pass a close and searching test upon many religious points.
Therefore this requirement does indirectly what it does not do directly, and
is just as certainly a violation of the Constitution, as though it were done
directly.
That it is contrary to the principles of Christianity, is evident from the actual
situation as ti exists. This point is discussed from actual knowledge gained
by experience, as the author of this book spent five full years in the regular
army of the United States. Army chaplains are supposed to be for the
spiritual benefit of the soldiers; but they are no benefit at all, either
spiritually or otherwise. I have been in different garrisons where chaplains
were stationed and never in the whole five years did a chaplain visit the
quarters where I was, or any of the men in the company to which I
belonged; unless, perhaps, in company with the officers at Sunday morning
inspection. Never was there a visit made by a chaplain to the company in
which I served - Company I of the 21st Infantry, from November 2,1870, to
same date 1875,- for any spiritual purpose, or for any purpose in the due
exercise of the duties which he is appointed to perform.
The fact of the matter is, chaplains cannot work for the spiritual interests of
the soldiers in the regular army. They rank as commissioned officers, and
are to be considered by the enlisted men with the same deference and
military respect that is due to the officers. The chaplain wears an officer's
uniform, and an officer's insignia of rank. And whenever he appears, the
soldier must strike an attitude of "attention" and salute, as he would any
other commissioned officer. Thus, the very position which he holds, ranking
as an officer, places an insurmountable barrier between him and the soldier.
He cannot maintain the dignity of his rank and meet the common soldier
upon the level where he is, and approach him upon that common level as
every minister of the gospel must do with those whom he is to help
626
spiritually. He cannot enter into the feelings, the wants, the trials, the
temptations, the besetments, of the common soldier, as one must do to be
able to help spiritually, and as the minister of the gospel must do in the
exercise of his office anywhere, with any person in the wide world.
Jesus Christ set no such example. He did not appear in the glory, the
dignity, the rank, and the insignia of office, which he bore as the King of
eternity. He laid this aside; he came amongst men, meeting humanity upon
humanity's level. He though divine, came in human form ; and made
himself subject to all the temptations which humanity meets. This he did in
order that he might be able to help those who are tempted. The great apostle
to the Gentiles, following the way of his Master, became all things to all
men, that by all means he might save some. To the weak he became as
weak, that he might save them that are weak; to the tempted and tried, the
same, that he might save them, and bring them to the knowledge of Him
who was tempted and tried for their sakes, that he might deliver them from
temptation and give them strength to overcome in time of trial. This is the
divine method; it is the only right method.
The appointment of chaplaincies in the United States army, with the rank,
the dignity, and the insignia of superior office, is contrary to the principle
illustrated by Jesus Christ in his life and taught in his word, and frustrates
the very purpose for which professedly they are appointed. The money that
is spent by the United States government in paying chaplains could scarcely
be spent in a way that would do the soldiers less good. In the nature of the
case, it is impossible that chaplains can benefit the men. Besides, having it
devolved upon them to maintain the "dignity" and "respect" that is due to
their rank they do not, in fact, make any very strenuous efforts to help the
men. It is difficult to conceive how any man who has the spirit of Christ,
and who really has the burden to help the enlisted men of the army, could
ever think of accepting such a position; because the acceptance of the
position becomes at once the greatest hinderance to his helping the men at
all.
This much upon the merit of the question. The principle shows that in the
circumstances of their appointment, army chaplains cannot benefit the men;
and practice shows not only that they do not benefit them, but that they do
not try. Madison's statement that the precedent was not likely to be
rescinded, was simply the expression of a consciousness of the power of
precedent in government, however pernicious the precedent and the practice
under it may be. The statement was prophetic. In the Thirty-third and
627
despotisms of the Old World. Our members of Congress, military and naval
officers, soldiery and seamen, are, or should be, paid a just compensation
for their services, and be left, like all other citizens, to support any
clergymen, or none, as their consciences may direct them, without legal
agency or coercion. Neither Christianity nor the genius of our institutions
contemplates any aristocracy predicated upon the clerical profession, and no
special provision therefore is necessary by the government to admit
clergymen to our army and navy, as they may enlist like other men, and
labor like Jesus himself and his apostles among the poor fishermen on the
sea-side. If it be objected that few clergymen would serve among the troops
and marines upon such terms, we can only say that, if actuated by correct
religious motives, no minister would wait for government gold to lead him
to his labors of love among them, and that none but hypocrites would be
debarred by the want of it. We think the government should not evince
more religious zeal than professed ministers of the gospel themselves, by
bribing them to perform religious service. If the clergymen in the army and
navy look for other compensation then the voluntary contribution of those
among whom they labor, the various religious societies of the country might
be more appropriately appealed to, as their funds are voluntarily contributed
for such purposes; while those of the government are taken for national
purposes, by authority of law, equally from all classes of citizens of
whatever sects, and whether professors or non-professors or religions."
Lest these views should be passed by as only the views of opponents,
respectable though they be, we present the views of an admirer and
defender of the institution, one who from long acquaintance knew it
thoroughly : -
"All these chaplaincies are filled in a way which renders it possible that it
may be done by the managing of political wire-pullers, with very little, if
any, reference to the appropriate qualifications of those who receive the
appointment . . . Let us look at the manner in which the two chaplains to
Congress, and also, we might add, the chaplain who is appointed to the
Penitentiary at Washington, reach their election. The same course of
electioneering which the clerk of the House, the door keeper or sergeant-at -
arms has to pursue; namely, to scramble for it. Letters are written before-
hand soliciting votes. The successful candidate must be on hand to meet his
`friends' as they alight from the cars at the railroad station, who follow him
to his hotel, and who will not hesitate to stand in a bar-room, and talk
distinctly of his devotion to the party ! But the successful candidate is not
629
usually the man whom his own denomination even, not to say the Christian
Community generally, would wish to see at such a post.
" The confidence and respect of the best men in the country has lessened in
the same ratio as this Congressional usage has been subjected to wire-
pulling and strife. It is now well understood that modest merit, eminent
piety, and that kind of talent which is best adapted to the position, is no
longer sought for in a chaplain to Congress. But the successful candidate is
he who has a face to enter the ring of competitors; who knows how to lay
his hand upon the right wires, and has strength to pull harder than the others
who may be contending with him for the prize. The men best adapted to fill
the office will not be found managing and scrambling for it. Instead of
seeking the office, they are the very men who will be found at their post in
their appropriate calling until the office seeks them. They are the men
whose conscious merit and becoming modesty will not suffer them to enter
the ring against such odds as they might chance to find striving for the
place."*757
As stated above, these statements were written by a defender of government
chaplaincies; but no argument that the most decided opponent could make
could more fully or more justly condemn the whole institution as a living
imposition, and a fraud upon the people.*758
Though this was written so long ago, there has been no change for the better
since, as both facts and practical experience show. The Christian Statesman
of May 8,1891. contains the following : -
"The Rev. James C. Kerr, the most recent appointee to the post of army
chaplain, is familiarly known as `Father Kerr' and belongs (according to the
Army and Navy Register)` to a very church branch of the Episcopal
denomination." The same paper states April 26: ` The newly appointed post
chaplain James C. Kerr, gave a banquet to two hundred of his friends at
Slaughter Beach, near Milford, Del., April 24. Three ex-governors were
present, and one prospective governor. The chaplain (the telegraph tells us)
received congratulations in a graceful manner, and everything was free to
his guests, bowling alley, billiard room, and bar room included.' We quote
to emphasize the remark of the National Baptist: `It seems to us that
evangelical Christians cannot reflect with any satisfaction upon this
appointment. We humbly submit that a gentleman who celebrates his
appointment by throwing open the bar-room to his friends, is not the sort of
man who is going to do much good either to officers or men, among whom
drunkenness is a wide-spread calamity and curse.'"
630
- not less than twelve thousand dollars of public money, - has been paid to
this chaplain for doing a drunkard's "duty."
Such a misappropriation of public money, however, is a very small item in
comparison with the standing insult thus imposed upon every enlisted man
in the United States army. For, to assume - as the appointment of such a
character as that to the office of chaplain, and as the keeping of him there
knowing him to be such, does assume - that the soldiers of the United States
army are so low and degraded that a confirmed drunkard is a fit instructor in
morals and a proper person to take charge of their spiritual interests, is
nothing short of a base insult imposed upon every enlisted man in the
service.
And in the Congress which was in session when this man was dismissed,
and which conferred the appointment of the other one, there was introduced
a bill to increase the number of chaplains from thirty-four to one hundred!
Instead of this, there should have been a bill not only introduced but passed,
totally abolishing the whole system of chaplaincies under the United States
government. Legally, they are unconstitutional loafers. Physically, however,
they are strictly constitutional loafers - when they are not constitutional
drunkards.
RELIGIOUS PROCLAMATIONS.
Another unconstitutional practice which has been followed, and which has
established a precedent that is now urged in support of the grand movement
for national religious legislation, is that wherein the President of the United
States directs religious exercises by proclaiming national fasts, prayers, and
thanksgivings. The Constitution confers upon the President no such powers.
The opinion of Jefferson upon this point, written in a letter January 23,
1808, is as follows: -
"I consider the government of the United States as interdicted by the
Constitution from intermeddling with religious institutions, their doctrines,
discipline, or exercises. This results not only from the provision that no law
shall be made respecting the establishment or free exercise of religion, but
from that, also, which reserves to the States the powers not delegated to the
United States. Certainly, no power to prescribe any religious exercise, or to
assume authority in religious discipline, has been delegated to the general
government. It must, then, rest with the States, as far as it can be in any
human authority. But it is only proposed that I should recommend, not
632
prescribe, a day of fasting and prayer. That is, that I should indirectly
assume to the United States an authority over religious exercises, which the
Constitution has directly precluded them from. It must be meant, too, that
this recommendation is to carry some authority, and to be sanctioned by
some penalty on those who disregard it; not, indeed, of fine and
imprisonment, but of some degree of proscription perhaps in public opinion.
And does the change in the nature of the penalty make the recommendation
less a law of conduct for those to whom it is directed ? I do not believe that
it is for the interest of religion to invite the civil magistrate to direct its
exercises, its discipline, or its doctrines; nor of the religious societies, that
the general government should be invested with the power of effecting any
uniformity of time or matter among them. Fasting and prayer are religious
exercises; the enjoining them, an act of discipline. Every religious society
has a right to determine for itself the time for these exercises, and the
objects proper for them, according to their own particular tenets; and this
right can never be safer than in their own hands, where the Constitution has
deposited it." *759
Madison also held that this practice is a deviation from the strict principle of
the separation of religion form civil jurisdiction as demanded by the
Constitution. His word as written in the letter before quoted on chaplaincies,
is as follows : -
"There has been another deviation from the strict principle [ " of the
immunity of religion from civil jurisdiction "] in the executive
proclamations of fasts and festivals." *760
Yet even Madison allowed himself by some sort of political or other
"necessity" to be swerved from this acknowledged principle, and actually
issued such proclamations,and apologized for them by the plea that they
were " indiscriminate, and merely recommendatory." But no such pela will
suffice. Jefferson's position is the only true one on this question. Fasting,
prayer, and thanksgiving to God are religious exercises, and for the
President or any Governor to enjoin or recommend them, is only to assume
jurisdiction of religion and religious exercises. It is to assume for the
particular occasion, the office and prerogative for Pontifex Maximus, and is
the first step toward the creation in permanency, of that pagan office, only
to be merged at last in the papal from.
633
all other; in 1887, $194,635 as against $168,579 for all others ; in 1888,
$221,169 for Catholic schools, and $155,095 for all others; in 1889,$347-
672 for Catholic schools, as against $183,000 for all others; in 1889-90. as I
have said $356,967 for Catholic schools, as against, for all other
denominations and all other schools, $204,993." *763
That is, in five years there was drawn from the public treasury, by churches,
more than two millions of dollars with which to pay themselves for teaching
their own church principles and doctrines in their own church schools and
to their own converts. In other words, more than two millions of dollars was
paid in those five years by the United States government directly to the
support of these churches in their own religious work. And another point
worthy of particular notice is that during this time the Catholic Church was
enabled to increase by $238,624 the amount which it first received, while
all the other denominations together were able to increase theirs by only
$95,077.
When President Harrison entered upon his administration, and found this
condition of things, he set about to remedy the evil, to break this union of
Church and State, and let the churches support their own schools, and teach
their own doctrines, at their own expense. But he soon found that in so short
a time the wicked thing had attained such power that it could successfully
cope with the administration of the government itself. As stated by Senator
Dawes on the floor of the Senate,-
"The present management was in favor of divorcing the government
absolutely from them all. but it found in impossible to do that."
That is to say, on only five years the church power, as represented in these
sixteen denominations, had secured such a hold upon the United States
government, that it could not be shaken off. In so short a time,and in the
face
of every principle of the government there was created such a union of
Church and State that it was found impossible to divorce them.
Finding this to be the case, the administration thought to do what appeared
to be the next best thing, and allow no increase of the appropriations to any
church, and did recommend that the government conduct its own schools
and teach the Indians itself. The Catholic Bureau of Missions applied for aid
in establishing three new schools. There were also applications on the part
of the Episcopalians, the Presbyterians, and the Methodists; but all such
applications were refused. With the refusal , the Protestant denominations
635
$75,000. The total amount this year is $95.830. In addition to this large sum
they will demand of the commissioner, doubtless, the same amount granted
them last year.
"It should be remembered that in 1886 the amount of money secured from
the government by the Roman Catholics was $118,000 and in 1890 it had
reached the large sum of $356,000. Is it not time that this perversion of
public money to sectarian uses should cease ? "
Now that would be an excellent protest if it were an honest one. It would be
a strong one if it were only fair. From this statement alone, nobody would
ever get the idea that any church but the Catholic was engaged in this "raid
upon the public treasury," or had been a beneficiary of "this perversion of
public money to sectarian uses." Yet this statement was written and
distributed to United States senators by a minister - clearly a Protestant
minister. It was written by a minister who knew the facts. He knew that last
year the Roman Catholics received $356,967 and must also have known
that the Protestants received $204,993. He must have known that while the
Roman Catholics asked an increase of $44,000, the Protestants also
requested the Commissioner of Indian Affairs to increase the appropriation
to them. He must have known, also, that in 1886, although the Roman
Catholics received $118,343, the Protestants at the same time from the same
source received $109,916 ; and that although in 1890 the appropriation to
the Roman Catholic Church had "reached the large sum of 356,967," the
amount secured by the Protestants in the same time, and from the same
source, had also reached the large sum of $204,993. Yet in the face of these
figures, showing the large amount of money received by Protestant
denominations from the public treasury for church uses, he says not a word
about it, and lays against the Roman Catholics only, the charge of that "raid
upon the public treasury," as though they were the only guilty parties in the
whole transaction.
Now if the Roman Catholics' securing from the national government
$118,343 was a "raid upon the public treasury," the securing by Protestants
from the same source $109,916 is just as certainly a raid upon the public
treasury; and if the continuation and increase of the appropriation to the
Roman Catholics up to the amount of $356,967 was a continuous raid upon
the public treasury, then the continuation and the increase of the
appropriation, from the same source, to Protestants up to the amount of
$204,993, was just as certainly a continuous raid upon the public treasury.
637
The only difference is that the raid of the Protestants was not quite so
successful as the raid of the Catholics.
Nor is it exactly correct to put it in this way. The raid was not made by the
parties in two distinct divisions. They were united in solid phalanx in the
raid, each division supporting the other. It was only when the Protestants
found that the Catholics were securing the larger share of the plunder, that
there was any division at all among the invading host, or that there was
among them any idea that their action was a raid upon the public treasury.
As soon as this was discovered, however, the invading hosts separated into
two divisions, - the "sectarian" and the "non-sectarian,"- and the Protestants,
the "non-sectarian" division, suddenly discovered that there was a "raid
being made upon the public treasury," and that there was being carried on a
"serious perversion of public money to sectarian uses."
It is important to inquire, Why is it considered impossible to break this hold
which the churches have secured upon the government ? Why is it
impossible to sever this union of Church and State which is already formed
? After stating the amount of appropriations to parochial schools. from the
years 1886-1890, as already given, Senator Dawes, who had charge of the
bill, said: -
"That was the condition of things last year when the present management of
the Indian Bureau came into power. That is maintained to-day in precisely
the same condition. When this present management came into power, it
encountered a public sentiment in reference to this great discrepancy, which
came very near precipitating upon the country a very angry and
unprofitable, and in every possible light an unfortunate discussion, of the
great question whether the government should be connected with parochial
schools at all. The present management was in favor of divorcing the
government absolutely form them all, but it found it impossible to do that."
This is a statement worth examining: -
1. It is shown by the Senator that the United States government is allied
with the churches in the United States to such an extent as to be spending
more than one-half million dollars each year for the support of the schools
of these churches. That is more than one-half million dollars is taken each
year from all the people and given outright to certain churches with which
to conduct church schools, and to teach the religious dogmas of those
churches.
638
"ARTICLE.
"SECTION 1. No State shall ever make or maintain any law respecting an
establishment of religion, or prohibiting the free exercise thereof.
641
gradually expel from our geographical boundaries every religion except the
Christian in its varied forms. I do not expect to see the pagan and other
forms existing side by side with the former, both peaceably acquiesced in,
for any length of time. I do not think that experience will satisfy the
American people that the inculcation of any positive religious belief hostile
to the Christian faith, or the practice of the forms of any other worship, is
conducive to the good order of society and the general welfare. There may
not be any exhibition of bigotry in this. I believe that religious toleration
will yet come to be considered to be an intelligent discrimination between
the true and the false, and the selection of the former by such universal
consent as shall exclude by general reprobation the recognition and practice
of the latter. . . . The people are considering these subjects anew. The are
questioning whether there be not some mistake in theories of religious
liberty, which permit the inculcation of the most destructive errors in the
name of toleration, and the spread of pestilences under the name of liberty
which despises the quarantine."
And that they made no mistake in the view that practically it means all that
they intend, is clear from the briefest examination of its provisions. If this
resolution were adopted and the proposed amendment were made a part of
the Constitution, then the first of all questions to be decided would be, What
are the fundamental and non-sectarian principles of Christianity ?
If Christianity, itself alone, is not sectarian, then none of the principles of
Christianity can possibly be sectarian. If any of the principles of
Christianity be sectarian, then all of them are. Because Christianity as it is,
is a definite and positive thing. It is not a namby-pamby mixture of fast and
loose principles. But granting the assumption of the resolution that such a
distinction exists, the question then is, How shall the United States
government discover just what they are ? Christianity is represented in the
United States by probably a hundred different denominations. Each one of
these holds to something different from all the others, which makes it the
particular denomination it is. No one of these, therefore, can be taken as
representing the non-sectarian principles of Christianity. Consequently, the
only course to be pursued by which the United States government could
find out what are the non-sectarian principles of Christianity, is by a general
consensus of the principles of Christianity as held by all of the
denominations in which Christianity is represented in the United States.
This could not be secured by an examination of the creeds of the different
denominations, because the leading denominations themselves do not agree
upon their own creeds. There would be no remedy, therefore, other than to
645
provides that the Board of Regents shall be composed of the President and
Cabinet, the Chief-Justice of the United States, and twelve citizens of the
United States "appointed by a concurrent resolution of the two houses of
Congress," as to how the question should be decided would be the issue in
the very first presidential election after the passage of the bill, and in every
other presidential and congressional election that ever would follow. At
every national election "Christian theology" would be the one great question
at issue. Mrs. Woodbridge's National Reform Woman's Christian
Temperance Union idea of bringing the gospel to the masses, would be
literally fulfilled in the perfect image of the original campaigns that made
the papacy.
It may be said that even if such a bill as this were passed by Congress, it
would at once be declared unconstitutional by the United States Supreme
Court. That it ought to be declared unconstitutional is very certain, but that
it would be, is another question entirely. That such a bill is unconstitutional
is clear from one consideration alone, to say nothing of any more. If
Christian theology be taught in the University, there will have to be a
teacher. Such a teacher would in the nature of the case be a holder of an
"office or public trust" within the meaning of the Constitution. In order to
be qualified to teach Christian theology, such a person must necessarily be a
Christian. But to require such a teacher to be a Christian would be to require
a religious test, and clearly a violation of that clause of the Constitution
which declares that "no religious test shall ever be required as a
qualification to any office or public trust under this government."
Yet this would be hardly more of a violation of this clause, than is the
appointment of chaplains under the law as enacted. And there is hardly a
doubt that the teaching of "Christian theology" would be carried on under
such an act as this, by teachers obliged to submit to such a religious test,
just as the appointment and work of chaplains is now carried on. What does
the Constitution amount to in the presence of such forces?
But whether it would be declared unconstitutional by Supreme Court, is by
no means certain. Senator Edmunds, the author of the bill, is said to be one
of best, if not the best, of constitutional lawyers, not only in the United
States Senate, but in the whole country. True, it does not follow that this
fact would necessarily have any influence with the Supreme Court; yet
when a man with such a reputation as a constitutional lawyer, would
deliberately frame and offer such a bill, it might be that a sufficient number
of the judges on the Supreme Bench would view the constitutionality of the
648
the week, their mental and moral culture, and the RELIGIOUS
OBSERVANCE OF THE SABBATH DAY."
This was at once met with strong opposition throughout the country; and it
was so manifestly religious legislation, that its advocates found themselves
at a disadvantage everywhere on account of the force of popular sentiment
against any measures of religious legislation. The second session of the
Fiftieth Congress had therefore no sooner convened than - December 13,
1888 - a hearing was obtained of the Senate Committee having the bill in
charge, strongly urging the passage of the bill, recommending, however,
certain changes which would give it less of a religious appearance, while at
the same time not only retaining all its religious sense and meaning, but
making its provisions more strict. They asked that the title of the bill should
be changed so as to read as follows: -
"A bill to secure to the people the enjoyment of the Lord's day, commonly
known as Sunday, as a day of rest, and to protect its observance as a day or
religious worship."
Although Mrs. Bateham stated to the committee that the bill as it was, had
"been specifically indorsed by hundreds of thousands," not including those
who "not having seen the bill, ask in general terms for a Sunday law," she
said: -
Mrs. Bateham, - "One of requests of our National Woman's Christian
Temperance Union was that the word `promote' should be changed to
'protect,' in the title of the bill. so that it should have no appearance of what
all Americans object to, any union of Church and State. That amendment
was proposed and accepted by the American Sabbath Union, the organized
body which has just been in session in this city."
Senator Blair - "Do you not think that the word 'protect' implies power to
command and compel? An army protects."
Mrs. Bateham. - "All our laws protect us, do they not?"
Senator Blair. - "You would make this a law?"
Mrs. Bateham. - "I suggest that the bill be made a law. and that it be a law
which shall protect the civil Sabbath; not promote religious worship, but
protect the day as a day of rest and religious worship."
Senator Blair. - "It seems to me that the word `protect' is a stronger and
more interfering word than `promote.'"
652
Now it is a fact, and the advocates of this bill, as well as all others, know it
to be so, that there are no people in all this land who have not the privileges
of rest and religious worship free from disturbance by anybody, on the first
day of the week and all other days and nights of the week. And that the title
does not in any sense describe the real intent of the bill is evident from a
glance at the provisions of the body of the bill, even with the substitution of
the term "first day of the week" for the religious names of the day.
Section 1 declares that "no person within the jurisdiction of the United
States shall perform or authorize to be performed, any secular work, labor,
or business to the disturbance of others upon the first day of the week."
Now secular means "pertaining to this present world, or to things not
spiritual or holy; relating to things not immediately or primarily respecting
the soul, but the body; worldly." Therefore this bill proposes to prohibit all
persons within the jurisdiction of the United States from performing or
authorizing to be performed on Sunday any work, labor, or business
pertaining to this present world or to things not spiritual or holy. It proposes
to prohibit them from performing any work, labor, or business relating
immediately or primarily to the body (works of necessity, mercy, and
humanity excepted); to prohibit them from doing anything worldly, that is,
pertaining to this world or to this life. Consequently, the only kind of works
that can properly be done on Sunday under that bill are works that pertain to
another world, works that pertain to things spiritual or holy, work respecting
the soul, and the life to come.
Now we should like some of the Sunday-law advocates to tell how the
Congress of the United States is going to find out, so as authoritatively to
state, what work, labor, or business it is that properly pertains to another
world, on Sunday or at any other time. More than this, we should like them
to tell how Congress is to find out whether there is any other world than
this, and especially how it is to find this out and make it to be so clearly
discerned, that the recognition of it can be enforced by law upon all the
people. We should like, also, some of these to tell how Congress is to
discover what work it is that properly pertains to the people's souls on
Sunday; or indeed, whether the people have any souls. How is Congress to
know whether there is a life to come?
And even if Congress should discover all this to its own satisfaction, then
will Congress insure to all the people a happy issue in that life to come,
upon condition that they observe the Sunday laws?
654
These are not captious questions, they are entirely pertinent. For when it is
proposed that this nation by legislative acts shall commit itself to the
guardianship of the affairs of the world to come, of men's souls, and of
another life; and when the people are asked to consent to it, it is strictly
proper for the people to inquire, How shall the State make that thing a
success?
The truth is, that the State can never of right have anything to do with the
world to come, or with the question as to whether there is one to come at
all. The State can never of right have anything to do with men's souls, or
with the question as to whether men have any souls. The States can never
have anything to do with the life to come, or with the question as to whether
there is any life to come. No State will ever reach the world to come, nor
will any State ever, in the least degree, be partaker of the life that is to
come. The State is of this world wholly; it has to do only with the affairs of
this world, and with men as they are in this world. The State has to do only
with men's bodies, and to see that the lives which men lead are civil. By this
it is clearly seen that the Blair Sunday bill at the very first step, proposes to
lead the government of the United States into a field where it is impossible
for it to exercise any proper jurisdiction.
Nor do we raise these questions because we doubt that there is another
world, or that there is a life to come. We are fully persuaded that there are
both another world and a life to come. But the discerning of this a matter of
faith, and that on the part of each individual for himself alone. Nobody on
this earth can discern or decide this for anybody else. We thoroughly
believe that there are both another world and a life to come; and anybody in
this world has an equal right not to believe it if he chooses so to do. We
have the right to believe this without the sanction of the government; and
any other man has a right not to believe it, and that without any interference
by the government. We deny the right of any of the senators or
representatives in Congress to decide any of these matters for anybody but
himself.
Under the first proviso of Section 2, there is a clause that is of considerable
moment, especially to those who observe Sunday. That is the clause which
refers to "the due observance of the day as one of worship and rest." Who is
to decide what is the due observance of the day? Without any such law, this
remains for each person to decide according to the dictates of his own
conscience. But just as soon as such a law as this should be enacted, this
would devolve upon the courts. And the individual could no longer decide
655
this according to the dictates of his own conscience, but must decide
according to the dictate of the State. Are the people who believe in keeping
Sunday ready to have the government regulate their observance of that day?
Are they ready to have the State assume the prerogative of deciding what is
the due observance of that day as a day of worship and rest? This is what
they do when they consent to the enactment of such a law as the Blair
Sunday bill is. Every man who believes in keeping Sunday, when he
consents to this bill, resigns his religious liberty. He resigns his right to
worship according to the dictates of his own conscience, and yields to the
government the right to dictate how he shall observe that day as a day of
worship.
The fact is, that in this thing the people who desire to keep Sunday, and who
believe that it should be religiously observed, have more at stake than any
other people, and it is a mystery that they cannot see it. It is a mystery that
the leaders in the movement cannot see that they are deliberately robbing
themselves of the dearest rights known to man. The mystery is solved,
however, by the fact that the lust for power has blinded them to the
consideration, not only of the rights of other people, but of their own rights.
It is in behalf of the rights of those who believe in keeping Sunday and of
worshiping according to the dictates of their own consciences, no less than
in behalf of the rights of all other people, that we carry on this
uncompromising opposition to all manner of governmental sanction or
interference in the matter of Sabbath observance.
State regulation of the religious observance of the day, and the worship of
the people, is the inevitable outcome of the legislation that is proposed; yet
it is not intended by the managers of this movement that the State shall do
this of itself. They intend that the church shall assume the supremacy, and
dictate the action and wield the power of the State. Thus a union of Church
and State, the rule of a despotic hierarchy, is to be the logical and certain
outcome of such legislation. It cannot be escaped when once the legislation
is begun.
Upon Section 3 we simply remark that, by a penalty of a thousand dollars
upon the exercise of honest occupations, and such a premium upon idleness,
the government ought to be able soon to create enough evil to ruin itself,
which it surely will if the thing should be carried into effect in all the
States.*766
As to Section 4: when everything shall have been forbidden the soldiers,
sailors, marines, and cadets, as is here proposed, "except assemblies for the
656
due and orderly observance of religious worship," suppose that they do not
want to assemble for the observance of religious worship, will they then be
assembled for that purpose? And how are they to know what is the "due"
observance of religious worship in the meaning of the law, except they shall
be instructed? Having gone so far in religion-political chicanery after the
manner of Constantine, the government might take the next and requisite
step also, according to the example set by him, and teach them the "due"
observance of religious worship, as he did, by having them assemble and
repeat at a given signal a prayer, also enacted by Congress and adapted to
the governmental authority of the United States.*767
Section 5 is identical, word for word, with the one in the original bill.
Whenever anybody receives any pay at any time for work done on Sunday,
the first man that will sue for the money shall have it. It makes no
difference who he is or where he comes from, if he finds out that anybody
has received money for work done on Sunday, all he has to do is to enter
suit, and the law says he shall have it.
This section aptly befits the cause to which this bill is committed. The only
effect the bill as a whole can have upon those who are not really religious,
is to compel them to be idle, and this section simply proposes to put a
further premium upon idleness by compelling the man who chooses to work
rather than to be idle, to pay the idler for the exercise of his own honest
industry. The lazy loafer who will never do anything if he can help it, can
spend his time watching the industrious citizen, and if he can detect him in
committing the heinous crime of performing any honest work on Sunday,
for which he shall receive any pay, the loafer can recover from the
industrious man a sufficient amount to support him in his idleness several
days. This is a fine thing indeed, an excellent provision of law, for the
loafers.
Government is supposed to be founded in justice. Courts are supposed to be
courts of justice. But we should like very much indeed for somebody to
show upon what principle of justice this section is founded, and by what
principle of justice any court could be guided in enforcing the provisions of
it. The principle of this section is identical with that by which Tiberius and
Domitian encouraged the informers about them.*768
In Section 6 of the revised bill, there is an important change from the
original bill. In the original bill the provisions of the act were to be so
construed as to "secure to all the people the religious observance of the
Sabbath day." But as revised, they are to be so construed as neither "to
657
already have on this subject. But let the State never attempt to prohibit
disturbance of worship by trying to compel men to worship; not attempt to
prohibit incivility by enforcing religious observances.
But that Sunday work does not really disturb the rest or the worship of those
who keep Sunday, is proved by the fact that the people who make this the
ground of their demand for Sunday laws, do not recognize for an instant
that work on Saturday disturbs the rest or the worship of the people who
keep Saturday. If the work of all the people on Saturday does not disturb the
rest or the worship of those who keep Saturday, how is it possible for the
work of the very few who work on Sunday to disturb the rest or the worship
of those who keep Sunday?
But look at this from the standpoint of actual experience. There are, for
instance, Seventh-day Adventists in every State and Territory of this nation,
in Canada, nearly every country of Europe, the Sandwich Islands, Australia,
South America, China, Japan, India, South Africa, and other places. They
all rest every Saturday; they all keep it as the Sabbath unto the Lord. But no
person has ever yet heard of a Seventh-day Adventist who ever complained
that his rest on the Sabbath was disturbed by other men's work. More than
this: the Seventh-day Adventists have organized churches in the great
majority of the States and Territories of this Union, and in these foreign
countries. These churches are found in country places, in villages, in towns,
and in cities. They meet for worship every Saturday; and although, as
everybody knows, Saturday is the busiest day of the week, in the midst of
such busy cities as Brooklyn, Chicago, Denver, San Francisco,
Minneapolis, Kansas City, and London, England, these churches of
Seventh-day Adventists assemble regularly for worship; and no person has
ever yet heard of any Seventh-day Adventist's making a complaint that their
worship was disturbed by the work, the business, or the traffic that is carried
on by other people on that day. The fact is, their worship is not disturbed by
these things.
Now, if all the labor, the business, and the traffic that is done on Saturday,
the day which is acknowledged by all to be the busiest day of the week, - if
all this, in such cities as we have named, does not disturb their rest or their
worship, how is it that the rest or the worship of those who keep Sunday is
disturbed on Sunday, when there is not one one-thousandth part as much
labor, or business, or traffic done on that day as is done on Saturday?
This argument rests on the living experience of thousands of people every
seventh day, and conclusively shows that the plea for Sunday laws to
659
"A BILL
" TO PREVENT PERSONS FROM BEING FORCED TO LABOR ON
SUNDAY.
" Be it enacted by the Senate and House of Representative of the United
States of America in Congress assembled. That it shall be unlawful for any
person or corporation, or employee of any person or corporation in the
District of Columbia, to perform any secular labor or business, or to cause
the same to be performed by any person in their employment on Sunday,
except works of necessity or mercy; nor shall it be lawful for any person or
660
opposition of the observers of the seventh day, until the government shall
have been committed to the legislation. This we know, and this they know;
and with this item there is a bit of history that is worth relating, not only for
the sake of the facts, but of the principles involved.
At the hearing before the Senate Committee on the Sunday bill, Mrs.
Bateham mentioned "the Seventh-day Baptists" as "a class not large in
numbers," and requested that "the conscientious scruples of this class be
respected" by "the following addition to the bill:"
"Section 7 Any person that has habitually and conscientiously refrained
from all labor on Saturday believing that to be the Sabbath, shall; on proof
thereof be exempt from the penalties of this law provided he has not on
Sunday interfered with e rights of others to a day for rest and worship."
A. H. Lewis, D. D., who was present as the representative of the Seventh-
day Baptists, also asked that a section be added exempting observers of the
seventh day. But there was present a representative of the Seventh-day
Adventists who objected to the whole matter, exemption and all. From the
report of the hearing (pages 96, 97), we copy the following upon the point:
The Chairman (Senator Blair). - "You object to it? "
Mr. Jones. - "We object to the whole principle of the proposed legislation.
We go to the root of the matter and deny the right of Congress to enact it."
The Chairman. - "Your say that the proposed exemption does not make it
any better?"
Mr. Jones. - "Not a bit. because if the legislation be admitted, then we admit
that it is the right of a majority to say that such and such a day shall be the
Sabbath or the Lord's day, and that it shall be kept. The majorities change in
civil government. The majority may change within a few years, and then the
people may say that the day we believe shall be kept must be observed, or
they may say that this day shall not be kept. If we admit the propriety of the
legislation, we also admit the propriety of legislation to the effect that a
certain day shall not be kept, and it makes every man's observance of
Sunday or otherwise simply the foot-ball of majorities."
The Chairman. - "Do you not think there is a distinction between the
majority in a monarchical government and a republican government? In a
monarchical government the majority is simply one man who has power."
Mr. Jones. - "But in a republic, when you throw this legislation into civil
affairs it makes a great deal of difference. There is another principle
662
involved. If we admit the exemption clause, it will not help the thing. It will
be exceedingly short. Suppose an exemption clause were given There are
people who will profess to be Seventh-day Adventists for express purpose
of getting chances to open saloons or houses of business on Sunday.
Therefore in outright self-defense, majority will have to repeal the
exemption clause."
The Chairman. - Call Mrs. Bateham's attention to that."
Mr. Jones. - "Let me repeat it. If you give an exemption clause, - it has been
tried, - there are reprehensible men, saloon keepers, who know they will get
more traffic on Sunday than they can on Saturday, and they will profess to
be Seventh-day Adventists; they will profess to be Sabbath-keepers. You
cannot "go behind the returns" - you cannot look into the heart, you cannot
investigate the intention - to see whether they are genuine in their
profession or not. They will profess to be Sabbath keepers, and then they
will open their saloons on Sunday. Then in outright
self-defense, to make your position effective, you will have to repeal that
exemption clause. It will last but a little while."
The Chairman, - "I agree with you there." *769
Mr. Jones. - "For that reason these people cannot afford to offer an
exemption clause, and for e reason that it puts the majority in the power of
our conscience, we deny the right to do anything of the kind. I ask the
organizations represented here to think of that."
The Chairman. - "I should like to call everbody's attention to the point. If
you need any legislation of this kind, you had better ask for legislation to
carry out your purposes, and be careful that in the effort to get the assistance
of the parties against you, you do not throw away the pith and substance of
all for which you ask."
To these same people, with others, Mrs. Bateham had already, in 1887,
Addressed a printed "Letter to Seventh day Believers." proposing, in
substance, that if they would help in securing a Sunday law, they should be
exempt from its penalties. They replied "We will not help you to put upon
others what we would not have put upon ourselves.
During the year 1889, Mr. Crafts made a tour of the whole country from the
Atlantic to the Pacific in the interests of Sunday legislation working up
"representative indorsements " of the following petition:
"To the United States senate [Duplicate to the House]
663
this particular feature of the bill; and the argument sets forth this matter so
plainly that it is given here in full.
Mr. Jones - 'MR. CHAIRMAN AND GENTLEMEN OF THE
COMMITTEE: I shall devote most of my remarks to the subject which was
made so much of by the gentleman who spoke last on the other side [Mr.
Crafts]; namely, the Seventh day Adventists and their opposition to this
legislation. . . . Congress can make no law upon the subject of religion
without interfering with the free exercise thereof. There fore the Seventh-
day Adventists, while observing Saturday, would most strenuously oppose
any legislation proposing to enforce the observance of that day. That would
be an interference with the free exercise of our right to keep that day as the
Sabbath. For we already have that right' -
The Chairman. - "Would this law take away your right to observe the
Sabbath? "
Mr. Jones. - "Yes sir I was about to prove that it does interfere with the free
exercise of our right to observe it; and having done that, I will prove that
this bill does dis (contemplate the taking away of the right to observe it.
"First as to its interference with the free exercise of our right to observe the
Sabbath. I take it that no one here will deny that now, at least, we, as
citizens of the United States, have the constitutional right to observe
Saturday as the Sabbath, or not to observe it, as we please. This right we
already have as citizens of the United States. As we already have it by the
constitution, their proposal to give it to us is only a concealed attempt to
deprive us of it altogether. for If we consent to their right or their power to
grant it, the power t grant carries with it the power to withhold. In
consenting to the one, we consent to the other. And as the granting of it is,
as I shall prove, for a purpose, and for a price, the withdrawing of it will
surely follow just as soon as the purpose of it is accomplished, and
especially if the price of it is not fully and promptly paid.
"Now this bill positively requires that whosoever does not observe Sunday
shall "conscientiously believe in and observe' another day of the week. We
do not keep Sunday. The bill does, therefore, distinctly require that we shall
conscientiously believe in and observe another day. We maintain that we
have the constitutional right to rest on Saturday, or any other day, whether
we do it conscientiously or not, or whether we conscientiously believe in it
or not. Haven't we? Congress has no constitutional power or right to require
anybody to `conscientiously believe in anything or to conscientiously
observe' anything.
665
keep Sunday according to the dictates of their own consciences. We are not
only pleading that we, but that they also, in conscientious beliefs and
observances, may be free from the interference and dictation of the State.
And in so pleading we are only asserting doctrine of the national
Constitution. In the history of the formation of the Constitution, Mr.
Bancroft says that the American constitution `withheld from the Federal
government the power to invade the home of reason, the citadel of
conscience, the sanctuary of the soul.' Let the American Constitution be
respected.
"Now to the point that this bill through its promoters, does distinctly
contemplate the taking away of the right to observe the Sabbath. I read from
the bill the exemption that is proposed; -
This act shall not be construed to apply to any person or persons who
conscientiously believe in and observe any other day of the week than
Sunday as a day of rest.
"Now why is that clause put in the bill? The intention of the law maker is
the law. If, therefore, we can find out why this was inserted, we can know
what the object of it is. During the past year Mr. Crafts has advertised all
over this country from Boston to San Francisco, and back again, and has
repeated it to this committee this morning, that the Seventh-day Adventists
and the Seventh day Baptists are the strongest opponents of Sunday laws
that there are in this country, and that they are doing more than all others
combined to destroy respect for Sunday observance. All this; and yet these
are the very persons whom he proposes to exempt from the provisions of
the law, which is expressly to secure the observance of Sunday!
"Why, then does he propose to exempt these? Is it out of respect for them,
or a desire to help them in their good work? - Not much. It is hoped by this
to check their opposition until Congress is committed to the legislation.
"How do we know this? - We know it by their own words. The lady who
spoke here this morning as the representative of the Woman's Christian
Temperance Union, Mrs. Catlin, said in this city; We have given them an
exemption clause, and that, we think, will take the wind out of their sails!'
Well, if our sails were dependent upon legislative enactments, and must
needs be trimmed to political breezes, such a squall as this might take the
wind out of them. But so long as they are dependent alone upon the power
of God, wafted by the gentle influences of grace of Jesus Christ, such
squalls become only prospering gales to speed us on our way.
667
"By this, gentlemen, you see just what is the object of that proposed
exemption - that it is only to check our opposition until they secure the
enactment of the law, and that they may do this the easier. Then when
Congress shall have been committed to the legislation, it can repeal the
exemption upon demand, and then the advocates of the Sunday law will
have exactly what they want. I am not talking at random here. I have the
proofs of what I am saying. They expect a return for this exemption. It is
not extended as a guaranteed right, but as a favor that we can have if we
will only pay them their own stated price for it. As a proof of this, I read
again from Mr. Crafts's book [`The Sabbath For Man'], page 262: -
"`The tendency of legislatures and executive officers towards those who
claim to keep a Saturday Sabbath, is to over leniency rather than to over
strictness.
"And in the convention held in this city only about three weeks ago, January
30, Mr. Crafts said that this exemption is `generous to a fault,' and that 'if
there is any fault in the bill, it is its being too generous' to the Seventh day
Adventists and the Seventh day Baptists. But I read on: -
'For instance, the laws of Rhode Island allow the Seventh day Baptists, by
special exceptions, to carry on public industries on the first day of the week
in Hopkinton and Westerly, in each of which places they form about one
fourth of the population. This local option method of Sabbath legislation
after the fashion of Rhode Island or Louisiana, if generally adopted, would
make not only each Stat, but the nation also, a town heap, some places
having two half Sabbaths as at Westerly, some having no Sabbath at all, as
at new Orleans, to the great confusion and injury of interstate commerce
and even of local industry. Infinitely less harm is done by the usual policy,
the only constitutional or sensible one, to let the insignificantly small
minority of less than one in a hundred, whose religious convictions require
them to rest on Saturday (unless their work is of a private character such as
the law allows them to do on Sunday) suffer the loss of one day's was rather
than have other ninety nine suffer by the wreaking of their Sabbath by
public business.'
"Why, then, do they offer this `special exception' ? Why do they voluntarily
do that which they themselves pronounce neither constitutional nor
sensible? - It is for a purpose.
"Again I read, and here is the point to which I wish especially to call the
attention of the committee. It shows what they intend we shall pay for the
exemption which they so `over generously' offer.
668
"Instead of reciprocating the generosity shown toward them buy the makers
of Sabbath laws these seventh day Christians expend very large part of their
energy in antagonizing such laws, seeking by the free distribution of tracts
and papers, to secure their repeal or neglect."
"Exactly! That is the price which we are expected to pay for this "generous'
exemption. We are to stop the distribution of tracts and papers which
antagonize Sunday laws. We are to stop spending our energy in opposition
to their efforts to promote Sunday observance. We are to stop telling the
people that the Bible says "the seventh-day is t he Sabbath,' and that Sunday
is not the Sabbath.
"But have we not the right to teach the people that `the seventh day is the
Sabbath of the Lord,' even as the Bible says, and that only the keeping of
that day is the keeping of the Sabbath according to the commandment?
Have we not the right to do this Have we the not the right to tell the people
there is no scriptural authority for keeping Sunday, the first day of the
week? Why, some of these gentlemen themselves say that. Mr. Elliott here
[Rev. George] confesses `the complete silence of the New Testament, so far
as any explicit command for the Sabbath , or definite rules for its
observance are concerned.' Many others speak to the same effect. Have we
not as much right to tell this to the people as they have? They do not agree
among themselves upon the obligations of Sabbath keeping, nor upon the
basis of Sunday laws. In every one of their conventions one speaks one way
and another in another and contradictory way. Have we not as much right to
disagree with them as they have to disagree with one another? Why is it,
then, that they want t stop our speaking these things, - unless it is that we
tell the truth?
"More than this: have we not the constitutional right freely to speak all this,
and also freely to distribute tracts and papers in opposition to Sunday laws
and Sunday sacredness? Does not the Constitution declare that 'the freedom
of speech, or of the press,' shall not be abridged? then when these men
propose that we shall render much a return for that exemption, they do
propose an invasion of the constitutional guarantee of the freedom of speech
and of the press. Why, gentlemen, this question of Sunday laws is a good
deal larger question than half the people ever dreamed of.
"Now to show you that I am not drawing this point too fine, I wish to read
another extract from a doctor of divinity in California. With reference to
this specific question, he said: -
669
"`Most of the States make provision for the exercise of the peculiar tenets of
belief which are entertained by the Adventists. They can worship on
Saturday. and call it the Sabbath if they choose; but there let their privileges
end.'
"They do, indeed seem by this to be generous enough to allow those of us
who are already keeping Sabbath to continue to do so while we live; but
there our privileges are to end. We are not to be allowed to speak or
distribute papers or tracts to teach anybody else to keep it. Why, gentlemen
of the committee, do you not see that they propose by this law t deprive us
of all our rights both of conscience and of the Constitution? Therefore we
come to you to plead for protection. We do not ask you to protect us by
legislation. We do not ask you to legislate in favor of Saturday - not even to
the extent of an exemption clause. We ask you to protect us by refusing to
give to these men their coveted power to invade our rights. We appeal to
you for protection in our constitutional rights as well as our rights of
conscience.
"` There let their privileges end.' If. Even this allowance is only conditional.
And the condition is the same precisely as that laid by Mr. Crafts; namely,
that we shall stop every phase of opposition to Sunday observance. Here it
is in his own words, not spoken in the heat and hurry of debate, but
deliberately written and printed in an editorial in Western Christian Union,
March 22, 1889: -
"` Instead of thankfully making use of concessions granted them and then
going off quietly and attending to their own business as they ought, they
start out making unholy alliances. that they may defeat the purposes of their
benefactors. None of these bills are aimed at them; but if they fail to
appreciate the fact, they may call down upon them selves such a measure of
public disfavor as that legislation embarrassing to them may result.'
" There, gentlemen, you have the story of that proposed exemption. 1. It is
inserted to take the wind out of our sails, and stop our opposition to their
efforts and to Sunday observance in general. 2. If we do not `appreciate' the
benefaction, and `reciprocate the generosity' by stopping all opposition to
their work and to Sunday observance, then legislation `embarrassing' to us
may be expected to result.
"Gentlemen, do you wonder that we do not appreciate such benevolence, or
reciprocate such generosity? Can you blame American Citizens for saying
in reply to all that, that however `embarrassing' the result may be, we do not
670
"All this shows that the intent of the makers and promoters of this bill is to
subvert the constitutional rights of the people. The intent of the law-maker
is the law. As, therefore, by their own words, the intent of this exemption
clause is to stop all effort to teach o to persuade people to keep the Sabbath
instead of Sunday; as the intent of the body of the bill is to compel all to
keep Sunday who do not keep the Sabbath; and as the intent of both
together is to `scoop all in ' make sure work,' it follows inevitably, and my
proposition is demonstrated, that the promoters of this legislation do
distinctly contemplate the taking away of the right to observe the Sabbath in
this nation, and to allow the keeping of Sunday only." *770
And this is but the preliminary step to the crushing out of all freedom of
religious thought and action. For, by what right, or upon what authority, do
they presume to do this? We have seen that by their own plain statements
the confess that there is no command of God for Sunday observance. Yet
they propose to compel all in the nation to keep Sunday as an obligation to
God. By what right, then, does this great combination demand State and
national laws compelling people to observe, as an obligation to God, that
for which there is no command of God?
Where there is no command of God, there is no obligation towards God. In
this demand, therefore, they do in fact put themselves in the place of God,
and require that their will shall be accepted as the will of God. They require
quire that their views, without any command from the Lord, shall be
enforced upon all men; and that all men shall be required to yield obedience
thereto as to an obligation enjoined by the Lord.
Now it is the inalienable right of every man to dissent from any and every
church doctrine, and to disregard every church ordinance, institution, or rite.
All but papists will admit this. Therefore, whenever the State undertakes to
enforce the observance of any church ordinance or institution, and thus
makes itself the champion of the Church it simply undertakes to rob men of
their inalienable right think and choose for themselves in matters of religion
and church order. Men are therefore, and thereby, compelled either to
submit to be robbed of their inalienable right of freedom of thought in
religious things, or else to disregard the authority of the State. And the man
of sound principle and honest conviction will never hesitate as to which of
the two things he will do.
When the State undertakes to enforce the observance of church ordinances
or institutions, and thus makes itself the champion and partisan of church,
then the inalienable right of men to dissent from church doctrines and to
672
CHAPTER XXVIII.
CONCLUSION.
on the part of the government, and the favor, from powerful sources, of so
many distinct pieces of religious legislation, what is to hinder the complete
success of the movement in its one chief aim?
It is evident that even now all that remains is to bring the question to an
issue where votes shall decide. If it shall be brought to a vote in Congress
first, the probabilities are altogether in favor of its being carried. During the
Fifty-first Congress, the New York Independent attempted a sort of census
of the Sunday standing of members. There was not a majority of the
members who replied, but the great majority of those who did reply
expressed themselves in favor of the governmental recognition of Sunday
sacredness by closing the coming World's Fair on Sunday.
But even though a vote should fail in a Congress already elected, and the
question should be made the issue in a Congressional election, still the
probabilities are that the religious combination could secure enough
members to carry their scheme in some way to a successful issue. And if the
combination can succeed in causing the government to bend to their will in
a single point, everything else that they contemplate will follow. If the first
step be taken, the last step is then as certainly taken; for the last step is in
the first.
Another important consideration that strengthens the probability of the
success of the movement, and reveals a most striking and far-reaching
result, is the fact that the bond of union, the question of Sunday observance,
is not only a national but an international question.
In Europe among the church managers the Sunday question is being made
prominent in public affairs, even as it is in the United States. The organized
movement began in September, 1876, when there was held at Geneva,
Switzerland, the "International Sunday Congress." It consisted of the
representative friends of Sunday, from different lands, who met "to report
and confer as to the condition of things in their several localities, and to
unite in one organization for the promotion of the observance of the Lord's
day." At this congress, there were represented "the Swiss Cantons,
Germany, Austria, France, Belgium, Holland, Spain, Italy, Roumania,
Scotland, England, and the United States," "The German emperor delegated
his ambassador to Switzerland - Count Roder - to sit as his representative.
The king of Wurtemburg and the duke of Baden were also represented. The
Vicomte de la Panous, inspector-general of the Orleans Railway; M. L.
Charlier, chairman of the Roumanian railways; Messrs. Andre and Arnaud
of the Paris and Lyons Railway, represented their several companies.
676
and parties of pleasure which would occupy the larger part of Sunday or
great feast day, and to avoid such great efforts at ordering and cleaning as
make a notable increase in the duties of the domestics; and to do each
month some good works, such as hearing mass on a week-day, communing,
reciting, chaplets, offering one's labor, etc., in atonement for the profanation
of Sunday.
The Association publishes a monthly called the Catholic Sunday. Besides
their own publications, the Association uses the Sunday publications of the
International Federation. One member of the Association asked the Federal
for a thousand of their publications. Another member asked for "several
hundreds," saying, "They are Protestant in their origin, but essentially
Catholic in their meaning." And then the representative of the Federation
naively adds, "We are far from denying this, since for us true Protestantism
is the Catholicism of the primitive Christians."*773 It was the work of this
Catholic Association, which stirred up Mr. Seovel of the National Reform
Association to recommend that that organization make repeated advances
and suffer rebuffs to gain the co-operation of their Roman Catholic fellow-
citizens in this country in behalf of the Catholic Sunday and the
enforcement of its observance.
In the San Francisco Bulletin of August 14, 1886, there was given the
following notice of the European movement: -
"The agitation in Central and Northern Europe in favor of better observance
of the Lord's day is gaining in breadth and depth. In Alsace-Lorraine two
petitions in favor of the reform have lately been circulated. The first one,
originating in Roman Catholic circles, has already 140.845 names, but
many on this monster petition are Protestants. The second petition was
started by the Protestant Pastoral Conference at Strasburg, and has now
6,367 subscribers. In Paris the `Society for the Better Observance of
Sunday' recently offered prizes for the best popular discussion in pamphlet
form of the Sunday question, the condition being that only working men
were to send in their essays. No less than forty-one manuscripts were
received, five of which took prizes."
This is the report of but a single province, and from it there may be gathered
some idea of the "breadth and depth" of the movement when all the nations
before named are considered. During the Paris Exposition of 1889, there
was again held an international congress to consider the question of the
world's Sunday observance.
678
these things, and above all by its absolutely free exercise of religious right,
this government has exerted upon other nations, has surely and steadily
weakened the hold of the papal principles upon them, till even Spain, the
home of the Inquisition, has been led to grant toleration.
Now if this government of such glorious principles, shall be subverted, and
shall be joined to the religion, and put under the feet, of an imperious
hierarchy, and its hitherto splendid powers shall be prostituted to the vile
uses of religious oppression and persecution, the reactionary influence upon
the other nations will be such as to lift the papacy to such a position of
prominence and power as it never before possessed: as much greater than
that which it possessed in the midnight of the Dark Ages, as the world is
larger now than it was then. In short, this reaction would lift the papacy to
the place where the prophecy would be fulfilled that, "Power was given him
over all kindreds and tongues and nations." Rev. xiii, 7.
As surely as this thing shall ever be done, so surely will there be universal
persecution. The exaltation of the day of the sun has been the greatest
ambition of the spirit of the papacy from its earliest manifestation. And any
one who will pause and think a little, will clearly see that the only religious
thing there is, in the observance of which all nations agree, is THE
SUNDAY. They all likewise agree that its observance should be enforced
by law. Switzerland, Germany, Austria, Russia, France, Belgium, Holland,
Spain, Italy, Roumania, Scotland, England, the United States, Denmark,
Brazil and other South American States, Scandinavia, Australia, and even
Japan - Catholic, heathen, and so-called Protestant alike - all agree in the
exaltation of Sunday to the highest place in human affairs, and in
compelling all to observe it. And in all alike, hatred of a Christian's
observance of the Sabbath of the Lord, adds intensity to the zeal for the
"sacredness" of Sunday.
But, we repeat, the Sunday is the institution par excellence of the papacy -
that which "the church" sets forth as the sign of her authority. The keeping
of Sunday by Protestants "is an homage they pay in spite of themselves to
the authority of the Catholic Church;" so says "the church," and Protestants
cannot disprove it. And when the nations exalt Sunday and compel its
observance, they thereby cause men to honor, obey, and do homage to, the
papacy; the "man of sin" is made once more the fountain of authority and
the source of doctrine; all men are compelled, under pains and penalties, to
recognize it as such, and so, "All that dwell upon the earth shall worship
682
him, whose names are not written in the book of life of the Lamb slain from
the foundation of the world." Rev. xiii, 8.
And further saith the Scripture, "I beheld, and the same horn made war with
the saints, and prevailed against them; until the Ancient of Days came, and
judgment was given to the saints of the Most High; and the time came that
the saints possessed the kingdom." Dan. vii, 21, 22.
Of course, in the eyes of those who demand such legislation, and even many
others, such proceeding would not be considered persecution. It would only
be enforcing the law. But no State has any right either to make or to enforce
any such law. Such a law is wrong in itself; the very making of it is wrong.
And to obey such a law is wrong. All that any persecution has ever been,
was only the enforcement of the law.*776
And what would be the result? Precisely what it was before. As surely as
the movement to commit the government of the United States to a course of
religious legislation, shall succeed, so surely will there be repeated the
history of Rome in the fourth and fifth centuries.
First, by hypocrisy, voluntary and enforced, there will be a general
depravity, described by inspiration thus: "This know also, that in the last
days perilous times shall come. For men shall be lovers of their own selves,
covetous, boasters, proud, blasphemers, disobedient to parents, unthankful,
unholy. Without natural affection, truce-breakers, false accusers,
incontinent, fierce, despisers of those that are good. Traitors, heady, high-
minded, lovers of pleasures more than lovers of God. Having a form of
godliness, but denying the power thereof: from such turn away. . . . But evil
men and seducers shall wax worse and worse, deceiving, and being
deceived." 2 Tim. iii, 1-5, 13.
Second, As before, society will grow so utterly corrupt that there will be no
remedy, and only ruin can result.*777 The principles, the proposals, and the
practices of this movement, are identical with those which characterized
that church movement in the fourth century. Two things that are so alike in
the making, can be no less alike when they are made. And two things that
are so alike in every other respect, cannot possibly be any less alike in the
final results. The events of the history have occurred in vain, if this is not
the lesson which they teach, and the warning which they give.
By that "mystic symbol of legal government," its Great Seal, the
government of the United States stands pledged to "A New Order of Things
- Novos Ordo seclorum;" and by this same symbol, it is declared that "God
683
Has Favored the Undertaking." That God has favored the undertaking is
certain, and is manifest to all the world.
Thus God has made the New Republic, the exemplar to all the world, of the
true governmental principles. To this nation God has committed this sacred
trust. How will the nation acquit itself? how will the nation fulfill this
divine obligation? Will it maintain the high position which God has given it
before all the nations? or shall it be brought down from its high estate, be
shorn of its power and its glory, and, bound and fettered, be led a captive in
the ruinous triumph of the papacy? Shall the new order of things prevail? or
shall the old order be restored?
These are the living questions of the hour. The fate of the nation and of the
world, depends upon the answer. The issue out of which the answer must
come, even now hangs in the political balance. The answer itself even now
trembles upon the tongue of time.
AND WHAT SHALL THE ANSWER BE?
684
APPENDIX.
FIRST CASE.
Elder J. W. Scoles.
"STATE OF ARKANSAS
vs. Indictment.
J. W. SCOLES.
"The Grand Jury of Washington county, in the name and by the authority of
the State of Arkansas, accuse J. W. Scoles of the crime of Sabbath-
breaking, committed as follows; viz., the said J. W. Scoles, on Sunday, the
26th day of April, 1885, in the county and State aforesaid, did unlawfully
perform labor other than customary household duties of daily comfort,
necessity, or charity, against the peace and dignity of the State of Arkansas.
"J. P. HENDERSON, Prox. Att'y."
Mr. Scoles was convicted. An appeal was taken to the Supreme Court of the
State. October 30, 1886, the judgment of the Circuit Court was affirmed by
the Supreme Court. Almost a score of cases essentially the same as the case
of Elder Scoles, were held over in the different Circuit Courts of the State,
686
awaiting the decision of the Supreme Court in his case. The history of these
cases and others is as follows: -
SECOND CASE.
Allen Meeks, Star of the West, Ark.
Mr. Meeks had been a resident of Arkansas since 1856, with exception of
one year. He had held the office of Justice of the Peace for a number of
years both before and after the war. When he became a Seventh-day
Adventist, he refused to hold the office longer, because its duties conflicted
with his observance of the Sabbath.
Mr. Meeks was indicted at the July term of the Circuit Court, 1885, for
Sabbath-breaking. He was arrested in November, 1885, and held under
bonds of $500 for his appearance in January. The offense for which he was
indicted, was planting potatoes on Sunday - the third Sunday in March,
1885. The work was done near Mr. Meeks's own house, and not nearer than
two and a half miles to any public road or any place of public worship.
On the day referred to, Mr. La Fever and his wife went to visit Mr. Meeks at
his home, and found Mr. Meeks planting potatoes. Mr. Meeks quit his work,
and spent the rest of the day visiting with Mr. La Fever. La Fever afterward
reported Mr. Meeks to the Grand Jury; and as the consequence, Mr. Meeks
was indicted as stated. The fourth Monday in January, Meeks appeared
before Judge Herne. His case was laid over to await the decision of the
Supreme Court in the Scoles case.
THIRD CASE.
Joe Mc Coy, Magnet, Cove, Ark.
was a Mr. Weatherford, a member of the Methodist Church. The work was
done half a mile from any public road, and entirely away from any place of
public worship.
Mr. Weatherford went into the field where Mr. McCoy was plowing, and
spent several hours with him, walking around as he plowed. He was
summoned as a witness in the case, by the Grand Jury. In September, 1885,
Mr. McCoy was arrested, and held under bonds for his appearance. When
he appeared at the February term of the court, his case, with others, was laid
over to await the decision of the Supreme Court.
Mr. McCoy owned a small farm and team, and forseeing, as he thought, that
they would soon be consumed in paying fines and costs, he could not in
duty to his family and in harmony with his conscientious convictions of
right and duty, allow all his property to go in that way; neither could he
afford to lose a whole day every week. He therefore decided to abandon his
farm, leaving it to satisfy the demands of the law against him in this case,
and leave that country, hoping by this means to save at least his team and
personal property. By the advice of Elder Dan T. Jones, and at his earnest
request, Mr. Mc Coy returned to Hot Spring county, at the time for his
appearance, February, 1887, and confessed judgment under the indictment.
A portion of the cost was remitted, and the fine and a portion of the cost
were paid by Elder Jones, and Mr. Mc Coy was released.
Mr. Mc Coy said to Elder Jones, with tears in his eyes, that while he was
reckless and wicked, he was not molested; but as soon as he turned and tried
to live a religious life, he was indicted and fined for it.
FOURTH CASE.
J. L. Shockey, Malvern, Ark.
summoned as witnesses by the Grand Jury. Mr. Sims was hunting stock
when he saw Mr. Shockey at work on Sunday. The Grand Jury found a true
bill. Mr. Shockey was arrested September 14, 1885, and gave bond to the
amount of $110 for his appearance at the February term of the Circuit Court
in the Seventh Judicial District, held at Malvern. On the 1st day of
February, 1886, Mr. Shockey appeared before Judge J. B. Wood. In the
meantime, the Scoles case had been appealed to the Supreme Court; and at
the request of the judge, the prosecuting attorney consented to continue the
case, to await the decision of the Supreme Court.
FIFTH CASE.
James M. Pool.
SIXTH CASE.
James A. Armstrong, Springdale, Ark.
was the prosecuting witness. Mr. Armstrong had a contract for building the
school-house at Springdale. Mr. Courtney, tract for putting the tin roof on
the school-house. From the house they went into the field, where Mr.
Armstrong was digging potatoes. There the business was all talked over,
and the contract was secured for putting on the tin roof. Then this same
Courtney became the prosecuting witness against Mr. Armstrong of
Sabbath-breaking.
On the first Monday in May, Mr. Armstrong appeared before Judge
Pittman, Circuit Judge of the Fourth Judicial District, at Fayetteville; and,
waiving his right to jury trial, submitted his case to the court for decision.
Judge Pittman sustained the indictment. Fine and costs, amounting to
$26.50, were paid, Mr. Armstrong was released.
SEVENTH CASE.
William L. Gentry.
Mr. Gentry had been a citizen of Arkansas since 1849. He had served as
Justice of the Peace for eight years, and then refused to accept the office
longer. He had served as Associate-Justice of the County Court for two
years. He had been a Seventh day Adventist since 1877, - a member of the
Seventh-day Adventist church at Star of the West, Pike county, Ark.
At the January term of the Circuit Court, in 1886, he was indicted by the
Grand Jury for Sabbath breaking,the particular offense being his plowing on
his own farm, July 2,1886. He was arrested by the deputy-sheriff, and held
under $500 bonds for his appearance at the July term of the Circuit Court.
On the fourth Monday in July, Mr. Gentry appeared before Judge Herne, of
the Eighth Judicial District. At his request, his case was continued, to await
the decision of the Supreme Court in the Scoles case. In the month of
January, 1887, his case was called for trial, as the Supreme Court had
sustained the decision of the Circuit Court in the Scoles case. Mr. Gentry
confessed judgment, but did not have the money to pay the fine and costs.
Judge Herne ordered the defendant kept in custody until the fine and costs
were paid. Mr. Gentry, having the confidence of the sheriff, was allowed
the freedom of the town. On the last day of court, the sheriff notified him
that unless the fine and costs were paid, he would "hire him out." The laws
of Arkansas provide that in cases where the parties fail to satisfy the fines
imposed, they shall be put up by the sheriff, and sold to the highest bidder,
690
the bids being for the amount of wages to be paid per day. *778 They are
then worked under the same rules and regulations as convicts in the
penitentiaries. Mr. Gentry was sixty-five years old, and not wishing to
submit to such barbarous treatment, paid two dollars, all the money he had,
and gave his note for the remaining amount, $26.80.
EIGHTH CASE.
Ples. A. Pannell, Star of the West, Ark.
NINTH CASE.
J. L. James, Star of the West, Ark.
Mr. James, a Seventh day Adventist, was indicted by the Grand Jury in
January, 1886, for Sabbath-breaking. The particular offense was doing
carpenter work on Sunday. The indictment was founded on the testimony of
Mr. Powers, a minister of the Missionary Baptist Church. Mr. James was
working on a house for a widow, near the Hot Springs Railroad. The work
was done without any expectation of receiving payment, and wholly as a
charitable act for the poor widow, who was a member of the Methodist
Church. Mr. James worked in the rain to do it, because the widow was
about to be thrown out of the house in which she lived, and had no place to
691
shelter herself and family. Powers, the informer, lived about six hundred
yards from where the work was done, and on that very Sunday had carried
wood from within seven rods of where Mr. James was at work, and chopped
up the wood in sight of Mr. James.
Mr. James was arrested, and gave the usual bond for his appearance in
court. He appeared before Judge Wood at the January term of the Circuit
Court of 1886. His case, with others, was laid over to await the decision of
the Supreme Court in the Scoles case. The first Monday in February, 1887,
his case was called for trial. As the Supreme Court had decided against
Scoles, James confessed judgment; the regular fine and costs were assessed,
and were paid by Elder Dan T. Jones, as the agent of Mr. James's brethren
at large.
TENTH CASE.
Allen Meeks, the second time.
At the January term in 1886, Mr. Meeks was indicted the second time. July
13,he was arrested on a bench warrant in the hands of William La Fever.
Meeks gave bonds for his appearance at the July term of court; the offense,
fixing his wagon-brake on Sunday. He was reported to the Grand Jury by
Riley Warren. Warren had gone to Meeks's house on the Sunday referred to
in the indictment, to see Mr. Meeks about hiring a teacher for their public
school, as both of them were members of the school board of their district.
In the course of their conversation, Mr. Meeks incidentally mentioned
having mended his wagon-brake that morning. This was reported to the
Grand Jury by Warren, and the indictment followed.
At the July term, this, with other cases mentioned, was held over to await
the decision of the Supreme Court in the Scoles case.
At the January term in 1887, Meeks's case was called. He confessed
judgment; the usual fine and costs were assessed, paid by Meeks, and he
was released.
ELEVENTH CASE.
John A. Meeks, Star of the West, Ark.
692
John A. Meeks, aged fourteen years, son of Edward L. Meeks, was indicted
by the Grand Jury at the January term of the Circuit Court of 1886, for
Sabbath-breaking. The offense was, shooting squirrels on Sunday. The
place where the squirrels were shot was in a mountainous district entirely
away from any public road, or any place of public worship. He was reported
by a Mr. M. Reeves. The sons of Mr. Reeves were hauling wood with a
team on that same Sunday, and were present with the Meeks boy in the
woods, and scared the squirrels around the trees for the Meeks boy to shoot.
When the sport was over, the Meeks boy divided the game with the Reeves
boys.
Then the father of the Reeves boys reported the Meeks boy, and he was
indicted. His case was held over to await the decision of the Supreme Court
in the Scoles case. At the January term in 1887, the boy confessed
judgment, and was fined $5 and costs, and $3 county tax was assessed,
amounting in all to $22 The fine was paid, and the boy was released.
TWELFTH CASE.
John Neusch, Magnet Cove Ark.
arrest, and Neusch took it to the sheriff, and gave bond for his appearance at
court. In August, his case was laid over to await the decision of the
Supreme Court in the Scoles case. As soon as that decision had been
rendered, Neusch went and confessed judgment, and paid the fine and costs,
amounting to $25. Mr. Neusch was an observer of the seventh day.
THIRTEENTH CASE.
F.N Elmore. Springdale, Ark.
Mr. F. N. Elmore was indicted at the March term of the Circuit Court of
1886, on the charge of Sabbath-breaking. The indictment charged him with
violating the Sunday laws by working on Sunday, November 1, 1885. Mr.
Elmore was arrested in April, 1886, by Deputy-Sheriff Wm. Holcomb, and
was held in $250 bail for his appearance in the May term of the Circuit
Court. On the 4th of May, Mr. Elmore appeared before Judge Pittman, and
waiving his right to jury trial, submitted his case to the court for decision.
Millard Courtney was the only witness examined. He testified that he had
seen Mr. Elmore digging potatoes on the day above referred to, on the
premises of Mr. J. A. Armstrong. This work was done by Elmore on the day
when courtney took his friend to Armstrong to secure the contract for
putting the tin roofing on the school-house; and that is how Courtney knew
Elmore had worked on that day. Elmore was convicted. The fine and costs
were $28.95. which was paid, and he was released. Mr. Elmore was a
Seventh-day Adventist.
FOURTEENTH CASE.
William H. Fritz, Hindsville, Madison Co., Ark.
Mr. Fritz was indicted at the April term of the Circuit Court in 1886, for
Sabbath-breaking, and held under $250 bonds for his appearance at the
September term, at Huntsville. Mr. Fritz is a wood-workman, and the
offense charged was for working in the shop on Sunday. The shop was in
the country, and two hundred yards from the public road. The indictment
was sustained. The defendant was fined one dollar and costs, amounting to
$28. Mr. Fritz was a Seventh-day Adventist.
694
FIFTEENTH CASE.
Z. Swearingen.
Swearingen's brethren raised the money by donations, paid the bill, and
secured the release of his property. One thing about this case is to be noted
particularly: The witness upon whose testimony these people were
convicted, said that he saw them hauling rails on Sunday, the 14th day of
February, as he returned from the funeral of Mrs. Boggett. Now, the act
under which this prosecution was carried on, became a law March 3, and
was approved by the Governor, March 7. Consequently, they were
convicted for work done seventeen days before the act was passed under
which they were convicted.
SIXTEENTH CASE.
I. L. Benson.
Mr. Benson was not at that time a member of any church, made no
pretensions to religious faith, and did not observe any day. He had the
contract for painting the railroad bridge across the Arkansas River at Van
Buren, Ark. He worked a set of hands on the bridge all days of the week,
Sundays included. In May, 1886, Mr. Benson and one of his men were
arrested on the charge of Sabbath-breaking. They were taken to Fort Smith,
and arraigned before a Justice of the Peace. The Justice did not put them
through any form of trial, not even to ask them whether they were guilty or
not guilty, but read a section of the law to them, and told them he would
make the fine as light as possible, amounting, with costs, to $4.75 each.
They refused to pay the fines, and were placed in custody of the sheriff. The
sheriff gave them the freedom of the place, only requiring them to appear at
the Justice's office at a certain hour. Mr. Benson telegraphed to the general
manager of the railroad in regard to the matter. The general manager
telegraphed to his attorney in that city, to attend to the cases.
Mr. Benson and his men appeared before the Justice for a hearing in their
cases. It was granted, with some reluctance. The attorney, Mr. Bryolair, told
the Justice it was a shame to arrest men for working on the bridge at the risk
of their lives to support their families, when the public work in their own
town was principally done on Sunday. A hearing was granted, and the trial
was set for the next day.
They were not placed under any bonds at all, but were allowed to go on
their own recognizance. The following day, a jury was impaneled, and the
trial begun. The deputy-sheriff was the leading witness, and swore
696
SEVENTEENTH CASE.
James A. Armstrong, the second time.
On the 9th of July, 1886, Mr. Armstrong was arrested the second time, by
A. M. Dritt, marshal of Springdale, for working on Sunday, June 27, and
taken before the mayor, S.L. Staples. When brought before the mayor, Mr.
Armstrong called for the affidavit on which the writ was issued. The mayor
stated that he himself had seen Mr. Armstrong at work in his garden on
Sunday, and that Mr. A. J. Vaughn had called his attention to Armstrong
while he was at work, and had said, "Now, see that you do your duty." This
made an affidavit unnecessary. The case was tried before the mayor, acting
as Justice of the Peace. A. J. Vaughn was the first witness.
Justice of the Peace. - "What do you know about Mr. Armstrong's working
on Sunday, June 27 ?"
Vaughn. "I did not see Armstrong at all that day; I only heard he was at
work."
J. I. Gladden was the next witness called.
Justice. - "What do you know about Mr. Armstrong's working on Sunday,
June 27?"
Gladden. - "While at the depot, I saw some one at work hoeing in Mr.
Armstrong's garden; but I do not know for certain who it was."
Millard Courtney was the next witness called.
Justice. - "Tell us what you know about Mr. Armstrong's working on the
Sunday in question?"
697
Courtney. - "While on the platform of the depot, I saw some one hoeing in
Mr. Armstrong's garden. I am not positive who it was."
Having failed to prove anything from the witnesses regularly summoned,
the case was "rested," while the marshal was sent out to find somebody else.
He brought in Gideon Bowman, who was then questioned as follows: -
Justice. - "Do you know anything about Mr. Armstrong's doing work other
than customary household duties of daily necessity, comfort, or charity on
the Christian Sabbath, June 27 ?"
Bowman. - "I do. "
J. - "State what you saw."
B. - "As I came into town, having been out east, in passing Mr. Armstrong's
house, I saw him hoeing in the garden."
J. - "Did you recognize this person to be J. A. Armstrong?"
B. - "I did."
Here the prosecution rested the case, and Elder J. G. Wood assumed the
cross-examination in behalf of the prisoner.
Wood. - "Mr. Bowman, you say you were coming along the road from the
east when you saw Mr. Armstrong at work in his garden?"
B. - "I did."
W. - "Were you coming to town?"
B. - "I was."
W. - "About how long were you in passing Mr. Armstrong's house ? and
what was the length of time you saw him at work?"
B. - "I can't tell."
W. - "Do you think the time to have been two minutes, or more?"
B. - "Don't know; can't tell."
W. - "Could it possibly have exceeded one minute?"
B. - "I don't know. It makes no difference. I am not here to be pumped."
W. - "Mr. Bowman, we are only wanting the facts in the case. Are you sure
it was Mr. Armstrong you saw hoeing? Might it not have been some other
man?"
698
W. - "I understand, then, that you don't know. Well, Mr. Bowman, what
time in the day did you see Mr. Armstrong in the garden?"
B. - "In the afternoon."
W. - "About what time in the afternoon, - was it one or two o'clock, or
later?"
B. - "It makes no difference. I am not here to be pumped. If you want to
pump me any more, just come out on the street with me."
W. - "Sir, I have no desire to pump anything but truth from you, and only
wish to know the facts in this case. Was it about one or two o'clock in the
afternoon, or about four or five? Please tell us about the time of day."
B. - "It was between twelve noon and sunset. That is near enough."
This closed the testimony in the case. Mr. Armstrong was declared guilty,
and fined one dollar and costs, the whole amounting to $4.65. In default of
the payment of his fine, the mayor, acting as Justice of the Peace, told him
he would send him to the county jail, and allow him a dollar a day until the
fine and costs were paid.
The marshal went at once to the livery-stable to get a team, and within four
hours from the time of his arrest, Mr. Armstrong, in charge of the marshal,
was on his way to jail at Fayetteville. He was locked up with another
prisoner, with nothing but a little straw, and a dirty blanket about thirty
inches wide, for a bed for both. The next night, he was allowed to lie in the
corridor on the brick floor, with his alpaca coat for a bed, and his Bible for a
pillow. The third night, a friend in town furnished him a quilt and a pillow.
On the fourth night, his friend brought him another quilt, and thus he was
made quite comfortable. On the fifth day, at noon, he was released.
When Mr. Armstrong returned to Springdale, the mayor notified him that
his fine and costs were not satisfied, and that unless they were paid in ten
days, an execution would be issued, and his property sold. Mr. Armstrong
filed an appeal to the Circuit Court, the appeal was sustained, and he was
released from further penalty.
700
EIGHTEENTH CASE.
J. L. Munson, Star of the West, Ark.
NINETEENTH CASE.
James M. Pool, the second time.
Mr. Pool was indicted the second time at the September term of court in
1886, and was held under bonds of $250 for his appearance May 16, 1887;
and although the act under which these prosecutions were conducted, was
repealed before the date of trial, Pool was tried under the indictment, and
fined one dollar and costs, amounting to $28.40.
TWENTIETH CASE.
J. L. Shockey, the second time.
was indicted, was done on a new farm which he was opening up in the
woods, three fourths of a mile from any public road, and more than a mile
from any place of public worship, and not in sight of either. The witness,
Mr. Hammond, passed by where Mr. Shockey was at work, and after he had
gone some distance, returned, and spoke to Mr. Shockey about buying from
him a Plymouth Rock rooster. The bargain was then made, Hammond
agreeing to pay Shockey fifty cents for the rooster.
Shockey was indicted, and his case set for trial February 7, 1887. This case,
with the one before mentioned and some others that had been held over to
await the decision in the Scoles case, was called, and February 11 fixed as
the day of trial for all.
In the meantime, Elder Dan T. Jones, president of the Missouri Conference
of Seventh-day Adventists, had an interview with the prosecuting attorney,
Mr. J. P. Henderson, and explained the nature of all the cases, and showed
him that the Adventists were faithful, law-abiding citizens in every respect,
except in this matter of working on Sunday; that the defendants in cases
were all poor men, some of whom were utterly unable to pay any fines and
costs, and consequently would have to go to jail; and asked Mr. Henderson
if he would be willing to remit a portion of his fees, which were ten dollars
in each case, provided the remainder was raised by donations by the
Seventh-day Adventists throughout the country, for the relief of their
brethren.
Mr. Henderson replied that if these cases were of the nature of religious
persecution, he would not feel justified in taking any fees. He said he would
not be a party to any such action, but would want some time to investigation
the cases, to satisfy himself that this was true. Upon investigation, he
became so fully satisfied that the prosecutions were simply religious
persecutions, that he generously refused to take any fees in any of the cases.
When the cases were called, the defendants confessed judgment, and the
fine prescribed by law was assessed. The county clerk reduced his fees
about one half; the sheriff, one half of his; and the prosecuting attorney, all
of his, which reduced the total expenses about one half. The remainder was
advanced from funds supplied by Seventh-day Adventists throughout the
country, for the relief of their brethren in Arkansas.
TWENTY-FIRST CASE.
Alexander Holt, Magnet Cove, Ark.
702
had been the case for many years at the capital, that no Sabbath laws were
observed by the saloon-keepers. After the election of 1884, the newly-
elected prosecuting attorney of that district, commenced a rigid enforcement
of the law. A few Jewish saloon-keepers successfully defied it during the
session of the legislature. This led to the total and unqualified repeal of the
conscience proviso for the seventh day in the old law. This was used
oppressively upon the seventh-day Sabbath Christians, to an extent that
shocked the bar of the whole State. A test case was brought from
Washington county. Our Supreme Court could not see its way clear to hold
the law unconstitutional, but the judges, as men and lawyers, abhorred it.
Judge B. B. Battle, one of the three judges, was, with Judge Rose and
myself, a member of the standing committee on law reform of our State Bar
Association. In our report, as you see, we recommended a change, which
the Association adopted unanimously, Chief-Justice Cockrill and Associate-
Justices Smith and Battle being members, present and voting. At the
meeting of the General Assembly the next week (January, 1887), Senator
Crockett introduced a bill repealing the obnoxious law, in so far as it
affected those who keep holy the seventh day, still forbidding the opening
of saloons on Sunday.
"Truly yours,
"SAM W. WILLIAMS."
"DEAR SIR: Yours received. The law passed in this State in 1885, and
which has since been repealed, requiring all persons to keep Sunday as a
day of rest, although they might religiously keep some other day of the
704
week, was enacted, I think, to meet the case of certain Jews in this city who
kept saloons and otherbusiness houses open on Sunday. It was said that
those persons only made a pretense of keeping Saturday as a day of rest.
Whether these statements were true or not, I do not know. The act of 1885
was found to work oppressively on persons believing as you do that
Saturday is the Christian as well as the Jewish Sabbath; and hence its
repeal. It was manifestly unjust to them as well as to Jews who are sincere
in their faith.
"You ask me to express my opinion as to the propriety of such legislation as
that contained in the repealed act. Nothing can exceed my abhorrence for
any kind of legislation that has for its object the restraint of any class of
men in the exercise of their own religious opinions. It is the fundamental
basis of our government that every man shall be allowed to worship God
according to the dictates of his own conscience. It was certainly not a little
singular, that while in our churches the command was regularly read at
stated times, requiring all men to keep the Sabbath, which, amongst the
Jews to whom the command was addressed, was the seventh day of the
week, men should be prosecuted and convicted in the courts for doing so.
As to the theological aspect of the matter, I am not competent to speak; but
as a civil requirement, my opinion is that any legislation that attempts to
control the consciences of men as to the discharge of religious duty, can
only be the result of that ignorance and fanaticism which for centuries
proved to be the worst curse that ever afflicted humanity.
"Very respectfully yours,
"U. M. ROSE."
Mr. E. Stinson is a farmer and teacher in Hot Spring county, and writes: -
"MALCOLM, HOT SPRING COUNTY, ARK., March 27, 1887.
"Mr. Jones.
"DEAR SIR : In answer to your inquiry, will say that since the repeal of the
exemption clause in our statutes, which allowed persons who kept another
day than Sunday as Sabbath, to go about their ordinary work or business on
that day, several indictments have been found in Hot Spring county. In each
and every case the parties so indicted have been conscientious observers of
the seventh day, so far as I know them. To my knowledge, others have
705
worked on Sunday who did not observe the seventh day, and no bills were
found against them. I believe the prosecutions to be more for religious
persecution than for the purpose of guarding the Sunday from desecration.
The men who have been indicted are all good moral men and law-abiding
citizens, to the best of my knowledge. The indictments, to the best of my
belief, were malicious in their character, and without provocation. I believe
the unmodified Sunday law to be unjust in its nature, and that it makes an
unjust discrimination against a small but worthy class of our citizens. I am a
member of the Baptist Church, and not an observer of the seventh day; but I
accept with gratitude the recent change in the laws of our State, which
shows more respect for the conscientious convictions of all our citizens. I
do not believe that if the same acts for which the indictments were lodged
against Seventh-day Adventists, had been committed by those who did not
keep the seventh day, any notice would have been taken of them.
"Respectfully,
"E. STINSON."
The next is from the physician and the proprietor of the Potash Sulphur
Springs Hotel, a health resort seven miles southeast of Hot Springs. These
gentlemen are both old residents of the place, and are personally acquainted
with some of those who were convicted of "Sabbath-breaking" in Hot
Spring county "POTASH SULPHUR SPRINGS, ARK., March, 1887.
Mr. Fitzhugh, who wrote the following letter, was acting as deputy-sheriff
in Hot Spring county during the two years in which these persecutions were
being carried on, and therefore had the best of opportunities to know
whereof he speaks.
706
"On the second day of March, 1885, the legislature of Arkansas repealed the
law allowing any person to observe as the Sabbath any day of the week that
they preferred, and compelled them to keep the Christian Sabbath, or first
day of the week. The effect of this change worked a hardship on a class of
citizens in this county, known as Seventh-day Adventists, who observe the
seventh instead of the first day of the week, as the Lord's Sabbath. There
were five or six of them indicted (and some of them the second time) by the
Grand Jury of this county, for the violation of this law. In fact, these people
were the only ones that were indited for Sabbat-breaking, during the two
years in which this law was in force. I was not intimately acquainted with
but one of these people, Mr. John Shockey, who moved from Ohio, and
settled within one and one fourth miles of me, some two and a half years
ago. I know nothing in the character of this gentleman but what would
recommend him to the world at large. As a citizen, he recognizes and
regards the laws of our country (with the above exception); as a neighbor,
he might well be called a Samaritan; as a Christian, he is strict to his
profession, and proves his faith by his works.
"Respectfully,
"BENJ. C. FITZHUGH, Justice of the Peace.
"Malvern, Hot Spring County, Ark."
707
FOOTNOTES
Chapter I
*1 "Caesar," chap. ii, par. 6.
*2 Id., par.8.
*3 Id.,par. 7.
*4 Id., par. 8, 9.
*5 Id., chap. 1, par. 5.
*6 Id., chap. ii, par. 9.
*7 Reference to the Roman Constitution must not be understood in the
american sense, as being a written constitution. The Roman Constitution
was, as is the British, merely a system of precedents and unwritten rules of
long-established usage.
*8 Id., chap. iii, par. 5.
*9 Id., chap. iv, par. 6.
*10 Id., chap.vii, par.8.
*11 Froude uses the spelling "Sylla" instead of "Sulla." I have preferred the
latter form. It is that used by Merivale, Mommsen, and the "Encyclopedia
Britannica."
*12 Id., chap. viii, par. 10, 13.
Chapter II
*13 "History of the Romans Under the Empire," chap. iv, par. 22.
*14 Id., par. 33.
*15 "History of Rome," book v, chap. xi, par. 72.
*16 "Romans Under the Empire," chap. xi, par. 4 from end.
*17 "Caesar," chap. xxi, par. 3.
*18 Plutarch's "Lives," Numa, chap. xxxi. Merivale, "Romans Under the
Empire," chap. iv, par. 42; and chap. xx, par. 11.
708
*19 The girl's name was Clodia. She was Fulvia's daughter by Clodius, her
former husband.
*20 "Romans Under the Empire," chap. xxvi, par. 13.
*21 Id., par. 14.
*22 "History of Rome," chap. lix, sec. iv, par. 10.
*23 Id.
*24 "Romans Under the Empire," chap. xxvi, par. 15.
*25 "Lives of the Caesars," Augustus, chap. xxvii
*26 "Romans Under the Empire," chap. xxvii, par. 2.
*27 "History of Rome," chap. lx, sec. iii, par. 1.
*28 "Antony and Cleopatra," act ii, scene ii.
Chapter III
*29 "Decline and Fall," chap. iii, par. 17, 18.
*30 "Annals," book 1, chap. 4.
*31 Article "Augustus."
*32 "Lives of the Caesars," chap. xii.
*33 Id., chap. xiii. Merivale, "Romans Under the Empire," chap. xxii, par.
4.
*34 Id., chap. lxix.
*35 "Lives of the Caesars," Augustus, chap. lxv.
*36 "History of Rome," lxxii, sec. i, par. 9.
*37 "Lives of the Caesars," Tiberius, chap. xxiv.
*38 Id., chap. xxv.
*39 "Annals," book iii, chap. lxv.
*40 Id., book i, chap. lxxii.
*41 "History of Rome" chap. lxxiii, par. 2.
*42 "Annals," book iv, chap. xxx.
709
Chapter IV
*60 "Intellectual Development of Europe," chap. ix, par. 8.
*61 "Romans Under the Empire," chap. iv, par. 6.
*62 "Annals," book xv, chap. xiiv. I adopt Gibbon's Translation. See
"Decline and Fall," chap. xvi, par. 14.
*63 "History of Christianity," book iv, chap. ii, par. 17, note.
*64 "Romans Under the Empire," chap. lxii, par. 17.
*65 "Decline and Fall," chap. xvi, par. 18.
*66 "Romans Under the Empire", chap. lxii, par. 15
710
*67 These two letters are found in English in Dissertation iii, at the close of
Whiston's "Josephus."
*68 Eusebius's "Ecclesiastical History," book iv, chap. ix.
*69 "Decline and Fall," chap. iv, par. 9, 16.
*70 Id., chap. xvi, par. 34.
*71 Id., chap. vi, par. 10, 12.
*72 "Ecclesiastical History," book vi, chap. xxviii.
*73 "Decline and Fall," chap. vii, par. 8.
*74 Id., par. 9, 10.
*75 Id., chap. x, par. 14.
*76 Ante-Nicene Fathers," Treatises of Cyprian, "On the Lapsed," chap. vi.
*77 Id.
*78 Eusebius's "Ecclesiastical History," book vii, chap. x.
*79 "Decline and Fall,' chap. x, par. 50.
Chapter V
*80 "History of the Christian Religion and Church," vol. i, part i, Section
First, div. 3, par. 1.
*81 Quoted by James Freeman Clarke in "Ten Great Religions," chap. viii,
sec. iv, par. 1. He does not cite the place where Mommsen says it. I have
noted quite carefully Mommsen's "History of Rome," and have not found it.
The substance of it is there, in book iii, chap. xiii, par. 1, but this quotation
itself is not there. It must have been taken from some other of Mommsen's
works.
*82 Quoted in Neander's "History of the Christian Religion and Church,"
Section First, div. 3, par. 2.
*83 "Romans Under the Empire," chap. xxii, par. 21.
*84 "Ten Great Religions," chap. vii, sec. iii, par. 1, 4.
*85 "Decline and Fall," chap. xv, par. 15.
*86 "History of Rome," book i, chap. xii, par. 22.
711
Chapter VI
*96 "Decline and Fall," chap. iii, par. 33.
*97 "Annals," book iv, chap. xxxiii.
*98 Id., chap. xiii, par. 28.
*99 Id., chap. xvi, par. 45.
*100 Id., par. 44.
*101 "Ecclesiastical History," book viii, chap. 1.
*102 "Decline and Fall," chap xvi, par. 48.
*103 "History of European Morals," chap. iii, par.3 from the end.
*104 Eusebius's "Ecclesiastical History," book viii, chap. xvii. I
adoptGibbon's translation, "Decline and Fall," chap. xvi. par. 56.
*105 Id chap. xiv, par.1.
*106 Id., chap. xiv. par.10.
*107 id.,par.14.
*108 id.,par.15.
712
Chapter VII
*111 This is so among the Hindus of India, even to this day. " The most
sacred and the most universally used - even to the present day - of all Vedic
prayers is that composed in the Gayatri meter, and thence called Gayatri, or,
as addressed to the vivifying Sun-god, Savitri : `Let us meditate on that
excellent glory of the Divine vivifier; may he enlighten our understanding."
"Turning toward the Eastern sky, he repeats the Gayatri or Savitri . . . This
prayer is the most sacred of all Vedic utterances, and like the Lord's prayer
among Christians, . . . must always among Hindus take precedence of all
other forms of supplication. The next division of the service is called
Upasthana (or Mitro-pasthana) because the worshiper abandons his sitting
posture, stands erect with his face toward the rising sun, and invokes that
luminary under the name of Mitra. The prayer he now repeats is Rig-veda
iii, 59, of which the first verse is to the following effect :
" `Mitra, raising his voice, calls men to activity.
Mitra, sustains the earth and the sky.
Mitra, with unwaking eye, beholds call creatures.
Offer to Mitra the oblation of butter !'
The use of this hymn is the morning service of every Hindu." - " Religious
Thought and Life in India." chap i last par., and chap. xv, par., 41,57.
*112 Sun worship, with that of the other heavenly bodies, continued till the
rise of Mahomet. The father of Mahomet, when a boy, was devoted as a
sacrifice to the sun, but fortunately was ransomed. (See Gibbon," Decline
and Fall," Chap. 1, par 9.) It was from the horrors of sun-worship that
Mahomet turned Arabia.
*113 "Classical Dictionary," article "Hercules."
*114 The obelisk, or Cleopatra's Needle, brought from Egypt and now
standing in Central Park, New York City, is one of these stone sun-images.
*115 The obelisk, or Cleopatra's Needle, brought from Egypt and now
standing in Central Park, New York City, is one of these stone sun-images.
713
Chapter VIII
*133 "Ecclesiastical History," Century ii, part ii, chap. iv, par. 1, Murdock's
translation.
*134 Id., par. 3.
*135 Id., par. 5.
*136 "Classical Dictionary," Eleusinia.
*137 Id.
*138 Article "Mysteries."
*139 "Ecclesiastical History," Century ii, part ii, chap. iv, par. 5.
*140 Id., par. 7, Maclaine's translation.
714
Chapter IX
*162 D'Aubigne's "History of the Reformation." book vi, chap. iii. par. 7.
*163 "History of the Christian Beigion," Vol. i, Section Second, part i, div.
i, A, par. 5.
*164 "Ecclesiastical History," Century ii, part ii, par.4, Maclaine's
translation.
*165 Id. chap. iv, par. 4, Murdock's translation.
*166 "Epistle to the Ephesians," cha;. vi, and "To the Smyraeans," chap. ix.
*167 "Against Heresies, "book iv, chap. xxvi, par. 2; book iii, chap. iii,
par.2;and book iii, chap. iv, par. 1.
*168 "On the Lapsed," Chap. vi.
*169 "Ecclesiastical History,' Century iii, part ii, chap. ii, par. 4.
*170 "History of the Christian Religion," vol. i, second Section, part i. div.
i, B, par. 5.
*171 Epistle xxvi, chap. i, and epistle ixiii, chap. viii.
*172 Epistle ixiv, chap. iii.
*173 "History of Christianity," book iv, chap. i, par. 22.
*174 Epistle liv, chap. v.
*175 Id., li, chap. xiiv.
*176 "Lives of the Popes," Stephen, par. 8.
*177 "Eusebius's Ecclesiastical History," book vii, chap. xxx.
Chapter X
*178 "History of the Christian Religion," Vol. ii, Section First, part i, A,
par. 11.
*179 "History of Christianity," book iii, chap. i, par. 33.
*180 Schaff, "History of the Christian Church," Vol. iii, 2, par. 15.
*181 Id.
716
Chapter XI
*215 " Intellectual Development of Europe,' Chap. ix, par. 22.
*216 "History of the Christian Religion and Church," Vol. ii, Section
Second, part i, div. i, par. 2.
*217 "Life of Constantine," book i, chap. xii.
*218 Id., chap. xx
*219 Id., chap.
*220 Id., chap. xxxviii.
*221 Id., chap. xlii.
*222 "History of the Christian Religion and Church." Vol. ii, Section First,
part i, div. A, par. 26.
*223 Id., Section First, part i, div. A, par. 27.
*224 "Life of Constantine," book ii, chap xii.
*225 "Ecclesiastical History," book i, chap. viii.
*226 "Life of Constantine," book ii, chap. xviii.
*227 Id., book iii, chap. x.
*228 "Ecclesiastical History," book i, chap, xi.
*229 "Life of Constantine," book iii, chap. 15.
*230 Stanley, "History of the Eastern Church," Lecture v, par. 34.
*231 "Life of Constantine," book iv, chap. xxxiii.
718
Chapter XII
*244 "Intellectual Development of Europe," chap. x, par. 6.
*245 Id., chap. ix par. 24.
*246 Eusebius's "Ecclesiastical History," book x, chap. v.
*247 Id.
*248 "History of Christianity ," book iii, chap. i, par 10 from the end.
*249 "History of the Popes," Melchiades, par. 2.
*250 Id., par. 3.
*251 Eusebius's Ecclesiastical History," book x. chap. vii.
*252 "History of the Popes," Melchiades, par . 5.
*253 Eusebius's "Ecclesiastical History," book x, chap. v.
*254 Id.,
719
Chapter XIII
*273 "History of the Christian Religion and Church," Vol II, Section
Second, part I, div. i. par.2
*274 "History of the Christina Religion," Vol ii, Section Second, part i, div.
i, par. 3
720
translates "shut out." The following is the Latin: "Quod non oportet
Christianos Judizere et otaire in Sabbato, sed operai in eodem die.
Preference autem in veneration Dominicum diem si vacare voluerine,t at
Christiani hoc faciat; quod si reperti fuerint Judaizerer Anathema sint a
Christo."
*292 "History of the Christian Religion and Church," Vol. ii, Section Third,
part ii, div. iii. par. 4.
*293 Id.
*294 Id.par. 5.
*295 Id.
*296 Hefele's "History of the Church Councils," Fifth Carthaginian.
*297 "History of the Christian Religious and Church," Vol. ii, Section
Third, part i, div. iii, par. 5.
*298 Id.
*299 Id.
*300 "The Correction of the Donatists," chap. vi. I adopt Schaff's
translation, "History of the Christian Church, Vol. iii, par. 12.
*301 "History of the Christian Religion and Church," Vol. ii, Section
Second, part iii, div, i, last par.
*302 Id., Section Third, part ii, div. iii, par. 5
Chapter XIV
*303 Eusebius's "Life of Constantine," book iii, chaps. lxiv, lxv.
*304 "Decline and Fall," chap. xxi, par. i.
*305 "History of the Eastern Church," Lecture iii, par. 8.
*306 Theodoret's "Ecclesiastical History," book i, chap. iv.
*307 Id., chap. v.
*308 "Decline and Fall," chap. xxi, par. 8.
*309 "Ecclesiastical History," book i, chap. xxiii.
*310 "History of Christianity," book iii, chap. iv, par. 5.
722
*329 Id.
*330 Stanley, "History of the Eastern Church," Lecture iv, par. 41.
*331 Id.
*332 "History of Christianity," book iii, chap. iv, par. 1.
*333 "History of the Christian Religion and Church," Vol. ii, Section
Second, part i, div. i, par. 1.
Chapter XV
*334 "History of Christianity," book iii. chap. iv, par. 21.
*335 Id., par. 23.
*336 Id., par. 29
*337 "History of the Christian Religion and Church," Vol. ii, Section
Fourth, div. ii, a, par. 30.
*338 "Intellectual Development of Europe," chap ix, par. 39.
*339 "History of Christianity," book iii, chap. iv, par. 32, and note.
*340 Article "Constantine."
*341 "History of Christianity," book iii, chap. v, par. 9
*342 Id., par. 11.
*343 Id., par. 18; Socrates's "Ecclesiastical History," book ii, chap. xvi;
Gibbon, "Decline and Fall," chap. xxi, par. 36.
*344 Id., par. 14.
*345 See the original, in Milman's "History of Christianity," book iii., chap.
v, note to par. 34.
*346 "History of the Popes," Julius, par. 5; Hefele, "History of the
Councils," Sardica, canons 3, 4, 5.
*347 "Decline and Fall," chap. xxi. par. 26.
*348 "History of Christianity," book iii, chap. v. par. 15
*349 "History of the Popes," Liberius, par. 4.
*350 "History of the Church Councils," sec. 74, par. 6.
724
Chapter XVI
*367 "History of the Popes," Liberius, par. 29.
*368 "History of Christianity," book iii, chap. vi, par. 9.
*369 "History of the Christian Religion and Church," Vol. ii, Section First,
part i, A, par. 74.
*370 "Ecclesiastical History," book iii, chap. 25.
*371 Id.
*372 "Decline and Fall," chap. xxv, par. 9.
725
Chapter XVII
*392 "History of Christianity," book iii, chap. ix par. 36.
*393 Id., par. 45.
*394 "Decline and fall," chap. xxvii. par. 9, note.
*395 Id.,par. 13.
*396 Hefele, "History of the Church Councils," sec. 115, par. 4.
726
Chapter XVIII
*425 "History of Latin Christianity," book ii, chap. iv, par. 22.
*426 Bower's "History of the Popes," Leo, par. 22.
*427 Hefele's "History of the Church Councils," sec. 172, par. 3.
*428 Id., par. 13.
*429 Id., par. 21.
*430 Id., par. 22.
*431 "History of the Popes," Leo, par. 24.
*432 Hefele's "History of the Church Councils," sec. 172, par. 22-24; and
Bower's "History of the Popes," Leo, par. 46.
*433 Bower, Id., par. 25.
*434 Hefele's "History of the Church Councils," sec. 173, par. 10.
*435 Id., sec. 178, par. 5.
*436 Id., sec. 175 par. 3.
*437 Id., par. 6.
*438 Id., sec. 178, par. 6, 7.
*439 Milman's "History of Latin Christianity," book ii, chap. iv, par. 30.
*440 Bower's " History of the Popes," Leo, par. 31.
*441 Id.
*442 Hefele's "History of the Church Councils," sec. 178, par. 15.
728
*443 Bower's "History of the Popes," Leo, par. 32; Milman's "History of
Latin Christianity," book ii, chap. iv, par. 30; and Hefele's of the Church
Councils," sec. 178, par. 16, and sec. 179.
*444 Bower, Id., par. 34.
Chapter XIX
*445 "History of Latin Christianity", book ii, chap. iv, par. 2.
*446 Id., book i, chap. ii, par. 1.
*447 "History of the Christian church," Vol. iii, section 62, par. 6.
*448 "History of Popes,"Siricius, par. 21.
*449 Id., "Innocent," par. 8 from the end.
*450 "History of Popes," Celestine, par. 15.
*451 "History of Popes," Celestine, par. 15.
*452 Milman,"History of Latin Christianity," book ii, chap. iv, par. 2.
*453 Id., par. 16; and Bower,"History of the popes," Leo, par. 8.
*454 "History of; the Popes," Leo, par. 35.
*455 "History of the Popes," Leo, par. 40.
*456 Id.
*457 Bower's "History of the Popes," Leo, par. 43.
*458 Evagrius's Ecclesiastical History," book ii, chap. iv.
*459 "History of the Church Councils," sec. 189, par. 4. This is the
Theodoret whose "Ecclesiastical History" has been several times referred to
in this book.
*460 Quoted by Stanley, "History of the Eastern Church," Lecture ii, par. 8
from the end.
*461 Hefele, "History of a the Church Councils," sec. 189, par. 4.
*462 "History of Latin Christianity," book ii, chap. iv, par. 38.
*463 "History of the Popes," Leo,l par. 45.
*464 Hefele's "History of the Church Councils," sec. 183, last three par.
Milman's "History of Latin Christianity," book ii, chap. iv, par. 38. In the
729
rest of this chapter, I follow so closely and so fully, Hefele's "History of the
Church Councils," that I shall not attempt to cite particular references. The
only references that I shall make are to passages not derived from Hefele's
account. In following Hefele, however, I have maintained the uniformity of
the narrative by turning indirect quotations into direct, and so have
preserved as far as possible the personality of the speakers.
*465 Bower,"History of the Popes," Leo, par. 40.
*466 Evagrius's "Ecclesiastical History," book ii, chap. iv. par. 4.
*467 Quoted by Stanley, "History of Eastern Church," Lecture ii, par. 24.
*468 "Ecclesiastical History,"book ii, chap. v; Hefele's "History of the
Church Councils," sec. 193,par. 5, note; Schaff's "History of the Christian
Church," Vol. iii, section 140, par 9. note; section 141, par. 12, note 4.
*469 "History of the Christian Church," Vol. iii. section 142, par. 1, 2.
Chapter XX
*470 "History of Latin Christianity," book i, chap. ii, par. 1.
*471 "History of Christianity," book iii, chap. iii, par. 1.
*472 "History of the Christian Church," Vol. iii, section 55, par. 1, note.
*473 "History of the Popes," Damasus, par. 8.
*474 "Ecclesiastical History," book i, chap. ix, par. 2.
*475 "History of Christianity," book iv, chap. 1, par. 49.
*476 "History of the Christian Religion and Church," Vol. ii, Section
Second, part i, div. i, par. 12.
*477 "History of the Christian Church," Vol, iii, section 16, par. 5.
*478 Neander, "History of the Christian Religion," Vol. ii, Section Second,
part i, div. i, par. 14; and the canon itself in Hefele's "History of the Church
Councils."
*479 "History of Christianity," book iv, chap. v, par. 17.
*480 See Schaff, "History of the Christian Church," Vol, iii, section 175.
*481 Neander, "History of the Christian Religion," Vol. ii, Section Second,
part i, div. i, par. 14.
730
Chapter XXI
*495 "History of the Christian Religion," Vol. ii, Section Second, part i, div.
i, par. 7.
*496 "History of Christianity," book vi, chap. i, par. 39.
*497 Id.
*498 "Historical Studies," Bishops of Rome, par. 13.
*499 "History of Latin Christianity," book i, chap. ii, par. 18, and note.
*500 Book xxvii, chap. iii, par. 12-15, Bower's translation, "history of the
Popes," Damasus, par. 6.
*501 "History of the Christian Church," Vol. iii, section 53, par. 3.
*502 Quoted and translated by Milman, "History of Latin Christianity,"
book i, chap. ii, par. 20, note 1.
*503 "History of Christianity," book iv, chap. i, par. 13, 13, 15.
731
Chapter XXII
*530 "History of the Popes," Leo, last par. but one.
*531 "History of Latin Christianity," book ii, chap. ii, para. 21; Socrates's
"Ecclesiastical History," book vii, chap. xxx.
*532 "History of Latin Christianity," book iii, chap. ii, para. 27.
*533 Id. par. 28.
*534 "Decline and Fall," chap. xxxviii, par. 6.
*535 "History of Latin Christianity," book iii, chap. ii, par. 27.
*536 "Decline and Fall," chap. xxxviii, par. 8
*537 Id., par. 11.
*538 Id., par. 12, and Milman's "History of Latin Christianity," book iii,
chap. ii, par. 29.
*539 "History of Latin Christianity," Id., par. 29.
*540 Id., par. 33, 34.
*541 "History of the Popes," Felix II, par. 1.
*542 "The Holy Roman Empire," chap. iv, par. 7.
*543 Gibbon, "Decline and Fall," chap. xxxix, par. 5.
*544 Id., par. 6.
*545 "History of Latin Christianity," book iii, chap. iii, para. 3.
*546 "Decline and Fall," chap. xxxix, par. 14; and Milman's "History of
Latin Christianity, iii, chap. iii, par. 5.
*547 Milman's "History of Latin Christianity," book iii, chap. iii, par. 8
from the end.
*548 Id., par. 11.
*549 Id., par. 14.
*550 "History of the Popes,"Symmachus, par. 9, 10.
*551 Id., par. 16.
*552 Id., par. 18.
733
*553 "Decline and Fall," chap. 17; Milman's "History of Latin Christianity,"
book iii, chap. iii, para. 23.
*554 Milman's "History of Latin Christianity," book iii, chap. iii, par. 30.
*555 Id.
*556 Id.
*557 Id., par. 32.
*558 Id., para. 28
*559 Bower's "History of the Popes," Felix III, par. 1.
*560 "Decline and Fall," chap. xlvii, par. 23.
*561 "History of Latin Christianity," book iii, chap. iv, par. 2.
*562 "History of the Popes," Boniface II, par. 3.
*563 Id., John II, par. 1.
*564 Id., par. 2.
*565 "History of Latin Christianity," book iii, chap. i, par. 5.
*566 Id., Bower calls him Timothy the Cat; but whether "weasel" or "cat,"
the distinction is not material, as either fitly describes his disposition, thogh
both would not exaggerate it.
*567 Id., par. 31.
*568 Id., par. 21, 22.
*569 Id.
*570 Croly's "Apocalypse," chap. xi, "History," under verses 3-10.
*571 "History of Latin Christianity," book iii, chap. iv, par. 6.
*572 Gibbon's "Decline and Fall," chap. xii, par. 3.
*573 Id., par. 7-12.
*574 "History of the Popes," Agapetus, par. 5, note A.
*575 "Decline and Fall," chap. xii, par. 11.
*576 "History of Latin Christianity," book iii chap. iv, par. 7.
*577 "Decline and Fall," chap. xii, par. 22.
734
*578 Id., par. 23, 28 and chap. xliii, par. 4. Afterward, from 54a till 553,
there was carried on what had been called the "Gothic" War; but those who
made the war were not Goths. They were "a new people" made up of
Roman captives, slaves, deserters, and whoever else might choose to join
them, with but a thousand Goths to begin with. See Gibbon, Id., chap. xliii,
par.4 and 6.
*579 Article "Popedom," par. 25.
*580 "History of Latin Christianity," book iii, chap. iv, last two par.
*581 "History of Latin Christianity," book iii, chap. vii, par. 1.
*582 Article "Lombards," par 6.
*583 "Decline and Fall," chap. xiv. par. 18.
*584 Id., chap. xlix, par. 9.
*585 "History of Latin Christianity," book iv, chap. ix, par. 14, 26.
*586 Milman's "History of Latin Christianity," book iv, chap. ix, par. 24.
*587 "Decline and Fall," chap. xlix, par. 12.
*588 Id., par. 13.
*589 "History of Latin Christianity," book iv, chap. xi, par. 24.
*590 Id., par.25.
*591 Id., par. 28.
*592 Id., par. 31.
*593 Id., par. 41.
*594 Id., chap. xii, par. 16.
*595 Id., par. 26.
*596 Id., par. 31, and Gibbon's "Decline and Fall," chap. xlix, par. 20.
*597 "Decline and Fall," chap. xiv, par. 22.
*598 Schaff's "History of the Vatican Council," Decrees, chap. iv. The
"pontificate" is that of Plus IX.
*599 Speeches of Pope Plus IX, pp. 9, 17; Gladstone's Review, p. 6.
*600 Neander's "History of the Christian Religion and Church," Vol. ii,
Section Second, part i, div. ii, par. 29.
735
Chapter XXIII
*601 D'Aublgne's "History of the Reformation," book vi,chap. xi, par.9.
*602 Id., par. 13.
*603 Id., book vii, chap. xi, par. 13.
*604 Id., book ix, chap. viii, par. 14.
*605 Id., par. par. 22.
*606 Id., book x, chap. par. 19.
*607 Schaff's "History of the Christian Church, "Vol. xiv, section 11, par.
22, 23.
*608 "Ecclesiastical History," Century xvii, sec. ii, part ii, chap. 1, par. 16
*609 For these quotations, under "Zwingle," see D'Aubigne's "History of
the Regormation," book xvi, chap. iv par. 1. chap. i, par. 7. chap. iv, par. 2:
and chap. viii, par. 6 from the end.
*610 Id., book ix, chap. x, par. 9.
*611 Id., book. xviii, chap. v, par.5.
*612 Id., book ix, chap. x. par. 12.
*613 Id., par. 17.
*614 Id., book xviii chap. v, par. 10-12
*615 Id., book ix, chap. x, par. 20-24
*616 Id., book xix, last chap., last par. but one.
*617 "Larger History of the English People, "book v, chap. iv, par. 16.
*618 Id., par. 21, 22.
*619 Id., book vi, chap. 1, par. 5, 1 and book v, chap. iv, par. 13.
*620 Essays, "Hallam," par. 27.
*621 "History of Protestantism," book xiv, chap. x, last par. but one.
*622 Id. Everybody had to be at home by nine o'clock at night; and hotel
keepers were required to see that this rule was observed by their guests.
Rules were made "restraining excess in dress, and profusion at meals:" and
736
*694 Id.
*695 Id., p. 173.
*696 Besse's "Sufferings of the Quakers."
*697 "Emancipation of Massachusetts," pp. 175, 176; "Beginnings of New
England," pp. 188, 189.
*698 "Emancipation of Massachusetts," pp. 18, 151, 152; "Beginnings of
New England," p. 190.
*699 "Emancipation of Massachusetts," p. 177.
*700 Id., p.142.
*701 Id., pp. 148, 149.
*702 Id., p. 172.
*703 "Emancipation of Massachusetts," pp. 155-157.
*704 "History of the United States," chap. "The Place of Puritanism in
History," par. 5. In his last revision, however, this is softened into this: "The
uncompromising Congregationalists of Massachusetts indulged the passions
of their English persecutors."
*705 "History of the United States," Vol. i, chap. xii, par. 1, 2.
*706 Trumbull's "Blue Laws, True and False," p. 83, with note.
*707 Besse's "Sufferings of the Quakes."
*708 Charters and Constitutions, Pennsylvania.
*709 "John Wesley a Missioner to Georgia," by William Stevens Perry,
D.D., bishop of the Protestant Episcopal Church of Iowa; New York
Independent, March 5, 1891, pp. 5, 6.
*710 "History of the United States," chap. "Self-Government in
Massachusetts,"par. 22.
Chapter XXIV
*711 In Argument in Cincinnati Case, Minor et al. Bible in the Public
Schools," p. 241.
*712 Quoted by Stanley Matthews, Id., p. 242.
741
*713 Quoted in Bancroft's "History of the United States," Vol. iii, chap. vii,
par. 14-12.
*714 Constitution, Article vi.
*715 Id., First Amendment.
*716 "Treaty with Tripoli," Article ii.
*717 Charters and Constitutions, Virginia.
*718 Baird's "Religion in America," book iii, chap. iii, par. 9-16.
*719 Id., par. 21-23.
*720 Blackly's "American State Papers," pp. 27-38.
*721 Id., pp. 23-26.
*722 Id., pp. 44.
*723 Bancroft's "History of the Formation of the Constitution," book iv,
chap.iii, par. 17.
*724 Blakely's "American State Papers," pp. 45.
*725 "History of the Formation of the Constitution," book v. chap. 1, par.
10, 11.
Chapter XXV
*726 The reader will find these and many others like them in the
"Proceedings of the faith National Reform Convection, "held in Pittsburg,
February 4, 5, 1874, issued by the National Reform Association, and sold
by the Christian Statesman Publishing Company, Philadelphia, pa.
*727 In lending his name and influence to this Association, Mr. Street
seems to have forgotten the experiences of his denominational ancestors in
New England under a government with which that which is now proposed
by this Association is identical.
*728 Dr. Fitzgerald has since been made a bishop a bishop of the methodist
Episcopal Church South This makes the number of bishop vice presidents
twelve.
*729 See Page 227 of this book.
742
Chapter XXVI
*744 Senate Hearing on "Sunday Bill," page 18.
*745 See page 235-236 of this book.
*746 There is no such statement in the Bible.
*747 See page 248-249 of this book.
*748 See pages 238-242 of this book.
*749 Pages 462, 464, and 413, of this book. "The-rulers of Massachusetts
put the Quakers to death, and banished the 'Antinomians' and 'Anabaptists,'
not because of their religious tenets, but because of their violations of the
744
civil laws. This is the justification which they pleaded, and it was the best
they could make. Miserable excuse ! . . . So the defenders of the Inquisition
have always spoken and written justification of that awful and most
iniquitous tribunal." - Baird, "Religion in America," book ii, chap. xix, par.
14, note.
*750 See pages 235, 236 of this book.
*751 See page 504.
*752 Bower's "History of the Popes," Palagius, par. 6.
*753 For record of cases see Appendix.
*754 At each successive session of the legislature since, strong efforts have
been made again to repeal this section.
Chapter XXVII
*755 See page 204-205, of this book.
*756 Blakely's"American State Papers," p. 75.
*757 "Government Chaplains," by Lorenzo D. Johnson, 1856.
*758 Yet instead of allowing the institution to stand self-condemned upon
his own positive evidence, and demanding its unconditional abolition, he
advocated a "reform" that would be nothing less than a positive
establishment of religion - he wanted a governmental examining board of
clergy to pass upon the qualifications for all candidates for chaplaincies in
the army and navy. As for chaplains for Congress, he wanted them taken in
succession, a week each, from thesettled pastors of Washington City.
*759 Blakely's "American State Papers," pp. 56, 57. Id., p. 75.
*760 See p. 226-227, of this book.
*761 Congressional Record, Fifty-first Congress, first session, p. 8,341.
*762 Id., p. 8,353. All the quotations in this division are from the same
number of the Record; that is, the Congressional Record dated July 25,
1890, giving the proceedings of the 24th.
*763 In the New York Independent of March 19, 1891, Janes M. King, D.
D., who was present at Washington, working against the appropriations,
describes "the most humiliating spectacle, to see representatives of
sovereign States, as well as the representatives of districts, . . . give
745
expression to their fears that their vote in accord with their convictions
would prejudice their political future." The opposition succeeded in
reducing the appropriations to the Protestant denominations by the sum of
$8,814, while in spite of all opposition, the appropriation to the Catholic
Church was increased by the sum of $6,392, for the fiscal year 1891-92.
(See Independent February 12, 1871, p. 13.)
*764 The proceedings in both these hearings, are printed in full in the
United States State Document, "Religion and Schools, Notes of Hearings,"
of above dates.
*765 It is true that both Senator Blair and Senator Edmunds are now out of
senatorial office; but their influence in behalf of such legislation as this is
not much lessened by that, except in the power to vote for it.
*766 See pages 246, 249 of this book.
*767 See page 241-242, this book.
*768 See pages 65-66 and 86, this book.
*769 That this point not misplaced was made evident shortly afterward in
Plainfield, N. J. The Pearl of Days, the official organ of the American
Sunday Union, in March, 1889, gave the following statement from the
Plainfield [N.J.] Times [no date]: "As a rule Plainfield, N. J., is a very quiet
city on Sunday. Liquor, provision, and cigar stores are closed by the
enforcement of a city ordinance. If a resident wants a cigar, he will either
have it given to him by one of the many pharmacists who refuse to sell on
?Sunday, or he will go to the two dealers who are allowed to open t heir
places on Sunday because they observe Saturday as their Sabbath. Some
time ago a man of Catholic faith, who had an eye to Sunday business in that
line, became a regular attendant at the Seventh day Baptist church
Eventually he asked to be admitted into the fellowship of the church . A
member of the official board was advised that the applicant for membership
was only working for business ends He was closely examined by the church
officers, and he finally admitted that he wanted to open a cigar store and do
business on Sunday. The man appeared at the wrong place for aid in
carrying out his mercenary purpose He was not received into membership
and the southern sentinel of Dallas we have an example of how the law can
he evaded. Parties have leased the billiard hall of the new Mc Leod Hotel,
and have stipulated in their lease that they are conscientious observers of
the seventh day [though to the best of the common knowledge and belief
746
they are not]; that, in consequence, their business house will be closed on
Saturday, and will be open on Sunday."
*770 See pages 245, 246 of this book.
*771 Let us not be misunderstood in this. We do not deny the right of any
person to keep Sunday. So far as earthly government, or any authority of
mankind is concerned, any person has just as much right to keep Sunday as
anybody has to keep the Sabbath. This is their right, and they are
responsible to God only, for the exercise of it. What we object to is their
assumption of authority , and their demand for laws, to compel anybody to
keep it. Nor do we object to their doing this because there is no command of
God for it. We would object just as much to their doing it, though there
were ten thousand commands of God for it. No authority but that of God
can ever of right enforce a command of God. Men are responsible to God
alone for their conduct with respect to anything by him.
Chapter XXVIII
*772 Page 532, this book.
*773 Christian Statesman, August 31, 1881.
*774 Essays, "Von Ranke."
*775 See Rev. xvii, 5: "Upon her forehead was a name written, MYSTERY,
BABYLON THE GREAT, THE MOTHER OF HARLOTS AND
ABOMINATIONS OF THE EARTH."
*776 See pages 122-125 of this book.
*777 See pages 391-394, 396 of this book.
Appendix
*778 This savors strongly of the "breath of the Puritan" which Dr. Herrick
Johnson so devoutly invokes.